summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/50231-0.txt11898
-rw-r--r--old/50231-0.zipbin245703 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h.zipbin1676998 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/50231-h.htm14425
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/cover.jpgbin93745 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_004.jpgbin90033 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_027.jpgbin94983 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_059.jpgbin83277 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_071.jpgbin77214 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_103.jpgbin69629 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_137.jpgbin87218 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_165.jpgbin72521 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_193.jpgbin90865 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_231.jpgbin80762 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_241.jpgbin72687 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_263.jpgbin84165 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_303.jpgbin84805 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_327.jpgbin78691 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_333.jpgbin90914 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_371.jpgbin77621 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/50231-h/images/i_377.jpgbin88008 -> 0 bytes
24 files changed, 17 insertions, 26323 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b8e79ee
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #50231 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/50231)
diff --git a/old/50231-0.txt b/old/50231-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 207a85d..0000000
--- a/old/50231-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11898 +0,0 @@
-Project Gutenberg's The Romance of Modern Sieges, by Edward Gilliat
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The Romance of Modern Sieges
- Describing the personal adventures, resource and daring
- of besiegers and beseiged in all parts of the world
-
-Author: Edward Gilliat
-
-Release Date: October 16, 2015 [EBook #50231]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMANCE OF MODERN SIEGES ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Paul Clark and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- Transcriber's Note:
-
- Every effort has been made to replicate this text as faithfully as
- possible, including some inconsistent hyphenation. Some minor
- corrections of spelling and punctuation have been made.
-
- Italic text has been marked with _underscores_.
-
-
-
-
-The Romance of Modern Sieges
-
-
-[Illustration: THE SALLY FROM THE FORT AT KUMASSI
-
-Led by Capt. Armitage, some two hundred loyal natives sallied forth. At
-their head marched the native chiefs, prominent amongst whom was the
-young king of Aguna. He was covered back and front with fetish charms,
-and on his feet were boots, and where these ended his black legs
-began.]
-
-
-
-
- THE ROMANCE OF
- MODERN SIEGES
-
- DESCRIBING THE PERSONAL ADVENTURES,
- RESOURCE AND DARING OF BESIEGERS
- AND BESIEGED IN ALL PARTS OF
- THE WORLD
-
- BY
- EDWARD GILLIAT, M.A.
-
- SOMETIME MASTER AT HARROW SCHOOL
- AUTHOR OF “FOREST OUTLAWS,” “IN LINCOLN GREEN,” _&c._, _&c._
-
- WITH SIXTEEN ILLUSTRATIONS
-
- PHILADELPHIA
- J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY
-
- LONDON: SEELEY & CO. LIMITED
- 1908
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE
-
-
-These chapters are not histories of sieges, but narratives of such
-incidents as occur in beleaguered cities, and illustrate human nature
-in some of its strangest moods. That “facts are stranger than fiction”
-these stories go to prove: such unexpected issues, such improbable
-interpositions meet us in the pages of history. What writer of fiction
-would dare to throw down battlements and walls by an earthquake, and
-represent besiegers as paralysed by religious fear? These tales are
-full, indeed, of all the elements of romance, from the heroism and
-self-devotion of the brave and the patient suffering of the wounded, to
-the generosity of mortal foes and the kindliness and humour which gleam
-even on the battle-field and in the hospital. But the realities of war
-have not been kept out of sight; now and then the veil has been lifted,
-and the reader has been shown a glimpse of those awful scenes which
-haunt the memory of even the stoutest veteran.
-
-We cannot realize fully the life that a soldier lives unless we see
-both sides of that life. We cannot feel the gratitude that we ought to
-feel unless we know the strain and suspense, the agony and endurance,
-that go to make up victory or defeat. In time of war we are full of
-admiration for our soldiers and sailors, but in the past they have been
-too often forgotten or slighted when peace has ensued. Not to keep in
-memory the great deeds of our countrymen is mere ingratitude.
-
-Hearty acknowledgments are due to the authors and publishers who have
-so kindly permitted quotation from their books. Every such permission
-is more particularly mentioned in its place. The writer has also had
-many a talk with men who have fought in the Crimea, in India, in
-France, and in South Africa, and is indebted to them for some little
-personal touches such as give life and colour to a narrative.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR (1779-1782)
-
- PAGES
-
- The position of the Rock--State of defence--Food-supply--Rodney
- brings relief--Fire-ships sent in--A convoy in a fog--Heavy
- guns bombard the town--Watching the cannon-ball--Catalina gets
- no gift--One against fourteen--Red-hot shot save the day--Lord
- Howe to the rescue 17-27
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- DEFENCE OF ACRE (1799)
-
- Jaffa stormed by Napoleon--Sir Sidney Smith hurries to
- Acre--Takes a convoy--How the French procured cannon-balls--The
- Turks fear the mines--A noisy sortie--Fourteen assaults--A
- Damascus blade--Seventy shells explode--Napoleon nearly
- killed--The siege raised--A painful retreat 28-36
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- THE WOUNDED CAPTAIN IN TALAVERA (1809)
-
- Talavera between two fires--Captain Boothby wounded--Brought
- into Talavera--The fear of the citizens--The surgeons’
- delay--Operations without chloroform--The English retire--French
- troops arrive--Plunder--French officers kind, and protect
- Boothby--A private bent on loot beats a hasty retreat 37-52
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- THE CAPTURE OF CIUDAD RODRIGO (1812)
-
- A night march--Waiting for scaling-ladders--The assault--Ladders
- break--Shells and grenades--A magazine explodes--Street
- fighting--Drink brings disorder and plunder--Great spoil 53-61
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- THE STORMING OF BADAJOS (1812)
-
- Rescue of wounded men--A forlorn hope--Fire-balls light up the
- scene--A mine explodes--Partial failure of the English--Escalade
- of the castle--Pat’s humour and heroism--Saving a
- General--Wellington hears the news--The day after the storm 62-75
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- A PRISONER IN ST. SEBASTIAN (1813)
-
- The _coup de grâce_--The hospital--A cruel order--An attempt at
- escape--Removed to the castle--The English at the breach--Many
- are wounded--French ladies sleep in the open--A vertical
- fire--English gunners shoot too well--A good sabre lightly won 76-89
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- JELLALABAD (1842)
-
- Position of the town--Sale’s brigade rebuilds the defences--A
- sortie--Bad news--A queer noise--A ruse that did not
- succeed--The only survivor comes in--Story of a massacre--The
- earthquake--The walls are down--Are rebuilt--English
- magic--Pollock comes--Fight outside--The peril of Lady Sale 90-109
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- SIEGE OF SEBASTOPOL (1854-1856)
-
- The English land without tents--Mr. Kinglake shows off before
- Lord Raglan--The Alma--Strange escapes--Looted houses--Fair
- plunder--Balaklava Bay--Horses lost at sea--A derelict worth
- having--Jack very helpful--The Heavy and Light
- Brigades--Spies--Fraternizing 110-125
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- AFTER INKERMANN (1854)
-
- Valiant deeds--Lord Raglan under fire--Tryon the best shot--A
- Prince’s button--A cold Christmas--Savage horses--The Mamelon
- redoubt--Corporal Quin--Colonel Zea 126-136
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- THE INDIAN MUTINY--DELHI (1857-1858)
-
- The Mutiny begins--A warning from a sepoy--A near thing--A
- noble act of a native officer--In camp at Delhi with no kit--A
- plan that failed--Our first check--Wilson in command--Seaton
- wounded--Arrival of Nicholson--Captures guns--The assault--The
- fate of the Princes--Pandy in a box 137-158
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- THE DEFENCE OF LUCKNOW (31ST OF MAY TO 25TH OF SEPTEMBER, 1857)
-
- Firing at close quarters--Adventures of fugitives--Death of Sir
- H. Lawrence--His character--Difficulty of sending letters--Mines
- and counter-mines--Fulton killed--Signs of the relief coming--A
- great welcome--Story of the escape from Cawnpore 159-174
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW (1857)
-
- The scene at Cawnpore--Fights before Lucknow--Nearly blown up--A
- hideous nightmare--Cheering a runaway--All safe out of the
- Residency--A quick march back--Who stole the biscuits?--Sir
- Colin’s own regiment 175-190
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- RUNNING THE BLOCKADE (1861)
-
- North _v._ South--A new President hates slavery--Port Sumter is
- bombarded--Ladies on the house-top--Niggers don’t mind
- shells--A blockade-runner comes to Oxford--The _Banshee_ strips
- for the race--Wilmington--High pay--Lights out--Cast the lead--A
- stern chase--The run home--Lying _perdu_--The _Night-hawk_ saved
- by Irish humour--Southern need at the end of the war--Negro
- dignity waxes big 191-201
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- THE FIRST IRONCLADS (1862)
-
- Will they sink or swim?--Captain Ericsson, the Swede--The
- _Merrimac_ raised and armoured--The _Monitor_ built by private
- venture--_Merrimac_ surprises Fort Monroe--The _Cumberland_
- attacked--The silent monster comes on--Her ram makes an
- impression--Morris refuses to strike his flag--The _Cumberland_
- goes down--The _Congress_ is next for attention--On fire and
- forced to surrender--Blows up at midnight--The _Minnesota_
- aground shows she can bite--General panic--Was it Providence?--A
- light at sea--Only a cheese-box on a raft--Sunday’s fight
- between two monsters--The _Merrimac_ finds she is deeply hurt,
- wounded to death--The four long hours--Worden and Buchanan both
- do their best--Signals for help--The fiery end of the
- _Whitehall_ gunboat 202-212
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- CAPTURE OF NEW ORLEANS (1862)
-
- New Orleans and its forts--Farragut despises craven counsel--The
- mortar-fleet in disguise--Fire-rafts rush down--A week of hot
- gun-fire--A dash through the defences--The _Varuna’s_ last
- shot--Oscar, aged thirteen--Ranged before the city--Anger of
- mob--Summary justice--Soldiers insulted in the streets--General
- Butler in command--Porter nearly blown up in
- council--Fort Jackson in ruins--“The fuse is out” 213-219
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE SIEGE OF RICHMOND (1862 AND 1865)
-
- Fair Oaks a drawn battle--Robert Lee succeeds Johnston--Reforms
- in the army--Humours of the sentinels--Chaffing the
- niggers--Their idea of liberty--The pickets chum
- together--Stuart’s raid--A duel between a Texan and a
- German--Effect of music on soldiers--A terrible retreat to James
- River--Malvern Hill battle-scenes--Three years after--General
- Grant before Richmond--Coloured troops enter the Southern
- capital in triumph--Lee surrenders--Friends once more 220-230
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- THE SIEGE OF PARIS (1870-1871)
-
- WITH THE GERMANS OUTSIDE
-
- The Germans invest Paris--Trochu’s sortie fails--The English
- ambulance welcomed--A Prince’s visit to the wounded--In the
- snow--Madame Simon--A brave Lieutenant--Piano and jam--The big
- guns begin--St. Denis--Old Jacob writes to the Crown Prince--A
- dramatic telegram--Spy fever--Journalists mobbed 231-240
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- THE SIEGE OF PARIS--_Continued_
-
- WITH THE BESIEGED (1870-1871)
-
- Moods in Paris--The Empress escapes--Taking down Imperial
- flags--Playing dominoes under fire--Cowards branded--Balloon
- post--Return of the wounded--French numbed by cold--The lady
- and the dogs--The nurse who was mighty particular--Castor and
- Pollux pronounced tough--Stories of suffering 241-250
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- METZ (1870)
-
- Metz surrounded--Taken for a spy--Work with an ambulance--Fierce
- Prussians rob an old woman--Attempt to leave Metz--Refusing
- an honour--The _cantinière’s_ horse--The grey pet of the
- regiment--Deserters abound--A village fired for punishment--Sad
- scenes at the end 251-263
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- PLEVNA (1877)
-
- An English boy as Turkish Lieutenant--A mêlée--Wounded by a
- horseman--Takes letter to Russian camp--The Czar watches the
- guns--Skobeleff’s charge--The great Todleben arrives--Skobeleff
- deals with cowards--Pasting labels--The last sortie--Osman
- surrenders--Prisoners in the snow--Bukarest ladies very kind 264-279
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
- SIEGE OF KHARTOUM (1884)
-
- Gordon invited to the Soudan--The Mahdi--Chinese Gordon--His
- religious feeling--Not supported by England--Arabs
- attack--Blacks as cowards--Pashas shot--The _Abbas_ sent down
- with Stewart--Her fate--Relief coming--Provisions fail--A
- sick steamer--_Bordein_ sent down to Shendy--Alone on the
- house-top--Sir Charles Wilson and Beresford steam up--The rapids
- and sand-bank--“Do you see the flag?”--“Turn and fly”--Gordon’s
- fate 280-288
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
- KUMASSI (1900)
-
- The Governor’s visit--Pageant of Kings--Evil omens--The Fetish
- Grove--The fort--Loyal natives locked out--A fight--King Aguna’s
- triumph--Relief at last--Their perils--Saved by a dog--Second
- relief--Governor retires--Wait for Colonel Willcocks--The flag
- still flying--Lady Hodgson’s adventures 289-302
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
- MAFEKING (1899-1900)
-
- Snyman begins to fire--A flag of trace--Midnight sortie--The
- dynamite trolley--Kaffirs careless--A cattle raid--Eloff nearly
- takes Mafeking--Is taken himself instead--The relief dribble
- in--At 2 a.m. come cannon with Mahon and Plumer 303-317
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
- THE SIEGE OF KIMBERLEY (1899-1900)
-
- The diamond-mines--Cecil Rhodes comes in--Streets
- barricaded--Colonel Kekewich sends out the armoured train--Water
- got from the De Beers Company’s mines--A job lot of shells--De
- Beers can make shells too--Milner’s message--Beef or
- horse?--Long Cecil--Labram killed--Shelter down the mines--A
- capture of dainties--Major Rodger’s adventures--General French
- comes to the rescue--Outposts astonished to see Lancers and
- New Zealanders 318-325
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
- THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH (1899-1900)
-
- Ladysmith--Humours of the shell--The _Lyre_ tries to be
- funny--Attack on Long Tom--A brave bugler--Practical jokes--The
- black postman--A big trek--Last shots--Some one comes--Saved
- at last 326-340
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
- SIEGE OF PORT ARTHUR (1904)
-
- Port Arthur--Its hotel life--Stoessel not popular--Fleet
- surprised--Shelled at twelve miles--Japanese pickets make a
- mistake--Wounded cannot be brought in--Polite even under the
- knife--The etiquette of the bath--The unknown
- death--Kondrachenko, the real hero--The white flag at last--Nogi
- the modest--“Banzai!”--Effect of good news on the wounded--The
- fleet sink with alacrity 341-352
-
-
-
-
-LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-
- THE SALLY FROM THE FORT AT KUMASSI (see p. 294) _Frontispiece_
-
- THE LAST SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR BY FRANCE AND SPAIN _To face p._ 26
-
- THE NIGHT ASSAULT OF CIUDAD RODRIGO " 56
-
- THE ESCALADE OF THE CASTLE " 66
-
- THE LAST OF AN ARMY " 96
-
- GETTING RID OF HIS CAPTORS " 128
-
- A DARING DEED: BLOWING UP THE CASHMERE GATE, DELHI " 154
-
- THE LIGHTER SIDE OF WAR AT LUCKNOW " 180
-
- SHOT DOWN BY THEIR FELLOW-CITIZENS " 216
-
- A DUEL BETWEEN A TEXAN AND A GERMAN " 224
-
- THE BALLOON POST USED DURING THE SIEGE OF PARIS " 244
-
- A STRANGE WEAPON OF OFFENCE " 282
-
- THE BOERS, TAKEN BY SURPRISE, WERE UNSTEADY AND
- PANIC-STRUCK " 304
-
- A BRITISH AMAZON AT MAFEKING " 308
-
- A RUSSIAN TORPEDO-BOAT DESTROYER ELUDING THE JAPANESE
- FLEET " 344
-
- A HUMAN LADDER " 348
-
-
-
-
-THE ROMANCE OF MODERN SIEGES
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR (1779-1782).
-
- The position of the Rock--State of defence--Food-supply--Rodney
- brings relief--Fire-ships sent in--A convoy in a fog--Heavy guns
- bombard the town--Watching the cannon-ball--Catalina gets no
- gift--One against fourteen--Red-hot shot save the day--Lord Howe to
- the rescue.
-
-
-Gibraltar! What a thrill does the very name evoke to one who knows
-a little of English history and England’s heroes! But to those who
-have the good fortune to steam in a P. and O. liner down the coast of
-Portugal, and catch sight of the Rock on turning by Cabrita Point into
-the Bay of Algeciras the thrill of admiration is intensified. For the
-great Rock lies like a lion couched on the marge of the Mediterranean.
-It is one of the pillars of Hercules: it commands the entrance to the
-inner sea.
-
-From 712 to the beginning of the fourteenth century Gibraltar was
-in the hands of the Saracens; then it fell into the hands of the
-Spaniards. In 1704, the year of Blenheim, a combined English and Dutch
-fleet under Sir George Rooke captured the Rock from the Marquis de
-Salines, and Gibraltar has since then remained in the possession of the
-English, though several attempts have been made to wrest it from us.
-Before we follow Captain Drinkwater in some details of the great siege,
-a few words must be said about the Rock and its defences as they then
-were.
-
-The Rock itself juts out like a promontory, rising to a height of 1,300
-feet, and joined to the Spanish mainland by a low sandy isthmus, which
-is at the foot of the Rock about 2,700 feet broad. On a narrow ledge
-at the foot of the north-west slope lies the little town, huddled up
-beneath the frowning precipice and bristling batteries excavated out of
-the solid rock. At different heights, up to the very crest, batteries
-are planted, half or wholly concealed by the galleries. All along the
-sea-line were bastions, mounted with great guns and howitzers, and
-supplied with casemates for 1,000 men. In all the fortifications were
-armed with 663 pieces of artillery. Conspicuous among the buildings
-was an old Moorish castle on the north-west side of the hill: here was
-planted the Grand Battery, with the Governor’s residence at the upper
-corner of the walls. Many caves and hollows are found in the hill
-convenient both for powder magazines and also for hiding-places to the
-apes who colonize the Rock. The climate even at mid-winter is so mild
-and warm that cricket and tennis can be played on dry grass, wherever a
-lawn can be found in the neighbourhood, as the writer has experienced.
-But at Gibraltar itself all is stony ground and barren rock; only on
-the western slope a few palmettos grow, with lavender and Spanish
-broom, roses and asphodels.
-
-In 1777 a good opportunity seemed to be offered for Spain to recover
-the Rock from England. The North American colonies had seceded, and the
-prestige of Britain had suffered a severe blow. The fleets of France
-and Spain, sixty-six sail of the line, were opposed by Sir Charles
-Hardy’s thirty-eight, but with these he prevented the enemy from
-landing an invading army on the English shore. But Spain was intent
-on retaking Gibraltar, and had already planted batteries across the
-isthmus which connects the Rock with Spain.
-
-General Elliot, the Governor of Gibraltar, had a garrison 5,382 strong,
-428 artillerymen, and 106 engineers. Admiral Duff had brought his
-ships--a sixty-gun man-of-war, three frigates, and a sloop--alongside
-the New Mole. All preparations were made to resist a siege. Towards the
-middle of August the enemy succeeded in establishing a strict blockade
-with the object of reducing the garrison by famine. There were not
-more than forty head of cattle in the place, and supplies from Africa
-were intercepted by the Spanish cruisers. In November the effects of
-scarcity began to be felt, though many of the inhabitants had been sent
-away. Mutton was three shillings a pound, ducks fourteen shillings a
-couple; even fish and bread were very scarce. General Elliot set the
-example of abstemious living, and for eight days he lived on 4 ounces
-of rice a day. The inhabitants had for some time been put upon a daily
-ration of bread, delivered under the protection of sentries with fixed
-bayonets. But even with this safeguard for the week there was a scene
-of struggling daily. Many times the stronger got more than their share,
-the weaker came away empty-handed, and eked out a wretched existence on
-leeks and thistles. Even soldiers and their families were perilously
-near starvation. So that a listless apathy fell on the majority, and
-they looked seaward in vain for a help that did not arrive.
-
-It was not until the 15th of January, 1780, that the joyful news went
-round the little town of a brig in the offing which bore the British
-flag.
-
-“She cannot pass the batteries!”
-
-“She is standing in for the Old Mole! Hurrah!”
-
-That brig brought the tidings of approaching relief, and many a wet eye
-kindled with hope.
-
-But the look-out on Signal Point could see the Spaniards in Algeciras
-Bay preparing for sea eleven men-of-war to cut off the convoy. Again
-the hopes of the garrison went down. They did not know, neither did
-the Spaniards, that Admiral Sir George Rodney, an old Harrow boy, was
-escorting the convoy with a powerful fleet of twenty-one sail of the
-line. He quickly drove the eleven Spaniards into headlong flight,
-but before rounding into the bay he fell in with fifteen Spanish
-merchant-men and six ships of war, which became his prize.
-
-Then for a time the town and garrison enjoyed themselves frugally, and
-life became worth living. But on the departure of Rodney the Spaniards
-tried to destroy the British vessels in the bay with fire-ships.
-
-It was on a June night that the fire spread, and the gleam shot across
-the water, lighting up Algeciras and the cork forests that clothe the
-mountain-side. Then the alarm was given. The _Panther_, a sixty-gun
-man-of-war, and the other armed ships opened fire on the assailants;
-officers and men sprang into their boats and grappled the blazing
-ships, making fast hawsers, and towing them under the great guns of the
-Rock, where they were promptly sunk.
-
-Again the blight of ennui, sickness, and famine came on the little
-garrison; but in October a cargo of fruit came just in time to save
-them from scurvy. In March, 1781, the want of bread became serious:
-biscuit crumbs were selling for a shilling a pound. “How long?” was
-the anxious cry that was felt, if not expressed in words. Had England
-forgotten her brave men?
-
-On the 12th of April, to the joyful surprise of all, a great convoy
-was signalled, escorted by a strong fleet. Every man, woman, and child
-who could walk came out upon the ramparts and gazed seawards with
-glistening eyes. At daybreak, says the historian of the siege, “Admiral
-Darby’s much-expected fleet was in sight from our signal-house, but
-was not discernible from below, being obscured by a thick mist in the
-Gut. As the sun rose, however, the fog rose too like the curtain of
-a vast theatre, discovering to the anxious garrison one of the most
-beautiful and pleasing scenes it is possible to conceive. The ecstasies
-of the inhabitants at this grand and exhilarating sight are not to be
-described; but, alas! they little dreamed of the tremendous blow that
-impended, which was to annihilate their property, and reduce many of
-them to indigence and beggary.”
-
-For this second relief of the garrison stung the Spaniards into the
-adoption of a measure which inflicted a large amount of suffering on
-the citizens. They at once began to bombard the town with sixty-four
-heavy guns and fifty mortars. All amongst the crowds in the narrow,
-winding streets, through the frail roofs and windows, came shot and
-shell, so that one and all fled from their homes, seeking cover among
-the rocks. This was the time for thieves to operate, and many houses
-were rifled of their contents. Then it was discovered that many
-hucksters and liquor-dealers had been hoarding and hiding their stocks,
-and a fire having broken out in a wine-shop, the soldiers tasted and
-drank to excess. Then in a few days the discipline became relaxed;
-many of the garrison stole and took away to their quarters barrels of
-wine, which they proceeded to stow away, to their own peril and ruin.
-At length General Elliot was compelled to issue orders that any soldier
-found drunk or asleep at his post should be shot.
-
-What surprises us in our days of long-distance firing is the strange
-fact that a man with sharp vision could see one of the cannon-balls
-as it came towards him. One day, we are told, an officer saw a ball
-coming his way, but he was so fascinated by it that he could not move
-out of the way. Another day a shot fell into a house in which nearly
-twenty people were gathered together: all escaped except one child.
-On another occasion a shot came through the embrasures of one of the
-British batteries, took off the legs of two men, one leg of another,
-and wounded a fourth man in both legs, so that “four men had seven
-legs taken off and wounded by one shot.” A boy who had been posted on
-the works, on account of his keenness of vision, to warn the men when
-a cannon-ball was coming their way, had only just been complaining
-that they did not heed his warnings, and while he turned to the men
-this shot which did all this hurt was fired by the enemy. A large
-cannon-ball in those days weighed 30 pounds, others much less. The
-author remembers Admiral Colomb telling the Harrow boys in a lecture
-that a Captain of those days could carry two or more cannon-balls in
-his coat-tail pocket; the balls of modern guns have to be moved by
-hydraulic machinery. Yet it is astonishing how much damage the old
-cannon-balls could inflict, lopping along like overgrown cricket-balls
-as they did.
-
-Sometimes incidents happened of an amusing character.
-
-One day a soldier was rummaging about among the ruins of a fallen
-house, and came upon a find of watches and jewels. He bethought him at
-once of a very pretty Spanish girl who had coquetted with him in the
-gardens of the Alameda.
-
-“Now, let me see,” he murmured to himself, “how can I put this away
-safe? Little Catalina will laugh when she sees them there jewels, I’ll
-be bound! Humph! I can’t take this lot to quarters, that’s sartin!
-Them sergeants, as feel one all round on return from duty, will grab
-the lot.”
-
-So he walked on, musing and pondering over his weighty affair.
-
-As he was passing the King’s Bastion a happy thought struck him.
-
-“By George, sir!” he said to himself, “it’s just the very thing. Who
-would think of looking for a watch inside a gun?” and he chuckled to
-himself.
-
-It was high noon; the sentinel seemed half asleep. The soldier tied up
-his prize in his handkerchief, took out the wad of the gun, and slipped
-his treasure-trove into the bore of the cannon, replacing the wad
-carefully. That evening he met Catalina, and managed to inform her that
-he had a pleasant surprise for her, if she could come to the King’s
-Bastion.
-
-Her dark eyes glanced mischievously.
-
-“No, not in the evening, I thank you, Jacko. I will come to-morrow, an
-hour ofter sunrise.”
-
-“Very well, Catalina; I see you do not trust me. To-morrow, then, you
-shall come with me to the King’s Bastion, and see with your own eyes
-how rich I can make you.”
-
-Catalina understood enough English to laugh heartily at her lover’s
-grave and mysterious words.
-
-“He has stolen a loaf and a bottle of wine,” she thought in her
-simplicity.
-
-However, Catalina did not disappoint Jack, and together they paced
-towards the semi-circular platform of the King’s Bastion.
-
-Jack was a very proud man as he tried to explain to his lady-love what
-a surprise was in store for her: he touched her wrists to show how the
-bracelets would fit, and her shapely neck to prove the existence of a
-splendid necklace, and Catalina began to believe her boy.
-
-But as they came out upon the gun platform, Jack stopped suddenly, and
-uttered a fearful oath.
-
-“O dios!” cried the maid, “what is there to hurt, Jacko?”
-
-“Don’t you see? Oh, Catalina, the game is up! That devil of a gunner is
-wiping out the bore of his gun!”
-
-Jack ran up, and, seizing the man by the arm, said: “I say, mate, if
-you have found a parcel in that gun, it’s mine! I put it in last night.
-I tell you it’s mine, mate! Don’t you try to make believe you have not
-seen it, ’cos I know you has.”
-
-The gunner stared in open-mouthed astonishment at the speaker. At last
-he said, with a touch of sarcasm:
-
-“What for do you think I am wiping out her mouth, you silly! You must
-have slept pretty sound not to know that them gun-boats crept up again
-last night.”
-
-“The devil take them! Then, where’s that gold watch of mine and them
-jewels? I put ’em for safety in that fool of a gun.”
-
-“Oh, then, you may depend upon it, my lad, that the watch-glass has got
-broke, for we fired a many rounds in the night.”
-
-“What for you look so to cry?” asked little Catalina in wonder.
-
-“Oh, come away, sweetheart. You’ll get no rich present this year; them
-Spaniards have collared ’em all. O Lord! O Lord!”
-
-On the 7th of July the Spaniards at Cabrita Point were seen to be
-signalling the approach of an enemy. As the mists melted away, the
-garrison could see a ship becalmed out in the bay. Fourteen gunboats
-from Algeciras had put out to cut her off; on this, Captain Curtis, of
-the _Brilliant_, ordered three barges to row alongside, and receive
-any dispatches she might have on board. This was done just before the
-leading Spanish gunboat got within range; then came a hideous storm of
-round and grape shot as the fourteen gunboats circled round the _Helma_.
-
-But Captain Roberts, though he had only fourteen small guns, returned
-their fire gallantly. The English sloop was lying becalmed about a
-league from the Rock, and the garrison in Gibraltar could do nothing to
-help her. They looked every minute to see the _Helma_ sink, but still
-she battled on against their 26-pounders.
-
-Then, when hope seemed desperate, a westerly breeze sprang up; the
-waters darkened and rippled round the _Helma_, her canvas slowly filled
-out, and she came away with torn sails and rigging to the shelter of
-the Mole.
-
-In September, 1782, a grand attack was made by the Spaniards with
-ten men-of-war, gunboats, mortar-boats, and floating batteries. They
-took up their position about 900 yards from the King’s Bastion. Four
-hundred pieces of the heaviest artillery were crashing and thundering,
-while all the air was thick with smoke. General Elliott had made his
-preparations: the round shot was being heated in portable furnaces all
-along the front, and as the furnaces were insufficient, huge fires were
-lit in the angles between buildings on which our “roast potatoes,” as
-the soldiers nicknamed the hot shot, were being baked.
-
-But the enemy’s battering-ships seemed invulnerable. “Our heaviest
-shells often rebounded from their tops, whilst the 32-pound shot
-seemed incapable of making any visible impression upon their hulls.
-Frequently we flattered ourselves they were on fire, but no sooner did
-any smoke appear than, with admirable intrepidity, men were observed
-applying water from their engines within to those places whence the
-smoke issued. Even the artillery themselves at this period had their
-doubts of the effect of the red-hot shot, which began to be used about
-twelve, but were not general till between one and two o’clock.” After
-some hours’ incessant firing, the masts of several Spanish ships
-were seen to be toppling over; the flag-ship and the Admiral’s second
-ship were on fire, and on board some others confusion was seen to be
-prevailing. Their fire slackened, while ours increased. Then, as night
-came on, the gleams spread across the troubled waters; the cannonade
-of the garrison increased in rapidity and power. At one in the morning
-two ships were blazing mast-high, and the others soon caught fire from
-the red-hot shot or from the flying sparks. The light and glow of this
-fearful conflagration brought out the weird features of the whole bay:
-the sombre Rock, the blood-red sea, the white houses of Algeciras five
-miles across, the dark cork forests, and the Spanish mountains--all
-stood out in strange perspective. Amid the roar of cannon were fitfully
-heard the hoarse murmurs of the crowds that lined the shore and the
-screams of burning men. Sometimes a deep gloom shrouded the background
-of earth and sea, while gigantic columns of curling, serpent flame shot
-up from the blazing hulls.
-
-Brigadier Curtis, who was encamped at Europa Point, now took out his
-flotilla of twelve gunboats, each being armed with a 24-pounder in its
-bow, and took the floating batteries in flank, compelling the Spanish
-relieving boats to retire.
-
-Daylight showed a sight never to be forgotten: the flames had paled
-before the sun, but the dark forms of the Spaniards moving amongst the
-fire and shrieking for help and compassion stirred all the feelings of
-humanity. Some were clinging to the sides of the burning ships, others
-were flinging themselves into the waves. Curtis led his boats up to the
-smoking hulks in order to rescue some of the victims. He and his men
-climbed on board the battering-ships at the risk of their lives, and
-helped down the Spaniards, who were profuse in their expressions of
-gratitude.
-
-[Illustration: THE LAST SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR BY FRANCE AND SPAIN
-
-A floating battery may be seen to the extreme left beyond the heeling
-ship.]
-
-But as the English thus worked for the rescue of their enemies, the
-magazine of one of the Spanish ships blew up with a crash at about five
-o’clock, and a quarter of an hour after another exploded in the centre
-of the line. Burning splinters were hurled around in all directions,
-and involved the British gunboats in grave danger. In the Brigadier’s
-boat his coxswain was killed, his stroke wounded, and a hole was forced
-through the bottom of the boat. After landing 357 Spaniards, the
-English were compelled to retire under the cover of the Rock, leaving
-the remainder to their dreadful fate. Of the six ships still on fire,
-three blew up before eleven o’clock; the other three burned down to the
-water’s edge.
-
-Thus ended the attempt to take the Rock by means of floating castles.
-The loss sustained by the Spaniards was about 2,000 killed, wounded,
-and taken prisoners; whereas the losses in the garrison were
-surprisingly small, considering how long a cannonade had been kept up
-upon the forts: 16 only were killed; 18 officers, sergeants, and rank
-and file were wounded. Yet the enemy had been firing more than 300
-pieces of heavy ordnance, while the English garrison could bring to
-bear only 80 cannon, 7 mortars, and 9 howitzers; but even for these
-they expended 716 barrels of powder.
-
-As Admiral Lord Howe was sailing with a powerful fleet to the help of
-Gibraltar, he heard the news of General Elliot’s splendid defence.
-On the night of the 18th of October, 1782, a great storm scattered
-the French and Spanish ships; and soon after the delighted garrison
-saw Lord Howe’s fleet and his convoy, containing fresh troops and
-provisions, approaching in order of battle. The blockade was now
-virtually at an end. The siege had lasted three years, seven months,
-and twelve days. Since then no attempt has been made to capture
-Gibraltar.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-DEFENCE OF ACRE (1799)
-
- Jaffa stormed by Napoleon--Sir Sidney Smith hurries to Acre--Takes
- a convoy--How the French procured cannon-balls--The Turks fear the
- mines--A noisy sortie--Fourteen assaults--A Damascus blade--Seventy
- shells explode--Napoleon nearly killed--The siege raised--A painful
- retreat.
-
-
-Napoleon Bonaparte had crushed all opposition in Central and Southern
-Europe, but there was one Power which foiled him--Great Britain.
-
-The French Government compelled Spain and Holland to join in a naval
-war against England, but Jervis and Nelson broke and scattered the
-combined fleets.
-
-Bonaparte had conceived a bitter hatred against the only Power which
-now defied the might of France, and was causing him “to miss his
-destiny.”
-
-“I will conquer Egypt and India; then, attacking Turkey, I will take
-Europe in the rear.” So he wrote. In the spring of 1798 he set out for
-Egypt, reducing Malta on the way, and just eluding Nelson’s fleet.
-
-He had got as far as Cairo when he heard of Nelson’s victory in Aboukir
-Bay, where his French fleet was destroyed.
-
-But Bonaparte, undaunted, pressed on to attack Syria. He stormed Jaffa,
-and put the garrison to the sword. Not content with this cruelty, he
-marched the townsfolk, to the number of 3,700, into the middle of a
-vast square, formed by the French troops. The poor wretches shed no
-tears, uttered no cries. Some who were wounded and could not march so
-fast as the rest were bayonetted on the way.
-
-The others were halted near a pool of dirty, stagnant water, divided
-into small bodies, marched in different directions, and there shot
-down. When the French soldiers had exhausted their cartridges, the
-sword and bayonet finished the business. Sir Sidney Smith, a Captain
-commanding a few ships in the Levant, hearing of these atrocities,
-hurried with his ships to St. Jean d’Acre, which lies north of Jaffa,
-on the north end of the bay which is protected on the south by the
-chalk headland of Carmel, jutting out like our Beachy Head far into the
-sea.
-
-Sir Sidney arrived in the _Tigre_ at Acre only two days before
-Bonaparte appeared. On the 17th of March he sent the _Tigre’s_ boats
-by night to the foot of Mount Carmel, and there they found the French
-advanced guard encamped close to the water’s edge. The boats opened
-with grape, and the French retired in a hurry up the side of the mount.
-
-The main body of the army, hearing that the sea-road was exposed to
-gun-fire from British ships, went round by Nazareth and invested Acre
-to the east. A French corvette and nine sail of gun vessels coming
-round Mount Carmel, found themselves close to the English fleet, and
-seven of them were made prizes, manned from the ships, and employed to
-harass the enemy’s posts.
-
-The French trenches were opened on the 20th of March with thirty-two
-cannon, but they were deficient in balls. The French General,
-Montholon, tells us how they made the English provide them with
-cannon-balls. It reminds us of our own plan at Jellalabad. He says that
-Napoleon from time to time ordered a few waggons to be driven near the
-sea, on sight of which Sir Sidney would send in shore one of his ships
-and pour a rolling fire around the waggons. Presently the French troops
-would run to the spot, collect all the balls they could find and bring
-them in to the Director of Artillery, receiving five sous for each
-ball. This they did, while laughter resounded on every side. The French
-could afford to be merry. Under Bonaparte they had become the masters
-of the greater part of Europe. Nothing seemed impossible to them under
-that military genius. Here they were besieging a little trumpery Syrian
-town, which they calculated they could take in three days; “for,” said
-they, “it is not so strong as Jaffa. Its garrison only amounts to 2,000
-or 3,000 men, whereas Jaffa had a garrison of 8,000 Turks.”
-
-On the 25th of March the French had made a breach in the tower which
-was considered practicable. A young officer with fifteen sappers and
-twenty-five Grenadiers, was ordered to mount to the assault and clear
-the tower fort; but a counter-scarp 15 feet high stopped them. Many
-were wounded, and they hastily retired. On the 28th a mine was sprung,
-and they assaulted again; but “the Turks exerted themselves so far on
-this occasion,” writes Sir Sidney, “as to knock the assailants off
-their ladders into the ditch, where about forty of their bodies now
-lie.” Montholon writes: “The breach was found to be too high by several
-feet, and Mailly, an officer of the staff, and others were killed. When
-the Turks saw Adjutant Lusigier fixing the ladder, a panic seized them,
-and many fled to the port. Even Djezzar, the Governor, had embarked. It
-was very unfortunate. That was the day on which the town ought to have
-been taken.”
-
-Early in April a sortie took place, in which the British Marines were
-to force their way into the French mine, while the Turks attacked
-the trenches. The sally took place just before daylight, but the
-noise and shouting of the Turks rendered the attempt to surprise the
-enemy useless; but they succeeded in destroying part of the mine, at
-considerable loss. The Turks brought in above sixty heads, many muskets
-and entrenching tools. “We have taught the besiegers,” writes Sir
-Sidney, “to respect the enemy they have to deal with, so as to keep at
-a greater distance.” On the 1st of May the enemy, after many hours’
-heavy cannonade from thirty pieces of artillery brought from Jaffa,
-made a fourth attempt to mount the breach, now much widened, but were
-repulsed with loss.
-
-“The _Tigre_ moored on one side and the _Theseus_ on the other, flank
-the town walls, and the gunboats, launches, etc., flank the enemy’s
-trenches, to their great annoyance. Nothing but desperation can induce
-them to make the sort of attempts they do to mount the breach under
-such a fire as we pour in upon them; and it is impossible to see the
-lives, even of our enemies, thus sacrificed, and so much bravery
-misapplied, without regret. I must not omit to mention, to the credit
-of the Turks, that they fetch gabions, fascines, and other material
-which the garrison does not afford from the face of the enemy’s works.”
-
-By the 9th of May the French had on nine several occasions attempted
-to storm, but had been beaten back with immense slaughter. On the
-fifty-first day of the siege the English had been reinforced by Hassan
-Bey with corvettes and transports; but this only made Bonaparte attack
-with more ferocity, having protected themselves with sand-bags and
-the bodies of their dead built in with them. It was a touch and go
-whether the French would not fight their way in. A group of Generals
-was assembled on Cœur-de-Lion’s Mount, among whom Napoleon was
-distinguishable, as he raised his glasses and gesticulated. At this
-critical moment Sir Sidney landed his boats at the mole and took the
-crews up to the breach armed with pikes. The enthusiastic gratitude of
-the Turks--men, women, and children--at sight of such a reinforcement
-is not to be described. The few Turks who were standing their ground
-in the breach were flinging heavy stones down on the heads of the
-advancing foe, but many of the French mounted to the heap of ruins in
-the breach so close that the muzzles of their muskets touched and their
-spear-heads locked.
-
-Djezzar Pasha, on hearing that so large a force of the English were
-fighting in the breach, left his seat, where, according to Turkish
-custom, he was sitting to distribute rewards to such as should bring
-him the heads of the enemy, and coming behind our men, the energetic
-old man pulled back his English friends with violence, saying, “If any
-harm happen to the English, all is lost.”
-
-A sally made by the Turks in another quarter caused the French in the
-trenches to uncover themselves above their parapet, so that the fire
-from our boats brought down numbers of them. A little before sunset a
-massive column came up to the breach with solemn step. By the Pasha’s
-orders a good number of the French were let in, and they descended
-from the rampart into the Pasha’s garden, where in a very few minutes
-their bravest lay headless corpses, the sabre proving more than a match
-for the bayonet. The rest, seeing what was done, fled precipitately.
-The breach was now practicable for fifty men abreast. “We felt,” says
-Sir Sidney, “that we must defend it at all costs, for by this breach
-Bonaparte means to march to further conquest, and on the issue of this
-conflict depends the conduct of the thousands of spectators who sit on
-the surrounding hills, waiting to see which side they shall join.”
-
-With regard to the cutting off of heads by the Turks, one day, when out
-riding, Sir Sidney questioned the superior metal of the Damascus blade,
-when Djezzar Pasha replied that such a blade would separate the head
-from the body of any animal without turning the edge.
-
-“Look!” said the Pasha; “this one I carry about with me never fails. It
-has taken off some dozens of heads.”
-
-“Very well, Pasha,” said Sir Sidney. “Could you not give me ocular
-proof of the merit of your Damascus, and at the same time of your own
-expertness, by slicing off, _en passant_, the head of one of the oxen
-we are now approaching?”
-
-“Ah, q’oui, monsieur, c’est déjà fait;” and springing off at a gallop,
-he smote a poor ox as it was grazing close to the path, and the head
-immediately rolled on the ground. A Damascus sabre regards neither
-joints nor bones, but goes slicing through, and you cannot feel any
-dint on the edge thereof.
-
-On the 14th of May Sir Sidney writes to his brother: “Our labour is
-excessive: many of us have died of fatigue. I am but half dead, and
-nearly blinded by sun and sand. Bonaparte brings fresh troops to the
-assault two or three times in the night, and so we are obliged to
-be always under arms. He has lost the flower of his army in these
-desperate attempts to storm, as appears by the certificates of former
-services which we find in their pockets. We have been now near two
-months constantly under fire and firing. We cannot guard the coast
-lower down than Mount Carmel, for the Pasha tells me, if we go away,
-the place will fall, so that the French get supplies from Jaffa to the
-south. I sent Captain Miller in the _Theseus_ yesterday to chase three
-French frigates off Cæsarea; but, alas! seventy shells burst at the
-forepart of Captain Miller’s cabin, killing him and thirty-two men,
-including some who jumped overboard and were drowned.” The ship got
-on fire in five places, but was saved. By the 16th of May Bonaparte
-had lost eight Generals and most of his artillerymen--in all upwards
-of 4,000 men. The Turks were becoming quite brave and confident. They
-boldly rushed in on the assaulting columns, sabre in hand, and cut
-them to pieces before they could fire twice. But they were struck with
-terror at the thought of the mines which they imagined might blow up
-at any time, and could not be forced to remain on the walls or in the
-tower. However, the knowledge which the garrison had of the massacre at
-Jaffa rendered them desperate in their personal defence.
-
-In the fourteenth assault General Kleber led his victorious troops
-to the breach. It was a grand and terrific spectacle. The Grenadiers
-rushed forward under a shower of balls. Kleber, with the gait of a
-giant, with his thick head of hair and stentorian voice, had taken
-his post, sword in hand, on the bank of the breach. The noise of the
-cannon, the rage of the soldiers, the yells of the Turks, were all
-bewildering and awful.
-
-General Bonaparte, standing on the battery of the breach, looking
-rather paler than usual, was following the progress of the assault
-through his glass, when a ball passed above his head; but he would not
-budge. In vain did Berthier ask him to quit this perilous post--he
-received no answer--and two or three officers were killed close to him;
-yet he made no sign of moving from the spot. All at once the column of
-the besiegers came to a standstill. Bonaparte went further forward, and
-then perceived that the ditch was vomiting out flames and smoke. It was
-impossible to go on. Kleber, in a great rage, struck his thigh with
-his sword and swore. But the General-in-Chief, judging the obstacle to
-be insurmountable, gave a gesture and ordered a retreat. After this
-failure the French Grenadiers absolutely refused to mount the breach
-any more over the putrid bodies of their unburied companions. Bonaparte
-for once seems to have lost his judgment, first by sacrificing so many
-of his best men in trying to take a third-rate fort; and, secondly,
-because, even if he had succeeded in taking the town, the fire of the
-English ships must have driven him out again in a short time.
-
-One last desperate throw was made for success by sending an Arab
-dervish with a letter to the Pasha proposing a cessation of arms for
-the purpose of burying the dead. During the conference of the English
-and Turkish Generals on this subject a volley of shot and shells on a
-sudden announced an assault; but the garrison was ready, and all they
-did was to increase the numbers of the slain, to the disgrace of the
-General who thus disloyally sacrificed them. The game was up after a
-siege of sixty days: in the night following the 20th of May the French
-army began to retreat. But as they could not carry their guns and
-wounded with them, these were hurried to sea without seamen to navigate
-the ships, in want of water and food. They steered straight for the
-English ships, and claimed and received succour. Their expressions of
-gratitude to Sir Sidney were mingled with execrations on their General
-for his cruel treatment of them. English boats rowed along the shore
-and harassed their march south. The whole track between Acre and Gaza
-was strewn with the dead bodies of those who had sunk under fatigue
-or from their wounds. At Gaza Bonaparte turned inland, but there he
-was much molested by the Arabs. The remnant of a mighty host went on,
-creeping towards Egypt in much confusion and disorder.
-
-Sir Sidney Smith had thus defeated the great General of France, who
-grudgingly said: “This man has made me miss my destiny.” In the hour
-of victory Sir Sidney was generous and humane, for he had a good
-heart, good humour, and much pity. Nor did he forget the Giver of all
-victory, as the following extract from a letter testifies:
-
-“_Nazareth, 1799._--I am just returned from the Cave of the
-Annunciation, where, secretly and alone, I have been returning
-thanks to the Almighty for our late wonderful success. Well may we
-exclaim, ‘the race is not always to the swift, nor the battle to the
-strong.’--W. S. S.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE WOUNDED CAPTAIN IN TALAVERA (1809)
-
- Talavera between two fires--Captain Boothby wounded--Brought into
- Talavera--The fear of the citizens--The surgeons’ delay--Operations
- without chloroform--The English retire--French troops
- arrive--Plunder--French officers kind, and protect Boothby--A
- private bent on loot beats a hasty retreat.
-
-
-Captain Boothby, of the Royal Engineers, left behind him a diary of his
-experiences in Spain during part of the Peninsular War in 1809. It will
-help us to understand how much suffering war inflicts, and how much
-pain we have been saved by the inventions of modern science.
-
-He tells us he had been provided with quarters in Talavera, at the
-house of Donna Pollonia di Monton, a venerable dame. She was the only
-person left in the house, the rest having fled to the mountains in fear
-lest the French should come and sack the city; for in the streets those
-who remained were shouting in their panic, “The French have taken the
-suburbs!” or “The British General is in full retreat!” or “O Dios! los
-Ingleses nos abandonan!” (“O God! the English are deserting us!”). The
-fact was that Wellesley was not sure if he could hold his ground at
-Talavera.
-
-Captain Boothby went out one morning towards the enemy’s position;
-he was brought back in the evening on a bier by four men, his leg
-shattered by a musket-ball. The old lady threw up her hands when she
-saw him return.
-
-“What!” she exclaimed, while the tears ran down her cheeks. “Can this
-be the same? This he whose cheeks in the morning were glowing with
-health? Blessed Virgin, see how white they are now!”
-
-She made haste to prepare a bed.
-
-“Oh, what luxury to be laid upon it, after the hours of pain and
-anxiety, almost hopeless, I had undergone! The surgeon, Mr. Bell, cut
-off my boot, and having examined the wound, said:
-
-“‘Sir, I fear there is no chance of saving your leg, and the amputation
-must be above the knee.’
-
-“He said the operation could not be performed until the morning, and
-went back to the hospital.
-
-“I passed a night of excruciating pain. My groans were faint, because
-my body was exhausted with the three hours’ stumbling about in the
-woods. Daylight was ushered in by a roar of cannon so loud, so
-continuous, that I hardly conceived the wars of all the earth could
-produce such a wild and illimitable din. Every shot seemed to shake
-the house with increasing violence, and poor Donna Pollonia rushed in
-crying:
-
-“‘They are firing the town!’
-
-“‘No, no,’ said I; ‘don’t be frightened. Why should they fire the town?
-Don’t you perceive that the firing is becoming more distant?’”
-
-So the poor lady became less distraught, and watched by him with
-sympathizing sorrow. But at length, finding the day advancing, his
-pains unabating, and no signs of any medical help coming, he tore a
-leaf from his pocket-book, and with a pencil wrote a note to the chief
-surgeon, Mr. Higgins, saying that, as he had been informed no time was
-to be lost in the amputation, he was naturally anxious that his case
-should be attended to. The messenger returned, saying that the surgeon
-could not possibly leave the hospital. He sent a second note, and a
-third, and towards ten o’clock a.m. the harrassed surgeon made his
-appearance.
-
-“Captain Boothby,” said he, “I am extremely sorry that I could not
-possibly come here before, still more sorry that I only come now to
-tell you I cannot serve you. There is but one case of instruments. This
-I cannot bring from the hospital while crowds of wounded, both officers
-and men, are pressing for assistance.”
-
-“I did but wish to take my turn,” said the Captain.
-
-“I hope,” he added, “that towards evening the crowd will decrease, and
-that I shall be able to bring Mr. Gunning with me to consult upon your
-case.”
-
-“Will you examine my wound, sir,” said Boothby, “and tell me honestly
-whether you apprehend any danger from the delay?”
-
-He examined the leg, and said:
-
-“No, I see nothing in this case from which the danger would be
-increased by waiting five or six hours.”
-
-There was nothing for it but patience.
-
-“I taxed my mind to make an effort, but pain, far from loosening his
-fangs at the suggestion of reason, clung fast, and taught me that, in
-spite of mental pride, he is, and must be, dreadful to the human frame.”
-
-Mr. Higgins came to him about three o’clock, bringing with him Mr.
-Gunning and Mr. Bell, and such instruments as they might have occasion
-for.
-
-Mr. Gunning sat down by his bedside, and made a formal exhortation:
-explained that to save the life it was necessary to part with the limb,
-and he required of him an effort of mind and a manly resolution.
-
-“Whatever is necessary, that I am ready to bear,” said the Captain.
-
-Then the surgeons, having examined his wound, went to another part of
-the room to consult, after which they withdrew--to bring the apparatus,
-as he imagined. Hours passed, and they did not return. His servant,
-Aaron, having sought Mr. Gunning, was told that he was too much
-occupied. This after having warned him that there was no time to be
-lost!
-
-“Go, then,” said the Captain to Aaron--“go into the street, and bring
-me the first medical officer you happen to fall in with.”
-
-He returned, bringing with him Mr. Grasset, surgeon of the 48th
-Regiment.
-
-After examining the wound, Mr. Grasset declared that he was by no means
-convinced of the necessity of the amputation, and would not undertake
-the responsibility.
-
-“But,” said the wounded man, “I suppose an attempt to save the leg will
-be attended with great danger.”
-
-“So will the amputation,” he replied. “But we must hope for the best,
-and I see nothing to make your cure impossible. The bones, to be sure,
-are much shattered, and the leg is much mangled and swollen; but have
-you been bled, sir?”
-
-“No,” said Captain Boothby.
-
-Mr. Grasset conceived bleeding absolutely necessary, though he had
-already lost much, and at his request he bled him in the arm.
-
-He guessed that Mr. Gunning’s departure proceeded from his conviction
-that a gangrene had already begun, and that it would be cruel to
-disturb his dying moments by a painful and fruitless operation.
-
-As he had taken nothing but vinegar and water since his misfortune, his
-strength was exhausted, and the operation of bleeding was succeeded by
-an interval of unconsciousness. From this state he was roused by some
-one taking hold of his hand. It was his friend Dr. FitzPatrick.
-
-“If I had you in London,” said he with a sigh, “I might attempt to save
-your limb; but amid the present circumstances it would be hopeless. I
-had been told that the amputation had been performed, else, ill as I
-could have been spared, I would have left the field and come to you.”
-
-“Do you think you are come too late?” asked the Captain.
-
-He said “No”; but he dissembled. At that time Boothby was under strong
-symptoms of lockjaw, which did not disappear until many hours after
-the operation. The doctor took a towel, and soaking it in vinegar and
-water, laid it on the wound, which gave much relief. He stayed with him
-till late, changing the lotion as often as needed. The operation was
-fixed for daylight on the morrow.
-
-The patient passed another dismal night. At nine o’clock next morning
-FitzPatrick and Miller, Higgins and Bell, staff-surgeons, came to his
-bedside. They had put a table in the middle of the room, and placed on
-it a mattress. Then one of the surgeons came and exhorted him to summon
-his fortitude. Boothby told him he need not be afraid, and FitzPatrick
-said he could answer for him. They then carried him to the table and
-laid him on the mattress. Mr. Miller wished to place a handkerchief
-over his eyes, but he assured him that it was unnecessary; he would
-look another way.
-
-“I saw that the knife was in FitzPatrick’s hand, which being as I
-wished, I averted my head.
-
-“I will not shock the reader by describing the operation in detail,
-but as it is a common idea that the most painful part of an operation
-lies in sundering the bone, I may rectify an error by declaring that
-the only part of the process in which the pain comes up to the natural
-anticipation is the first incision round the limb, by which the skin
-is divided, the sensation of which is as if a prodigious weight were
-impelling the severing edge. The sawing of the bone gives no uneasy
-sensation; or, if any, it is overpowered by others more violent.
-
-“‘Is it off?’ said I, as I felt it separate.
-
-“‘Yes,’ said FitzPatrick, ‘your sufferings are over.’
-
-“‘Ah no! you have yet to take up the arteries.’
-
-“‘It will give you no pain,’ he said kindly; and that was true--at
-least, after what I had undergone, the pain seemed nothing.
-
-“I was carried back to my bed much exhausted. Soon hope returned to my
-breast; it was something to have preserved the possibility of yet being
-given back to happiness and friendship.”
-
-For some time after the operation his stomach refused sustenance, and a
-constant hiccough was recognized by the surgeons as a fatal prognostic.
-
-His faithful friend, Edmund Mulcaster, hardly ever left his bedside.
-General Sherbrooke came to see him often, and evinced the most earnest
-anxiety for his welfare. They wrote to his friends for him, and to his
-mother. This last he signed himself.
-
-In the night of the 30th, by the perseverance of Mulcaster, he managed
-to retain some mulled wine, strongly spiced, and in the morning
-took two eggs from the same welcome hand. This was the “turn.” The
-unfavourable symptoms began to subside, and the flowing stream of life
-began to fill by degrees its almost deserted channels.
-
-On the 2nd of August some officers, entering his room, said that
-information had been received of Soult’s arrival at Placentia, and that
-General Wellesley intended to head back and engage him.
-
-“If the French come while we are away, Boothby,” said Goldfinch, “you
-must cry out, ‘Capitaine anglais,’ and you will be treated well.”
-
-On the 3rd of August his friends all came to take leave of him. It
-was a blank, rugged moment. Mr. Higgins, the senior surgeon, was left
-behind to tend the wounded.
-
-The mass of the people of England is hasty, and often unjust, in its
-judgment of military events. They will condemn a General as rash when
-he advances, or revile him as a coward when he retreats. News of the
-battle of Talavera had been announced by the trumpet of victory. The
-people of England expected the emancipation of Spain. Now were they
-cast down when told that the victors had been obliged to retire and
-leave their wounded to the mercy of a vanquished enemy.
-
-If Lord Wellington knew the strength and condition of the force under
-Soult, it would be hard to justify his conduct in facing back. In
-Spain, however, it was impossible to get correct information. The
-Spaniards are deaf to bad news and idiotically credulous to all reports
-that flatter their hopes. Thus the rashness of Lord Wellington in
-placing himself between two armies, Soult and Ney, the least of whom
-was equal to himself, may be palliated.
-
-The repulse and flight of the French after the Battle of Talavera
-restored confidence to the fugitive townsfolk. They left the mountains
-and re-entered Talavera. The house was again filled with old and young,
-who strove to wait on the Captain. But soon the evacuation of the town
-by the British awoke their fears; but with thankfulness let us record
-that a British officer, wounded and mutilated, was to the women of the
-house too sacred an object to be abandoned.
-
-The citizens of Talavera had clung to the hope that at least their
-countrymen would stay and protect them; but on the 4th, seeing them
-also file under their windows in a long, receding array, they came to
-the Captain--those near his house--beating their breasts and tearing
-their hair, and demanded of him if he knew what was to become of them.
-
-Boothby sent Aaron to take a message to the Colonel left Commandant by
-General Wellesley, but he came back saying that the Colonel was gone,
-having given orders that those in the hospitals who were able to move
-should set off instantly for Oropesa, as the French were at hand. The
-sensation this notice produced is beyond all description. The Captain
-lay perfectly still; other wounded men had themselves placed across
-horses and mules, and fruitlessly attempted to escape. The road to
-Oropesa was covered with our poor wounded, limping, bloodless soldiers.
-On crutches or sticks they hobbled woefully along. For the moment panic
-terror lent them a new force, but many lay down on the road to take
-their last sleep.
-
-Such were the tales that Aaron and others came to tell him. He tried
-to comfort them, and said the French were not so bad as they fancied.
-Still, his mind was far from being at ease. He thought it possible
-that some foraging party might plunder him and commit excesses in the
-house, or on the women, who would run to him for protection, however
-uselessly. The evening of the 4th, however, closed in quietness, and
-a visit from the senior medical officer, Mr. Higgins, gave him great
-comfort.
-
-The 5th of August dawned still and lovely. A traveller might have
-supposed Talavera to be in profound peace until, gazing on her gory
-heights, he saw they were covered with heaps of ghastly slain. The
-tranquil interval was employed in laying in a stock of provisions.
-Pedro argued with him.
-
-“But, signore, the Brencone asks a dollar a couple for his chickens!”
-
-“Buy, buy, buy!” was all the answer he could get from the Captain.
-
-Wine, eggs, and other provender were laid in at a rate which provoked
-the rage and remonstrance of the little Italian servant.
-
-About the middle of the day a violent running and crying under the
-windows announced an alarm. The women rushed into his room, exclaiming,
-“Los Franceses, los Franceses!” The assistant surgeon of artillery came
-in.
-
-“Well, Mr. Steniland,” said the Captain, “are the French coming?”
-
-“Yes,” he answered; “I believe so. Mr. Higgins is gone out to meet
-them.”
-
-“That’s right,” said Boothby.
-
-In about an hour Mr. Higgins entered, saying, “I have been out of town
-above two leagues and can see nothing of them. If they do come, they
-will have every reason to treat us with attention, for they will find
-their own wounded lying alongside of ours, provided with the same
-comforts and the same care.”
-
-On the 6th, reports of the enemy’s approach were treated with total
-disregard. Between eight and nine o’clock the galloping of horses was
-heard in the street. The women ran to the windows and instantly shrank
-back, pale as death, with finger on lip.
-
-“Los demonios!” they whispered, and then on tiptoe watched in
-breathless expectation of seeing some bloody scene.
-
-“They have swords and pistols all ready,” cried Manoela, trembling.
-
-“How’s this?” cried old Donna Pollonia. “Why, they pass the English
-soldiers. They go on talking and laughing. Jesus! Maria! What does it
-mean?”
-
-Presently Mr. Higgins came in. He had ridden out to meet the French
-General, and had found that officer full of encomiums and good
-assurances.
-
-“Your wounded are the most sacred trust to our national generosity.
-As for you, medical gentlemen, who have been humane and manly enough
-not to desert your duty to your patients (many of whom are Frenchmen),
-stay amongst us as long as you please. You are as free as the air you
-breathe.”
-
-The town owed much to Mr. Higgins!
-
-To prepare for the approaching crisis, to ride forth and parley with
-the enemy and persuade him that he owes you respect, gratitude--this is
-to be an officer of the first class. Throughout Mr. Higgins displayed
-the character of no common man.
-
-We should say something of the household among which the Captain was
-placed.
-
-Servants and masters and mistresses in Spain associate very freely
-together, but the submissive docility of the servants keeps pace with
-the affability with which they are treated. First after Don Manoel and
-Donna Pollonia came Catalina--a tall, elegant woman of forty, a sort
-of housekeeper held in high estimation by the señora. Then come two
-old women, Tia Maria and Tia Pepa “tia” means “aunt”); then Manoela,
-a lively, simple lass, plain and hardy, capable of chastising with
-her fists any ill-mannered youth. Then the carpenter’s daughters, two
-pretty little girls, often came to play in his room--Martita, aged
-about ten, and Maria Dolores, perhaps fifteen, pensive, tender, full
-of feminine charm. These fair sisters used to play about him with the
-familiarity and gentleness of kittens, and lightened many an hour.
-
-Well, it was not all plain sailing, for stories of pillage and plunder
-came to their ears. Three troopers had gone to the quarters of his
-wounded friend, Taylor, and began coolly to rifle his portmanteau.
-
-Taylor stormed and said he was an English Captain.
-
-“Major, ’tis very possible,” said they; “but your money, your watch,
-and your linen are never the worse for that; no, nor your wine
-either!” and the ruthless savages swallowed the wine and the bread
-which had been portioned out as his sustenance and comfort for the day.
-
-Feeling that such might be his case, Boothby put his money and watch
-in a little earthen vessel and sent it to be buried in the yard; then
-calling for his soup and a large glass of claret, he tossed it off
-defiantly, saying to himself, “You don’t get this, my boys!”
-
-Next morning they heard that the French infantry were coming, and the
-town was to be given up to pillage, as so many of the citizens had
-deserted it.
-
-The women came to him. “Shall we lock the street door, Don Carlos?”
-they said.
-
-“By all means,” said he. “Make it as fast as you can, and don’t go near
-the windows.”
-
-Soon they heard the bands playing, and the women rushed to the windows,
-as if to see a raree-show, forgetting all his injunctions.
-
-Soon after thump! thump! thump! sounded at the door.
-
-“Virgin of my soul!” cried old Pollonia, tottering to the window.
-“There they are!” But, peeping out cautiously, she added, “No, ’tis but
-a neighbour. Open, Pepa.”
-
-“You had better not suffer your door to be opened at all,” said the
-Captain.
-
-But Pepa pulled the string, and in came the neighbour, shrieking:
-
-“Jesus! Maria! Dios Santissimo! The demons are breaking open every door
-and plundering every house; all the goods-chests--everything--dragged
-out into the street.”
-
-“Maria di mi alma! Oh, señora!”
-
-The crashing of doors, breaking of windows, loud thumpings and
-clatterings, were now distinctly heard in all directions. All outside
-seemed to boil in turmoil.
-
-Ere long, thump! thump! at their own door.
-
-But it was only another neighbour. Pepa pulled the string, and in she
-came. Her head was piled up with mattresses, blankets, quilts, and
-pillows. Under one arm were gowns, caps, bonnets, and ribbons. Her
-other hand held a child’s chair. Add to all this that her figure was of
-a stunted and ludicrous character, and she came in puffing and crying
-under that cumbrous weight of furniture. They could not resist laughing.
-
-“For the love of God, señora,” she whined, “let me put these things in
-your house.”
-
-She was shown up into the garret. Others followed after her.
-
-But soon there was a louder knocking, with a volley of French oaths.
-The house shook under the blows.
-
-“Pedro, tell them in French that this is the quarter of an English
-Captain.”
-
-Pedro cautiously peeped out of the window.
-
-“Dios! there is but one,” said Pedro, “and he carries no arms. Hallo,
-sair! la maison for Inglis Captin! Go to hell!”
-
-This strange language, and his abrupt, jabbering way of talking, forced
-a laugh out of his master.
-
-“Ouvrez la porte, bête!” shouted the Frenchman. “I want some water.”
-
-“Holy Virgin!” cried Pollonia. “We had better open the door.”
-
-“No, no, no!” said Boothby. “Tell him, Pedro, that if he does not take
-himself off I shall report him to his General.”
-
-Pedro had not got half through this message, when suddenly he ducked
-his head, and a great stone came in and struck the opposite wall.
-
-“Il demonio!” groaned the women, as they, too, ducked their heads.
-
-Then the fellow, who was drunk, just reeled off in search of some
-easier adventure.
-
-Pedro had hardly finished boasting of his victory when the door was
-again assailed.
-
-“Oh,” said Pollonia, “it’s only two officers’ servants;” and she shut
-the window.
-
-“Well, what did they want?” asked the Captain.
-
-“They wanted lodgings for their masters, but I told them we had no
-room.”
-
-“And have you room, Donna Pollonia?”
-
-“Yes; but I didn’t choose to say so.”
-
-“Run, Pedro, run and tell those servants that there is plenty of room.
-Don’t you see, señora, that this is the best chance of preserving your
-house from pillage?”
-
-They returned--one a Prussian lad who spoke French very ill. The
-Captain’s hope that these fellow-lodgers would prove gentlemen lent him
-a feeling of security.
-
-Little Pedro was watching the motions of the two servants like a lynx.
-
-“Signore,” said he, “those two _diavoli_ are prying about into every
-hole and corner.”
-
-On this Aaron was sent to dig up the watch and money and bring the wine
-upstairs.
-
-Soon after in came Pedro, strutting with a most consequential air.
-
-“The French Captain, signore,” said he.
-
-There followed him a fine, military-looking figure, armed cap-à-pie,
-and covered with martial dust. He advanced to the bedside with a quick
-step.
-
-“I have had the misfortune, sir, to lose a limb,” said Boothby, “and I
-claim your protection.”
-
-“My protection!” he replied, putting out his hand. “Command my devoted
-services! The name of an Englishman in distress is sufficient to call
-forth our tenderest attention.”
-
-The Captain was a good deal affected by the kindness of his manner.
-Kindness can never be thoroughly felt unless it be greatly wanted.
-
-He begged he would visit him sometimes, and he promised to bring a
-friend.
-
-Señora Pollonia was charmed with M. de la Platière, who, with his young
-friend Captain Simon, often came in for a chat.
-
-Alas! they had to go away after a few days’ stay, but de la Platière
-wrote his name in chalk on the door, in the hope that it might
-discourage any plunderers.
-
-One day Boothby was suddenly aroused by the appearance in his room of
-an officer whom he had seen before, but did not much like.
-
-“Eh, Capitaine, comment ça va-t-il? Ça va mieux! Ha! bon!”
-
-Then he explained that the blade of his sword was broken. “As prisoner
-of war,” he said, “you will have no use for a sword. Give me yours,
-and, if you will, keep mine. Where is yours?”
-
-“It stands,” said Boothby, “in yonder corner. Take it by all means.”
-
-“Je vous laisserai la mienne,” he said, and hurried off.
-
-Boothby wished his sword in the Frenchman’s gizzard, he was so rough
-and rude.
-
-One afternoon Pedro rushed in, excited, and said: “The General himself
-is below, sir!”
-
-“Bring him up, Pedro.”
-
-Quickly he ushered in an officer of about the age of five-and-thirty.
-He was splendidly dressed, of an elegant person, his face beaming with
-good nature and intelligence.
-
-He came up to the bed, and without waiting for the form of salutation,
-seated himself in a chair close to the pillow, and laying his hand on
-Boothby’s arm, he said, in a mild and agreeable voice:
-
-“Ne vous dérangez, mon ami! Solely I am here to see if I can possibly
-lighten a little the weight of your misfortune. Tell me, can I be
-useful to you? Have you everything you want?”
-
-For all these kind inquiries the Captain expressed his gratitude, and
-added, “I have really nothing to ask for, unless you could send me to
-England.”
-
-“Ah! if you were able to move, Captain, I could exchange you now; but
-by the time you will have gained strength to travel you will be at the
-disposal of the Major-General of the army.”
-
-That visit gave much comfort and hope.
-
-In the evening de la Platière and Simon returned with the news that Sir
-Arthur Wellesley had met with disasters.
-
-“Taisez-vous, mon cher,” said Simon. “It may have a bad effect on his
-spirits.”
-
-But he insisted on hearing all they knew, and while they were talking
-a French soldier walked calmly up into the room, and coming up to the
-foot of the bed, stood before his officers, astounded, petrified.
-
-When, after sternly eyeing him a while, they sharply demanded his
-business, his faculties returned, and he stammered out:
-
-“Mon Capitaine, I--I--I took it for a shop! I beg pardon.” And off
-he went in a hurry. But what would he have done if he had found the
-English officer alone?
-
-On October 1 Captain Boothby was allowed to go out on crutches. He
-says: “The sense of attracting general observation hurried me. The
-French soldiers who met me expressed surprise at seeing the success of
-an amputation which in the hands of their field surgeons was nearly
-always fatal. The Spaniards were most sympathizing. ‘What a pity!’ ‘So
-young, too!’ ‘Poor young Englishman!’ were pathetically passed along
-the street as he hobbled by.”
-
-In July, 1810, Captain Boothby was exchanged with a French prisoner and
-returned to his father and mother in England.
-
-This gives us the kindlier side of war; but there is another side.
-
-In the prison of Toro were some French soldiers kept by the Spaniards.
-Nothing could be worse than the cruelty under which these Frenchmen
-suffered. In their prison was a cell, with a window strongly barred,
-and covered by an iron shutter pierced with small holes. The dungeon
-was about 10 feet square and 5 feet high. At the furthest end was a
-block of stone for a seat, with an iron collar for the neck, fixed by a
-short chain in the wall. Another chain was passed round the body. The
-poor wretches were chained in one position all day, which often hurried
-them to a miserable death. Their food was a little bread and water.
-
-It is easy, however, to bear any amount of suffering when you know the
-time will soon come when you will be free.
-
-It is not so easy to bear a whole lifelong penalty for having dared
-to fight for one’s country. One would think that a national gratitude
-would rescue our wounded soldiers from a life of beggary or the
-workhouse. Yet after every war how many one-armed and one-legged
-soldiers or sailors are pitifully begging along our streets and roads!
-
-There is no animal so cruel as man. _Corruptio optimi pessima._
-
- From a “Prisoner of France,” by Captain Boothby. By kind permission
- of Messrs. A. and C. Black and Miss Boothby.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-THE CAPTURE OF CIUDAD RODRIGO (1812)
-
- A night march--Waiting for scaling-ladders--The assault--Ladders
- break--Shells and grenades--A magazine explodes--Street
- fighting--Drink brings disorder and plunder--Great spoil.
-
-
-After Talavera Sir Arthur Wellesley became Lord Wellington; he
-was opposed by Soult, Marmont, and Masséna. On the 1st of January
-Wellington crossed the Agueda, and advanced to the assault of Ciudad
-Rodrigo, which had to be hurried on because Marmont was advancing
-to its relief. Fortunately, we have descriptions from more than one
-eyewitness of the siege. Ciudad Rodrigo is built on rising ground, on
-the right bank of the Agueda. The inner wall, 32 feet high, is without
-flanks, and has weak parapets and narrow ramparts. Without the town, at
-the distance of 300 yards, the suburbs were enclosed by a weak earthen
-entrenchment, hastily thrown up.
-
-It was six o’clock on the evening of the 19th of January. The firing
-on both sides had slackened, but not ceased. The chiefs were all
-bustle and mystery. They had had their instructions. Soon the 5th and
-77th were ordered to fall in, and halted on the extreme right of the
-division. Whilst the men hammered at their flints the order was read to
-the troops. They were to take twelve axes in order to cut down the gate
-by which the ditch was entered. The 5th Regiment were to have twelve
-scaling-ladders, 25 feet long, to scale the Fausse Brage, clear it of
-the enemy, throw over any guns, and wait for General M’Kinnon’s column
-in the main attack.
-
-“Whilst waiting in the gloom for the return of the men sent for the
-ladders, we mingled in groups of officers, conversing and laughing
-together with that callous thoughtlessness which marks the old
-campaigner.
-
-“I well remember how poor McDougall of the 5th was quizzed about his
-dandy moustaches. When next I saw him, in a few short hours, he was a
-lifeless and a naked corpse.
-
-“Suddenly a horseman galloped heavily towards us. It was Picton. He
-made a brief and inspiriting speech to us--said he knew the 5th were
-men whom a severe fire would not daunt, and that he reposed equal
-confidence in the 77th. A few kind words to our commander and he bade
-us God-speed, pounding the sides of his hog-maned cob as he trotted
-off.”
-
-Major Sturgeon and the ladders having arrived, the troops again moved
-off about half-past six. The night was rather dark, the stars lending
-but little light.
-
-They were enjoined to observe the strictest silence. It was a time of
-thrilling excitement as they wound their way by the right, at first
-keeping a distance of 1,200 yards from the town, then bending in
-towards the convent of Santa Cruz and the river. The awful stillness of
-the hour was unbroken save by the soft, measured tread of the little
-columns as they passed over the green turf, or by the occasional report
-of a cannon from the walls, and the rush and whizz of its ball as it
-flew past, or striking short, bounded from the earth over their heads,
-receiving, perhaps, most respectful, though involuntary, salaams. Every
-two or three minutes a gun was fired at some suspicious quarter.
-
-They had approached the convent and pushed on nearer the walls, which
-now loomed high and near. They reached the low glacis, through which
-was discovered a pass into the ditch, heavily palisaded with a gate in
-the centre. Through the palisades were visible the dark and lofty old
-Moorish walls, whilst high overhead was the great keep or citadel, a
-massive square tower, which looked like a giant frowning on the scene.
-The English still were undiscovered, though they could distinguish the
-arms of the men on the ramparts, as they fired in idle bluster over
-their heads.
-
-Eagerly, though silently, they all pressed towards the palisades as
-the men with hatchets began to cut a way through them. The sound of
-the blows would not have been heard by the enemy, who were occupied by
-their own noises, had it not been for the enthusiasm, so characteristic
-of his country, which induced a newly-joined ensign, fresh from the
-wilds of Kerry, to utter a tremendous war-whoop as he saw the first
-paling fall before the axes. The cheer was at once taken up by the
-men, and, as they instantly got convincing proofs that they were
-discovered--the men on the walls began to pepper them soundly--they all
-rushed through the opening. In the ditch the assailants were heavily
-fired on from rampart and tower. The French tossed down lighted shells
-and hand-grenades, which spun about hissing and fizzing amongst their
-feet. Some of these smashed men’s heads as they fell, whilst others,
-exploding on the ground, tossed unlucky wretches into the air, tearing
-them asunder. Seldom could any men have passed three or four minutes
-more uncomfortably than the time which was consumed in bringing in and
-fixing the ladders against a wall, towards which they all crowded.
-
-Amongst the first to mount was the gallant chieftain of the 5th, but
-the love they bore him caused so many of the soldiers to follow on the
-same ladder that it broke in two, and they all fell, many being hurt by
-the bayonets of their own comrades round the foot of the ladder.
-
-“I was not one of the last in ascending,” writes an officer of the
-77th, “and as I raised my head to the level of the top of the wall,
-I beheld some of our fellows demolishing a picket which had been
-stationed at that spot, and had stood on the defensive.
-
-“They had a good fire of wood to cheer themselves by, and on revisiting
-the place in the morning, I saw their dead bodies, stripped, strangely
-mingled with wounded English officers and men, who had lain round the
-fire all night, the fortune of war having made them acquainted with
-strange bed-fellows.
-
-“Our ascent of the ladders placed us in the Fausse Brage--a broad, deep
-ditch--in which we were for the moment free from danger.
-
-“When about 150 men had mounted, we moved forward at a rapid pace along
-this ditch, cowering close to the wall, whilst overhead we heard the
-shouts and cries of alarm. Our course was soon arrested by the massive
-fragments and ruins of the main breach made by our men, and here we
-were in extreme danger, for instead of falling into the rear of a
-column supposed to have already carried the breach, we stood alone at
-its base, exposed to a tremendous fire of grape and musketry from its
-defences.
-
-“For a minute or two we seemed destined to be sacrificed to some
-mistake as to the hour of attack, but suddenly we heard a cheer from
-a body of men who flung down bags of heather to break their fall, and
-leaped on them into the ditch.
-
-“It was the old Scots Brigade, which, like us, having been intended as
-a support, was true to its time, and was placed in the same predicament
-as we were.”
-
-[Illustration: THE NIGHT ASSAULT OF CIUDAD RODRIGO
-
-The enemy, immediately on discovering the presence of the British
-soldiers, commenced firing and throwing lighted shells and hand
-grenades at them.]
-
-On the appearance of the 94th the fire of the garrison was redoubled,
-but it was decided by the officers that it was better to die like men
-on the breach than like dogs in a ditch, and so, with a wild “Hurrah!”
-they all sprang up, absolutely eating fire. The breach must have been
-70 feet wide, and consisted of a nearly perpendicular mass of loose
-rubbish, in which it was very difficult to obtain a footing.
-
-The enemy lost no time. They pointed two guns downwards from the
-flanks and had time to fire several rounds of grape, working fearful
-destruction on the British. On the margin of the breach were ranged
-a quantity of shells, which were lighted and rolled down on them;
-but they acted rather as a stimulus to push up, and so avoid their
-explosion. The top of the breach was defended by a strong body of the
-garrison, who maintained a heavy fire of musketry, and hurled down
-hand-grenades and fire-balls. However, a night attack, with all its
-defects, has the advantage of concealing from the view much of danger
-and of difficulty that, if seen, might shake the nerve.
-
-But there was no time for hesitation, no choice for the timid. The
-front ranks were forced onwards by the pressure of those in the rear,
-and as men fell wounded on the breach, there they lay, being trodden
-into and covered by the shifting rubbish displaced by the feet of their
-comrades. Some few, more lucky, when wounded fell or rolled down the
-slope into the ditch, and they added by their outcries to the wildness
-of the scene. The enemy’s resistance slackened, and they suddenly fled.
-Some guns they left behind in their panic.
-
-It was now seven o’clock; the breach was carried, and the town
-virtually ours. About that time a wooden magazine placed on the rampart
-blew up, destroying our General and many with him, as well as a number
-of the garrison. Patterson of the 43rd and Uniacke of the 95th were of
-the number.
-
-“I distinctly remember the moment of the explosion and the short pause
-it occasioned in our proceedings--a pause that enabled us to hear the
-noise of the attack still going forward near the little breach. I met
-Uniacke walking between two men. One of his eyes was blown out, and the
-flesh was torn from his arms and legs.
-
-“I asked who it was. He replied, ‘Uniacke,’ and walked on.
-
-“He had taken chocolate with our mess an hour before!
-
-“At this time a gigantic young Irish volunteer attached to our
-regiment, observing a gallant artilleryman still lingering near his
-gun, dashed at him with bayonet fixed and at the charge.
-
-“The man stepped backwards, facing his foe; but his foot slipping, he
-fell against the gun, and in a moment the young Irish fellow’s bayonet
-was through his heart. The yell with which he gave up the ghost so
-terrified B---- that he started back, the implement of death in his
-hands, and, apostrophizing it, said, ‘Holy Moses! how aisy you went
-into him!’ This saying became celebrated afterwards through the whole
-division.
-
-“Colonel McLeod caused Lieutenant Madden of the 43rd to descend
-the small breach with twenty-five men, to prevent soldiers leaving
-the town with plunder. At eleven o’clock I went to see him. He had
-very judiciously made a large fire, which, of course, showed up the
-plunderers to perfection. He told me that no masquerade could, in point
-of costume and grotesque figures, rival the characters he stripped that
-night.”
-
-Well, to go back to the storming party. The men who lined the
-breastwork having fled, our men dropped from the wall into the town and
-advanced in pursuit. At first they were among ruins, but gradually made
-their way into a large street which led nearly in a straight line from
-the principal breach to the _plaza_, or square. Up this street they
-fought their way, the enemy slowly retiring before them. At about half
-the length of the street was a large open space on the left hand, where
-was deposited the immense battering train of “the army of Portugal.”
-
-Amongst this crowd of carriages a number of men ensconced themselves,
-firing on the British as they passed, and it required no small exertion
-on their part to dislodge them. In the meantime many of the French
-ahead of them had entered the square, for which place our fellows
-pushed on with as many men as they could lay hands on, formed without
-distinction of regiment, into two or three platoons. For the great
-proportion of the men who had started with the column had sneaked off
-into the by-streets for the purpose of plundering--a business which was
-already going on merrily.
-
-As they reached the head of the street, which entered the square at one
-angle, and wheeled to the left into the open space, they received a
-shattering volley, which quickly spoiled their array. The French were
-drawn up in force under the colonnade of the cathedral, and we were for
-the moment checked by their fire.
-
-At length, when they were meditating a dash at the fellows, they heard
-fire opened from another quarter, which seemed to strike the French
-with a panic, for on our men giving a cheer and running forward, they
-to a man threw away their arms as if by word of command, and vanished
-in the gloom like magic.
-
-It was the Light Division who entered the square by a street leading
-from the little breach, and their opportune arrival had frightened away
-the game which had been brought to bay, leaving the pavement of the
-square littered with arms and accoutrements.
-
-But now begins a part of the story which does not reflect much credit
-on our fellows. When the men had sipped the wine and brandy in the
-stores which they plundered, most extreme disorders began, which it was
-impossible to check. A whole division could not have restored order.
-
-Three or four large houses were on fire--two of them were in the
-market-place--and the streets were illuminated by the flames.
-
-The soldiers were growing very drunk, and many of them for amusement
-were firing from the windows into the streets.
-
-“I was myself talking to the barber Evans in the square, when a ball
-passed through his head. This was at one o’clock in the morning. He
-fell at my feet dead, and his brains lay on the pavement. I then sought
-shelter, and found Colonel McLeod with a few officers in a large house,
-where we remained until the morning.
-
-“I did not enter any other house in Ciudad Rodrigo. If I had not seen
-it, I never could have supposed that British soldiers would become so
-wild and furious.
-
-“It was quite alarming to meet groups of them in the streets, flushed
-as they were with drink, and desperate in mischief, singing, yelling,
-dealing blows at man, woman, or child like so many mad things loose
-from Bedlam.
-
-“In the morning the scene was dismal and dreary. The fires were just
-going out; all over street and square were lying the corpses of many
-men who had met their death hours after the town had been taken.
-
-“At eleven o’clock I went to look at the great breach. The ascent was
-not so steep as that of the small one, but there was a traverse thrown
-up at each side of it on the rampart. I counted ninety-three men of the
-Third Division lying dead on the rampart between the traverses. I did
-not see one dead man on the French side of those traverses.
-
-“I saw General McKinnon lying dead. He was on his back just under
-the rampart. He had, I think, rushed forward and fallen down the
-perpendicular wall, probably at the moment of receiving his mortal
-wound. He was stripped of everything except his shirt and blue
-pantaloons; even his boots were taken off.
-
-“There were no others dead near him, and he was not on the French side
-either. It is said that he was blown up, but I should say not. There
-was no appearance indicating that such had been his fate. Neither his
-skin nor the posture in which he was lying led me to suppose it. When a
-man is blown up, his hands and face, I should think, could not escape.
-McKinnon’s face was pale and free from the marks of fire. How strange!
-but with his exception I did not see a man of the Third Division who
-had been stripped.”
-
-Besides possession of the fortress, the whole of Masséna’s
-battering-train had become prize, as well as an immense quantity of
-light artillery which Marmont brought against us on the retreat from El
-Boden.
-
-The fortress was so well supplied with warlike stores that not an
-article of any kind was wanting, in spite of the great expenditure
-during the siege.
-
-What would not the French and English say now?
-
-Ciudad invested, bombarded, stormed, and taken in twelve days! and
-this it cost Masséna fifty-one days to do, sixteen of which he was
-bombarding the town. Every part of the proceeding seems to have
-astonished the garrison, as in erecting works, opening batteries, etc.,
-they were always a day or two out in their calculations.
-
-The George and Dragon had nearly disappeared from the King’s colours by
-a shell passing through it, but “the men were splendid” in attack, and
-followed their leaders unto death.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-THE STORMING OF BADAJOS (1812)
-
- Rescue of wounded men--A forlorn hope--Fire-balls light up the
- scene--A mine explodes--Partial failure of the English--Escalade of
- the castle--Pat’s humour and heroism--Saving a General--Wellington
- hears the news--The day after the storm.
-
-
-Badajos is situated on the left bank of the Guadiana, which is about
-400 yards broad and washes one-fourth of the enceinte. The defences
-along the river are confined to a simple and badly flanked rampart, but
-on the other sides there are eight large and well-built fronts with
-covered way. The scarp of the bastions is more than 30 feet in height.
-In advance of these fronts are two detached works, the Bardeleras and
-the Picurina, the latter being a strong redoubt 400 yards from the
-town. As the bombardment went on for some days, preparing a breach for
-an assault, incidents were few; officers sometimes strolled round to
-explore for themselves.
-
-One writes: “One day I saw two men stretched on the ground. One was
-dead, a round shot having passed through his body; the other had lost a
-leg. His eyes were closed; he seemed to be quite dead. An adventurous
-Portuguese--one of our allies--was beginning to disencumber him of his
-clothes.
-
-“The poor man opened his eyes and looked in the most imploring manner,
-while the villain had him by the belt, lifting him up. I ran forward
-and gave the humane Portuguese a sharp blow with my blunt sabre, so
-that with a yell he threw himself down by the side of the soldier whom
-he was stripping, thinking his last hour had come.
-
-“Soon after I saw a heavy shot hopping along and kicking up the dust.
-It struck one of our soldiers on the hip, and down he went, motionless.
-
-“I felt confident that the wounded man was not dead, and I begged
-that some of his comrades would carry him off to the rear. They were
-retiring under a heavy cannonade. Two soldiers, at the risk of their
-lives, rushed back and brought him in, or he would have been starved to
-death between our lines and the ramparts of the town. His hip was only
-grazed and his clothes untorn; but, of course, he was unable to walk,
-and seemed to feel much pain, for he groaned heavily.
-
-“Towards the end of the siege the weather became beautiful. One day I
-call to mind the enemy scarcely fired a shot. All our troubles were
-forgotten, and two or three of us amused ourselves by reading a novel
-in the trenches.”
-
-The garrison of Badajos fired every morning for a few days before the
-grand assault a certain number of rounds, as if for practice and to
-measure the ground.
-
-On the 6th of April a long order was issued relative to the position
-the troops were to occupy. The day was fine, and all the soldiers in
-good spirits, cleaning themselves as if for a review.
-
-“About two o’clock I saw poor Harvest. He was sucking an orange and
-walking on a rising ground, alone and very thoughtful. It gave me pain,
-as I knew he was to lead the forlorn hope. He said, ‘My mind is made
-up, old fellow: I am sure to be killed.’”
-
-At half-past eight that night the ranks were formed and the roll
-called in an undertone. The division drew up in deep silence behind a
-large quarry, 300 yards from the breaches. They had to wait long for
-ladders and other things.
-
-At ten a very beautiful fire-ball was thrown up from the town. This
-illuminated the ground for many hundred yards. Two or three more
-followed, showed a bright light, and remained burning some little time.
-
-The stillness that followed was the prelude to one of the strangest
-scenes that could be seen. Soon after ten a little whisper went round
-that the forlorn hope were stealing forward, followed by the storming
-parties, composed of 300 men.
-
-In two minutes the division followed. One musket shot (no more) was
-fired near the breaches by a French soldier who was on the look-out.
-Still our men went on, leisurely but silently. There were no obstacles.
-The 52nd, 43rd, and 95th closed gradually up to column of quarter
-distance. All was hushed; the town lay buried in gloom. The ladders
-were placed on the edge of the ditch, when suddenly an awful explosion
-took place at the foot of the breaches, and a burst of light disclosed
-the whole scene. The very earth seemed to rock and sway under their
-feet. What a sight!
-
-The ramparts stood out clear, crowded with the enemy. French soldiers
-stood on the parapets, while the short-lived glare from the barrels of
-powder and stuff flying into the air gave to friends and foes a look as
-if both bodies of troops were laughing! A tremendous fire now opened
-upon the English, and for an instant they were stationary; but the
-troops were no ways daunted. The ladders were found exactly opposite
-the centre breach, and the whole division rushed to the assault with
-amazing resolution. The soldiers flew down the ladders into the ditch,
-and the cheering from both sides was loud and full of confidence.
-Fire-balls were rising, lighting up the scene. The ditch was very wide,
-and when they arrived at the foot of the centre breach eighty or ninety
-men were clustered together. One called out, “Who will lead?”
-
-Death and the most dreadful sounds and cries encompassed all. It was a
-volcano! Up they went: some killed, others impaled on the bayonets of
-their own comrades, or hurled headlong amongst the crowd.
-
-The chevaux-de-frise atop looked like innumerable bayonets.
-
-“When I was within a yard of the top I felt half strangled, and fell
-from a blow that deprived me of all sensation. I only recollect
-feeling a soldier pulling me out of the water, where so many men
-were drowned. I lost my cap, but still held my sword. On recovering,
-I looked towards the breach. It was shining and empty! Fire-balls
-were in plenty, and the French troops, standing upon the walls, were
-taunting us and inviting our men to come up and try it again. What a
-crisis! what a military misery! Some of the finest troops in the world
-prostrate--humbled to the dust.”
-
-Colonel McLeod was killed while trying to force the left corner of the
-large breach. He received his mortal wound when within three yards of
-the enemy. A few moments before he fell he had been wounded in the
-back by a bayonet of one of our men who had slipped. It was found
-out afterwards that the woodwork of the cheval-de-frise was heavy,
-bristling with short, stout sword-blades and chained together. It was
-an obstacle not to be removed, and the French soldiers stood close to
-it, killing every man who drew near. To get past such obstacles by
-living bodies pushing against it up a steep breach, sinking to the
-knees every step in rubbish, while a firm and obstinate enemy stood
-behind--it was impossible.
-
-Round shot alone could have destroyed these defences, which were all
-chained together and vastly strong. Had it not been for this, the
-divisions would have entered like a swarm of bees. It was fortunate
-that Lord Wellington had made arrangements for assaulting the town at
-other points.
-
-“Next morning I was searching for my friend Madden. At last I found him
-lying in a tent, with his trousers on and his shirt off, covered with
-blood, and bandaged across the body to support his broken shoulder,
-laid on his back and unable to move. He asked for his brother.
-
-“‘Why does he not come to see me?’
-
-“I turned my head away, for his gallant young brother was amongst the
-slain. Captain Merry, of the 52nd, was sitting on the ground, sucking
-an orange.
-
-“He said: ‘How are you? You see that I am dying: a mortification has
-set in.’
-
-“A grape-shot had shattered his knee. He had told the doctor that he
-preferred death rather than permit such a good leg to be amputated.”
-
-
-ESCALADE OF THE CASTLE.
-
-General Picton with the Third Division was ordered to attack the castle
-by escalade. The castle was an old building on the summit of a hill
-about 100 feet high, on the north-east of the town.
-
-At about ten o’clock on the night of the 6th of April, 1812, the Third
-Division advanced in that profound silence that rendered the coming
-storm more terrific. Our men were not perceived until they arrived at
-a little river not very distant from the works, when they distinctly
-heard the entire line of the French sentries give the alarm, and all
-the guns of the garrison opened at once.
-
-[Illustration: THE ESCALADE OF THE CASTLE
-
-Many of the ladders were too short. In one case a brawny Irish private
-of herculean strength pulled up first his captain, “clever and clane,”
-as he said, and then five others.]
-
-Volley after volley of grape-shot was fired upon our troops as they
-advanced; fire-balls rose, and showed the enemy where they were. They
-quickened pace and got so close under the wall that the guns could not
-bear upon them, but the fire-balls burned so vividly that they were
-enabled to direct their musketry upon the assailants, and hurl with
-fatal precision every kind of missile.
-
-The ladders were placed, the troops cheered and swarmed up, and nothing
-was heard but mingled cries of despair and shouts of victory. Several
-ladders broke down under the weight, and men were precipitated on the
-heads of their comrades below.
-
-“The ladder I mounted was, like many others, too short, and I found
-that no exertion I could make would enable me to reach the embrasure or
-descend. In this desperate state, expecting immediate death from the
-hands of a ferocious Frenchman in the embrasure, I heard a voice above
-call out:
-
-“‘Mr. ----, is that you?’
-
-“‘Yes!’ I shouted.
-
-“The same voice cried out: ‘Oh, murther! murther! What will we do to
-get you up at all, at all, with that scrawdeen of a ladtherr? But here
-goes! Hould my leg, Pat!’ and, throwing himself flat on his face in the
-embrasure, he extended his brawny arm down the wall, seized me by the
-collar with the force of Hercules, and landed me, as he said himself,
-‘clever and clane,’ on the ramparts.
-
-“In the same manner five more were landed. Thus did this chivalrous
-soldier, with noble generosity, prefer saving the lives of six of his
-comrades at the risk of his own to the rich plunder which everywhere
-surrounded him. And this was Tully O’Malley, a private in my company,
-one of the ‘ragged rascals.’ Well, I found myself standing amongst
-several French soldiers, who were crowding round the gun in the
-embrasure. One of them still held the match lighted in his hand, the
-blue flame of which gave the bronzed and sullen countenances of these
-warriors an expression not easily forgotten.
-
-“A Grenadier leaned on the gun and bled profusely from the head;
-another, who had fallen on his knees when wounded, remained fixed in
-astonishment and terror. Others, whose muskets lay scattered on the
-ground, folded their arms in deep despair. The appearance of the whole
-group, with their huge, bushy moustaches and mouths all blackened with
-biting the cartridges, presented to the eye of a young soldier a very
-strange and formidable appearance.
-
-“‘Don’t mind them boys, sorr,’ said Tully. ‘They were all settled
-jist afore you came up: and, by my soul, good boys they were for
-a start--fought like raal divils, they did, till Mr. S---- and
-the Grenadiers came powdering down on them with the war-whoop.
-Och, my darlint! they were made smiddreens of in a crack, barring
-that big fellow you see there, with the great black whiskers--see
-yonder--bleeding in the side, he is, and resting his head on the
-gun-carriage. Ah! he was the bouldest of them all. He made bloody
-battle with Jim Reilly; but ’tis short he stood afore our Jim, for he
-gave him a raal Waterford puck that tumbled him like a ninepin in a
-minute; and, by my own sowl, a puck of the butt-end of Jim’s piece is
-no joke, I tell you! He tried it on more heads than one on the hill of
-Busaco.’
-
-“Away then flew Tully to join his company, forming in double-quick time
-to oppose the enemy, who were gathering in force at one of the gates of
-the citadel.”
-
-They had already opened a most galling fire of musketry from this dark
-gateway, which was warmly returned by our men, who, under Lieutenant
-Davern, charged up to the massive gate. This, however, the French
-closed, so little impression was made. At last a number of the light
-infantry of the 74th and 85th helped each other to climb up on the
-archway over the gate, and thence they fired down so unexpectedly that
-a general panic seized the enemy, and they fled in confusion, followed
-by many of our men, who now dashed through the gateway.
-
-Here Captain C---- came upon Major Murphy, of the 88th, quite exhausted
-and unable to move from loss of blood, as he had not been able to
-bind up his wound. This he did for him, and they moved on. One more
-bayonet struggle in the castle, and the French again fled, leaving
-the place literally covered with dead and wounded, several of them
-being officers, whose long narrow-bladed sabres with brass scabbards
-instantly changed masters.
-
-One officer who was wounded made several thrusts at the sturdy Ranger
-who was trying to disarm him, but had awkwardly caught the sharp
-sword-blade in his hand, and was so angry at being cut that he was
-preparing to rush upon his antagonist. However, the Frenchman unbuckled
-his waist-belt and threw away his sword.
-
-But Pat was angry, and was not now satisfied with the sword only,
-for, perceiving a handsome silver-mounted calabash, or flask, by the
-officer’s side, he coolly transferred it to his own shoulders, after
-first taking a copious swill. Then, gravely addressing the wounded man,
-said, while reloading his piece:
-
-“Now, my tight fellow, ye see what ye lost by your contrariness.”
-
-“Ah! monsieur, je suis grievement blessé: rendez-moi mon calabash, je
-vous prie.”
-
-“Grieving for your calabash! Is that what you mane?” said Pat. “Why,
-then, I’ll tell you what, my boy: no man shall say that Pat Donovan
-ever deprived either friend or foe of his little dhrop of dhrink--so
-there ’tis for you!”
-
-“Grand merci! grand merci!” murmured the officer.
-
-“Oh, don’t bother about axing mercy from me,” said Pat; “but take my
-advice and keep roaring out ‘Mercy! mercy!’ to all our fellows as they
-come up to ye, and, by Gor! they’ll not take the least notice of you.”
-
-“Ah! merci! merci! Mais c’est fait de moi! c’est fait de moi!” repeated
-the poor wounded young French officer.
-
-Fatal presentiment! One hour afterwards the Irishman returned and found
-him lying on the same spot; but the gallant fellow was at rest, “where
-the wicked cease from troubling.”
-
-As we were occupied in disarming and securing the prisoners Captain
-C---- happened to capture and save the life of the Colonel commanding
-the artillery in the citadel at the very moment our men were pursuing
-him at the point of the bayonet.
-
-He threw himself upon the Captain, and finding he understood French,
-entreated he would save him from our infuriated soldiers; but this
-he found it extremely difficult to do, as each successive group, on
-perceiving his large gold epaulettes and orders, evinced a strong
-anxiety to make further acquaintance with him. Upon one occasion the
-Captain was obliged to use his sword to protect him from a few of the
-60th, who advanced upon him in rather a suspicious and business-like
-manner.
-
-The poor Colonel was in a state of violent agitation, and kept a firm
-hold of his protector’s arm through all the changes of the fight, until
-they met a field-officer of the British artillery, to whom he gave him
-in charge.
-
-The Frenchman wanted to bring C---- to the bomb-proof, where his
-baggage was secured, to give him some tokens of his gratitude, and
-overwhelmed him with thanks; but duty called, and he left him with the
-field-officer, who, he heard afterwards, reaped a rich reward for his
-small service.
-
-The first rays of a beautiful morning showed the incredible strength
-of Badajos, and how dearly the capture of it had cost us. The gallant
-hearts that beat with devoted bravery the night before now lay in the
-cold grasp of death. Silence had succeeded to the dreadful din of arms,
-and rendered more awful the contemplation of this fearful scene of
-death and suffering and desolation.
-
-A vast number of the enemy lay dead in a heap close by the spot where
-our men were forming, and while they gazed on these unhappy victims of
-a fierce and deadly fight, they were not a little astonished to observe
-a very young French officer who lay amongst them, and whom they thought
-to be dead also, slowly and cautiously raise himself up; then, after
-looking about him with a wild stare, he coolly walked over to the other
-side where the prisoners were standing and delivered himself up!
-
-This wily hero had not been wounded, nor had he received the slightest
-scratch, but, being more frightened than hurt, he lay concealed in this
-manner until all fear of danger, as he thought, was over and gone.
-
-It excited a good deal of merriment amongst our men, but the French
-curled their moustaches, gave him a hearty “Sacre!” and their deep
-contempt.
-
-
-ANOTHER ACCOUNT.
-
-“I was on a hill with the medical staff during the night of the assault
-of Badajos. For two hours we watched the fire, the bursting of shells
-and hand-grenades. Then the wounded began to arrive, and we were busy.
-
-“Lord Wellington rode up with his staff, and soon after a staff-officer
-came up at a gallop, shouting, ‘Where is Lord Wellington?’
-
-“‘There, sir.’
-
-“‘My lord, I am come from the breaches. The troops after repeated
-attempts, have failed to enter them. So many officers have fallen that
-the men, dispersed in the ditch, are without leaders. If your lordship
-does not at once send a strong reinforcement they must abandon the
-enterprise. Colonel McLeod, of the 43rd, has been killed in the breach.’
-
-“A light was called for and instantly brought, and Lord Wellington
-noted the report with a steady hand. His face was pale and expressed
-great anxiety. In his manner and language he preserved perfect coolness
-and self-possession. General Hay’s brigade was ordered to advance to
-the breaches.
-
-“You may think that it was nervous work hearing this.
-
-“Our General had wisely planned two extreme attacks by escalade on the
-castle by the Third Division and on the south side of the town by the
-Fifth Division, and on Fort Pardoleros by the Portuguese. It was known
-that Soult was within a few leagues. Marmont had pushed his advanced
-Dragoons as far as the bridge of boats at Villa Velha; the river
-Guadiana was in our rear.
-
-“It was a crisis, and we wondered what thoughts were passing through
-the mind of our gallant chief as he sat motionless on his horse.
-
-“Presently another staff-officer galloped up, out of breath.
-
-“‘General Picton--has--got possession of--the castle, sir.’
-
-“‘Who brings that intelligence?’ exclaimed Lord Wellington.
-
-“The officer saluted and gave his name.
-
-“‘Are you certain, sir--are you positively certain?’
-
-“‘I entered the castle with the troops. I have only just left it.
-General Picton in possession. He sent me.’
-
-“‘Picton in possession! With how many men?’
-
-“‘His division.’
-
-“It is impossible to describe to you the change this news produced in
-the feelings of all around. A great sigh of relief could almost be
-heard.
-
-“‘Return, sir, and desire General Picton to maintain his position at
-all hazards.’
-
-“Having dispatched this messenger, Lord Wellington directed a second
-officer to proceed to the castle to repeat his orders to General Picton.
-
-“Next morning at dawn I set out to visit the breaches. I was just
-thinking of two friends, Major Singer and Captain Cholwick, of the
-Royal Fusiliers, both of whom had been with me two evenings before.
-I was wondering how they had fared in the assault when I met some
-Fusiliers and asked for Major Singer.
-
-“‘We are throwing the last shovels of earth upon his grave, sir.’
-
-“‘Is Captain Cholwick safe?’ I inquired.
-
-“‘In the act of climbing over that palisade he was wounded, fell into
-the water, and we have seen nothing of him since.’
-
-“That did not make me disposed to be very cheerful.
-
-“I found the great breach covered with dead from its base to its
-summit. Many were stripped. Amongst them I recognized the faces of
-many well known to me. In climbing up the breach my feet receded at
-every step in the débris, so as to make my progress slow and difficult.
-Behind the chevaux-de-frise a broad and deep trench had been cut,
-into which our men must have been precipitated had they succeeded in
-surmounting this huge barrier. Above was a battery of 12-pounders
-completely enfilading the great and the small breach, near to each
-other. No wonder we failed there to enter.
-
-“I next visited the castle, at the bottom of whose walls, nearly 40
-feet high, were lying shattered ladders, broken muskets, exploded
-shells, and the dead bodies of many of our brave men. Amongst the dead
-I recognized the body of the gallant Major Ridge, of the 5th Regiment,
-lying near the gate that leads to the town, in forcing which he had
-fallen, riddled with balls.
-
-“I met a soldier of the Connaught Rangers, overpowered by excitement
-and brandy. The fellow looked at me suspiciously, and appeared disposed
-to dispute my passage. He held his loaded musket at half present, and I
-was prepared to close with him; but fortunately flattery succeeded. He
-allowed me to pass.
-
-“Soon after entering the town a girl about nine years of age implored
-my protection, ‘por el amor de Dios,’ for her mother.
-
-“A number of soldiers of a distinguished regiment were in the house,
-armed, and under the influence of every evil passion. Alas! I was
-powerless. I met a man of the 88th dragging a peasant by the neck, with
-the intention of putting him to death--so he declared--in atonement for
-his not having any money in his pockets! I appealed to the gallantry of
-his corps, and saved the life of his victim.”
-
-The town had now become a scene of plunder and devastation. Our
-soldiers and our women, in a state of intoxication, had lost all
-control over themselves. These, together with numbers of Spaniards and
-Portuguese, who had come into the city in search of plunder, filled
-every street. Many were dispossessed of their booty by others, and
-these interchanges of plunder in many cases were not effected without
-bloodshed. Our soldiers had taken possession of the shops, stationed
-themselves behind the counters, and were selling the goods contained in
-them. These were, again, displaced by more numerous parties, who became
-shopkeepers in their turn, and thus continual scuffling and bloodshed
-was going on.
-
-In addition to the incessant firing through the keyholes of the front
-doors of houses as the readiest way of forcing the locks, a desultory
-and wanton discharge of musketry was kept up in the streets, placing
-all who passed literally between cross-fires. Many of our own people
-were thus killed or wounded by their own comrades.
-
-An attempt was made next day to collect our soldiers. The troops,
-however, that were sent into the town for that purpose joined in the
-work of plunder.
-
-We may feel shocked at the excesses which our soldiers committed after
-the storming of such towns as Ciudad Rodrigo and Badajos. Folk sitting
-by their quiet firesides may wonder how sane men can be so dead to the
-higher and better feelings of humanity; but when the fever of war is
-followed by the poison of drink, it is no wonder if the minds of rude
-men are thrown off their balance. War is a most awful thing to witness,
-and many officers have declared to the writer that, had they known
-what war meant in all its dreadful reality, they would not have been
-so eager in their youth to join the army. All the more reason is there
-that every youth in our islands should be compelled by law to learn
-the use of the rifle, that when the time comes--as come it will--when
-an invader shall set foot upon our shore, we may not be helpless and
-unarmed. Perhaps it is necessary that we should sometimes hear the
-horrid truth about war; we may thus be stimulated to use a little
-self-denial for our country’s security, when we realize that life is
-not made up of games and money-making, and when we can see what our
-fatherland would be to us, devastated by a savage enemy, with farms and
-barns blazing, women and children starved to death, towns sacked and
-plundered, and the honour of old England trodden beneath the foot of a
-foreign invader. The story of these sieges has many lessons--military,
-ethical, and economic. Let us at least learn one--the duty that is
-incumbent upon all of us, men and boys, to defend mother and wife and
-child.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-A PRISONER IN ST. SEBASTIAN (1813)
-
- The _coup de grâce_--The hospital--A cruel order--An attempt at
- escape--Removed to the castle--The English at the breach--Many are
- wounded--French ladies sleep in the open--A vertical fire--English
- gunners shoot too well--A good sabre lightly won.
-
-
-Colonel Harvey Jones, R.E., has left us an interesting account of the
-siege of St. Sebastian by the British forces. The town, situated close
-to the French frontier, just south of the Pyrenees and by the sea,
-contains 10,000 inhabitants, and is built on a low peninsula running
-north and south. The defences of the western side are washed by the
-sea, those on the eastern side by the river Urumea, which at high-water
-covers 4 feet of the masonry of the scarp. The first assault in July
-failed. Colonel Jones was wounded and taken prisoner.
-
-His diary begins: “After witnessing the unsuccessful attempts of
-Lieutenant Campbell, 9th Regiment, and his gallant little band to force
-their way on to the ramparts, and their retreat from the breach, my
-attention was soon aroused by a cry from the soldier who was lying
-disabled next to me:
-
-“‘Oh, they are murdering us all!’
-
-“Looking up, I perceived a number of French Grenadiers, under a heavy
-fire of grape, sword in hand, stepping over the dead and stabbing the
-wounded. My companion was treated in the same manner. The sword,
-plucked from his body and reeking with his blood, was raised to give me
-the _coup de grâce_, when, fortunately, the uplifted arm was arrested
-by a smart little man--a sergeant--who cried out:
-
-“‘Oh, mon Colonel, êtes-vous blessé?’ and he ordered some men to remove
-me.”
-
-They raised the Colonel in their arms and carried him up the breach on
-to the ramparts. Here they were stopped by a Captain of the Grenadiers,
-who asked some questions, then kissed him, and desired the party to
-proceed to the hospital.
-
-They met the Governor and his staff on the way, who asked if the
-Colonel was badly wounded, and directed that proper care should be
-taken of him.
-
-After descending from the rampart into the town, as they were going
-along the street leading to the hospital, they were accosted by
-an officer who had evidently taken his “drop.” He demanded the
-Englishman’s sword, which was still hanging by his side.
-
-The reply came: “You have the power to take it, but certainly have no
-right to do so, as I have not been made a prisoner by you.”
-
-This seemed to enrage him, and with great violence of manner and
-gesture he unbuckled the belt and carried away the sword.
-
-Upon reaching the hospital, the Surgeon-Major was very kind in his
-manner. After he had enlarged the wounds, according to the French
-system, and then dressed them, the Colonel was carried across the
-street and put into a bed in one of the wards of the great hospital,
-which a soldier was ordered to vacate for his use. This man returned
-later in the day for his pipe and tobacco, which he had left under the
-pillow.
-
-In the course of the morning they were visited by the Governor, who
-made inquiries as to their wounds, and whether they had been plundered
-of anything; for a great number of English soldiers had been taken,
-and were lodged in the town prison. The only persons permitted to
-visit them were some staff-officers, a few Spanish ladies, and a
-Spanish barber. From the former the Colonel was made acquainted with
-all that passed in the British lines--at least, as far as the French
-could conjecture. Although boats arrived nightly from Bayonne, the
-other side of the frontier, bringing shells, medicine, charpie, or
-lint, engineers, etc., the garrison remained in great ignorance of
-the movements of the two armies. Soult kept sending word that he
-would soon come and raise the siege; thus, by promises of immediate
-relief, he kept up the spirits of the garrison. He also rewarded
-the gallantry of particular defenders during the assault and in the
-sorties by promotion, or by sending them the decoration of the Legion
-of Honour. In the French Army there seemed to have been a system of
-reward for good and gallant conduct by promotion into the Grenadiers
-or Voltigeurs, which had an excellent effect. A French soldier was
-extremely proud of his green, yellow, or red epaulettes. They were
-badges of distinguished conduct and only those who had shown great
-gallantry in action were admitted into their ranks. What with the
-success attendant upon the sorties and the numerous decorations which
-had been distributed among the officers and privates, such a spirit of
-daring had been created that the idea of a surrender was scouted by all.
-
-After the stones had been extracted which had been blown into his
-leg and thighs by the bursting of shells and grenades, the Colonel
-was enabled to move about and get into the gallery running round the
-courtyard of the hospital, and into which all the doors and windows of
-the rooms respectively opened. It was the only place where they were
-allowed to breathe the fresh air.
-
-One day, whilst sitting in the gallery, he observed a table placed in
-the balcony below him, on the other side of the courtyard. Soon he saw
-an unfortunate French gunner laid upon the table. They amputated both
-his arms, his hands having been blown off by an accident in one of the
-batteries. In the course of the morning, whilst conversing with the
-surgeon who had performed the operation, he told the Colonel that he
-had acted contrary to his instructions, which were never to amputate,
-but to cure if possible. When he was asked for the reason of such
-an inhuman order having been issued, his reply was that the Emperor
-Napoleon did not wish numbers of mutilated men to be sent back to
-France, as it would make a bad impression upon the people.
-
-“You must be a bold man to act in opposition to this order.”
-
-He replied: “Affairs are beginning to change, and, moreover, it is now
-necessary that the soldiers should know they will be taken proper care
-of in the event of being wounded, and not left to die like dogs. We
-send as many as we can at night to Bayonne by the boats; thus we clear
-out the hospitals a little.”
-
-In conversations with many of the officers they detailed acts committed
-by their soldiers in Spain so revolting to human nature that one
-refuses to commit them to paper. A _chef de bataillon_ once asked him
-how the English managed with their soldiers when they wanted them to
-advance and attack an enemy.
-
-The reply was simply, “Forward!”
-
-“Ah! that way will not do with us. We are obliged to excite our men
-with spirits, or to work upon their feelings by some animating address;
-and very often, when I have fancied I had brought them up to the
-fighting pitch, some old hand would make a remark which in an instant
-spoilt all I had said, and I had to begin my speech all over again.”
-
-The Colonel asked how they managed to provision their men when they
-went out on expeditions that lasted ten or twenty days.
-
-The answer was: “Our biscuits are made with a hole in the centre. Each
-biscuit is the ration for a day. Sometimes twenty are delivered to each
-soldier, who is given to understand that he has no further claim on the
-commisariat for those days.”
-
-“But it is impossible for the soldier to carry twenty.”
-
-“We know that very well, but he has no claim; and how he lives in the
-meanwhile we do not ask. Perhaps he lives on the country.” In other
-words, he steals!
-
-In the hospital he was attended by a Spanish barber. As he could speak
-Spanish fluently, they had a good deal of talk. The barber used to tell
-all he heard and saw of what was passing both inside and outside the
-fortress. When he learnt that the Colonel was an engineer, he offered
-to bring him a plan of all the underground drains and of the aqueduct.
-
-The attendant, although a good-natured man, kept a sharp eye on the
-barber; so it was a difficult matter for him to give anything without
-being detected.
-
-At last, one morning when preparing to shave him, he succeeded in
-shoving a plan under the bedclothes. The Colonel seized the earliest
-opportunity of examining it, and from the knowledge he had before
-acquired of the place he soon mastered the directions of the drains,
-etc. From that moment his whole attention was fixed on the means of
-making his escape.
-
-He knew that the hospital was situated in the principal street, the
-ends of which terminated upon the fortifications bounding the harbour.
-If once he could gain the street he had only to turn to the right or
-left to gain the ramparts, and so make his escape from the town in the
-best manner he could.
-
-One evening just at dusk, when the medical men took leave of them for
-the night, one of them left his cocked hat on the bed. As soon as the
-Colonel noticed this he put it on his head, hurried downstairs, and
-made direct for the great door; but he found it so completely blocked
-up by the guard that, unless by pushing them aside, it was not possible
-to pass undiscovered. He therefore retreated upstairs in despair, and
-threw the hat down on the bed. Scarcely had he done so when in rushed
-the doctor, asking for his _chapeau_.
-
-They were more than once visited by the crews of the boats which
-arrived nightly from France. The sight of the prisoners seemed to
-afford the Frenchmen great gratification, but there was nothing in
-their manner which could in any way offend.
-
-Very unexpectedly one evening the Governor’s aide-de-camp came to the
-prison and told the officers to prepare immediately to go to France.
-
-A Portuguese Captain, one of the party of prisoners, was dreadfully
-in fear of being sent there, and with great warmth of manner told the
-aide-de-camp that Lord Wellington would soon be in possession of the
-place, and if the prisoners were not forthcoming he would hold the
-Governor answerable in person.
-
-It is supposed that the aide went and reported this conversation to the
-Governor, as he did not return for some time, and then told them it was
-too late to embark that night, as the boats had sailed. They were never
-afterwards threatened to be sent away.
-
-About the middle of August the garrison began to flatter themselves
-that the siege was turned into a regular blockade, and that they would
-be relieved by the successes of Marshal Soult. Their spirits ran high,
-their hopes were elated.
-
-The 15th of August, the birthday of Napoleon, was observed as a day of
-rejoicing among the garrison, and at nightfall the letter “N” of a very
-large size was brilliantly lighted up on the face of the donjon.
-
-When the operations of the second siege began a Captain who visited the
-Colonel kept him _au fait_ of all that was going on. One day a Spanish
-Captain who had sided with the French came into the hospital--it was
-on the evening of the assault. He was wringing his hands, tearing his
-hair, and swearing he had heard the shrieks of his wife and daughters,
-and had seen his house in flames. The French officers took the poor
-man’s outcries with great merriment, and the Spaniard must have
-bitterly regretted the day when he deserted the English. The French
-officers did not fail to taunt him with having done so, and ridiculed
-his frantic actions.
-
-In the course of the next day Colonel Jones was asked if he would like
-to speak with a corporal of sappers who had been made prisoner during
-the sortie.
-
-To his surprise, a fine, tall youngster, a stranger to him, walked into
-the ward, dressed in a red jacket. Now, blue was the colour when the
-Colonel was taken prisoner.
-
-“When did you join the army, corporal?” he asked.
-
-“Yesterday morning, Colonel. I was put on duty in the trenches last
-night, and in a few minutes I was brought into the town by the enemy.”
-
-“I could not help laughing, though he wore a rueful expression,” says
-the Colonel.
-
-One morning a Captain of artillery, whom he had never before seen, came
-into the ward and commenced conversing about the siege. He observed
-that the whole second parallel of the British trenches was one entire
-battery, and if there were as many guns as there were embrasures, he
-said, “we shall be _joliment fouettés_.”
-
-The Colonel’s reply was: “Most assuredly you will. Depend upon it,
-there are as many guns as embrasures. It is not our fashion to make
-batteries and stick logs of wood into the embrasures in the hope of
-frightening the enemy.”
-
-He made a grimace, and with a shrug of the shoulders left the ward.
-
-Next morning the surgeon came, as usual, to dress the wounds. This was
-about half-past seven. All was still, and he joyously exclaimed, as he
-entered:
-
-“So, gentlemen, we have another day’s reprieve!”
-
-In about half an hour afterwards, whilst Colonel Jones was under his
-hands, the first salvo from the breaching batteries was fired. Several
-shot rattled through the hospital and disturbed the tranquillity of
-the inmates. The instrument dropped from the surgeon’s hands, and he
-exclaimed, “Le jeu sera bientôt fini!” Then very composedly the good
-doctor went on with his work.
-
-The opening of the batteries made a great stir amongst all hands. A
-hint was given the prisoners to prepare to be removed into the castle.
-A private hint was given to the Colonel to be _sage_ on the way up, as
-the Captain of the escort was _méchant_, and that it would be better to
-be quiet and orderly.
-
-This, perhaps, was intended to deter any of them from attempting to
-escape. The wounded prisoners were moved in one body up the face of the
-hill to the entrance of the castle. Under the Mirador battery they were
-exposed to a sharp musketry fire. Some of the party were wounded, the
-Portuguese Captain severely.
-
-A building on the sea-side, which had been constructed for a powder
-magazine, was now converted into their hospital, the interior being
-fitted up with wooden beds. In the area surrounding the building were
-placed the unwounded prisoners. As the number of wounded from the
-ramparts increased, the hospital filled rapidly, and to prevent the
-fire from the English batteries being directed upon them some of the
-prisoners were desired to hoist a black flag on the roof. While they
-were doing so the Colonel told the French officer that it was labour
-in vain, as the British had learnt that this building was their great
-depot for powder, and so hoisting a flag would be regarded as a ruse to
-preserve their ammunition. Little benefit did they get from the ensign.
-After the capture of the island Santa Clara, hardly could anyone move
-about that part of the castle opposite to the island without the risk
-of being hit. Grape and shrapnel swept the whole of the face, and it
-was only at night that fresh water could be fetched from the tank.
-
-The garrison had a fixed idea that the assault would take place at
-night, so each morning they rose with happy faces--another twenty-four
-hours’ reprieve!
-
-On the 31st of August, when the first rattle of musketry was heard in
-the castle, an inquiring look pervaded each countenance; but no one
-spoke. As the firing continued and the rattle grew and grew, little
-doubt remained as to the cause. Every soldier seized his musket and
-hurried with haste to his post. The Colonel was then ordered not to
-speak or hold converse with the unwounded prisoners outside. One French
-officer asked him if he thought that the English prisoners would remain
-quiet if an assault of the breach should take place, adding, “If they
-were to make any attempt they would all be shot.”
-
-Colonel Jones replied: “Do not fancy you have a flock of sheep penned
-within these walls. Happen what may, shoot us or not, you will be
-required to give a satisfactory account of us when the castle is taken.”
-
-From the commencement of the assault until the rush into the castle
-upon the capture of the town, not the slightest information could
-they obtain as to the state of affairs at the breach. The period that
-intervened was to the prisoners one of the most anxious and painful
-suspense. At last the tale was told by the awful spectacle of the
-interior of the hospital.
-
-In an instant the ward was crowded with the maimed and wounded. The
-amputation-table was in full play, and until nearly daylight the
-following morning the surgeons were unceasingly at work.
-
-To have such a scene passing at the foot of one’s bed was painful
-enough. Added to this the agonizing shrieks and groans and the
-appearance of the sappers and Grenadiers who had been blown up by
-the explosion in the breach, their uniforms nearly burnt off, and
-their skins blackened and scorched by gunpowder--all this was truly
-appalling. The appearance of these men resembled anything but human
-beings. Death soon put an end to their sufferings, and relieved all
-from these most distressing sights. Of all wounds, whether of fractured
-limbs or otherwise, those caused by burns from gunpowder seemed to
-produce the most excruciating pain.
-
-In the rear of the donjon was a small building, in which was stored
-much gunpowder. Shells were falling fast and thick around it, so a
-detachment of soldiers was sent to withdraw the ammunition. This
-dangerous service they were performing in a most gallant manner,
-and had nearly completed their work, when some shells fell into the
-building, exploded the barrels that remained, and blew the building,
-with some of the soldiers, into the air, not leaving a vestige to show
-that such an edifice had stood there.
-
-There were three French ladies in the garrison. They were on their way
-to France when the investment took place. These ladies were permitted
-to enter the hospital, and were allowed a small space at one end of
-the wooden bedsteads. There they were for several days and nights. The
-only water they could obtain to wash in was sea-water. As the number
-of the wounded increased, some of the officers who were lying upon the
-floor were loud in their complaints that madame and her daughters were
-occupying the space which properly belonged to them. They succeeded
-in getting the ladies turned out, to find shelter from shot and shell
-where best they could!
-
-The day the castle capitulated Colonel Jones went in search of his
-fair companions, and found them, nearly smoke-dried, under a small
-projecting rock.
-
-One of the young ladies was extremely pretty. Shortly after the siege
-she was married to the English Commissary appointed to attend upon the
-garrison until sent to England. The change from the hospital to the
-naked rock relieved them from witnessing many a painful scene, as the
-amputating-table was placed near their end of the ward.
-
-After the capture of the town a heavy bombardment of the castle took
-place, by salvos of shells from more than sixty pieces of artillery.
-There were only a few seconds between the noise made by the discharge
-of the mortars and the descent of the shells. Those of the mutilated
-who were fortunate enough to snatch a little sleep and so forget their
-sufferings were awakened by the crash of ten or a dozen shells falling
-upon or in the building, whose fuses threw a lurid light through the
-gloom. The silence within, unbroken save by the hissing of the burning
-composition, the agonized feelings of the wounded during those few
-moments of suspense, are not to be described. Many an unlucky soldier
-was brought to the table to undergo a second operation. The wretched
-surgeons were engaged nearly the entire night. Rest was impossible.
-You could not choose but hear. The legs and arms were thrown out as
-soon as amputated, and fell on the rooks.
-
-It was not an agreeable sight. Those who vote for war do not realize
-these little details in the programme. War, they say, breeds heroes.
-
-It is but justice to the French medical officers to state that their
-conduct during the whole period of their harassing and laborious duties
-was marked by the greatest feeling and kindness of manner, as well as
-by skilful attention to the relief of all who came under their hands.
-
-The unfortunate prisoners who were not wounded had been placed in the
-area round the hospital, and being without cover, suffered at every
-discharge.
-
-The Colonel exerted himself to obtain a few pickaxes and shovels to
-throw up some sort of splinter-proof, but it was in vain he pleaded,
-and in the end fifty were killed or wounded out of 150.
-
-From the surgeons and hospital attendants they experienced great
-kindness. Their diet was the same as that of the French wounded
-soldiers. Their greatest luxury was three stewed prunes!
-
-The effects of the vertical fire on the interior of the castle were so
-destructive that, had it been continued six hours longer, the garrison
-would have doubtless surrendered at discretion. They had lost all hope
-that Soult could relieve them.
-
-Everybody now sought shelter where best he could among the rocks.
-Still, no nook or corner appeared to be a protection from the shrapnel
-shells.
-
-A sergeant of the Royals, standing at the foot of a bedstead, was
-struck by a ball from a shrapnel shell, and fell dead while talking.
-An Italian soldier, while trying to prepare some broth for dinner, was
-blown into the air--soup, bowl, and all!
-
-The excellence of the British artillery is well known. Nothing could
-surpass the precision with which the shells were thrown or the accuracy
-with which the fuses were cut. During the siege our men in the British
-trenches little heeded the lazy French shells which were thrown into
-our batteries. From the length of the fuses sufficient time was often
-allowed before they burst to put themselves under cover; and when they
-did burst, the splinters flew lazily around. But when the sound of an
-English shell was heard in the castle, or when the men stationed in the
-donjon cried, “Garde la bombe!” everybody was on the alert. Touching
-the ground and bursting were almost simultaneous, and the havoc from
-the splinters was terrible. It appeared to be of little avail where a
-man hid himself: no place was secure from them.
-
-A French officer of Engineers, who was very badly wounded, kindly lent
-the Colonel some of the professional books which were supplied to him.
-Many were works which he had never been able to procure. Much pleasure
-and instruction did he derive from their perusal. He found out that the
-French Engineers were supplied with them by the Government, and their
-Generals also with the best maps of the country.
-
-One day the Colonel was called to the door of the ward by a French
-officer, who exclaimed, as he pointed to a large convoy of English
-transports coming in under full sail: “Voilà les fiacres qui viennent
-nous chercher!” (“There are the cabs coming to fetch us.”) It was a
-most cheering and beautiful sight--the cabs that were sent to fetch us
-home!
-
-When Colonel Jones was told, shortly after, that he was no longer a
-prisoner, he began to look round for the best sword in the castle to
-replace the one which that rude French Captain had taken from him.
-
-He discovered a handsome sabre belonging to a wounded staff-officer,
-so he sent and desired that it might be taken down from the place where
-it was hanging, as he wanted such a weapon.
-
-“I have it still by me. It was the only sword I wore until the end of
-the war, and often, when at the outposts with a flag of truce, have I
-seen the French officers regard the eagles on the belt with anything
-but a gratified look.
-
-“In 1815 I was quartered at Paris, being engineer in charge of the
-fortifications on Mont-Martre. There I frequently saw several of the
-St. Sebastian officers, and from my old friend the Chirurgien-Major I
-received many visits.
-
-“We both agreed that, though the tables were turned, our present
-position was far more agreeable than when our acquaintance began in St.
-Sebastian.”
-
- From Muswell’s “Peninsular Sketches.” Henry Colburn, publisher.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-JELLALABAD (1842)
-
- Position of the town--Sale’s brigade rebuilds the defences--A
- sortie--Bad news--A queer noise--A ruse that did not succeed--The
- only survivor comes in--Story of a massacre--The earthquake--The
- walls are down--Are rebuilt--English magic--Pollock comes--Fight
- outside--The peril of Lady Sale.
-
-
-In November, 1841, the English Resident at the Afghan Court of Cabul
-was treacherously assassinated. General Elphinstone, who was left in
-command of the English troops, being in feeble health, attempted to
-leave the country with his 4,500 troops and three times that number of
-camp followers. On the 11th of March, 1842, Akbar Khan with a large
-army attacked General Sale at Jellalabad.
-
-Jellalabad is a walled town on the right bank of the Cabul River. The
-upper end of the valley is very fertile and picturesque, studded with
-forts and villages, but all round the city it is sandy and arid. Snow
-mountains close in the valley on all sides.
-
-South of Jellalabad, at a distance of 1,200 yards, is a low range of
-limestone hills, and on the south-west other low hills command the
-town at 200 yards’ distance. All round the walls were houses, mosques,
-old forts, gardens, and trees--in fact, every species of cover that an
-enemy could desire.
-
-The walls of the town were 2,100 yards in extent, all in ruinous
-condition, and in many places not more than 9 feet high, and easily
-scaled. Through breaches in the wall laden cattle and droves of asses
-went in and out daily.
-
-Into this town on the evening of the 12th of November, 1841, wearied,
-footsore, hungry, short of ammunition, Sale’s brigade entered, to
-undertake the desperate task of defending it against the whole power
-of the country, the people of which not only hated us as invaders, but
-regarded us as infidels to be rooted out.
-
-At a distance of 600 miles from our own frontier, with the formidable
-defiles of the Khyber Pass to cross, what would be our condition if
-Runjeet Sing should refuse to allow another army to traverse his
-territories?
-
-In the meantime these ruinous walls were better than the open plain;
-so, after viewing the fortifications, Sale marched the brigade in, and
-the inhabitants fled out at the other side as we entered.
-
-It was decided to hold the whole town and try to make it defensible.
-Our supply of provisions was so low that the troops had to be put on
-half, and the camp followers on quarter, rations. As to ammunition, we
-had only 120 rounds per man. We set to work and collected grain, flour,
-pulse, and food of all sorts which had been left behind, and in a few
-hours supplies for several days had been gathered in.
-
-As parts of the walls had no parapets and the sentries were quite
-exposed, hundreds of camel saddles were ranged, two deep and two high,
-for the sentries to kneel behind.
-
-The next day many thousands of the enemy came swarming round and set
-fire to the grass huts and sheds on the eastern side. Some of them
-seemed to be bent on getting into a small mosque near the town, so a
-party of sappers, under Major Broadfoot, were sent to see what it
-contained.
-
-They discovered a quantity of carbine ammunition, which proved to our
-men a timely and welcome supply. From dusk till midnight they kept
-firing on our sentries with wild yells. Then they withdrew, and the
-troops could snatch some rest.
-
-At early dawn Sale determined on a sortie, and all were aroused without
-sound of bugle. Seven hundred infantry and two guns, commanded by
-Colonel Monteath, were ordered to sally out at sunrise and attack
-the Afghans. There were some 6,000 Afghans waiting to meet them in
-the rocky hills at the south-west angle of the city, but they did
-not resist long, and the cavalry rolled them over and pursued the
-fugitives, while Abbot’s guns ploughed through them wherever they
-massed together.
-
-By ten o’clock it was all over. The panic was so great that they
-deserted the forts, and we secured all the grain and fodder.
-
-Two great results followed this fortunate victory: it gave the garrison
-a little breathing-time, and we had a few days of uninterrupted quiet
-to repair our walls and destroy cover.
-
-The people of the valley now adopted the usual Oriental policy of
-trying to keep well with both parties, and sent in donkey-loads of
-flour, wheat, etc.
-
-Working parties were told off to clear away the rubbish, to destroy
-houses outside, and to build parapets on the walls; for with the
-enemy’s marksmen so near, no one could look over the walls or show a
-cap without getting a shot through it.
-
-“Jellalabad” means “the abode of splendour,” but our men found it
-squalid and mean. There were two main streets, crossing each other at
-right angles; the rest were narrow, filthy lanes. The mountain tribes
-have fair complexions and the Grecian type of face. They are believed
-to be the descendants of the Greeks left by Alexander the Great. All
-their implements and household utensils are totally different from
-those used by the Afghans.
-
-As soon as the enemy was driven off by our sortie the troops set to
-work on the defences. No one was allowed to be idle. Officers and men,
-with spade, pickaxe, bill-hook, or mining tools in hand--all were at
-work from daybreak to sunset.
-
-Parties of the enemy hovered about, but never dared to molest us.
-Strong detachments of cavalry were sent out every day to protect our
-grass-cutters.
-
-On the 21st of November the garrison received bad news. The little fort
-of Pesh Bolak (half-way between Jellalabad and the Khyber) had had to
-be evacuated, and Captain Ferris had been seen going over the mountains
-away to Peshawar in hasty retreat.
-
-Then from Cabul they heard that our troops there were shut up by the
-insurgents in their fortified cantonment, that there was a general
-rising of the whole country, and the roads were closed against
-messengers.
-
-Every night now parties of the enemy used to creep round and fire at
-our sentries. At twelve o’clock on the night of the 28th there was
-a tremendous report, like the firing of a heavy gun. The alarm was
-sounded, and in two minutes every man was at his post. Seaton was
-Captain of the day, so he hurried off to learn what all the row was
-about. He found Sale and his staff in the west gate, looking earnestly
-in the direction of the enemy, and discussing with the heroic Havelock
-the probabilities of an attack. It was a bright moonlight night;
-everything visible near or far. All at once some one called out:
-
-“Here they come, sir! Don’t you see those two dark columns of men 500
-yards off?”
-
-Ah! yes. Every one saw them clearly enough.
-
-“I looked a little, and then laughed right out. The General called to
-me in his short, sharp way:
-
-“‘Seaton, what is it, sir?’
-
-“‘General, where is the back wall of the old fort?’
-
-“‘Eh! eh! what! what!’ said he testily.
-
-“‘Why, General, you sent me out yesterday to destroy the back wall of
-that old fort behind which the enemy used to muster. The clay was too
-hard for us, so, as the wall was just over a sunk road, and the bank
-below the wall soft, I threw a dam across the lower part of the road
-and turned in yon little stream. I guess it has softened the bank,
-and the wall has fallen with a slap into the water and produced the
-explosion. The columns of men are only the shadows of the north and
-south walls.’ So we all had a hearty laugh.”
-
-Seaton was on guard every third day. Though the duty was hard, it was
-comparatively a day of rest. During the night officers visited the
-guards and sentries every two hours, and made the sentries report
-everything they had seen or heard. They patrolled the streets, too,
-every two hours, and the picket in the centre of the town sent patrols
-to each gate every hour during the night. Every day, when not on
-special duty, he went out with a large working party to destroy the old
-walls and houses outside the town, to fell and cut up the trees, and to
-bring them in for firewood.
-
-The enemy had some capital marksmen, and several of our men were shot
-through the loopholes. Sale now thought it time to put a stop to
-this, for they cut off our supplies and we had only thirty days’ food
-in store. So he quietly waited until noon, when the enemy would be
-thinking more of food than fighting, and a column of 1,100 infantry was
-formed in the west street. All the cavalry that could be mustered, with
-two of Abbott’s guns, assembled in the south street. They had a tough
-job at first. The Afghans stood bravely and poured in a heavy fire; but
-the moment the cavalry and guns appeared on the plain clear of Piper’s
-Hill the whole body of the enemy fled in every direction. Many were
-drowned in the river.
-
-During the pursuit Captain Oldfield, who commanded the cavalry, as he
-galloped up to a party of the fugitives, saw one man suddenly stop,
-throw off his turban, tear off his clothes, wrap his waist-cloth round
-his loins and attempt to personate a Hindoo, calling out, “Shah bash,
-Angrèz!” (“Well done, English!”). But our troopers were not to be
-deceived: the Hindoo gentleman was instantly cut down.
-
-Doubtless if the Afghans had possessed the needful tools they might
-have succeeded in their plan of cooping us in and starving us out.
-
-It was to Major Broadfoot’s firmness and foresight that the brigade
-was mainly indebted for its honour and safety. When they were first
-sent out, Broadfoot was ordered to proceed without his tools.
-This he respectfully but firmly declined to do, and by his manly
-representations he carried his point, and was allowed to take them.
-
-They returned at dusk, very hungry and tired. Our loss had been small,
-our gain great, and a further result was that provisions at once began
-to flow in. People flocked to the gates to sell flour, grain, and
-vegetables. But the officers were all so poor that very few of them
-could purchase anything. The soldiers and camp-followers were still
-worse off. The commissariat officer had now six weeks’ food in store,
-but would the treasure-chest hold out? Copper coinage had nearly
-disappeared.
-
-The New Year, 1842, opened ominously, and brought more evil tidings.
-A letter from Cabul, from Pottinger, told them of the murder of
-the Envoy, that Ghusnee was besieged, and the whole country in
-insurrection.
-
-But our garrison was not dismayed. All scouted the idea of any great
-disaster happening to our troops at Cabul, and our works were pushed on
-with increased vigour. Provisions kept coming in, and the surplus was
-carefully stored.
-
-On the 9th of January a letter from General Elphinstone was brought in
-by a horseman, ordering Sale to retire with his brigade to Peshawar.
-
-It was a crushing, humiliating blow, spreading a gloom over every
-heart; but when Sale’s determination was made known--to hold Jellalabad
-until the Cabul force arrived--the men’s confidence in their commander
-was greater than ever.
-
-The greatest harmony existed between the European and native soldiers,
-and there was but one mind in the garrison--to defy the Afghans and to
-redeem as far as possible the reverses of the Cabul force. They had no
-money, they were short of ammunition, and had not too much food; but
-there was no thought of giving way.
-
-On the 13th of January Seaton was on guard at the south gate when, a
-little after twelve o’clock, some one came rushing along the passage
-leading to the guardroom. The door was burst open, and Lieutenant
-B---- threw himself into Seaton’s arms, exclaiming:
-
-“My God, Seaton! the whole of the Cabul army has been destroyed!”
-
-“What! man, are you mad? The whole army?”
-
-“All but one--Dr. Brydon! We saw from the top of the gateway a man
-riding on an old pony. He seemed to be wounded; he was bending over the
-pommel. We sent two horsemen out to bring him in--it was Dr. Brydon. He
-could not speak at first. Then he murmured: ‘The only survivor of Cabul
-army!--all killed.’”
-
-[Illustration: THE LAST OF AN ARMY
-
-The whole of the Cabul army but one man, Dr. Brydon, was destroyed.]
-
-After thinking this over in silence for a minute or two, they went
-outside and saw Sale and his staff at the Cabul gate hoisting up the
-colours, a sign to any poor fugitive who might have escaped. A hearty
-cheer went up as they looked on their country’s glorious colours. Their
-spirits were still high.
-
-Instantly the cavalry rode out. About four miles from Jellalabad they
-found the bodies of three of Brydon’s companions--Lieutenant Harper,
-Collyer, and Hopkins--all terribly mangled.
-
-At night lights were hung out over the Cabul gate, and two buglers
-were put on duty in the south-west bastion to sound the advance every
-quarter of an hour, in hope that some poor fugitive might hear it and
-be saved.
-
-“The terrible wailing sound of those bugles I shall never forget,” says
-Seaton. “It was a dirge for our slaughtered soldiers, and had a most
-mournful and depressing effect.” Dr. Brydon’s tale struck horror into
-the hearts of all who heard it, but mingled with the sorrow and pity
-came a fierce desire for vengeance. Little was said, but the stern
-looks of the soldiers, the set teeth, and the clenched hands, showed
-how deep was the feeling that had been stirred, and how stern the vow
-registered in each man’s heart.
-
-On the 19th a servant of Captain Bazette came in, and on the 30th a
-Goorkah. On the 31st they had the pleasure of welcoming another white
-face--a sergeant-major. From the accounts of the sergeant they gathered
-many particulars of this tragedy--how, after the murder of our Envoy,
-General Elphinstone agreed to evacuate the country and retire with the
-whole of his force, Akbar, on his part, undertaking to escort the Cabul
-force and guarantee it from attack; how the Afghans rushed into our
-cantonments, even before the rear of the British force had got outside
-the walls, and began their plundering; how our men were shot down in
-the Khoord Cabul Pass; how Akbar pretended he could not control his
-men, and advised the English officers to surrender to him; how the
-native soldiers, chilled to death in the snow, went over to the enemy
-in hundreds.
-
-The sergeant said in their excuse: “I can’t blame the natives. I myself
-was born in a cold climate. I was well clad, yet my sufferings from the
-cold were terrible: my fingers were frost-bitten, and all my joints
-were sore. Why, sir, in the next pass the Afghans, after slaughtering
-our men till they were tired, stripped hundreds of poor Hindoos stark
-naked and left them there to die in the cold.”
-
-Stories such as these only spurred on the garrison of Jellalabad to
-greater exertion, for, as they would have now to face Akbar Khan and
-all his warriors, on them devolved the task of redeeming our country’s
-fame.
-
-On the 30th of January our cavalry brought in 175 head of cattle
-that had been grazing at some distance off, and on the next day they
-shepherded in 734 sheep.
-
-Now, work on Sunday was remitted. Men came to morning service with
-sword and pistol, or musket and bayonet, and sixty rounds in pouch,
-ready at a moment’s notice to march to battle.
-
-“To me,” says Seaton, “it was always an affecting sight to see these
-great rough fellows with their heads bowed, humbly confessing their
-sins before God, and acknowledging their dependence on His goodness
-and mercy; and I am sure that afterwards, when we were surrounded by
-greater perils, there were many who felt the comfort there was in
-having One to whom they could appeal in all their troubles.”
-
-In February they knew that Akbar was collecting his forces for
-an attack. On our side the General ordered that all able-bodied
-camp-followers who were willing should be armed and receive the pay of
-native soldiers.
-
-Those for whom there were no muskets were armed with pikes, which were
-made for them.
-
-On the 16th rain came down in torrents; on the 18th heavy rain again.
-On the morning of the 19th Seaton was at work outside when he felt a
-smart shock of earthquake, with a rumbling noise. At first he did not
-take much notice, but when the rumbling increased and swelled to the
-loudest thunder, as if a thousand heavy waggons were being driven at
-speed over a rough pavement, he turned quite sick. An awful fear came
-over him. The ground heaved and set like the sea, and the whole plain
-seemed to be rolling in waves towards them. The motion was so violent
-that some were nearly thrown down, and expected every moment to see the
-whole town swallowed up.
-
-The houses, the walls, and the bastions were rocking and reeling in a
-most terrific manner, and falling into complete ruin, while all along
-the south and west faces the parapets, which had cost us so much labour
-to erect, were crumbling away like sand. The whole was enveloped in
-one immense cloud of dust, out of which came cries of terror from the
-hundreds within.
-
-When the dreadful noise and quaking ceased, a dead silence succeeded,
-all being so deeply impressed by the terror of the scene that they
-dared not utter a sound. The men were absolutely green with fear.
-Presently a gentle breeze sprang up. Officers encouraged the men to go
-on with their work, but, looking round the valley, they saw every fort
-and village wrapped in dense clouds of dust. From some the dust was
-streaming away like smoke, from others it rose high in the air in dense
-columns.
-
-When the breeze had cleared away the dust from Jellalabad an awful
-scene of destruction appeared. The upper stories of the houses were all
-gone, and beams, posts, doors, windows, bits of wall, ends of roof,
-earth and dust, all were mingled in one confused heap. It was as if
-some gigantic hand had taken up the houses and thrown them down in one
-rubbish-heap.
-
-The parapets all round had fallen from the walls. The walls were split
-in many places. In the eastern wall a breach had been made large enough
-for two companies abreast to walk through.
-
-Sale’s bugle sounded the assembly, and they went in at once. On muster
-being taken, it was found that the loss of life was happily only three
-men crushed in the cavalry hospital.
-
-On looking round, it was found that a month’s cannonading with a
-hundred pieces of heavy artillery could not have produced the damage
-that the earthquake had effected in a few seconds. “The hand of the
-Almighty had indeed humbled our pride, and taught us the wholesome
-lesson that He alone is a sure defence.”
-
-The Colonel narrowly escaped with his life. He had been standing on the
-wall, which, he said after he was taken up from the ruins, wriggled
-like a snake.
-
-In one place, as an officer was passing along the ramparts, the ground
-opened beneath him, and he fell in, but only to be thrown out again--an
-operation which was twice repeated. At a spot near the river the wall
-had opened so wide that a man could have slipped through. All the
-barracks and sheds were in ruins; all shelter for the men was destroyed.
-
-This, however, was not the time for idle wonder or for despair.
-Without delay every man in garrison was set to work, and though there
-were frequent shocks of earthquake during the day, the ruins had been
-cleared away by dusk, and a temporary parapet of clods of earth and
-clay made all round the walls.
-
-Towards sunset a small body of horsemen from Akbar’s camp came to
-reconnoitre. Abbott, who was looking out, sent a shot right into the
-party, making them scamper off, probably to report to their chiefs
-that the fortifications were uninjured, and that our “magic” had caused
-the earthquake.
-
-But we were in a critical state, with all defences levelled, a huge
-breach in the works, and the destroyer of our Cabul force within a few
-miles of us, with the whole power of the country at his back.
-
-They had now daily fights for their forage. The grass-cutters went out
-at early dawn under a strong escort. The grass in India is a creeping
-grass: the shoots run along under ground, or it would perish in the
-droughts of summer.
-
-The grass-cutter, armed with a small hoe, sits down on his heels, and
-with a sweeping motion cuts the grass half an inch below the surface
-of the ground. He then collects it, beats off the earth, and brings
-it home on his head. This grass is very sweet and nutritious. As the
-hot weather advanced they had to go further afield for grass. On the
-2nd of March Akbar sent a large force round to the east, and they were
-invested.
-
-“I find this in my journal for the 2nd of March: ‘All our comforts are
-vanishing. Tea has long been gone; coffee goes to-day; sugar on its
-last legs; butter gone; no grass for the cows; candles not to be had.
-Akbar is trying to starve us out.’”
-
-Lead for the rifles was in great request. Some officers of the 13th
-hit upon a very comical method of procuring it. They dressed up a
-figure--cocked hat, red coat, painted face--and put it on a short pole.
-Hoisted up above the ramparts and managed adroitly, it created no end
-of fun.
-
-Eagerly the Afghans fired at it. Thousands of bullets went over their
-heads or battered against the wall below. Whenever they thought the
-General was hit or saw him bob down, they yelled and shouted like
-madmen.
-
-How many Generals must they not have killed! Generals running short!
-The figure was hit sometimes. In the evening or early morning they used
-to go outside and pick up the bullets, of which immense numbers were
-found. In the course of half an hour one morning Seaton picked up 121,
-but several officers picked up more.
-
-From the 2nd of March, the day on which the enemy established a camp
-east of the city, they all slept at their posts on the walls. No one
-took off his clothes. None of them wore uniform, but clothes made of
-camel-hair cloth. Too much digging for fine uniforms! On the 10th of
-March, as the Afghans had been thronging the ravines for many days,
-Sale thought it wise to see to it, so a sortie with 800 men was
-ordered. They thoroughly examined the ravines at night and destroyed
-the enemy’s shelters. As they were retiring into the town the enemy
-came on, pursuing with loud yells and screams. Their horse came boldly
-down towards the town, offering a splendid mark for Abbott, whose guns
-plied them with shot and shell with deadly effect.
-
-Not a single horseman could stand before Abbott’s gun within 1,200
-yards, his aim was so unerring. Ever since the siege of Bhurtpoor he
-had been celebrated for his skill as an artilleryman, and they had
-daily proof of his prowess.
-
-So the month progressed, fighting or working by day, watching on the
-walls by night, and all the time on half rations.
-
-They knew that Government was assembling a force at Peshawar under
-Pollock in order to relieve them, for they got a stray letter now and
-then.
-
-Hard work, poor food, anxiety, were making all thin and pale; and some
-of them were angry with Sale that he would not go out and fight, for
-they felt perfectly capable of squaring accounts with Akbar and his
-legions; but “Fighting Bob,” as he was called, would not come up to his
-name.
-
-Night after night they were roused from their short sleep by
-earthquakes. A sharper shock, a violent heave, a short cracking sound,
-and all would start up, listen, grumble, try to get to sleep again.
-
-Some messengers came in from Peshawar on the 25th. They heard the men
-of the 13th in fits of laughter at some absurd game they were playing,
-and all the native soldiers singing in chorus their festival songs.
-They were astounded.
-
-“Why,” they said, “you are besieged, and ought to be sad and
-dispirited; but you are all as merry as possible.”
-
-When they saw the ease with which a party of Akbar’s men were beaten in
-a fight for some grass they were utterly confounded. When they returned
-to Peshawar all this went down the road to the Khyber, with wonderful
-additions. It was just the sort of tale that in the mouths of such men
-would not lose in the telling.
-
-All this time the greatest cordiality and good feeling prevailed
-between the European and native soldiers.
-
-“I remember one case of disagreement,” says Seaton. “A sepoy of my
-company met a soldier of the 13th on a narrow path in the town. The
-soldier overbalanced himself, and stepped into the mud.
-
-“Being very hot-tempered, he struck the sepoy a violent blow. The
-latter came to me to make his complaint. The matter was referred to
-Sale, who was furious, blew up the English soldier fearfully, and
-ordered him to confinement.
-
-“As the Adjutant was marching the soldier off the sepoy took the
-soldier by the hand and said: ‘General Sahib, forgive him. There has
-not been one quarrel between any of us ever since the regiments have
-been together. You have scolded with him, so I ask you please forgive
-him.’
-
-“The General granted the sepoy’s request. The soldier said he was
-sorry he had given way to temper and struck a man who could behave so
-generously.
-
-“Many of our soldiers had friends among the sepoys, and I have known
-more than once a soldier, when dying, send for his sepoy friend to be
-with him in his last moments.”
-
-Akbar had a new idea: he caused large flocks of sheep to be driven over
-the distant forage grounds. On the 30th they saw these flocks going
-within range of the guns. They looked at them with hungry eyes.
-
-On the morning of the 1st of April a flock of sheep was driven by the
-enemy’s shepherds close to the old ruined fort. Several officers got
-round Sale and fairly badgered him into making an attempt to carry them
-off. Four hundred men, all the cavalry, and some pikemen, were ordered
-out. As they sallied forth Seaton heard a man on the walls say to a
-friend, “I say, Bill, what a lark if we can get in all them sheep!”
-
-The cavalry rode out and got round them. The sheep were given to the
-pikemen. The infantry extended in skirmishing order to check the enemy,
-who were running up. The sheep were got in, the last one dropping a
-lamb on the very threshold.
-
-They had one man killed and eight wounded, but were all in the highest
-spirits, and when the Afghans, dancing with rage, showed themselves on
-the hills, they were saluted with shouts of laughter and a thousand
-cries of “B-a-a! b-a-a!”
-
-The garrison got 481 sheep and a few goats. The General gave forty
-sheep to the men of Seaton’s regiment (natives); but they, with great
-good-feeling, desired that the sheep should be given to the English
-soldiers, for whom, they said, such food was necessary, while they
-could do very well on their rations. Bravo, 35th Native Infantry! A
-grateful letter came in return from the non-commissioned officers and
-privates of the 13th L.I. to Colonel Dennie, ending with, “Believe me,
-sir, that feeling is more gratifying to us than the value of the gift,
-and we shall ever feel the obligation our old comrades and brother
-campaigners have placed us under.”
-
-On the 3rd a spy came in and told them that when Akbar learnt that they
-had captured his sheep, he burst into such a transport of fury that his
-people were afraid to go near him.
-
-On the 6th of April they heard that Pollock had been repulsed in the
-Khyber Pass, and at noon Akbar fired a royal salute in honour of his
-victory.
-
-All the officers now went to Sale and urged on him the absolute
-necessity of going out and fighting Akbar.
-
-Sale saw that the time for action had arrived.
-
-On the morning of the 7th strong guards were posted at the gates, a
-picket in the centre of the town, and all pikemen, sick and wounded
-soldiers, etc., were sent to man the walls, and a very respectable show
-they made.
-
-With the first peep of dawn the gates were quietly opened, and the
-three columns, under Dennie, Monteath, and Havelock, sallied out.
-
-The plan was to march direct on Akbar’s camp, burn it, drive him into
-the river, and bring off his guns.
-
-They wasted some time in attacking a ruinous fort, and Colonel Dennie
-was mortally wounded. Then Sale called off the troops, and they went
-straight for Akbar.
-
-The sound of the guns had roused all the enemy’s force, and they were
-turning out in thousands. It was a grand sight to see their large
-masses of horse coming down from the hills. They charged boldly on
-Havelock’s column, which, rapidly thrown into square, received them
-with the greatest coolness, and repulsed them with heavy loss.
-
-They then made an attack on Seaton’s regiment, but at this moment two
-guns of Abbott’s battery came up and sent shot and shell crashing into
-the enemy’s ranks, making them recoil faster than they had advanced.
-
-The English soon came within sight of the Afghan camp, from whence the
-enemy opened fire on them, which caused some loss. But they made a rush
-and carried the camp without a check, while the enemy fled through the
-groves of trees beyond. They tried to carry off one of the guns, but a
-shot by Abbott killed the two horses attached to the limber, and the
-artillerymen fled. Numbers of the fugitives threw themselves into the
-river, which, swollen and rapid, destroyed the greatest part of them.
-
-The whole of Akbar’s camp fell into our hands. His guns, ammunition,
-standards, plunder--everything he had with him. The bugle soon recalled
-the skirmishers, and Seaton was detached with a party to fire the
-tents and the huts, made of boughs and reeds. The smoke of the burning
-proclaimed our victory to the whole valley. Numbers of camels and
-mounds of grain fell into our hands.
-
-“I secured three noble camels for myself, and right good service they
-did me afterwards.”
-
-Sale was anxious to get back to Jellalabad, so the men returned in
-triumph, each man carrying off what he pleased, and were received with
-loud cheers from the walls. A little after dark the news was brought in
-by some Hindoos living in the valley that every fort and village within
-eight miles had been deserted.
-
-This night they slept in bed, perfectly undisturbed. After passing
-the last thirty-six nights on the ramparts, armed and accoutred,
-constantly roused by the enemy, by their own rounds, by the relief of
-sentries, by those terrible earthquakes, many nights drenched by rain
-without shelter, quiet rest in a real bed for the whole night was an
-unspeakable luxury; “but coupled with the thought that, unaided, we
-had broken the toils cast round us by Akbar Khan; that we had beaten
-in fair fight the chief who had destroyed our Cabul army; that months
-of toil, watching, anxiety, and peril had been crowned with glorious
-success; that our country’s honour was safe in our hands, it was
-positive bliss, such as few have had the happiness to taste.”
-
-On this night even the earthquakes spared them--no sudden roar, no
-sharp electric shock, no far-off rumbling sound, no sharp crack of doom
-to startle them from their well-earned repose. It was bliss!
-
-It was observed that earthquakes usually followed much rain, thus
-raising the question whether steam may not often be the origin of the
-phenomenon.
-
-Next day they found 580 rounds of ammunition for the captured guns. Now
-food began to pour in from the country, and they lived on the fat of
-the land.
-
-News came in that Pollock had forced the Khyber, and would arrive about
-the 15th.
-
-At length, on the morning of the 14th, they could see with their
-glasses Pollock’s force coming near. They had not arrived in time to
-help the garrison in their imminent peril. They had lost the grand
-opportunity of joining with them to crush the man whose treachery had
-destroyed their brothers-in-arms, whose bones lay scattered in the icy
-passes of Cabul. A fifth part of Pollock’s cavalry would have enabled
-them to annihilate Akbar and all his troops.
-
-So when next morning Pollock’s force did arrive, there was a hearty
-welcome, but a sly bit of sarcasm in the tune to which the band of the
-13th played them in, “Ye’re ower lang o’ comin’.”
-
-It was not Pollock’s fault, however. He had to wait for the troops to
-join him at Peshawar.
-
-“Let me relate one incident,” writes Colonel Seaton, “that will tend to
-illustrate the character of my old commander, General Sir R. Sale.
-
-“Shortly after Akbar’s camp appeared in sight it was whispered about in
-garrison that Akbar intended to bring Lady Sale, then a prisoner in his
-hands, before the walls, and put her to torture within sight, and so
-compel Sale to surrender.
-
-“Every day when the men were at dinner Sale used to take a turn on
-the ramparts, ostensibly to have a quiet look round at the progress
-of our works, but in reality, I believe, to ponder on the desperate
-situation of his wife and daughter, and debate with himself the means
-of effecting their rescue.
-
-“We knew that they were well, had hitherto been kindly treated, and
-were in Akbar’s fort, not many miles off.
-
-“One day Sale, in going his rounds, came and stood over the south
-gate, where I was on duty; so, as I had enjoyed the privilege of great
-intimacy with him and Lady Sale at Cabul, I went out and joined him. I
-ventured to mention this report, and asked him what he would do if it
-should prove true, and if Akbar should put his threat into execution.
-
-“Turning towards me, his face pale and stern, but quivering with deep
-emotion, he replied:
-
-“‘I--I will have every gun turned on her. My old bones shall be buried
-beneath the ruins of the fort here, but I will never surrender!’”
-
-Could Lady Sale have heard it, her heart would have bounded with pride,
-for the heroine was worthy of her hero.
-
-The reception of the garrison by Lord Ellenborough at Ferozepoor
-was a noble and ample return for all their toil and suffering. His
-lordship had taken care that each officer and man of the “illustrious
-garrison,” as he termed them, should have a medal, and they were sent
-out to them before they reached Ferozepoor.
-
-Not an English officer in India at this time had such a mark of
-distinction. They were the first to be so honoured, and were highly
-gratified by it.
-
-On the morning on which they marched in, the bridge of boats over the
-Sutlej was gaily ornamented with flags and streamers. His lordship met
-them at the bridge head, and was the first to welcome them as they
-stepped on the soil of our own provinces. All the troops in camp were
-drawn up in line at open order, and received them as they passed with
-presented arms. Lord Ellenborough also ordered that at each station
-they marched through on their way to their destination the same
-military honours should be rendered to them. The garrison were received
-with similar marks of distinction at Kurnaul, at Delhi, and at Agra.
-
-“We may forget everything else, but we shall never forget Lord
-Ellenborough’s noble and ever-ready kindness and the many honours he
-caused to be shown us. One word more: After the Mutiny, it is not to be
-wondered at that the sepoy was written down as a demon and a coward;
-but we had known him as an excellent soldier, generally mild and humane
-and temperate as a man, sometimes even generous and forgiving, as the
-best of Christians.”
-
-When will it become the English custom to recite before our young of
-both sexes some of the deeds which have saved the Empire, “lest we
-forget”? If not in church, at least in school, we should make this
-effort to save our children from ignorance, which is ingratitude.
-
- From Major-General Sir Thomas Seaton’s record, “From Cadet to
- Colonel.” By kind permission of Messrs. G. Routledge and Sons.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-SIEGE OF SEBASTOPOL (1854-1856)
-
- The English land without tents--Mr. Kinglake shows off
- before Lord Raglan--The Alma--Strange escapes--Looted
- houses--Fair plunder--Balaklava Bay--Horses lost at sea--A
- derelict worth having--Jack very helpful--The Heavy and Light
- Brigades--Spies--Fraternizing.
-
-
-The Crimean War, fought between Russia on the one hand and England,
-France, Turkey, and Sardinia on the other, consisted mainly in the
-Siege of Sebastopol, a strong fortified port in the South of Russia.
-They fought ostensibly about the guardianship of the Holy Sepulchre in
-Jerusalem, but really because Turkey was thought to be decaying, and
-Russia wished to protect the Slavonic races in her own interest, and to
-extend her power to the Dardanelles. The war was characterized by the
-great sufferings of the troops during the winter, intensified by storms
-in the Black Sea, where so many transports laden with warm clothing
-went to the bottom that our men were left unprotected.
-
-Even at the first landing, on the 14th of September, 1854, these
-sufferings commenced. Imagine a bare and desolate beach, the home of
-seagull and wild-fowl, suddenly turned into a barrack-yard. From one
-end to the other bayonets glistened, red coats and brass-mounted shakos
-gleamed in solid masses. The transports were tossing yonder out in the
-offing, and as gig or cutter grounded on the sand the officers of each
-company first landed, each in full dress, and carried his greatcoat,
-fastened by a strap round his body. After the officers came the men,
-bearing rations for three days in their wallets. Before they were
-all well on shore the rain began, and the wind was sending a little
-surf on the beach. The horses were not yet landed, so Generals and
-staff-officers might be seen sitting on powder-barrels on the shore,
-retiring gloomily within the folds of cape and mackintosh. Disconsolate
-doctors were groaning after hospital panniers which had not yet
-arrived; for, strange to say, more than one man died on that beach.
-
-The country people, though at first full of fear of the invaders, soon
-brought food to sell, and retired with twinkling eyes. They were of
-Tartar race, with small eyes set wide apart and high cheek-bones.
-
-That first night in the Crimea! Twenty thousand Englishmen, and not one
-tent amongst them! The wind rose and the rain fell in sheets, piercing
-through the greatcoats and blankets of the soldiers. Their only bed was
-the reeking puddles. They had no fire to cheer them, no hot grog. They
-were just miserable, while the French and the Turks were lying snug
-under canvas.
-
-No wonder that there was a great increase in illness among the troops.
-Next day the surf was so heavy that many boats were stove in, and the
-work of landing horses and guns was difficult.
-
-On the morning of the 20th, as Lord Raglan, the Commander-in-Chief, was
-waiting, surrounded by his staff, for the troops to get into position,
-a gentleman joined them on a handsome grey pony.
-
-The pony began neighing and screaming so loudly that no one could hear
-a word that was said. Lord Raglan turned and asked:
-
-“Does anyone know who that gentleman is?”
-
-One of the staff replied: “I think it is one of the newspaper
-reporters, my lord. Shall I ask him to go away?”
-
-Lord Raglan laughed, and said: “If you do, he will show you up, you may
-depend upon it.”
-
-“It is Mr. Kinglake, the author of ‘Eōthen,’” said another.
-
-“Oh,” said my lord, “a most charming man,” and was going to speak to
-him, when the French Marshal St. Arnaud rode up and prevented it.
-
-About an hour after, as Lord Raglan was nearing the Russian position,
-a pony dashed past at a furious pace, and who should it be but Mr.
-Kinglake, the future historian of the Crimean War? On he went right
-through the skirmishers, with his horse’s head between his legs.
-Fortunately for the rider, the saddle got forward, and soon went over
-the horse’s ears. Of course the author of “Eōthen” went with the
-saddle, which was better than riding into the enemy’s lines.
-
-It struck the staff as rather an absurd thing just before a battle, and
-they all laughed; but Lord Raglan rode up and offered him another pony.
-Mr. Kinglake has not mentioned this personal adventure in his history.
-
-Then came the Battle of the Alma, a river at that time of year only
-knee-deep. It cost us nearly 3,000 men killed or wounded. They say the
-individual escape of officers and men was miraculous. Chin-straps were
-shot off, buttons carried away, belts torn, coats ripped--all without
-further injury to the wearer. Many hundred Russians threw away their
-arms and accoutrements in their flight. On the further heights, about a
-mile and a half from the Alma, the British troops ceased their pursuit;
-and then arose such a cheer--a cheer from 20,000 victorious men. Even
-some of the wounded fellows joined in it.
-
-“I shall never forget that cheer as long as I live,” writes an officer.
-“It was indeed thrilling. I almost pitied the fallen enemy; it must
-have been so galling to them. I heard a man of the Guards say to a
-comrade: ‘I say, Bill, pleasant for them poor devils’ (pointing to some
-wounded Russians), ‘hearing our chaps cheer like that.’
-
-“Lord Raglan rode up and down the line, the men cheering him heartily.
-There was such a shaking of hands. One felt very choky about the throat
-and very much inclined to cry as one wrung the hand of a friend. ‘God
-bless you, old fellow! So glad to see you all right!’ and so on. It was
-a touching sight to see the meeting between Lord Raglan and Sir Colin
-Campbell. The latter was on foot, as his horse had been killed under
-him. He went up to his lordship and, with tears in his eyes, shook
-hands, saying it was not the first battle-field they had won together.
-The battle was over at twenty minutes to four p.m.”
-
-Next morning the poor wounded were far more quiet. Many had died during
-the night. Numbers of our men were going about among the wounded before
-it was light, giving them drinks of water. All those shot through the
-head died with a smile on their faces. “Some looked so happy, poor
-fellows! that one felt comforted.” On the 23rd of September order was
-given to prepare for marching, and the army left the heights of the
-Alma.
-
-But what is that grey mass on the plain, almost lying without life or
-motion? Now and then, indeed, an arm may be seen waved aloft, or a man
-raises himself for a moment, looks around, and then lies down again.
-
-Alas! that plain is covered with the wounded Russians still.
-
-Nearly sixty long hours have they passed in agony on the wet ground,
-and now the English must leave them as they lie. Seven hundred and
-fifty wounded men are still on the ground, and we can do nothing for
-them. Their wounds have been bound and dressed by us, and Lord Raglan
-has told the head-man of a Tartar village to do what he can for them.
-
-At first the country was hilly and barren, but on coming to the valley
-of the Katcha there were beautiful verdure, shrubs, white villas and
-snug cottages, vineyards and gardens.
-
-A guide-post showed they were ten miles from Sebastopol. The road now
-looked like a byway in Devon or Hampshire. Low walls were surmounted by
-fruit-trees, laden with apples, pears, peaches, and apricots, all ripe
-and fit for use.
-
-The first villa they came to was the residence of a country surgeon.
-It had been ruthlessly destroyed by the Cossacks. A veranda, laden
-with clematis, roses, and honeysuckle, was filled with broken chairs
-and tables. All the glass of the windows was smashed. There lay on the
-grass outside the hall-door two side-saddles, a parasol, and a big
-whip. The wine-casks were broken and spilt; the barley and corn of
-the granary were tossed about; broken china and glass were scattered
-over the floors; and amid all the desolation and ruin of the place a
-cat sat blandly on the threshold, winking her eyes in the sunshine
-at the new-comers. The scene within was awful. The beds had been
-ripped open, and the feathers littered the rooms a foot deep; chairs,
-sofas, bookcases, pictures, images of saints, needlework, bottles,
-physic-jars, all smashed or torn, lay in heaps in every room. Even the
-walls and doors were hacked with swords. It was as if the very genius
-of destruction had been at work and had revelled in mischief. Every
-other house and villa that they passed was a similar scene to this.
-Grand pianos and handsome pieces of furniture covered with silk and
-velvet, rent to pieces with brutal violence, were found in the larger
-houses.
-
-The houses consist of one story only, size being gained by lateral
-extension. Each house has a large patch of vineyard round it. A porch
-covered with vines protects the entrance. They learnt from a deserter
-that the natives were hiding because they expected to be shot; also,
-that the Russians in their retreat had been seized with panic in the
-night, and had rushed off pell-mell; indeed, the state of the roads
-favoured this, for they were littered with linstocks, cartridges, and
-caps all the way. Our soldiers now fared on the richest of grapes and
-the choicest pears, but they were not allowed to waste or plunder.
-
-_September 25._--On the march to Balaklava they got near the enemy.
-They proved to be the baggage-guard of a large detachment. A few
-rounds, a cavalry charge, the Rifles in skirmishing order, and they
-broke, leaving baggage of every description strewed over the ground for
-two miles.
-
-This was fair and lawful plunder, and the troops were halted and
-allowed to take what they liked and what they could carry. The officers
-presided over it to see that there was no quarrelling. Immense
-quantities of wearing apparel, dressing-cases, valuable ornaments, and
-jewellery were found in the carts.
-
-A Russian artillery officer, found in one of the carriages, was in a
-very jovial mood, beside an empty champagne bottle. Fine winter cloaks,
-lined with fur, were found in abundance. This plunder put our soldiers
-in great good-humour, and they marched on the whole day in excellent
-spirits.
-
-As the baggage was some miles behind, Lord Raglan had to put up in a
-miserable little lodge, while his staff slept on the ground in a ditch
-outside.
-
-Not the smallest attempt was made by the enemy to annoy the English
-during this march to Balaklava; but we could have been greatly harassed
-by the smallest activity on their part. The march lay through woods,
-along bad and often precipitous roads, and a few trees felled at
-intervals could have stopped our army for hours. We had, it seems,
-taken the Russians by surprise, and they showed themselves quite
-destitute of resources.
-
-“_Balaklava, September 24._--I never was more astonished in my life,”
-writes Sir W. Russell, “than when I halted on the top of one of the
-numerous hills of which this part of the Crimea is composed, and
-looking far down, saw under my feet a little pond, closely shut in by
-the sides of high, rocky mountains. On this pond floated six or seven
-English ships, for which exit seemed quite hopeless. The bay is like a
-highland tarn. It is long ere the eye admits that it is some half-mile
-in length from the sea, and varies from 250 to 120 yards in breadth.
-The shores are so steep and precipitous that they shut out the expanse
-of the harbour, and make it appear much smaller than it really is.
-
-“Towards the sea the cliffs close up and completely overlap the narrow
-channel which leads to the haven, so that it is quite invisible.
-
-“On the south-east of the poor village which straggles between the base
-of the rocky hills and the margin of the sea there are extensive ruins
-of a Genoese fort, built some 200 feet above the level of the sea, all
-crumbling in decay--bastion and tower and wall. A narrow defile leads
-to the town. A few resolute men posted here might have given great
-trouble to a large army.”
-
-The staff advanced first on the town, and were proceeding to enter it,
-when, to their surprise, from some old forts above came four spirts of
-smoke, and down came four shells close to them. The dose of shell was
-repeated; but by this time the _Agamemnon_ outside the rocks was heard
-busily sending her shot against the fort. After a few rounds the fort
-was summoned, hung out a flag of truce, and surrendered. There were
-only sixty men--all made prisoners.
-
-As Lord Raglan entered at noon the principal street, the inhabitants
-came out to meet him, bearing trays laden with fruit and flowers.
-Others bore loaves of bread cut up in pieces and placed on dishes
-covered with salt, in token of goodwill and submission. The fleet
-and army were once more united. Lord Raglan had secured his base of
-operations. Towards evening the huge bulk of the _Agamemnon_ glided in
-between the rocks of the entrance, to the joy and delight of all on
-shore.
-
-“_October 3._--Sebastopol is not yet invested. It is only threatened
-on the south and south-east side by the army, while the fleet attacks
-it from the east. There is an enormous boom across the entrance, and
-many ships have been sunk close to shore. The Russians can throw shot
-further from their batteries than we can from our decks. Their shot
-went over us the other day when ours were falling 500 yards short.
-
-“Since we landed in the Crimea as many have died of cholera as perished
-at the Alma. The deserters say that thirty Russian ladies went out
-of Sebastopol to see the Alma battle, as though they were going to a
-picnic. They were quite assured of the success of the Russian troops,
-and great was their dismay when they had to fly for their lives.
-
-“Bad news to-day about the Dragoons’ horses. Some 200 horses coming
-from Varna have perished _en route_. The sea ran high: fittings and
-horse-boxes gave way, and the horses got loose upon the deck, and were
-killed or washed overboard.
-
-“_October 9._--An amusing incident has happened. Towards noon a large
-ship, under Austrian colours, was seen standing in towards Sebastopol.
-The Russian Fort Constantine opened fire on her at 2,500 yards, but the
-ship paid no attention to the shot and shell which flew over her. The
-other Russian batteries followed suit; still the Austrian cared not.
-Not a sheet did she slack, while the shot struck her hull and rigging.
-She came right past the batteries, and passed them unscathed, nearing
-the shore as she came. The _Firebrand_ went to her assistance, and
-received several shot in her hull while doing so, but Captain Stuart
-persevered and brought her off. What do you think? Why, she had been
-deserted by her crew when the wind failed and she was getting too near
-Sebastopol. But she was laden with 600 tons of hay for the English
-army. Her escape is almost miraculous, but it is a proof of the bad
-gunnery of the Russians.
-
-“_October 13._--It is now eighteen days since our army, by a brilliant
-march on Balaklava, obtained its magnificent position on the south
-side of Sebastopol. Up to this moment not a British or French gun
-has replied to the fire of the enemy. The Russians have employed the
-interval in throwing up earthworks, trenches, and batteries, to cover
-the south side of the town.
-
-“The delay had been quite unavoidable. We had to send all our guns and
-material round by sea, and land it as best we could. All these enormous
-masses of metal were to be dragged by men or a few horses over a steep
-and hilly country a distance of eight miles. You have some idea of
-the severity of the work in the fact that on the 10th no less than
-thirty-three ammunition horses were found dead. We had now opened out
-about 1,500 yards of trench fit for the reception of heavy guns.
-
-“‘Jack’ made himself very useful to us. The only thing against him was
-that he is too strong. He pulls strong carts to pieces as if they were
-toys; he piles up shot-cases in the waggons till the horses fall under
-the weight, for he cannot understand ‘the ship starting till the hold
-is full.’ But it is most cheering to meet a lot of these jolly fellows
-working up a gun to the camp: from a distance you can hear a hearty
-English chorus borne on the breeze. The astonishment of the stupid,
-fur-capped Crim Tartars, as they stare at the wondrous apparition of
-our hairy Hercules, is ludicrous to a degree; but ‘Jack’ salutes every
-foreigner who goes by with the same cry, ‘Bono, Johnny!’ and still the
-song proceeds.
-
-“_October 22._--Lord Dunkellin, Captain Coldstream Guards, was taken
-prisoner this morning. He was out with a working party of his regiment,
-which had got a little out of their way, when a number of men were
-observed through the dawning light in front of them. ‘They are the
-Russians!’ exclaimed one of his men. ‘Nonsense! they’re our fellows,’
-said his lordship, and went off towards them, asking in a high tone
-as he got near: ‘Who is in command of this party?’ His men saw him no
-more. The Russians fired no shot, but merely closed round and seized
-him before he could get away.
-
-“_October 25._--At half-past seven this morning an orderly came
-galloping in to the head-quarters camp from Balaklava with the news
-that at dawn a strong corps of Russian horse, supported by guns and
-battalions of infantry, had marched into the valley, and had already
-nearly dispersed the Turks of the redoubt No. 1, and that they were
-opening fire on the other redoubts, which would soon be in their hands
-unless the Turks offered a stouter resistance. Sir George Cathcart and
-H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge were ordered to put their divisions, the
-fourth and the first, in motion for the scene of action. Sir Colin
-Campbell, who was in command of Balaklava, had drawn up the 93rd
-Highlanders in front of the road to the town. The French artillerymen
-and Zouaves prepared for action along their lines.
-
-“Lord Lucan’s little camp was full of excitement. The men had not had
-time to water their horses; they had not broken their fast yet, and had
-barely saddled at the first blast of the trumpet, when they were drawn
-up on the slope behind the redoubts. Soon after eight o’clock Lord
-Raglan and his staff cantered up towards our rear; a French General,
-Bosquet, with his staff and an escort of Hussars, followed at a gallop.
-
-“Never did the painter’s eye rest on a more beautiful scene than
-I beheld from the ridge. The fleecy vapours still hung around the
-mountain-tops, and mingled with the ascending volumes of smoke from the
-cannonade; the patch of sea sparkled freshly in the rays of the morning
-sun, but its light was eclipsed by the flashes which gleamed from the
-masses of armed men below.
-
-“To our disgust, we saw the Turks fly at the approach of the Russians;
-but the horse-hoof of the Cossack was too quick for them, and sword and
-lance were busily plied among the retreating herd. The yells of the
-pursuers and pursued were plainly audible. The Turks betake themselves
-to the Highlanders, where they check their flight, and form into
-companies on the Scotsmens’ flanks.
-
-“The Russian cavalry, seeing the Highlanders, halt till they have
-about 1,500 men along the ridge--Lancers, Dragoons, and Hussars. They
-drew breath for a moment, and then in one grand line dashed at the
-Highlanders, who were drawn up two deep. The ground flies beneath their
-horses’ feet; gathering speed at every stride, they dash on towards
-that thin red streak topped with a line of steel.
-
-“The Turks fire a volley at 800 yards and run. As the Russians come
-within 600 yards, down goes that line of steel in front, and out
-rings a rolling volley of minié musketry. The distance is too great;
-the Russians come on. With breathless suspense every one awaits the
-bursting of the wave upon the line of Gaelic rock; but ere they come
-within 150 yards, another deadly volley flashes from the levelled
-rifle, carrying death and terror into the Russians. They wheel about,
-open files right and left, and fly back faster than they came. ‘Bravo,
-Highlanders! well done!’ shout the excited spectators.
-
-“But events thicken. The Russians--evidently _corps d’élite_--their
-light blue jackets embroidered with silver lace, were advancing at an
-easy gallop towards the brow of the hill. A forest of lances glistened
-in their rear, and squadrons of grey-coated Dragoons moved up to
-support them.
-
-“The instant they came in sight the trumpets of our cavalry gave out
-the warning blast which told us all that in another moment we should
-see the shock of battle beneath our very eyes. Lord Raglan, all his
-staff and escort, groups of officers, Zouaves, French Generals and
-officers, bodies of French infantry on the heights, were spectators of
-the scene, as though they were looking on the stage from the boxes of a
-theatre. Nearly every one dismounted and sat down in deep silence.
-
-“The Russians rode down the hill at a slow canter, which they changed
-to a trot, and at last nearly halted. Their line was at least double
-the length of ours, and it was three times as deep. Behind them was a
-similar line, equally strong and compact. They evidently despised their
-insignificant-looking enemy, but their time was come. The trumpets rang
-out again through the valley: the Scots Greys and the Enniskillens went
-right at the centre of the Russian cavalry.
-
-“The space between them was only a few hundred yards; it was barely
-enough to let the horses gather way. The Russian line brings forward
-each wing as our horse advance, and threatens to annihilate them as
-they pass.
-
-“Turning a little to the left to meet the Russian right, the Greys rush
-on with a cheer that thrills to every heart; the wild shout of the
-Enniskillens rises at the same instant. As lightning flashes through
-a cloud, the Greys and Enniskillens pierce through the dark masses of
-the Russians. The shock was but for a moment. There was a clash of
-steel, a light play of sword-blades in the air, and then the Greys and
-the red-coats vanish in the midst of the shaken and quivering columns.
-In another moment we see them emerging and dashing on with diminished
-numbers, in broken order, against the second line, which is advancing
-against them as fast as it can to retrieve the fortune of the charge.
-
-“It was a terrible moment. God help them! they are lost!
-
-“With unabated fire the noble hearts rode at their enemy. It was
-a fight of heroes. The first line of Russians, though broken, had
-turned, and were coming back to swallow up our poor handful of men.
-By sheer steel and sheer courage Enniskillen and Scot were winning
-their desperate way right through the enemy’s squadrons, and already
-grey horses and red coats had appeared at the rear of the second mass,
-when, with irresistible force, the 1st Royals, the 4th Dragoon Guards,
-and the 5th, rushed at the remnants of the first line of the enemy,
-went through it as though it were made of pasteboard, and dashing on
-the second body of Russians, still disordered by the terrible assault
-of the Greys and Irish, put them to utter rout. A cheer burst from
-every lip. In the enthusiasm officers and men took off their caps and
-shouted with delight, clapping their hands again and again.”
-
-Lord Raglan at once despatched Lord Curzon to convey his congratulations
-to General Scarlett, and to say “Well done!”
-
-The gallant old officer’s face beamed with pleasure when he received
-the message. Our loss was very slight--about thirty-five killed and
-wounded.
-
-Presently General Canrobert, attended by his staff, rode up to Lord
-Raglan, and complimented him upon the magnificent charge of our cavalry.
-
-It was shortly after this that the historic charge of the Light Brigade
-took place, owing to an order misinterpreted. Lord Lucan received a
-written order from Brigadier Airey through Captain Nolan to advance his
-cavalry nearer to the enemy.
-
-“Where are we to advance to?” asked Lord Lucan.
-
-Captain Nolan pointed with his finger to the mass of Russian cavalry,
-the six battalions of infantry, and the thirty guns that faced them,
-and said: “There are the enemy, sir, and there are the guns; it is your
-duty to take them.”
-
-Don Quixote in his tilt against the windmill was not so rash and
-reckless as the gallant fellows who prepared thus to rush on almost
-certain death.
-
-It is a maxim of war that “cavalry never act without a support,” that
-infantry should be close at hand. The only support our light cavalry
-had was the reserve of heavy cavalry a long way behind them.
-
-As they swept proudly past, officers could scarcely believe the
-evidence of their senses. Surely that handful of men are not going
-to charge an army in position! At the distance of 1,200 yards from
-thirty iron mouths there belched forth a flood of smoke and flame.
-There were instant gaps in our ranks--dead men and horses, riderless
-horses starting aside--but the remnant rode on into the smoke of the
-batteries. You could see their sabres flashing as they cut down the
-gunners; you saw them return, break through a column of infantry,
-then, exposed to a flank fire from the battery on the hill, scattered,
-broken, wounded, dismounted, flying towards their base. But at this
-moment a large body of Lancers was hurled on their flank. They were
-cutting their way through this mass when there took place an act of
-atrocity without parallel in modern warfare. The Russian gunners had
-returned to their guns: they saw their own cavalry mingled with the
-troopers who had just ridden over them, and, to their eternal disgrace,
-poured in a murderous volley of grape and canister, thus mingling
-friend and foe in one common ruin.
-
-All our operations in the trenches were lost sight of in the interest
-of this melancholy day, in which our Light Brigade was annihilated by
-their own rashness and by the brutality of a ferocious enemy.
-
-“_November 3._--There were many spies in our camp--sometimes dressed
-like French officers--and we not clever enough to detect the bad
-French. The other night the sentinel before the house of the
-Provost-Marshal in Balaklava was astonished to see a horse, with a sack
-of corn on his back, deliberately walking past him in the moonlight. He
-went over to seize the animal, when the sack of corn suddenly became
-changed into a full-grown Cossack, who drove the spurs into his horse
-and vanished!
-
-“Our sentries often fraternized with the Russian sentries. A few nights
-ago our men saw some Russian soldiers coming towards them without
-arms, and they supposed them to be deserters; but, on coming nearer,
-they made signs that they wanted a light for their pipes, and then
-they stayed a few minutes, talking. First Russian: ‘Englise bono!’
-First Englishman: ‘Ruskie bono!’ Second Russian: ‘Oslem no bono!’
-Second Englishman: ‘Ah, Turk no bono!’ pretending to run away as if
-frightened, upon which all the party go into roars of laughter, and
-then, after shaking hands, they retire to their respective beats, ready
-for the bloody work of war.”
-
- From Sir W. Howard Russell’s “Letters from the Crimea.” By kind
- permission of Messrs. George Routledge and Sons, Ltd.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-AFTER INKERMANN (1854-55)
-
- Valiant deeds--Lord Raglan under fire--Tryon the best shot--A
- Prince’s button--A cold Christmas--Savage horses--The Mamelon
- redoubt--Corporal Quin--Colonel Zea.
-
-
-The Battle of Inkermann was fought on the 5th of November, 1854, in
-a thick fog. It began very early in the morning with a surprise, and
-developed into a series of desperate deeds of daring, of hand-to-hand
-fights, of despairing rallies, of desperate assaults in glen and
-valley, in brushwood glades and remote dells. At six o’clock in the
-morning our men of the Second Division were roused by their tents being
-ripped to pieces by Russian shells. In darkness, gloom, and rain the
-British troops sallied forth to meet the foe--with the bayonet if they
-could.
-
-Many valiant deeds were done. Some were noted, many were unmarked.
-Lieutenant Crosse was surrounded by Russians, who attacked him with the
-bayonet, though he was badly wounded. He shot two with his revolver.
-Then a private, running up to help him, shot another, bayonetted the
-fourth, and carried the Lieutenant away in his arms.
-
-MacGrath was captured by two Russians, but while they were leading
-him away he seized the firelock of one of them, shot the Russian, and
-dashed out the brains of the other.
-
-Burke was surrounded just as a ball broke his jawbone. He rushed
-amongst his enemies, shot three dead with his revolver, and cut two men
-down with his sword. He fell at last with more than thirty wounds in
-his body.
-
-When Sir George Cathcart was shot and our men were retiring, Colonel
-Seymour, of the Guards, a dear friend who had served with him through
-the campaign in Kaffirland, rushed forward to help him, and in so doing
-was shot through the leg.
-
-“Come back, Colonel!” the men shouted as they swept past the two
-officers.
-
-“No, no; my place is here with Sir George,” replied Seymour.
-
-“You must leave him,” cried General Torrens; “the enemy are close at
-hand. You will be killed, man!”
-
-But nothing could persuade the Colonel to leave the side of his dying
-chief. There he remained, alone against the rushing tide of battle, and
-met a hero’s death in endeavouring to protect his friend from insult
-and mutilation.
-
-When, later in the day, some of the French troops were seen to retire
-before the impetuous onslaught of the Russian masses, Lord Raglan
-despatched an aide-de-camp to General Pennefather, who was near the
-French division, to ask how he was getting on.
-
-The General sent word in reply that he could hold his own perfectly
-well, and that he thought the enemy looked like retiring.
-
-“If I can be reinforced with fresh troops, I will follow the Russians
-up and lick them to the devil.”
-
-Lord Raglan was so delighted with this spirited answer that he
-galloped over to the French General Canrobert and translated General
-Pennefather’s words literally to him.
-
-“Jusqu’au diable, Général!” That was what he said.
-
-Canrobert, who had just remounted his horse, after having his arm
-bound up, exclaimed: “Ah! quel brave garçon! quel brave homme! quel bon
-Général!”
-
-The day ended with a great artillery duel, in which Colonel Dickson
-won great renown, and mowed down great lanes through the massed forces
-opposed to him, until they broke and fled.
-
-Captain Peel, of H.M.S. _Diamond_, greatly distinguished himself for
-his marvellous sang-froid in action. A shell fell close to a gun which
-he was laying in the trenches. Instead of running to take cover, he
-picked up the shell and lifted it over the parapet. The shell exploded
-just after it left his hands, and did no damage, whereas had it burst
-on the spot where it fell, probably many men would have been killed and
-wounded.
-
-A private of the 33rd (Duke of Wellington’s) Regiment was surprised and
-made prisoner by two Russian soldiers when an advanced sentry. One of
-the Russians took possession of his musket and the other of his pouch,
-and they marched him between them towards Sebastopol. It was not the
-direction which Tommy wanted to take, so he kept wary watch, and when
-he fancied his captors were off their guard, he sprang on the one who
-carried his musket, seized it, knocked the fellow down, and then shot
-dead the Russian who carried his pouch. Meanwhile the Ruskie from whom
-Tommy had taken his own musket rose up from his recumbent position,
-fired and missed his aim. Tommy promptly hit him on the head with the
-butt end of his musket. After this the Englishman proceeded at leisure
-to take off his foes’ accoutrements, and he returned to his post laden
-with spoils, being fired at by the Russian sentries and cheered loudly
-by the English pickets.
-
-[Illustration: GETTING RID OF HIS CAPTORS
-
-An English private was taken prisoner by two Russians. When he thought
-they were off their guard he snatched his own musket and felled one
-of them, and then shot the other dead. The first tried to shoot the
-Englishman, but missed, and was then promptly hit on the head with the
-butt end.]
-
-But Lord Raglan himself gave several instances of great coolness under
-fire. He was sitting on horseback during the Battle of Inkermann, in
-the midst of a battery of artillery, watching our men working the guns.
-A very heavy fire was being directed against this part of the field,
-and one of his staff suggested the propriety of his not putting himself
-in quite so dangerous and conspicuous a place, especially as, from the
-number of bullets that came singing by, it was clear he was being made
-a mark for the enemy’s riflemen.
-
-Lord Raglan, however, merely said: “Yes, they seem firing at us a
-little; but I think I get a better view here than in most places.”
-
-So there he remained for some time, and then, turning his horse, rode
-along the whole length of the ridge at a foot’s pace. Some of the
-hangers-on about the staff found they had business elsewhere, and
-cantered unobtrusively away.
-
-Towards evening of the same day Lord Raglan was returning from taking
-his last leave of General Strangways, who had been mortally wounded,
-and was riding up towards the ridge. A sergeant of the 7th Fusiliers
-approached, carrying canteens of water to take up for the wounded. As
-Lord Raglan passed, he drew himself up to make the usual salute, when a
-round shot came bounding over the hill and knocked his forage-cap off
-his head.
-
-The man calmly picked up his cap, dusted it on his knee, placed it
-carefully on his head, and then made the military salute, all without
-moving a muscle of his countenance. Lord Raglan was delighted with the
-sergeant’s coolness, and, smiling, said to him: “A near thing that, my
-man!”
-
-“Yes, my lord,” replied the sergeant, with another salute; “but a miss
-is as good as a mile.”
-
-One of the most painful things during the battle was the number of
-wounded horses. Some of the poor creatures went grazing about the
-fields, limping on three legs, one, perhaps, having been broken or
-carried away by a shot. Others were galloping about wildly, screaming
-with terror and fright. At times two or three horses would attach
-themselves to the staff, as if desirous of company or for human
-protection. One poor beast, who had its nose and mouth shot away,
-used to edge in amongst the staff and rub its gory head against their
-horses’ flanks. He was at last ordered to be put out of his pain, being
-in this more fortunate than many poor soldiers, who lay out for several
-nights in their agony.
-
-It was a day or two after that the best shot in the British Army was
-killed. Lieutenant Tryon, of the Rifle Brigade, was shot through the
-head when in the act of firing at the retreating Russians. He was a
-great loss, much beloved by his men. It is stated that he had himself
-killed over a hundred Russians. At the Battle of Inkermann he employed
-himself the whole day in firing at the Russian artillerymen. He had two
-of his men to load for him, and they say that he knocked over thirty
-Russians, besides wounding several more.
-
-General Canrobert issued a general order eulogizing the conduct of our
-Rifles, and lamenting in just terms the death of Lieutenant Tryon.
-
-This must be the first occasion on record of a French General
-particularizing the bravery of a British officer of Tryon’s rank.
-
-There is a story told which proves that Russian Generals were not dead
-to a sense of humour.
-
-A Mr. C----, an officer in an English regiment, was taken prisoner in
-a sortie of the Russians, and was sent on to Simferopol. A day or two
-after his arrival there he received some letters from England which
-had been sent in with a flag of truce. One of these letters was from a
-young lady who was engaged to Mr. C----. In this letter she wrote:
-
-“I hope, dearest, that if you take Prince Menchikoff prisoner, you will
-cut a button off his coat and send it to me in a letter, as you know
-how fond I am of relics.”
-
-All these letters had been opened and translated at the Russian
-headquarters, as is usual. Prince Menchikoff was shown this letter,
-which amused him not a little; so he wrote to Mr. C----, saying how
-much he regretted he was unable to pose as a prisoner, when it was the
-other way about; but he had much pleasure in sending him the enclosed
-button off his best coat, which he trusted Mr. C---- would forward to
-the young lady with his compliments.
-
-By December the whole army was suffering, worn out by night work, by
-vigil in rain and storm, by hard labour in the trenches, by cholera
-and short allowances. For nine days there was no issue of tea, coffee,
-or sugar to the troops. Food, corn, hay were stowed in sailing-vessels
-outside the harbour. A hurricane arose. To the bottom went provender
-and food for twenty days of all the horses. You could hardly tell an
-officer from a corporal. They were all hairy and muddy, filthy, worn,
-mounted on draggle-tailed ponies. Yet withal we are told they were the
-noblest, cheeriest, bravest fellows in Europe--ready to defy privation,
-neglect, storm, and wounds. Letters, it is true, sometimes came from
-the Crimea in which the writer showed a righteous indignation against
-those who mismanaged affairs and caused so much unnecessary loss and
-suffering. In one of these we read:
-
-“_January 2._--We have had a rough and dreary Christmas. Where are our
-presents? where are the fat bucks, the potted meats, the cakes, the
-warm clothing, the worsted devices made by the fair sympathizers at
-home? They may be on their way, but they will be too late. Why are our
-men still in tents? Where are the huts that were sent out? Some of them
-I have seen floating about the beach; others are being converted into
-firewood. There are 3,500 sick men in camp; there are 8,000 sick and
-wounded in the hospitals on the Bosphorus.
-
-“Snow is on the hills, and the wind blows cold. We have no greatcoats.
-Our friends the Zouaves are splendid fellows, always gay, healthy, well
-fed. They carry loads for us, drink for us, eat for us, bake for us,
-forage for us--and all on the cheapest and most economical terms.
-
-“The trenches are two and three feet deep with mud, snow, and slush.
-Many men, when they take off their shoes, are unable to get their
-swollen feet into them again. The other day I was riding through the
-French camp, 5th Regiment, when an officer came up and invited me to
-take a glass of the brandy which had been sent out by the Emperor as a
-Christmas gift. He had a bright wood fire burning in his snug warm pit.
-Our presents have so far all miscarried.
-
-“_January 19._--After frost and snow milder weather. Our warm clothing
-has come! Many thousands of fine coats, lined with fur and skins, have
-been served out to the men, together with long boots, gloves, socks,
-and mits.
-
-“What a harvest Death has reaped! How many are crippled by the cold!
-
-“_January 24._--I have been viewing Sebastopol from a hill. The suburbs
-are in ruins. All the streets I saw had their houses broken down.
-Roofs, doors, and windows were all off, but the Russian riflemen shoot
-from them. I saw many walking from the sea with baskets of provisions.
-The harbour is covered with boats.
-
-“_May 18._--The Sardinians are encamped on the slopes of pleasant
-hills. Their tents are upheld by their lances, one at each end of
-the tent. Their encampment, with its waving pennons, has a very
-pretty effect. The Sardinians’ horses are rather leggy, but not such
-formidable neighbours as the horses of the 10th Hussars, which are
-the terror of the camp, breaking their picket-ropes and tearing about
-madly.
-
-“Yesterday I was riding peaceably along with an officer of artillery
-and of 8th Hussars, when suddenly we heard cries of ‘Look out!’ and
-lo! there came a furious steed down upon us, his mane and tail erect.
-He had stepped out of a mob of Hussar horses to offer us battle, and
-rushed at full gallop towards our ponies.
-
-“‘Out swords!’ was the word, as the interesting beast circled round us,
-now menacing us with his heels, now with his teeth; but he was repelled
-by two bright swords and one strong whip, and at last, to our relief,
-he caught sight of Colonel Mayo, who was then cantering by in ignorance
-of his danger, till he was warned by the shouts of the soldiers. The
-Colonel defended himself and horse with great resolution, and, drawing
-his sword, gave point or cut right and left as the case required, till
-the men of the 10th came up and beat off the creature. It is rather too
-exciting this hot weather to have to run the risk of being demolished
-by the heels of an insane Arab.
-
-“_June 7._--It has leaked out that something of import was to take
-place to-day. Between 5 and 6 p.m. Lord Raglan and his staff took up a
-conspicuous position looking straight into the teeth of the Redan. The
-man with the signal rockets was in attendance. About half-past six the
-French attacking column was seen to be climbing the arduous road to the
-Mamelon fort.
-
-“The rocket was fired, and our small force rushed for the quarries to
-divert the Russians. The French went up the steep to the Mamelon in
-beautiful style and in loose order. Their figures, like light shadows
-flitting across the dun barrier of earthworks, were seen to mount up
-unfailingly in the evening light--seen running, climbing, scrambling
-like skirmishers up the slopes amid a plunging fire from the guns.
-
-“As an officer who saw Bosquet wave them on said at the moment, ‘They
-went in like a clever pack of hounds.’ Then we see the Zouaves
-standing upon the parapets and firing down into the fort from above.
-Now they are in the heart of the Mamelon, and a fierce hand-to-hand
-encounter, with musket and bayonet, is evidently taking place. It was
-only seven minutes and a half from the commencement of the enterprise.
-There is still another sharp bayonet fight, and this time the Russians
-run out on the other side, spiking their guns. But the roar of guns is
-heard on the side towards the town: the Russians have been reinforced!
-
-“When rocket after rocket went up ominously from the French General’s
-position we began to be nervous. It was growing darker, and the noise
-of the fight seemed to be on our side of the fort. At last the swell
-and babble of the fight once more rolled down the face of the hill.
-‘They are well into it this time,’ said a General, handing over his
-glass to his neighbour. All was still. No more musket flashes, no more
-lightning of the heavy guns from the embrasures. A shapeless hump upon
-a hill, the Mamelon was an extinct volcano, until such time as we
-should please to call it again into action.
-
-“‘How are our men getting on?’ says one.
-
-“‘Oh, take my word for it they’re all right,’ says another.
-
-“They were in the quarries, but had to fight all night and repel six
-successive attacks of the Russians, who displayed the most singular
-pertinacity and recklessness of life. Meanwhile the Zouaves, emboldened
-by success, carried their prowess too far, and dreamt of getting into
-the round tower by a _coup de main_. The fire of the musketry from
-the round tower was like a shelf of flame, and the shells of our
-gunners--for we were supporting the French--stood out dark against the
-heavens as they rose and swooped to their fall.
-
-“_June 9._--As an illustration of character I note that one of our
-sailor artillerymen, being desired to keep under cover and not put his
-head out to tempt a rifle bullet, grumbled at the prohibition, saying
-to his comrades: ‘I say, Jack, they won’t let a fellow go and look
-where his own shot is. We ain’t afraid, we ain’t. That’s what I call
-hard lines.’
-
-“Lance-Corporal Quin, of the 47th, has been brought to notice for
-bravery. In one of the attacks made by the enemy on the quarries
-the Russians had some difficulty in bringing their men again to the
-scratch. At length one Russian officer succeeded in bringing on four
-men, which Corporal Quin perceiving, he made a dash out of the work,
-and with the butt-end of his musket brained one, bayoneted a second,
-and when the other two took to their heels he brought in the officer
-as a prisoner, having administered to him a gentle prick by way of
-quickening his movements.
-
-“After delivering him up he said to his comrades: ‘There’s plenty more
-yonder, lads, if so be you’ve a mind to fetch in a prisoner or two.’
-
-“_June 20._--A plan of attack was proposed--that the French were to
-assault the Malakoff and we the Redan; but though they got into the
-Malakoff, they were driven out again, with loss. As our 37th Regiment
-advanced they were met by a well-aimed fire of mitraille, which threw
-them into disorder.
-
-“Poor Colonel Zea in vain tried to steady them, exclaiming: ‘This will
-never do! Where’s the bugler to call them back?’
-
-“But at that moment no bugler was to be found. In the gloom of early
-dawn the gallant old soldier by voice and gesture tried to reform
-his men, but as he ran to the head of the column a charge of the
-deadly missle passed, and he fell dead. Next day we had to ask for an
-armistice to bury our dead, which was not granted until 4 p.m. It was
-agonizing to see the wounded men who were lying out under a broiling
-sun, to behold them waving their caps or hands faintly towards our
-lines, over which they could see the white flag waving, and not to be
-able to help them. Many of them had lain there for thirty hours.
-
-“As I was riding round I came upon two of our men with sad faces.
-
-“‘What are you waiting here for?’ said I.
-
-“‘To go out for the Colonel, sir,’ was the reply.
-
-“‘What Colonel?’
-
-“‘Why, Colonel Zea, to be sure, sir,’ said the good fellow, evidently
-surprised at my thinking there could be any other Colonel in the world.
-
-“Ah! they liked him well. Under a brusque manner he concealed a most
-kind heart, and a soldier more devoted to his men and to his country
-never fell in battle. The Fusiliers were the first who had hospital
-huts. When other regiments were in need of every comfort Zea’s regiment
-had all that exertion and foresight could procure. I ride on, and find
-two Voltigeurs with a young English naval officer between them. They
-are taking him off to shoot him as a spy. He has not enough French to
-explain his position to his captors.
-
-“‘He tells us he is an officer of the _Viper_, that he got into the
-Mamelon by mistake.’ The matter is explained to our allies, who let him
-go with the best grace in the world. As to the attack which failed,
-we are disappointed, yet we do not despair; but we learn now that we
-are going to attack the Redan and Malakoff by sap and mine--a tedious
-process of many weeks.
-
-“_September 5._--The Russians have evacuated the forts of Sebastopol
-and withdrawn to the north side of the harbour. The Crimean War is
-over!”
-
- From Sir W. Howard Russell’s “Letters from the Crimea.” By kind
- permission of Messrs. George Routledge and Sons, Ltd.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-THE INDIAN MUTINY--DELHI (1857-1858)
-
- The Mutiny begins--A warning from a sepoy--A near thing--A noble
- act of a native officer--In camp at Delhi with no kit--A plan that
- failed--Our first check--Wilson in command--Seaton wounded--Arrival
- of Nicholson--Captures guns--The assault--The fate of the
- Princes--Pandy in a box.
-
-
-A rumour had been going through the bazaars of India that the British
-rule was to be limited to one hundred years from the date of the Battle
-of Plassey (1757). The sepoy troops had grown self-confident and
-arrogant through the victories they had won under English officers, and
-fancied that they held the destiny of India in their own hands. Then
-came the story that the cartridges of the new Enfield rifles, which
-were just then being introduced among the native troops, were greased
-with fat of beef or pork, and were thus rendered unclean for Mohammedan
-and Hindoo alike. The sepoys, or native troops, believed that the new
-cartridges were being given out solely for the purpose of destroying
-their caste, and so of introducing Christianity by force.
-
-Delhi, where the deposed King Bahadur Shah was living, was the centre
-and focus of rebellion; it was to Delhi that the first mutineers
-marched after killing their English officers. Sir Thomas Seaton has
-left us some picturesque stories of his part in the Mutiny. He had
-rejoined his native regiment at Rohtuck, forty-five miles from Delhi,
-after some years’ leave in England, and found the manners of the sepoy
-greatly changed for the worse. He writes:
-
-“On the 4th of June I was in the mess-tent writing to the
-Adjutant-General about the hopeless state of the regiment, when the
-native Adjutant came in and said:
-
-“‘Colonel, I wish particularly to speak to you.’
-
-“It was close upon 5 p.m., and, as several officers were in the tent, I
-went outside with the Adjutant.
-
-“‘Well, Shebbeare, what is it?’
-
-“‘Why, Colonel, I have just heard from two of our drummers, who have
-their information from friends amongst the men, that the regiment is to
-mutiny to-night, murder the officers, and be off to Delhi.’
-
-“Though I expected this, it was startling enough to hear it was so
-close at hand. And now that the great difficulty stared me in the face,
-how, with this small body of officers, was I to meet and grapple with
-reckless and determined mutineers? But as this was not the time to
-flinch or show indecision, I said:
-
-“‘Well, Shebbeare, let me see the men. I’ll make a few inquiries first.
-I will go to the hospital. Do you lounge out that way too.’
-
-“As I had been used to visit the hospital about this hour, my going
-there would excite no suspicion.
-
-“In a few minutes I had found out that it was too true that an outbreak
-was planned for that night. Meanwhile I addressed the Adjutant:
-
-“‘Now, Shebbeare, will you stand by me?’
-
-“‘Yes, Colonel,’ replied the gallant fellow, ‘that I will.’
-
-“‘Very well. Now, I’ll tell you what I propose to do. I will go on
-parade, and, as there is nothing like facing a difficulty, I’ll tax
-them with their intended outbreak, and we will see what they will do.
-Tell the officers to look out.’”
-
-Seaton’s idea was that the men, finding he knew all about their plans,
-would be so disconcerted that they would put off the mutiny; we should
-probably gain a day or two of delay, and might hear that Delhi was
-taken or the mutineers defeated. So at sunset he went on parade,
-assembled the native officers in front, at some distance from their
-companies, and taxed them with their intended treachery. As he had
-expected, the sepoys were utterly confounded; they flatly denied the
-intended treachery, and swore by all their gods that they would be
-faithful to their salt, and that no harm should happen to the officers.
-
-The native officers then begged permission to appoint a guard to keep
-watch in the camp at night, as there might be some _badmashes_ in the
-regiment.
-
-It was a dangerous experiment, but the only chance was to take things
-coolly, still seeming to trust the men, keeping at the same time a
-sharp look-out.
-
-It was Seaton’s duty to keep the regiment together as long as possible
-at any risk. The Commander-in-Chief was marching on Delhi with a small
-force hurriedly got together; to have placed at this critical moment a
-regiment of mutineers in his rear would simply have been destruction,
-for they could have fortified some spot on the road and so cut off
-supplies from our camp.
-
-Whilst he was taxing the native officers, the men of their companies
-were looking on--they were too far off to hear; but they took their
-cue from their officers and were quiet and respectful. Seaton left the
-circle of native officers, and went up and addressed each company,
-meeting with the same vows of fidelity.
-
-As he came from parade after this trying scene, some officers inquired
-anxiously: “What is it, Colonel? Is it all right?”
-
-“Oh yes. I think our throats will not be cut to-night.”
-
-But his mind was not at ease until he had seen the guard for the night.
-
-However, a few days passed quietly enough; but on the 8th a curious
-thing happened. As Seaton was going in the evening to visit the
-hospital, and was crossing a ditch, a young sepoy gave him a hand and
-whispered in his ear:
-
-“Colonel Sahib, when your highness’ people shall have regained the
-Empire, I will make my petition to your highness.”
-
-This was all he said, but Seaton could not help pondering on his
-meaning. Was this a warning to him of the coming outbreak of the
-regiment?
-
-Resistance was out of the question, as he had only twelve English
-officers with him and one English sergeant. He was tormented by the
-ever-recurring thought that not only the lives of his officers, but
-perhaps the safety of our little army, might be dependent on himself.
-“All I could do,” he says, “was to trust in God’s mercy and goodness.”
-
-The night of the 9th passed off quietly--all was still. In the morning
-he could detect nothing suspicious in camp. The men were civil and
-respectful to him personally. Some were parading for guard, some going
-to bathe, others preparing their food. Five of the young officers asked
-leave to go out shooting. Seaton had no objection, and they went. At
-4 p.m., when he was in the usual camp hot-weather deshabille, all at
-once he was startled by a loud explosion. He ran out to see what was
-the matter, but neither saw nor heard anything strange--no crowd, not a
-sound, the men mostly sleeping after their day’s meal. He was going on
-when the havildar-major (native sergeant-major) came rushing up to him.
-Catching him in his arms, he said in a very agitated voice:
-
-“Colonel Sahib, don’t go to the front.”
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“The Grenadiers are arming themselves. They have mutinied!”
-
-The hour for which he had trembled had come at last. He tried
-to collect one or two of the native officers, but in vain. The
-havildar-major entreated him to be off whilst there was time. While
-the grooms were saddling the horses they heard musket-shots, and the
-havildar rushed past him. Immediately the whole body of the Grenadiers
-burst out of their tents, firing and shouting, in order to rouse the
-regiment and hurry it into mutiny.
-
-The shouts and cries of terror, the galloping of horses, the report
-of muskets, all tended to confusion. Seaton had not time to take his
-sword, for the mutineers were within ten paces of him. He had got a
-few seconds’ start, and in a mêlée like this a second makes all the
-difference between life and eternity.
-
-Just outside camp they overtook Major Drought, who was walking.
-
-The havildar instantly cried: “Colonel, the poor old fellow will be
-murdered. I’ll put him on my horse and run for it.”
-
-It was a noble and heroic act, for Shebbeare had been wounded by the
-mutineers. So they made Shebbeare get on the lee side of the Colonel’s
-horse; he laid hold of the stirrup, and off they went at a round canter.
-
-After running 400 yards he got blown, and they pulled up to a walk.
-Soon they found the officers waiting for them at a bend in the road;
-they were all unhurt. After a time they saw clouds of smoke ascending,
-and knew that they were burning the tents. They kept on all night at
-a moderate pace. About 3 a.m. they heard a horseman coming along. Who
-could it be? They drew up and challenged.
-
-“Who is there?”
-
-“Sowar” (trooper).
-
-“What sowar?”
-
-“Hodson Sahib Ka Sowar” (one of Captain Hodson’s troopers). And then,
-saluting, he continued: “Are you the Sahib log? I have a letter for
-Colonel Cheetun Sahib.”
-
-“Yes, come along; here is the Colonel Seaton.”
-
-Seaton read the note by the light of a cigar vehemently smoked by an
-officer. It was to the effect that we had driven the rebels from the
-ridge into Delhi, and that our camp was pitched in the cantonments. So
-now they were all right, and knew where to find their camp. At 9 a.m.
-the Colonel dismounted at Sir H. Barnard’s tent.
-
-They were all surprised to see him, as they had been informed that he
-and his officers were all killed: the young officers who had gone out
-shooting had been so informed, and had ridden to Delhi before them with
-the news.
-
-Now all the belongings the Colonel had were his horse and the few
-clothes he stood in. He had to go round camp and beg: one gave him a
-coat, a shirt, and some cigars, another a sword and belt. He was made
-a member of the mess of the 1st E. B. Fusiliers, but had neither fork,
-spoon, plate, nor glass--for the mess merely provides food and dishes.
-However, he soon begged these or bought all he needed at a sale of an
-officer’s effects.
-
-“My first night’s rest was heavenly,” he says. “I heard distinctly
-the firing, but it did not disturb me. I was lulled by a feeling of
-security to which I had been a stranger for many nights before the 60th
-mutinied. No wonder my sleep was profound.”
-
-Delhi is situated on the right bank of the river Jumna. The walls are
-pear-shaped, on the river or eastern side rendered irregular by the
-excrescence of the old fort of Selimgurh. To the south the walls run to
-a point. Inland from Delhi is a ridge of rocks, which at its nearest
-point is about 1,400 yards from the walls. Our camp lay under the
-ridge, on the side away from the city; there were canals and swamps to
-protect us in rainy seasons. It was quite evident that a regular siege
-was out of the question, from the vast size of the place and from our
-want of guns, etc. A _coup de main_ was our only resource. Accordingly
-a plan was drawn up by the Engineers and Hodson, and approved by the
-General. It was a hazardous step, but one and all were crying out “Take
-Delhi!”
-
-Nor was this cry to be wondered at. Delhi, once the capital of the
-great Mogul Empire in India, strongly fortified, and supplied with war
-material, was now in the possession of our own trained sepoys. The
-King, once our puppet, had placed himself at the head of the rebellion,
-and Delhi had become the focus of insurrection.
-
-Moreover, there was a vehement desire in camp for instant vengeance on
-the traitors in the city, who had cruelly murdered their officers, our
-brethren in arms, with their wives and little ones. One bold stroke
-now, every one said, would make us masters of Delhi. At the appointed
-hour the troops began to move down to their allotted posts.
-
-All were waiting impatiently for the pickets from the ridge, but the
-proper time slipped by, and the assault was countermanded.
-
-The storm of indignation in camp at the failure of this bold design was
-frightful. But, as Colonel Norman justly remarked, “It was one of those
-happy interpositions in our behalf of which we had such numbers to be
-thankful for.”
-
-For, even if the rebels should have been driven out of Delhi, what if
-they rallied and returned in force? Our poor 3,000 men would have been
-swallowed up in the immensity of the city. The postponement of the
-assault gave the rebels full scope: it bred anarchy, confusion, and
-disorder, and the native trading population soon felt the difference
-between the violence and robbery of the sepoy domination and the peace
-and security they had enjoyed under us. But in camp the abandonment of
-the assault was followed by a period of despondency and gloom.
-
-In a few days cheering news came from the Punjab. The Chief
-Commissioner, John Lawrence, aided by worthy officers, had made all
-safe at the chief points of danger. All through the Punjab the Hindoo
-cavalry and sepoys were being disarmed; the magazines had been secured;
-the Sikhs and Punjabees, men who had no sympathy with the mutineers,
-were being enrolled and formed into corps and re-armed. With bold
-and daring hand, that “out of this nettle, danger, plucks the flower
-safety,” Lawrence was gathering as volunteers from the warlike frontier
-tribes all the restless, turbulent spirits who might have been bitter
-foes in extremity. He took them into pay, and made them eager to march
-on Delhi, to assist in its capture and share in its plunder.
-
-There were several sorties to repulse, and these small successes kept
-up the men’s spirits. In the first six weeks of the siege, or until the
-reinforcements began to flow in, night or day no man undressed, except
-for a few minutes for the necessary ablutions and changes of clothes,
-and this was not always possible. They lay down and slept in their
-clothes, with arms and ammunition either on or by their sides, ready to
-slip on the moment the alarm should be sounded.
-
-The heat was fearful, yet day after day they had to stand for hours in
-the sun and hot wind, or, worst of all, to endure the torture of lying
-down on the burning rocks on the Ridge--baked by them on one side,
-whilst the sun was “doing” the other. Many an officer and man, struck
-by the sun and unable to rise, was carried off to hospital delirious
-and raving. The flies were in myriads, and added to their torments;
-they clung to hands and faces, they covered the food until it was
-uneatable, and they worried all incessantly until dusk. Many men had
-sunstroke twice; some who were wounded suffered from it also, and the
-great heat and fatigue began to tell on the soldiers, and sent them
-into hospital, from whence many were never to return.
-
-Fortunately, food in camp was both abundant and good; the troops got
-their meals and their dram of grog with great regularity.
-
-It was quite amusing to see the cook-boys of companies bring up the
-dinners to their respective squads. Battery or advanced picket, it was
-all the same to them; cannonade or no cannonade--it made no difference,
-they were sure to come.
-
-A large flat shallow basket held twenty or more metal plates; on each
-a piece of beef and some nicely browned potatoes, all smoking and
-frizzling from a few bits of live charcoal in a small earthen pan under
-each.
-
-On the 18th, the 15th and 30th Native Infantry, with the famous
-Jellalabad battery--Abbott’s battery that was--marched into Delhi, to
-the great joy of the mutineers and the King.
-
-At noon on the 19th the rebels began to pour out of Delhi in great
-numbers. The alarm was sounded, and in a few minutes every one was at
-his post; but as no enemy appeared, the troops were allowed to return
-to their tents.
-
-A gun fired in their rear startled the English; then galloped up a
-trooper to say that the Pandies (as they called the rebels) were
-killing the grass-cutters and carrying off the cattle. Then troops were
-sent out, and fighting went on long after dusk. The casualty list was
-heavy: a limber of Scott’s battery was blown up, while one of Turner’s
-guns was disabled and left on the field. “I well remember the gloomy
-impression which the result of this fight made on our minds. It was our
-first check.”
-
-Next morning a strong party was sent out to the scene of action. To
-their great surprise, there was Turner’s gun; there also a gun and
-two ammunition waggons abandoned by the rebels. There were so many
-evidences on the field that the enemy had suffered severely that all
-gloom and despondency were quite relieved.
-
-This was the most trying period of the whole siege. If an officer sat
-down to write a letter or to shave himself the alarm was sure to sound,
-and he was compelled to throw down his pen or razor, buckle on his
-sword, and rush out to his post.
-
-The 23rd of June was the centenary of the Battle of Plassey, and their
-spies told the English officers they were to be attacked at all points.
-They began to fight at sunrise, and, strange to say, in the very height
-of the mêlée our first reinforcements marched into camp! Three times
-the rebels assaulted our position, each time being repulsed with great
-loss. “We drove them back, and then we began a series of attacks on
-houses, gardens and enclosures filled with mutineers, whom we cleared
-out; our heavy guns hastened or retarded their flight into the city.
-
-“I look upon this day as the turning-point in the siege: our first
-reinforcements had come in, and we had gained an important victory over
-the rebels.”
-
-Soon was seen a great smoke beyond Delhi: they were burning their dead!
-
-“Of the many interpositions of a merciful Providence in our behalf
-during this wonderful siege,” says Seaton, “I think the most striking
-was this--that the rains were so abundant and the season so favourable
-that cholera was in a comparatively mild form. The rains filled the
-Jumna on one side and the canal on the other, thus forming, as it were,
-a wall to the right and left of our road to the Punjab, guarding it
-more effectually than many thousand men could have done.”
-
-During the night of the 4th it rained in torrents. Colonel Seaton
-was driven into the Flagstaff Tower for shelter, but could only get
-standing room, so he went and visited the pickets, and sentries, and
-returned soaked through and through. He then lighted a cigar and stood
-about till daylight, when the picket turned out and he turned in and
-slept till sunrise.
-
-At sunrise he was relieved, after thirty-six hours on duty. On getting
-into camp he found his own tent pitched, his servants all waiting,
-clean clothes, washing tackle, a clean breakfast table, and Hodson,
-with a smiling face, waiting for him.
-
-“We felt like men who had just inherited large fortunes! My things had
-been sent on from Alipore. Oh! it was a comfort to get my own clothes
-and uniform, to be able to appear in camp once more dressed like a
-gentleman, and to have the attendance of my own servant.”
-
-On the night of the 5th of July General Sir H. Barnard died of cholera,
-brought on by fatigue and anxiety of mind.
-
-General Wilson began on a new system. They no longer attacked the
-villages, losing men and gaining little. They were now to remain on
-the defensive, and to burn or bury all corpses. For it was sickening
-to see the dogs and jackals, disturbed by the burying-parties, slowly
-waddling off, fat and gorged with their horrible feast.
-
-Until buried the rebels were still enemies: their effluvia carried
-death into our ranks. As a sergeant once said: “Them Pandies, sir, is
-wuss when they are killed.”
-
-On the 19th they received the first intelligence of the Cawnpore
-tragedy--of Wheeler’s capitulation and destruction--causing great
-depression in camp and more cholera.
-
-They had been clearing the gardens of rebels beyond the Metcalfe
-grounds when Seaton saw two of Coke’s men coming along, carrying
-Captain Law, who had just been killed. He stopped to help them, and was
-stooping to take the men’s muskets when he was struck full on the left
-breast by a musket-ball fired at thirty-five paces’ distance. The blow
-was so violent that he was nearly knocked off his horse, and for some
-seconds could not breathe, the blood rushing from his mouth in foam.
-He naturally thought he was done for, but as soon as his breath came
-again, he opened his clothes and found out the course of the ball.
-
-Seeing that no air issued from the wound, he secured his sword and
-pistol, and, dismounting from his horse, led him over a broken wall,
-and was on the point of falling headlong in a faint when the two men he
-had tried to help took him under the arms and got him to the Metcalfe
-picket.
-
-The men there ran to meet him: one gave him a drop of rum and water,
-others brought a _charpoy_ (native bedstead) and carried him off to the
-doctor. On the way he met Hodson, who galloped off at once to camp, so
-when they reached his tent, he found the doctor waiting and everything
-ready. The ball had struck on a rib, fractured it, driven it down on
-the lung, and then had passed out at his back. Hodson cared for him
-with the affection of a brother. He was to lie quite still and not
-speak for a week.
-
-On the 1st of August the doctor took off this embargo--Seaton was
-recovering rapidly. In Delhi, our spies said, the Pandies were all
-jealous of one another and would not act in concert. The rebel sepoy
-carried in a purse round his waist the gold he had made by selling his
-share of our plundered treasures; this gold made him unwilling to risk
-his life in battle and made him suspect his comrades.
-
-Their wounded were in a horrible state: there were no surgeons to
-perform any operations, no attendants to bring food or water. The limbs
-of some were rotting off with gangrene, others had wounds filled with
-maggots from neglect; all were bitterly contrasting their lot with the
-life of comfort they had enjoyed under British government. The old
-King, too, was in despair, and vented it in some poor poetry.
-
-On the 7th of August there was a tremendous explosion in the city, and
-next day they heard that a powder manufactory had blown up, killing 400
-people.
-
-“About this time”--to quote the words of one who wrote a history of
-this siege--“a stranger of very striking appearance was remarked
-visiting all our pickets, examining everything, making most searching
-inquiries about their strength and history. His attire gave no clue to
-his rank; it evidently never gave the owner a thought. He was a man
-cast in a giant mould, with massive chest and powerful limbs, and an
-expression ardent and commanding, with a dash of roughness, features
-of stern beauty, a long black beard, and deep, sonorous voice. There
-was something of immense strength, talent, and resolution in his whole
-gait and manner, and a power of ruling men on high occasions that no
-one could escape noticing at once. His imperial air, which never left
-him, and which would have been thought arrogant in one of less imposing
-mien, sometimes gave offence to his own countrymen, but made him
-almost worshipped by the pliant Asiatics. Such a man would have risen
-rapidly from the ranks of the legions to the throne of the Cæsars; but
-in the service of the British it was thought wonderful that he became
-a Brigadier-General when, by seniority, he could only have been a
-Captain.”
-
-The stranger thus described was Nicholson, the best man that Sir John
-Lawrence possessed in the Punjab. He had ridden ahead of his force
-to consult with General Wilson before Delhi. On the following day he
-returned to his force, On the 14th he again rode into the English camp
-at the head of his column--a splendid addition of 4,200 men to the
-besiegers. The small force upon the ridge now amounted to 8,000 men of
-all arms; the siege-train was on its way, and despair began to settle
-down on the rebels in the city and on the Princes.
-
-They had heard of the defeat of the Nana, and of Havelock’s entry into
-Cawnpore; they knew that fresh troops were coming from Calcutta, and
-that Nicholson, whose name had spread far and wide, had arrived in
-our camp with a large force. They knew, too, that this compact force
-of white men was swayed by one arm and governed by one will. Every
-soul in Delhi knew that John Lawrence directed the storm that was
-gathering around them, and the cold, dread shadow of the coming event
-was creeping over the shuddering city. A look through our camp would
-have shaken the courage of the boldest rebel. Instead of tents half
-filled with sick men, our camp now was teeming with soldiers of various
-races, all cheerful and confident. Hodson’s men were mostly Sikhs,
-tall and slender, yet wiry and strong; their clothes of ash colour,
-with wrist-band, turban, and sash over the left shoulder, all of
-bright crimson. In contrast with these were Coke’s men, more wild and
-picturesque, with large turbans of dark blue and enormous waist-bands.
-Their lofty stature, long hair, bright black eyes, sandalled feet, and
-bold look, would have made them remarkable anywhere.
-
-Our artillery park, too, was filled with guns captured from the
-mutineers. The battery-train was on its way, but it was reported by
-spies that a very strong body of rebels was about to leave the city
-to attempt its capture. Nicholson was sent out with 700 cavalry and
-1,200 infantry, and three troops of horse artillery, to head them off.
-He returned in triumph, bringing with him thirteen captured guns. In
-Nicholson’s fight the following incident occurred, which shows a little
-bit of the native character:
-
-A rebel native officer was overtaken in his flight from the field by a
-man of Green’s Punjab regiment. The officer immediately went down on
-his knees in the midst of a pool of water, and putting up his hands,
-roared out: “I’ve been forty years in the Company’s service, and
-thirteen years a Subadar. Spare--oh, spare my life!” With an execration
-and a very rude term of abuse the Punjabee thrust his bayonet into the
-traitor.
-
-On the 4th of September the long-expected battery-train arrived in
-camp, with an ample supply of shot, shell, and powder for all the guns.
-
-The activity in the Engineers’ camp was now pushed to the utmost, and
-all the material for trenches and batteries was accumulated with great
-rapidity.
-
-To prevent the men plundering, the General promised that all the
-captured property should be prize, and prize agents were appointed.
-
-We were about to throw a small force of about 4,500 men into a city
-seven miles in circumference, a perfect maze of narrow streets and
-gullies, abounding in strong blocks of houses, where one might expect
-that the defence would be obstinate.
-
-On the night of the 7th 1,300 men in working and covering parties were
-sent down with the Engineers to open trenches and erect the first
-siege-battery against Delhi. On the 12th the whole of the batteries
-were completed, and in full play on the parts of the walls intended
-to be breached or shelled. The parapet was soon knocked off, each
-block of masonry rarely requiring more than two well-planted shots to
-demolish it completely. There was outside the wall a ditch 25 feet wide
-and 16 feet deep, before crossing which it was necessary that all the
-parapets and bastions should be cleared of their defenders. The army
-inside Delhi numbered at least 40,000 men; the besiegers only 11,000,
-after all their reinforcements had come in. Of these only 3,300 were
-Europeans. Our heavy guns were 54 in number, while those in the city
-amounted to 300.
-
-There was considerable risk in attempting to storm under such
-conditions. One of the batteries was only 160 yards from the Water
-Bastion, and the heavy guns had to be dragged up to it, through the
-open, under a heavy fire of musketry. Baird Smith, the Chief Engineer,
-prepared all the plans; Alexander Taylor superintended their execution.
-With the very first shot the masonry of the fortifications began to
-fly. Fifty-four guns and mortars belched out havoc on the city. Cheers
-rang out from our men as the smoke cleared away, and they saw the
-dreaded bastions crumbling into ruins, while the defenders were forced
-to seek shelter far away in the city. For the next forty-eight hours
-there was no cessation of the roar of artillery. The worn-out gunners
-would throw themselves down to snatch a short sleep beneath their very
-guns, while volunteers filled their place; then, springing up again,
-they would go on with their task with fresh ardour.
-
-The sepoys were fighting on with the courage of despair. They ran out
-light guns to enfilade our batteries; they manned the gardens in front
-of the city with sharp-shooters to pick off our gunners.
-
-On the evening of the 13th the breaches in the walls were to be
-examined, and so at dusk Lieutenants Greathed, Home, Medley, and Lang,
-of the Engineers, were sent to execute their dangerous mission. As
-the hour struck ten the batteries ceased firing, and the four young
-officers, slipping out of the gardens with a small covering party of
-the 60th Rifles, crept forward to the edge of the glacis, Greathed
-and Home going to the Water, Medley and Lang to the Cashmere Bastion.
-A ladder was quietly lowered, Medley and Lang descended, and found
-themselves on the edge of the ditch; but the enemy heard them, and
-several ran towards them. The Englishmen saw that the breach was
-practicable, so rose and ran back, being followed by a harmless volley.
-Greathed and Home returned safely also, and reported that all was
-favourable.
-
-Then was the thrilling order made known: “The assault at 3 a.m.!”
-
-No. 1. column, under Nicholson, were to assault the Cashmere Bastion;
-No. 2, under Colonel James, the Water Bastion; No. 3, under Colonel
-Campbell, to enter by the Cashmere Gate; No. 4, under Major Reid, to
-attack Kissengunge.
-
-To Nicholson fell the post of honour. Sir John Lawrence had sent him
-down “to take Delhi,” and the whole army was willing that he should
-have that honour. He was to head the first column in person. Our
-batteries redoubled their roar whilst the columns were taking up their
-positions, throwing shells to drive the enemy away from the breaches.
-The morning was just breaking; the thunder of our artillery was at its
-loudest, when all at once it stopped. Every one could hear his heart
-beat.
-
-The Rifles now ran forward as skirmishers to cover the advance of the
-assaulting columns, and the men, who had been lying on the ground, now
-sprang up, and, with a cheer, made for the walls. They crossed the
-glacis, and left it behind them dotted with wounded men; they went
-down into the ditch--many to stay there; but the ladders were planted
-against the scarp, and very soon the dangers of the escalade were over.
-Soon the whole line of ramparts which faced the ridge was ours; the
-British flag was once more run up upon the Cabul Gate.
-
-Meanwhile at the Cashmere Gate there had been some delay. Lieutenants
-Home and Salkeld, with some sergeants and native sappers, had at
-sunrise crossed the beams of the bridge, from which the rebels had
-removed the planking, and in broad daylight, without a particle of
-cover, had laid their powder-bags. The enemy were so daunted by this
-daring act that, when they saw Home coming, they hastily shut the
-wicket, and he and his men laid the bags and jumped down into the ditch
-unhurt.
-
-Salkeld was not so fortunate. The rebels fired on him from the top of
-the gateway, and he fell. Sergeant Burgess caught up the portfire, but
-was shot dead. Carmichael fired the fuse, and fell mortally wounded.
-
-Sergeant Smith, finding the fuse was alight, threw himself into the
-ditch, and instantly the gate was burst open with a tremendous crash.
-
-[Illustration: A DARING DEED: BLOWING-UP THE CASHMERE GATE, DELHI
-
-In broad daylight, and without a particle of cover, Lieuts. Home and
-Salkeld, with a few sappers, laid their powder bags and fired them.
-Salkeld and some of the others were shot before they could escape.]
-
-The bugler sounded the advance, and with a cheer our men rushed
-through the gateway, and met the other columns, who had carried their
-respective breaches. The Lahore Gate alone defied our attempts, and
-Nicholson called for volunteers to follow him through the narrow
-street towards the Lahore Gate.
-
-As he strode forward, sword in hand, though there was death in every
-window and on every house-top, his great stature marked him out as
-a target for the enemy, and he fell, mortally wounded, the one man
-England wanted most.
-
-The long autumn day was over, and we were in Delhi, but had not taken
-it. Sixty-six officers and 1,100 men had fallen, while not a sixth part
-of the city was ours. Many of our men were lying drunk in the shops.
-Had the sepoys possessed a General, they might have recovered the
-ridge, and taken our whole camp, defended as it was mainly by the sick
-and wounded.
-
-On the next day, by order of General Wilson, vast quantities of
-beer, wine, and brandy were destroyed. On the 16th active operations
-were resumed. By sapping gradually from house to house we managed to
-avoid street fighting and slowly pressed the rebels back into the
-ever-narrowing part of the city from which, like rats, they streamed.
-
-Whilst Seaton was in the Cashmere Gateway, he saw some artillerymen who
-were on duty there rummaging about. One of them was looking into a long
-arm-chest, when all at once he slammed down the lid, sat upon it sharp,
-and roared out: “Hi! Bill, run! be quick! Here’s a devil of a Pandy in
-the box!”
-
-Bill lost no time in attending to his comrade’s request, and others
-running up to see what it was, they pulled out of the box a fine
-powerful sepoy, who was taken at once to the ditch and disposed of
-without more ceremony.
-
-On the 18th, between 9 and 10 a.m., there was an eclipse of the sun.
-There is little doubt that this had a great effect on the minds of the
-superstitious natives, for they now began to leave the city in streams.
-
-On the morning of the 20th, as the city in the direction of the palace
-seemed to be deserted, Colonel Jones came down with a column; a
-powder-bag was applied to the palace gates, a few defenders were slain,
-and the British flag was hoisted.
-
-That night the mess dinner was laid in the celebrated Dewan Khas, the
-marble building that Moore describes in “Lalla Rookh.”
-
-The inner room is the King’s throne-room, and round the walls, inlaid
-with black marble, are the famous words: “If there be an elysium on
-earth, it is this.”
-
-The habits of the late King and family rendered that elysium a very
-dirty one, though the white marble was inlaid with coloured stones in
-flowers and arabesques. The houses and huts in which the Princes of
-the royal blood lived with their wives and children were a perfect
-rabbit-warren, so closely packed were they. The exterior walls
-enclosing the palace are 60 feet high, and built of red sandstone,
-loopholed and crenellated, and make a noble appearance.
-
-But the squalor and filth in the whole place were inconceivable. As
-none of the Princes could engage in any business, the pittance they
-had to live on barely supplied the necessaries of life. Seaton saw
-some of the Princes. He says: “There was no trace of nobility, either
-of birth or of mind, in their faces. They were stamped with everything
-vile, gross, ignoble, sensual. Noble blood is a fine thing, but a noble
-heart is better, and will shine through the most forbidding features;
-but these wretches, with the cold, calm hand of death on them, showed
-nothing of kingly descent or nobility of heart, their countenances
-being as forbidding as the despicable passions in which they had
-indulged could make them.”
-
-It was laughable to see what rubbish was found in the palace. In one
-room were found at least 200 pair of those trousers which Mohammedan
-ladies wear instead of petticoats. Some of these were so stiff with
-brocaded silk that they must have needed a hearty kick with each foot
-at every step.
-
-The quantities of pots and pans which they had amassed would have
-furnished a whole street of dealers; then, there were telescopes and
-guns and other valuables.
-
-Much blame has been cast on Hodson for his severity to the royal
-family. He fetched out the King and three Princes from the tomb where
-they had taken refuge. The Princes were in a native carriage, and as
-they drew near to Delhi an immense crowd surged round them, which was
-increasing every moment, pressing on Hodson’s few men. They could
-hardly proceed. Hodson, perhaps fearing a rescue, ordered the three
-prisoners to get out. The poor wretches, seeing that something was
-about to happen, put up their hands and fell at his feet, begging that
-their lives might be spared.
-
-Hodson merely said, “Choop ruho” (be silent); “take off your upper
-garments.” They did so. Then, “Get into the cart.” They obeyed.
-
-Hodson then took a carbine from one of his men, and shot them all
-three. Then, turning to his men, he said: “These three men whom I
-have just shot are the three Princes who contrived and commenced the
-slaughter of our innocent women and children, and thus retributive
-vengeance has fallen on them.”
-
-The crowd, overawed, parted, and the carriage passed on. The bodies
-were exposed on the very spot where our unfortunate countrymen had been
-exposed. It seems cruel and vindictive, but we are judging in security.
-Hodson had an angry people to daunt, and their sense of justice to
-satisfy.
-
-One must do our soldiers the justice to say that, though infuriated by
-the slaughter of their officers and countrymen, with their wives and
-children, inflamed by the news of the Cawnpore massacre, not an old
-man, not a woman or child, was wilfully hurt by them. As Seaton was
-waiting on the 20th by the Palace Gate, some soldiers were bringing
-along an old man, whom they held by the arms. He went up and said to
-them: “Remember you are Christian men, and he is very old.”
-
-“Oh, sir!” was the reply, “we doesn’t forget that. We don’t mean him no
-harm. We only wants a bit of baccy.”
-
-So he let them go on, and in a few minutes saw them stuffing their
-pipes, and the old fellow genially bringing a coal to light them.
-
-“I have seen hundreds of instances where the greatest humanity and
-kindness were shown, both to young and old, as well as to females, by
-our noble-hearted fellows, even in their wildest moments.”
-
- From Major-General Sir Thomas Seaton’s “From Cadet to Colonel.” By
- kind permission of Messrs. G. Routledge and Sons.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-THE DEFENCE OF LUCKNOW (31ST OF MAY TO 25TH OF SEPTEMBER, 1857)
-
- Firing at close quarters--Adventures of fugitives--Death of Sir H.
- Lawrence--His character--Difficulty of sending letters--Mines and
- counter-mines--Fulton killed--Signs of the relief coming--A great
- welcome--Story of the escape from Cawnpore.
-
-
-For about ten days previous to the outbreak at Lucknow daily reports
-were made that an _émeute_ was intended, and Sir Henry Lawrence, the
-brother of Sir John Lawrence, had ordered all kinds of stores to be
-bought and stored. The ladies and children had been removed from the
-cantonments to the Residency in the city, which was already occupied by
-a party of the 32nd foot and two guns.
-
-The 9 p.m. gun on the 30th of May was evidently the signal for the
-mutiny to begin, as a few minutes after it had been fired, whilst Sir
-Henry and his staff were at dinner at the Residency, a sepoy came
-running in, and reported a disturbance in the lines.
-
-Sir Henry took two guns and a company of the 32nd, and took post on
-the road leading to the town. Meanwhile bands of insurgents began to
-plunder and burn our officers’ bungalows. Many officers had wonderful
-escapes from death; some were killed by the rebels. Muchee Bhawun,
-the residence of the late King, had been selected as a fitting place
-of security and retreat: it was being strengthened and supplied with
-stores.
-
-On _June 10_ houses and buildings around began to be demolished; tents
-were set apart for the European refugees who arrived daily from the
-districts.
-
-On _June 12_ the military police mutinied in a body, and went off to
-Cawnpore; they were pursued for eight miles and about twenty were
-killed.
-
-On _June 15_ a hundred barrels of gunpowder were brought from the
-Muchee Bhawun and buried in the Residency enclosure; twenty-three lacs
-of rupees were also buried in front of the Residency to save the use
-of sentries. Cash payments were now suspended, the men being paid by
-promissory notes.
-
-On _June 20_ large stacks of firewood, covered with earth, were placed
-to protect the front of the Residency: they formed an embankment 6 feet
-high, and embrasures were cut through them for the guns, of which there
-were four 9-pounders on that side.
-
-A letter arrived from Cawnpore giving very bad news. The enemy had
-shelled them for the last eight days with fearful effect within their
-crowded trenches, and one-third of their number had been killed. More
-guns are brought in. They hear that eight or ten regiments of rebels
-are within twenty miles of Lucknow.
-
-On _June 28_ Mrs. Dorin, wife of Lieutenant Dorin, arrived at evening
-in a country cart, disguised as a native and accompanied by some
-clerks. The enemy are nine miles off. Though a force was sent out to
-meet them, we had to retire before overwhelming numbers, with the loss
-of the 8-inch howitzer and three 9-pounders.
-
-The rebels came boldly on, investing the English on all sides, and
-firing from all the houses round, which they rapidly loopholed.
-
-_July 1._--We managed to send message to blow up the Muchee Bhawun
-fort and come to the Residency at 12 p.m., bringing the treasure and
-guns. We opened fire from our batteries in order to distract the
-attention of the enemy from them.
-
-At 12.15 they were at the Lower Water Gate. Here there was some delay,
-as the gates had not yet been opened. A very serious accident had
-nearly happened, for the leading men, finding the gate closed, shouted
-out, “Open the gates!” but the artillerymen at the guns above, which
-covered the entrance, mistook the words for “Open with grape,” and
-were on the point to fire when an officer ran up and put them right.
-The whole force came in safely, not a shot being fired. The explosion
-which had been ordered had not yet taken place, but soon a tremor of
-the earth, a volume of fire, a terrific report, and a mass of black
-smoke shooting up into the air announced to Lucknow that 240 barrels of
-gunpowder and 594,000 rounds of ball and gun ammunition had completed
-the destruction of Muchee Bhawun, which we had fortified with so much
-labour.
-
-Strange stories were told by some of the refugees from outlying
-districts. Here is one told by the wife of a surgeon: “I heard a number
-of shots fired in our station, and looking out, I saw my husband
-driving furiously from the mess-house. I ran to him, and, catching
-up my child, got into the buggy. At the mess-house we found all the
-officers assembled, with sixty sepoys who had remained faithful.
-
-“As we went our homes were seen to be on fire. Next morning our sepoy
-escort deserted us. We were fired on by matchlock men and lost one
-officer. We had no food. An officer kindly lent us a horse. We were
-very faint. Our party now was only nine gentlemen, two children, the
-sergeant, and his wife. On the 20th Captain Scott took my little
-two-year-old Lottie on to his horse. Soon after sunrise we were
-followed by villagers armed with clubs and spears. One of them struck
-Captain Scott’s horse on the leg. He galloped off with Lottie, and my
-poor husband never saw his child again.
-
-“We rode on several miles, keeping away from villages, and then crossed
-the river. Our thirst was extreme. Soon I saw water in a ravine. I
-climbed down the steep descent. Our only drinking-vessel was M.’s cap
-(which had once been a sepoy’s). Our horse got water and I bathed
-my neck. I had no stockings and my feet were torn and blistered. My
-husband was very weak, and, I thought, dying. He wished me good-bye
-as he lay on the ground. My brain seemed burnt up: no tears came. Our
-horse cantered away, so that escape was cut off. We sat down on the
-ground waiting for death. Poor fellow! he was very weak; his thirst was
-frightful, and I went to get him water. Some villagers came and took my
-rupees and watch. I took off my wedding-ring, twisted it in my hair and
-replaced the guard. I tore off the skirt of my dress to bring water in;
-but it was no use, for when I returned, my beloved’s eyes were fixed,
-and, though I called and tried to restore him and poured water into his
-mouth, it only rattled in his throat. He never spoke to me again, and
-he gradually sank down and died. I was alone. In an hour or so about
-thirty villagers came. They dragged me out of the ravine and took off
-my jacket; then they dragged me to a village, mocking me all the way.
-The whole village came to look at me. I lay down outside the door of a
-hut. They had dozens of cows, and yet refused me milk. When night came
-and the village was quiet, some old woman brought me a leafful of rice.
-The next morning a neighbouring Rajah sent a palanquin and a horseman
-to fetch me, who told me that a little child and three sahibs had come
-to his master’s house. That little child was my Lottie! She was sorely
-blistered, but, thank God! alive and well.”
-
-That is the sort of experience some ladies went through--ladies that
-had never before known what thirst or privation or insult was like.
-
-_July 2._--About 8 a.m. Sir Henry returned to the Residency and lay
-down on his bed. Soon after an 8-inch shell from the enemy’s howitzer
-entered the room at the window and exploded. A fragment struck the
-Brigadier-General on the upper part of the right thigh near the hip,
-inflicting a fearful wound.
-
-Captain Wilson, who was standing alongside the bed with one knee on it,
-reading a memorandum to Sir Henry, was knocked down by falling bricks.
-Mr. Lawrence, Sir Henry’s nephew, had an equally narrow escape, but
-was not hurt. The fourth person in the room, a native servant, lost
-one of his feet by a fragment of the shell. The ceiling and the punkah
-all came down, and the dust and smoke prevented anyone seeing what had
-happened.
-
-Neither Sir Henry nor his nephew uttered a sound, and Captain Wilson,
-as soon as he recovered from the concussion, called out in alarm: “Sir
-Henry, are you hurt?”
-
-Twice he thus called out and got no reply. After the third time Sir
-Henry said in a low tone: “I am killed.”
-
-His bed was being soaked with blood. Some soldiers of the 32nd soon
-came in and placed Sir Henry in a chair. When the surgeon came he saw
-that human aid was useless. Lucknow and England had lost what could
-never be replaced. For all who ever came in contact with Sir Henry
-Lawrence recognized in him a man of unstained honour, a lover of
-justice, pure, unselfish and noble. His successor, Brigadier Inglis,
-wrote of him: “Few men have ever possessed to the same extent the
-power which he enjoyed of winning the hearts of all those with whom
-he came in contact.” He gained also by his frankness the trust of the
-natives, who said of him: “When Sir Henry looks twice up to heaven and
-once down to earth, and then strokes his beard, he knows what to do.”
-His dying wish was that, if any epitaph were placed on his tomb, it
-should be this: “Here lies Henry Lawrence, who tried to do his duty.”
-He had indeed tried to do his duty towards the defence of Lucknow.
-Three weeks before anyone else thought of a siege he began to collect
-supplies, and even paid for them much over their market value. He
-collected and buried much treasure in the grounds of the Residency;
-he stored up in underground cellars guns and mortars, shot and shell
-and grain; strengthened the outworks, and cleared the ground of small
-buildings around. Even then the assailants and the besieged were quite
-close to each other, and no man on either side dared expose himself
-to fire his musket: they fired through loopholes in the walls. This
-placed a never-ending strain on the besieged, for they never knew when
-to expect an assault. On the one side of a narrow lane were myriads of
-swarthy foemen, on the other side a few hundreds, who were bound always
-to be ready, day and night, to meet a storming party. All through the
-siege officers and men alike stood sentry; all bore an equal burden of
-toil and fighting.
-
-The stench, too, from dead animals was dreadful: they had so few
-servants, and the fighting men were so harassed, that they were
-helpless to bury them.
-
-Heavy showers night and day kept the garrison drenched to the skin, and
-they had no change of clothes. The sick and wounded were much crowded,
-as they could not use the upper story of the hospital because it was
-under fire of round shot.
-
-_August 12._--A letter to General Havelock, rolled up and put inside
-a quill, was despatched by the hands of an old woman. She left the
-position about 9 p.m., and it was hoped she would be permitted to pass
-the enemy’s sentries. During the past forty-five days they had sent by
-different hands, in a similar manner, some twenty letters. To only one
-of these was any reply received.
-
-_August 18._--At daylight the enemy exploded a large mine under one
-of the principal posts. The three officers and three sentries on the
-top of the house were blown up into the air; the guard below were all
-buried in the ruins. The officers, though much stunned, recovered and
-escaped. A clear breach had been made in our defences to the extent of
-30 feet in breadth. One of the enemy’s leaders sprung on the top of the
-breach and called on his comrades to follow; but when he and another
-had been shot the rest hung back. Boxes, doors, planks, etc., were
-rapidly carried down to make cover to protect the men.
-
-_August 23._--There was work nightly for at least 300 men, as they had
-the defences to repair daily, mines to countermine, guns to remove,
-corpses to bury, rations to serve out. The Europeans were not capable
-of much exertion, as from want of sleep, hard work, and constant
-exposure, their bodily strength was greatly diminished. The ladies had
-to be removed, as the upper story of Mr. Gubbins’ house was no longer
-safe, owing to the number of round shot through it. It was difficult
-to find quarters for them, every place being so crowded, and the
-ladies were already four and five together in small, badly ventilated
-native dwellings. Dreadful smells pervaded the whole place, from the
-half-buried bodies of men, horses, and bullocks, and also from the
-drains.
-
-_September 9._--During the night a shell exploded in a room occupied
-by a lady and some children, and, though almost every article in the
-room was destroyed, they all escaped unhurt. Finding that the enemy
-were rapidly mining towards the Cawnpore battery, they sprung a mine
-containing 200 pounds of powder. The effect was tremendous, and it
-evidently astonished the enemy to see their miners going up skywards in
-fragments.
-
-As the uniforms wore out they clothed themselves as they could. One
-officer had a coat made out of an old billiard cloth; another wore a
-shirt made out of a floor-cloth. They had no tobacco, and had to smoke
-dried tea-leaves.
-
-“_September 14._--A grievous loss to-day: Captain Fulton, of the
-Engineers, while reconnoitring from a battery, was killed by a round
-shot which struck him on the head. He had conducted all the engineering
-operations of the siege for a long time. He was a highly gifted, brave
-and chivalrous officer, and a great favourite.”
-
-_September 22._--About 11 p.m. Ungud, pensioner, returned to Lucknow,
-bringing a letter containing the glad tidings that the relieving force,
-under General Outram, had crossed the Ganges, and would arrive in a few
-days.
-
-His arrival and the cheering news he brought of speedy aid was well
-timed, for daily desertions of servants were becoming the rule. All the
-garrison were greatly elated at the news, and on many of the sick and
-wounded the speedy prospect of a change of air and security exercised a
-most beneficial effect.
-
-_September 25._--About 11 a.m. increasing agitation was visible among
-the people in the town. An hour later they heard guns and saw the
-smoke. All the garrison was on the alert; the excitement amongst many
-of the officers and men was quite painful to witness. At 1.30 p.m.
-many were leaving the city with bundles of clothes on their heads. The
-rebels’ bridge of boats had evidently been destroyed, for they could
-see many swimming across the river, most of them cavalry, with their
-horses’ bridles in their hands. During all this apparent panic the guns
-of the enemy in position all round were keeping up a heavy cannonade,
-and the riflemen never ceased firing from their loopholes.
-
-At 4 p.m. report was made that some officers dressed in shooting-coats
-and caps, a regiment of Europeans in blue pantaloons and shirts, could
-be seen near Mr. Martin’s house. At 5 p.m. volleys of musketry, rapidly
-growing louder, were heard in the city. But soon the firing of a
-minie-ball over their heads gave notice of the still nearer approach of
-their friends. It was very exciting, but they as yet could see little
-of them, though they could hear the rebels firing on them from the
-roofs of the houses.
-
-Will they again be repulsed? The heart sickens at the thought. No. Five
-minutes later, and our troops are seen fighting their way through one
-of the principal streets, and though men are falling at almost every
-step, yet on they come. Nothing can withstand the headlong gallantry
-of our reinforcements. Once fairly seen and all doubts and fears
-are ended. And now the garrison’s long pent-up feelings of anxiety
-and suspense burst forth in a succession of deafening cheers. From
-every pit, trench and battery, from behind the sand-bags piled up on
-shattered houses, from every post still held by a few gallant spirits,
-rose cheer on cheer--aye, even from the hospital.
-
-Many of the wounded were crawling forth to join in that glad shout
-of welcome to those who had so bravely come to their assistance.
-The ladies were in tears--tears of joy; some were on their knees,
-already thanking God for a deliverance from unspeakable horrors. It
-was a moment never to be forgotten. Soon all the rearguard and heavy
-guns were inside our position, and then ensued a scene which baffles
-description. For eighty-seven days the Lucknow garrison had lived in
-utter ignorance of all that had taken place outside. Wives who had
-mourned their husbands as dead were again restored to them; others,
-fondly looking forward to glad meetings with those near and dear to
-them, now for the first time learnt that they were alone in the world.
-On all sides eager inquiries were made for relations and friends.
-Oh, what a hubbub of voices, what exclamations of delight, what sad
-silences!
-
-The force under the command of Sir James Outram and Havelock had
-suffered heavily. Out of 2,600 who had left Cawnpore nearly one-third
-had been either killed or wounded in forcing their way through the
-city. Indeed, their losses were so heavy that they could effect little
-towards the relief, for the rebels were in overpowering force, so that
-the garrison remained on three-quarter rations, as closely besieged as
-before, looking for a day when they might be more effectually relieved
-by a larger and stronger force.
-
-Then, after the personal inquiries had died down, with bated breath
-they asked for news of Cawnpore. What a tale of horror, of pride, of
-shame! On the 5th of June, so they were told, the Cawnpore regiments
-mutinied and set off for Delhi. On the 6th they were brought back
-by Nana Sahib, a man who had once been well received in London
-drawing-rooms, now the arch-traitor and murderer.
-
-Not less than 1,000 persons took refuge in the Residency, which Nana
-proceeded to invest. It was a poor, weak place to defend, yet they
-kept the flag flying till the 24th of June, when their ammunition and
-provisions were all gone. Time after time the gallant little garrison
-repulsed all the Nana’s attacks. At length he approached them with
-treacherous smiles, and offered to transmit them safely to Allahabad
-on conditions of surrender. General Sir Hugh Wheeler undertook to
-deliver up the fortifications, the treasure, and the artillery on
-condition that our force should march out under arms, with sixty rounds
-of ammunition to every man; that carriages should be provided for the
-conveyance of the wounded, the women, and the children; that boats
-provided with flour should be in readiness at the landing-place.
-
-What happened was described by one who had been on the spot. He said:
-
-“The whole of Cawnpore was astir at an early hour to see the English
-depart. They poured down to the landing-place in thousands. Meanwhile
-a crowd of carriages and beasts of burden had been collected outside
-the entrenchments. The bullock-carts were soon filled with women and
-children. A fine elephant had been sent for the General, but he put his
-wife and daughters in the state howdah, and contented himself with a
-simple palanquin. The wounded were placed in litters with such care as
-soldiers could employ. Many sepoys mingling with the crowd expressed
-admiration for the British defence; some even wept over the sufferings
-of their late masters. Eleven dying Europeans were left behind, too ill
-to be moved.
-
-“They set off, with the men of the 32nd Regiment at their head; then
-came a throng of naked bearers, carrying the palanquins full of sick
-and wounded; then came the bullock-carts crowded with ladies and
-children; and next, musket on shoulder, came all who could still walk
-and fight. Major Vibart of the Second Cavalry came last. Colonel and
-Mrs. Ewart started late, she on foot, walking beside her husband, who
-was borne by four native porters. As they dropped astern some natives
-belonging to the Colonel’s own battalion approached him. They began to
-mock him, and then cut him in pieces with their swords. They did the
-same to his wife.
-
-“The road to the landing-place, which is about a mile from the
-entrenchments, runs down a ravine, which in summer is dry, and is
-enclosed on either side by high banks and crumbling fences. As the van
-turned down this ravine a great mob of natives watched them go in a
-strange silence.
-
-“Rather disorderly, with swaying howdahs and grunting beasts, the
-unwieldy caravan wound along the sandy lane. When they were all
-entangled in the little defile some sepoys quietly formed a double line
-across the mouth of the gorge, shutting, as it were, the top of the
-trap.
-
-“Meanwhile the head of the caravan had reached the landing-place, being
-a little surprised at the want of a pier or planks to serve as gangway.
-
-“But the English officers went in knee-deep and hoisted the wounded
-and the women into the covered barges, which had been hauled into the
-shallows, and were in many cases grounded on the sandy bottom. The
-boats were 30 feet from stem to stern and 12 feet in beam, roofed with
-straw, having a space at each end for the rowers and the steersman.
-They looked very old and dilapidated, but beggars may not choose.
-Hindoo boatmen were waiting sullenly and silently, not deigning to
-return a smile to the little English children, who already began to
-scent fun and enjoyment in a long river excursion.
-
-“All at once a bugle rang out from the top of the defile. Away splashed
-the native rowers, jumping from their boats into the water.
-
-“The rebels put up their muskets and fired point-blank into the laden
-boats; but the English had their rifles, and returned the fire.
-
-“Yet another surprise! Suddenly the straw roofs of the native boats
-burst into flame, and from either shore of the river grape and musket
-shot were poured in relentlessly. The wounded lay still and were burnt
-to death. Ladies and children sought the protection of the water,
-and crouched in the shallows under the sterns of the barges. The men
-tried to push off, but the keels stuck fast. Out of two dozen boats
-only three drifted slowly down from the stage. Of these three two went
-across to the Oude bank, where stood two cannon, guarded by a battalion
-of infantry and some cavalry. The third boat, containing Vibart and
-Whiting and Ushe, Delafosse and Bolton, Burney and Glanville and Moore,
-the bravest of the brave, got clear away, and drifted down the main
-channel.”
-
-Mrs. Bradshaw thus describes what she saw: “In the boat where I was
-to have gone were the school-mistress and twenty-two missies. General
-Wheeler came last in a palkee. They carried him into the water near a
-boat. I was standing close by. He said, ‘Carry me a little further near
-the boat.’ But a trooper said, ‘No; get out here.’ As the General got
-out of the palkee, head foremost, the trooper gave him a cut with his
-sword into the neck, and he fell into the water. My son was killed near
-him. I saw it--alas! alas! Some were stabbed with bayonets; others were
-cut down with swords and knives. Little infants were torn in pieces.
-We saw it, we did, and tell you only what we saw. Other children were
-stabbed and thrown into the river. The school-girls were burnt to
-death. I saw their clothes and hair catch fire. In the water, a few
-paces off, by the next boat, we saw the youngest daughter of Colonel
-Williams. A sepoy was going to kill her with his bayonet, when she
-said, ‘My father was always kind to sepoys.’ He turned away, and just
-then a villager struck her on the head with his club, and she fell into
-the water.”
-
-After a time the women and children who had not been shot, stabbed, or
-burnt were collected and brought to shore, some of them being rudely
-handled by the sowars, who tore from ear or finger such jewels as
-caught their fancy.
-
-About 120 sat or lay on the shore or on logs of timber, full of misery,
-fear, and despair. There they waited in the blinding sun on the Ganges
-shore all that morning. Then they were herded back along the narrow
-lane by which they had come with hope in their bosoms, while the sepoys
-who guarded them grinned with fiendish delight, and showed gleefully
-all their spoils. Past the bazaar and the chapel and the racquet-court
-and the entrenchments they limped along, until they were paraded before
-the pavilion of the Maharajah, who looked them well over, and ordered
-them to be confined in the Savada House. Two good-sized rooms, which
-had been used by native soldiers for a month, were given them to live
-in, and a guard was placed over them.
-
-One witness says: “I saw that many of the ladies were wounded. Their
-clothes had blood on them. Some were wet, covered with mud and blood,
-and some had their dresses badly torn, but all had clothes. I saw one
-or two children without clothes. There were no men in the party, but
-only some boys of twelve or thirteen years of age. Some of the ladies
-were barefoot and lame. Two I saw were wounded in the leg.”
-
-And what of the third boat which floated down-stream?
-
-More than 100 persons had taken refuge in it. Some officers and men,
-seeing how hopeless was the fight on the bank, had swum out to Vibart
-and his crew. Now they stranded on a mud-bank, now they drifted towards
-the guns on the other shore, ever under a hot fire of canister and
-shell, and continually losing brave men who were shot at point-blank
-range. Down in the bottom of the great barge lay dying and dead, till
-at last the survivors were compelled to throw the bodies overboard.
-
-At night a fire-ship was sent down to set them alight, and fire-tipped
-arrows were shot into the thatched roof, forcing our people to cut them
-away. Then they came under a fierce fire from the militia of Ram Bux.
-Pelting rains came down, and they drifted up a backwater, and soon
-after a host of rebels surrounded the poor, stricken fugitives and took
-them back to Cawnpore.
-
-The doomed boat-load were seen to be drawing near the landing-place
-early on the morning of the 30th. This is what a native spy said of
-them:
-
-“There were brought back sixty sahibs, twenty-five mem sahibs, and four
-children. The Nana ordered the sahibs to be separated from the mem
-sahibs, and shot by the 1st Bengal Native Infantry. But they said, ‘We
-will not kill the sahibs; put them in prison.’ Then said the Nadiree
-Regiment: ‘What word is this--put them in prison? We will kill the
-males ourselves.’
-
-“So the sahibs were seated on the ground. Two companies stood with
-their muskets, ready to fire. Then said one of the mem sahibs, the
-doctor’s wife: ‘I will not leave my husband. If he must die, I will die
-with him.’ So she ran and sat down behind her husband, clasping him
-round the waist.
-
-“When she said this the other mem sahibs said: ‘We also will die with
-our husbands;’ and they all sat down, each by her husband.
-
-“Then their husbands said: ‘Go back;’ but they would not do so.
-
-“So then the Nana gave order, and his soldiers went in and pulled them
-away by force. But they could not pull away the doctor’s wife, who
-stayed there. Then the padre asked leave to read prayers before they
-died. He did so, and then shut the book. Then all the sahibs shook
-hands and bid good-bye. Then the sepoys fired. One sahib rolled one
-way, one another, but they were not quite dead; so the sepoys went at
-them and finished them off with their swords.”
-
-Can you imagine the breathless horror with which the garrison of
-Lucknow listened to these details of a most cruel and treacherous
-onslaught upon wounded men, upon refined ladies, and innocent children?
-How they sighed for a force strong enough to take an adequate revenge
-upon these miscreants! But for the present they were besieged
-themselves, though reinforced; and who of them could count upon a day’s
-security? Perhaps, if the bullet spared them at Lucknow their would-be
-rescuers might be unable to fight their way through the city, and these
-poor ladies and children of the Lucknow garrison might be reserved for
-a lot even worse than death. “Will they come?--will they come to help
-us here at Lucknow? That is our anxious thought night and day.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW (1857)
-
- The scene at Cawnpore--Fights before Lucknow--Nearly blown up--A
- hideous nightmare--Cheering a runaway--All safe out of the
- Residency--A quick march back--Who stole the biscuits?--Sir Colin’s
- own regiment.
-
-
-“I had enlisted in the 93rd Sutherland Highlanders to go to India to
-put down the Mutiny,” writes Mr. Forbes-Mitchell, an old friend of the
-author. “We reached Cawnpore on the 27th of October, having marched the
-last forty-six miles in two days. We were over 1,000 strong, and many
-of us had just been through the Crimean War. After a few hours’ rest we
-were allowed to go out in parties of ten or twelve to visit the scene
-of the late treachery and massacre.”
-
-Wheeler’s entrenchments at the highest place did not exceed 4 feet,
-and could not have been bullet-proof at the top. The wonder was how
-the small force could have held out so long. In the rooms were still
-lying about broken toys, pictures, books, and bits of clothing. They
-then went to see the slaughter-house in which our women and children
-had been barbarously murdered and the well into which their mangled
-bodies were flung. On the date of this visit a great part of the house
-had not been cleaned out. The floors of the rooms were still covered
-with congealed blood, and littered with trampled, torn dresses,
-shoes, locks of long hair, many of which evidently had been severed by
-sword-cuts. But the most horrible sight they saw was an iron hook fixed
-into the wall. This was covered with dried blood, and from the marks on
-the whitewashed wall it was evident that a little child had been hung
-on to it by the neck, with its face to the wall. There the poor thing
-must have struggled for long, because the wall all round the hook was
-covered with the hand-prints, and below the hook with the footprints,
-of a little child--in blood.
-
-The number of victims killed at Cawnpore, counted and buried in the
-well by Havelock’s force, was 118 women and 92 children. This sight
-was enough, they said, to make the words “mercy” and “pardon” appear a
-mockery.
-
-The troops crossed into Oude on the 2nd of November, and on the 3rd a
-salute fired from the mud fort on the Cawnpore side told them that,
-to their great delight, Sir Colin Campbell had come up from Calcutta.
-They were all burning to start for Lucknow. Every man in the regiment
-was determined to risk his life to save the women and children from the
-fate of Cawnpore.
-
-On their march they saw they were at once in an enemy’s country.
-None of the villages were inhabited. There was no chance of buying
-chupatties (girdle-cakes) or goat’s milk. It was the custom to serve
-out three days’ biscuits at one time, running four to the pound. Most
-men usually had finished their biscuits before they reached the first
-halting-ground.
-
-Before they made their first halt they could hear the guns of the
-rebels bombarding the Residency. Footsore and tired as they were, the
-report of each salvo made the men step out with a firmer tread and a
-more determined resolve to relieve those helpless women and children.
-
-On the 10th of November they were encamped on the plain about five
-miles in front of the Alumbâgh, about 5,000 of them, the only really
-complete regiment being the 93rd Highlanders, of whom some 700 wore the
-Crimean medal. They were in full Highland costume, feather bonnets and
-dark waving plumes--a solid mass of brawny-limbed men.
-
-The old chief rode along the line, saying a few words to each corps as
-he passed. The regiment remarked that none of the other corps had given
-him a single cheer, but had taken what he said in solemn silence. At
-last he came to the 93rd, who were formed close column, so that every
-man might hear. When Sir Colin rode up he seemed to have a worn and
-haggard expression on his face, but he was received with such a cheer,
-or rather shout of welcome, as made the echoes ring. His wrinkled brow
-at once became smooth, and his weary features broke into a smile as he
-acknowledged the cheer by a hearty salute. He ended his speech thus:
-“Ninety-third, you are my own lads. I rely on you to do the work.” A
-voice from the ranks called out: “Ay, ay, Sir Colin! ye ken us, and we
-ken you. We’ll bring the women and children out of Lucknow or die in
-the attempt;” and the whole regiment burst into another ringing cheer.
-
-On the morning of the 14th of November they began the advance on the
-Dilkoosha Park and Palace. The Fourth Brigade, composed of the 53rd,
-93rd, and 4th Punjab Regiments, with a strong force of artillery,
-reached the walls at sunrise. Here they halted till a breach was made
-in the walls. The park swarmed with deer--black buck and spotted.
-There were no signs of the enemy, and a staff-officer of the artillery
-galloped to the front to reconnoitre. This was none other than the
-present Lord Roberts, known to the men then as “Plucky Wee Bobs.” About
-half of the regiment had passed through the breach, when a masked
-battery of six guns opened fire on them from behind the palace. The
-first shot passed through the column, the second cut in two a trooper’s
-horse close to Roberts, who dismounted and helped the trooper to his
-feet. They all cheered the young Lieutenant for his coolness under a
-point-blank fire of 9-pounders. They kept on pegging away until the
-sepoys bolted down the hill for shelter in the Martinière. About two
-o’clock they drove the rebels out, occupied the Martinière and erected
-a semaphore on the roof to communicate with the Residency.
-
-They next fought their way to a village on the east side of the
-Secundrabâgh. Here they saw a naked wretch with shaven head and body
-painted and smeared with ashes. He was sitting on a leopard-skin,
-counting a rosary of beads. James Wilson said:
-
-“I’d like to try my bayonet on that fellow’s hide;” but Captain Mayne
-replied:
-
-“Oh, don’t touch him. These fellows are harmless Hindoo _jogees_”
-(mendicants).
-
-The words had scarcely been uttered when the painted scoundrel stopped
-counting his beads, slipped his hand under his leopard-skin, brought
-out a short brass blunderbuss, and fired it into Captain Mayne’s chest,
-a few feet off. The fellow was instantly bayoneted, but poor Mayne died.
-
-From the Secundrabâgh came a murderous fire, and they had to wait for
-the guns to make a breach.
-
-“Lie down, 93rd, lie down!” shouted Sir Colin. “Every man of you is
-worth his weight in gold to England to-day.”
-
-When the breach was large enough the 4th Punjabis led the assault, but
-seeing their officers shot down, they wavered. Sir Colin turned to
-Colonel Ewart and said:
-
-“Bring on the tartan. Let my own lads at them.”
-
-Before the buglers had time to sound the advance the whole seven
-companies, like one man, leaped the wall with such a yell of pent-up
-rage as never was heard before nor since. The bayonet did the work
-effectually. Many of the Highlanders were wounded in the leg because
-the native tulwârs were as sharp as razors, and when the rebels had
-fired their muskets they hurled them like javelins, bayonets first, and
-then drawing their tulwârs, slashed in blind fury, shouting, “Deen!
-Deen!” (“The faith!”), and some threw themselves down and slashed at
-the legs of the Highlanders.
-
-In the centre of the inner court of the Secundrabâgh there was a large
-peepul-tree (Indian fig), with a very bushy top, and round the foot of
-it were set some jars full of cool water. Captain Dawson noticed that
-many of our men lay dead under this tree, and he called out to Wallace,
-a good shot, to look up and try if he could see anyone in the top, as
-the dead seemed to be shot from above.
-
-Wallace stepped back and scanned the tree. “I see him, sir,” he
-shouted, and cocking his rifle, he fired. Down fell a body dressed in
-a tight-fitting red jacket and rose-coloured silk trousers. The breast
-of the jacket bursting open with the fall showed that the wearer was a
-woman.
-
-She was armed with a pair of heavy old-pattern cavalry pistols. From
-her perch in the tree, which had been carefully prepared before the
-attack, she had killed more than half a dozen men. Poor Wallace burst
-into tears, saying: “If I had known it was a woman I would never have
-harmed her.”
-
-When the roll was called it was found that we had lost nine officers
-and ninety-nine men. Sir Colin rode up and said: “Fifty-third and
-Ninety-third, you have bravely done your share of this morning’s work,
-and Cawnpore is avenged.”
-
-“On revisiting Lucknow many years after this I saw no tablet or grave
-to mark the spot where so many of the 93rd are buried. It is the old,
-old story which was said to have been first written on the walls of
-Badajos:
-
- “When war is rife and danger nigh,
- God and the soldier is all the cry;
- When war is over and wrongs are righted,
- God is forgot and the soldier slighted.”
-
-“After the Secundrabâgh we had to advance on the Shâh Nujeef. As the
-24-pounders were being dragged along by our men and Peel’s sailors a
-poor sailor lad just in front had his leg carried clean off above the
-knee by a round shot, and although knocked head over heels by the force
-of the ball, he sat bolt upright on the grass, with the blood spouting
-from the stump of his limb like water from the hose of a fire-engine,
-and shouted:
-
-“‘Here goes a shilling a day--a shilling a day! Pitch into them, boys!
-Remember Cawnpore, 93rd--remember Cawnpore! Go at them, my hearties!’
-and then he fell back in a dead faint. He was dead before a doctor
-could reach him.”
-
-Sir Colin himself was wounded by a bullet after it had passed through
-the head of a 93rd Grenadier.
-
-Amongst the force defending the Shâh Nujeef there was a large body of
-archers on the walls armed with bows and arrows, which they discharged
-with great force and precision, and on Sergeant White raising his head
-above the wall an arrow was shot right into his feather bonnet. Inside
-the wire cage of his bonnet he had placed his forage-cap, folded up,
-and instead of passing right through, the arrow stuck in the folds of
-his cap. White, drawing out the arrow, cried: “My conscience! Bows and
-arrows! Have we got Robin Hood and Little John back again? Well, well,
-Jack Pandy, since bows and arrows are the word, here’s at you!” and
-with that he raised his bonnet on the point of his bayonet above the
-top of the wall, and at once another arrow pierced it through, while a
-dozen more whizzed past a little wide of the mark.
-
-[Illustration: THE LIGHTER SIDE OF WAR AT LUCKNOW
-
-A body of archers were amongst the defenders of the Shâh Nujeef. A
-Highland sergeant put his bonnet on his bayonet and held it up, and it
-was at once pierced by an arrow.]
-
-Just then Penny, of No. 2 Company, looking over the wall, got an arrow
-right through his brain, the shaft projecting more than a foot at the
-back of his head.
-
-Then they all loaded and capped, and, pushing up their bonnets again,
-a whole shower of arrows went past or through them. Up they sprang and
-returned a well-aimed volley from their rifles at point-blank distance,
-and more than half a dozen of the rebels went down. But Montgomery
-exposed himself a little too long to watch the effects of the volley,
-and before he could get down into shelter an arrow was sent through his
-heart, passing clean through his body, and falling on the ground a few
-yards behind him. He leaped about 6 feet straight up in the air and
-fell stone dead.
-
-But as yet we had made little impression on the solid masonry walls,
-and one of our ammunition waggons exploded, killing several men, and
-our storming party was repulsed. Just then Sergeant Paton came running
-up out of breath to say he had found a wide breach on the other side.
-It seems our shot and shell had gone over the first wall and had blown
-out the wall on the other side. Paton had climbed up easily and seen
-right inside the place. So Captain Dawson and his company were sent
-with Paton, and when the enemy saw them come in behind them they fled
-like sheep.
-
-Thus ended the terrible 16th of November, 1857.
-
-“An adventure happened to me in the Shâh Nujeef,” says Forbes-Mitchell,
-“which I still sometimes dream of with horror. This place was the tomb
-of the first King of Oude, and a place of Mohammedan pilgrimage. It had
-a number of small rooms round the enclosure for the pilgrims. These the
-enemy had used for quarters, and in their hurry to escape many had
-left their lamps burning. As I had lost my greatcoat in the fight, and
-felt very cold at night, so that I could not sleep, it struck me that
-some of the sepoys might have left blankets behind them. With this hope
-I went into one of the rooms where a lamp was burning, took it off its
-shelf, and walked to the door of the great domed tomb, which was only
-20 yards or so away from the spot where the arms were piled and the men
-lying round the still burning fire. I peered into the dark vault, but
-could see nothing, so I advanced slowly, holding above my head the clay
-saucer of oil containing a loose cotton wick. I was looking cautiously
-round, for fear of surprise from a concealed foe, till I came near
-the centre of the great vault, where my progress was obstructed by a
-big black heap about 4 feet high, which felt to my feet as if I were
-walking in loose sand. I lowered the lamp to see what it was, and
-discovered that I was standing up to the ankles in loose gunpowder!
-
-“About 40 hundredweight of it lay in a great heap in front of my nose,
-while a glance to my left showed me a range of some thirty barrels also
-full of powder, and on the right lots of 8-inch shells, all loaded,
-with the fuses fixed.
-
-“By this time my eyes had become accustomed to the darkness of the
-mosque, and I took in my position at a glance. Here I was up to my
-knees almost in powder--in the very bowels of a magazine--with a naked
-light!
-
-“My hair literally stood on end. I felt the skin of my head lifting my
-feather bonnet off my scalp. My knees knocked together, and, despite
-the chilly night air, the cold perspiration burst out all over me and
-ran down my face and legs.
-
-“I had neither cloth nor handkerchief in my pocket, and there was not a
-moment to be lost, as already the overhanging wick was threatening to
-shed its smouldering red tip into the live magazine at my feet.
-
-“Quick as thought I put my left hand under the down-dropping flame
-and clasped it firmly. Holding it so, I slowly turned to the door
-and walked out with my knees knocking one against the other. I never
-felt the least pain from the wick, fear had so overcome me; but when
-I opened my hand on gaining the open air, I felt the smart acutely
-enough. I poured the oil out of the saucer into the burnt hand, then
-kneeling down, I thanked God for having saved me and all our men around
-from horrible destruction. I then got up and staggered rather than
-walked to the place where Captain Dawson was sleeping. I shook him by
-the shoulder till he awoke, and told him of my discovery and fright.
-
-“‘Bah, Corporal Mitchell!’ was all his answer. ‘You have woke up out
-of your sleep and have got frightened at a shadow’--for he saw me all
-trembling.
-
-“I turned my smarting hand to the light of the fire and showed the
-Captain how it was scorched; and then, feeling my pride hurt, I said:
-‘Sir, you’re not a Highlander, or you would know the Gaelic proverb,
-“The heart of one who can look death in the face will not start at a
-shadow,” and you, sir, can bear witness that I have not shirked to look
-death in the face more than once since morning.’
-
-“He replied: ‘Pardon me. I did not mean that. But calm yourself and
-explain.’
-
-“I then told him that I had gone into the mosque with a naked lamp, and
-had found it half full of loose gunpowder.
-
-“‘Are you sure you’re not dreaming from the excitement of this awful
-day?’ he asked.
-
-“With that I looked down to my feet and my gaiters, which were still
-covered with blood from the slaughter in the Secundrabâgh. The wet
-grass had softened it again, and on this the powder was sticking nearly
-an inch thick. I scraped some of it off, throwing it into the fire, and
-said:
-
-“‘There is positive proof for you that I’m not dreaming, nor my vision
-a shadow.’
-
-“On that the Captain became almost as alarmed as I was, and a sentry
-was posted near the door of the mosque to prevent anyone entering it.
-
-“The sleeping men were aroused, and the fire smothered out by jars of
-water. Then Captain Dawson and I, with an escort of four men, went
-round the rooms. As Wilson, one of the escort, was peering into a room,
-a concealed sepoy struck him over the head with his tulwâr; but his
-bonnet saved him, and Captain Dawson put a pistol bullet through the
-sepoy to save further trouble.
-
-“After all was quiet the men rolled off to sleep again, and I too lay
-down and tried to sleep. My nerves were, however, too much shaken, and
-the burnt hand kept me awake, so I lay and listened to the men sleeping
-round me. And what a night that was! The horrible scenes through which
-the men had passed during the day had told with terrible effect upon
-their nerves, and the struggles with death in the Secundrabâgh were
-fought over again by some of the men in their sleep, oaths and shouts
-of defiance being often strangely intermingled with prayers.
-
-“One man would be lying calmly asleep and then suddenly break out into
-a fierce battle-cry of ‘Cawnpore! you bloody murderer!’ Another would
-shout, ‘Charge! give them the bayonet!’ and a third, ‘Keep together,
-boys; don’t fire yet. Forward! forward! If we are to die, let us die
-like men!’
-
-“Then I would hear one muttering, ‘Oh, mother, forgive me, and I’ll
-never leave you again.’ So it was through all that memorable night, and
-I have no doubt it was the same at the other posts. At last I dozed
-off and dreamed of blood and battle, and anon of Dee or Don side and
-the Braemar gathering; then the scene would change, and I was a little
-boy again, kneeling beside my mother, saying my evening hymn. Verily
-Campbell’s ‘Soldier’s Dream’ is no fiction.”
-
-Next morning they found plenty of pumpkins and piles of flat cakes
-already cooked, but no salt; but Mitchell had an old matchbox full
-of salt in his haversack. An old veteran who used to tell stories of
-Waterloo had said to him at home: “Always carry a box of salt in your
-haversack when on active service: it will be useful.” So it was very
-often. After breakfast they sponged out their rifles, which had become
-so foul that the men’s shoulders were black with bruises from the
-recoil.
-
-They had to assault the mess-house next, and after they had driven the
-rebels into the River Goomtee they peppered every head that showed
-above water.
-
-One tall fellow acted as cunningly as a jackal. Whether struck or not,
-he fell just as he got into shallow water on the opposite side, and lay
-without moving, with his legs in the water and his head on the land.
-He appeared to be stone dead, and every rifle was turned on those that
-were running across the plain, while many that were wounded were fired
-on, as the fellows said, in mercy to put them out of pain. For this war
-of the Mutiny was a demoralizing war for civilized men to be engaged
-in. The cold-blooded cruelty of the rebels branded them as traitors to
-humanity and cowardly assassins of helpless women and children.
-
-But to return to our Pandy. He was ever after spoken of as “the
-Jackal,” because jackals often behave as he did. After he had lain
-apparently dead for about an hour, some one noticed that he had
-gradually dragged himself out of the water. Then all at once he sprang
-to his feet and ran like a deer. He was still within easy range, and
-several rifles were levelled at him; but Sergeant Findlay, who was
-on the rampart, called out: “Don’t fire, men; give the poor devil a
-chance.” So instead of a volley of bullets the men’s better feelings
-gained the day, and Jack Pandy was reprieved, with a cheer to speed
-him on his way. As soon as he heard it he realized his position, and
-like the Samaritan leper of old, he halted, turned round, and putting
-up both his hands with the palms together in front of his face, he
-salaamed profoundly, prostrating himself three times on the ground by
-way of thanks, while the men on the ramparts waved their bonnets and
-clapped their hands to him in token of goodwill.
-
-Just at this time was heard a great sound of cheering near the
-Residency, the cause of which they shortly learned. It was because
-General Sir Colin Campbell had met Havelock and Outram. So then they
-knew the Residency was relieved, and the women and children were saved,
-though not yet out of danger. Every man in the force slept with a
-lighter heart that night.
-
-A girl in the Residency--Jessie Brown--had stated that she heard the
-skirl of the bagpipes hours before the relieving force could be seen or
-heard by the rest of the garrison, “and I believe it was quite true.
-I know we heard their bagpipes a long way off. Well, we had relieved
-Lucknow, but at what a cost! No less than forty-five officers and 496
-men had been killed--more than a tenth of our whole number.”
-
-The Residency was relieved on the afternoon of the 17th of November,
-and the following day preparations were made for the evacuation of
-the position and the withdrawal of the women and children. To do this
-in safety, however, was no easy task, for the rebels showed but small
-regard for the laws of chivalry. There was a long stretch of plain,
-exposed to the fire of the enemy’s artillery and sharp-shooters from
-the opposite side of the Goomtee. To protect this part of the route all
-the best shots were placed on the north-west corner of the ramparts
-next to the Goomtee. They were under the command of Sergeant Findlay.
-One very good shot that excellent marksman made. A rebel officer rode
-out with a force of infantry from the east gate of the Bâdshâh-hibâgh.
-They had a couple of guns, too, to open fire on the line of retreat.
-They might have played havoc with the retiring garrison, but Findlay
-managed to unhorse the officer at long distance, and as soon as he
-was knocked over the enemy retreated into the bâgh, and did not show
-themselves any more that day.
-
-By midnight of the 22nd of November the Residency was entirely
-evacuated, and the enemy completely deceived as to the movements. The
-women and children had passed the exposed part of their route without a
-single casualty.
-
-The roll was called on reaching the Martinière, and two were found to
-be missing. They had been left asleep in the barracks, and came in
-later, saying that the rebels had not yet discovered that the English
-had gone and were still firing into the Residency. Shortly after the
-roll-call a most unfortunate accident took place. Corporal Cooper and
-four or five men went into one of the rooms of the Martinière in which
-there was a quantity of loose powder which had been left by the enemy,
-and somehow the powder got ignited and they were all blown up, their
-bodies completely charred and their eyes scorched out. The poor fellows
-all died in the greatest agony within an hour or so of the accident,
-and none of them could tell how it happened.
-
-“This sad accident made me very mindful of and thankful for my own
-narrow escape and that of my comrades in the Shâh Nujeef.
-
-“An amusing thing occurred on the march to Cawnpore. As all the
-subaltern officers in my company were wounded I was told off, with a
-guard of twenty men, to see all the baggage-carts across Bunnee Bridge.
-A commissariat cart, loaded with biscuits, got upset, and its wheel
-broke just as we were moving it on to the road.
-
-“The only person in charge of the cart was a young bâboo, a boy of
-eighteen years of age, who defended his charge as long as he could; but
-he was soon put on one side, the biscuit bags were ripped open, and the
-men commenced filling their haversacks.
-
-“Just at this moment an escort of the 9th Lancers, with some
-staff-officers, rode up from the rear. It was the Commander-in-Chief
-and his staff.
-
-“The boy bâboo seeing him, rushed up and called out aloud:
-
-“‘Oh, my lord, you are my father and my mother. What shall I tell you?
-These wild Highlanders will not hear me, but are stealing commissariat
-biscuits like fine fun!’
-
-“Sir Colin pulled up, and tried not to smile. ‘Is there no officer
-here?’ he asked.
-
-“The bâboo replied: ‘No officer, sir--my lord--only one very big
-corporal, and he tell me grandly “Shut up, you! or I’ll shoot you, same
-like rebel mutineer.”’
-
-“Hearing this, I stepped out of the crowd, and, saluting Sir Colin,
-told him that this cart had broken down, and as there were no other
-means of carrying the biscuits, the men had filled their haversacks
-with them rather than leave them on the ground.
-
-“Then the bâboo again came to the front with clasped hands, saying:
-‘Oh, my lord if one cart of biscuits short, Major Fitzgerald not listen
-to me; rather order thirty lashes with Provost Marshal’s cat. Oh, what
-can a poor bâboo do with such supreme and wild Highlanders?’
-
-“Sir Colin replied: ‘Yes, bâboo, I know these Highlanders are very wild
-fellows when they are hungry. Let them have the biscuits,’ and turning
-to one of the staff, he directed him to give a voucher to the bâboo
-that a cart loaded with biscuits had broken down, and the contents had
-been divided amongst the rearguard by order of the Commander-in-Chief.
-Sir Colin then turned to us and said: ‘Men, I give you the biscuits.
-Divide them with your comrades in front; but you must promise me should
-a cart loaded with rum break down, you will not interfere with it.’
-
-“We all replied: ‘No, no, Sir Colin; if rum breaks down, we’ll not
-touch it.’
-
-“‘All right,’ said Sir Colin, ‘remember! I trust you, and I know every
-one of you.’
-
-“We honestly shared those biscuits, and it was well we had them, for
-about five miles further on a general halt was made for a short rest
-and for all stragglers to come up. Sir Colin ordered the 93rd to form
-up, and calling the officers to the front, he announced to the regiment
-that General Wyndham had been attacked by the Nana Sahib and by the
-Gwalior contingent in Cawnpore; that his force had been obliged to
-retire within the fort at the bridge of boats; and that we must reach
-Cawnpore that night, because if the bridge of boats should be captured
-before we got there, we should be cut off in Oude, with 50,000 of our
-enemies in our rear, a well-equipped army of 40,000 men in our front,
-together with a powerful train of artillery numbering over forty
-siege-guns to face, and with all the women and children, sick and
-wounded, to guard. ‘So, 93rd,’ said the old chief, ‘I don’t ask you to
-undertake this forced march in your present tired condition without
-good reason. You must reach Cawnpore to-night at all costs.’
-
-“As usual, when he took the men into his confidence, he was answered
-from the ranks: ‘All right, Sir Colin, we’ll do it.’ And we did.”
-
-By this time they could hear the guns of the Gwalior contingent
-bombarding General Wyndham’s position in Cawnpore. Although terribly
-footsore and tired, not having had their clothes off for eighteen days,
-they trudged on their weary march, every mile hearing the guns more
-clearly. There is nothing to rouse tired soldiers like a good cannonade
-in front. It is the best tonic out.
-
-But they will never forget the misery of that march. They reached
-the sands on the banks of the Ganges, on the Oude side of the river
-opposite Cawnpore, just as the sun was setting, having covered the
-forty-seven miles under thirty hours. And when they got in sight of
-Cawnpore the first thing they saw was the enemy on the other side of
-the river making bonfires of their spare kit and baggage, which had
-been left at Cawnpore when they advanced for the relief of Lucknow.
-
-How on the 29th of November they crossed the bridge of boats; how
-by the 3rd of December all the women and children and wounded were
-on their way to Allahabad; how they smashed up the famous Gwalior
-contingent and sent the Nana flying into the desert--all this belongs
-to another story. Sir Colin thanked his old regiment for their great
-toil and prowess. “But we old soldiers should like our deeds and the
-deeds of those who gave their lives for England to be remembered by our
-children’s children, and to be studied with a grateful sympathy.”
-
- From “Reminiscences of the Great Mutiny,” by William
- Forbes-Mitchell. By kind permission of Messrs. Macmillan and Co.
-
- This is one of the most interesting books that has been written by
- a soldier who took part in the Mutiny War.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-RUNNING THE BLOCKADE (1861)
-
- North _v._ South--A new President hates slavery--Fort Sumter is
- bombarded--Ladies on the house-top--Niggers don’t mind shells--A
- blockade-runner comes to Oxford--The _Banshee_ strips for the
- race--Wilmington--High pay--Lights out--Cast the lead--A stern
- chase--The run home--Lying _perdu_--The _Night-hawk_ saved by Irish
- humour--Southern need at the end of the war--Negro dignity waxes
- big.
-
-
-In November, 1860, Abraham Lincoln was elected President of the United
-States. As the new President was in sympathy with those who wished to
-abolish slavery, and as the Southern States were mostly inhabited by
-large landholders possessing thousands of slaves, this election was
-felt to doom their ascendancy unless they could resist the will of the
-North. Therefore, on the 17th of December a convention of the State of
-South Carolina was held at Charleston, which formally repealed their
-acceptance of the United States Constitution.
-
-Neither side at first foresaw the results of secession. Each thought
-the other would offer little resistance. The North were totally
-unprepared for war; the South were weakened by internal dissensions,
-but they fought as long as they had any soldiers left, and at last
-“robbed the cradle and the grave.” The South were in the end quite
-exhausted, while the North seemed to gather new strength every month.
-As the war went on the soldiers of the South, or Confederates, wore
-out their clothes, and could not replace them. Things were so scarce
-and dear that it became a proverb, “In going to market, you take your
-money in your basket and bring your purchases home in your pocket.”
-Planters in the South had to borrow money to support their hordes of
-negroes in idleness while they themselves were away at the front.
-
-On the 4th of March Lincoln formally entered on office. Secession,
-he said, meant rebellion. The Constitution must be preserved, if
-necessary, even by force.
-
-Major Anderson, who held a small fort in Charleston Harbour for the
-North, spiked his guns and moved into Fort Sumter, also in the harbour.
-This was considered an act of war, and Fort Sumter was bombarded and
-taken. The little town was full of excited soldiers, singing and
-shouting. We have a peep of what was going on and what it felt like in
-Mrs. Chestnut’s diary for the 12th of April:
-
-“I do not pretend to go to sleep. How can I? If Anderson does not
-accept terms at four the orders are he shall be fired upon. I count
-four. St. Michael’s bells chime out, and I begin to hope. At half-past
-four the heavy booming of a cannon! I sprang out of bed, and on my
-knees prostrate I prayed as I never prayed before. There was a sound of
-stir all over the house, pattering of feet in the corridors. All seemed
-hurrying one way. I put on my double gown and went on the house-top.
-The shells were bursting. The roar of the cannon had begun. The women
-were wild there on the house-top. Prayers came from the women and
-imprecations from the men. Then a shell would light up the scene, and
-we all wondered why Fort Sumter did not reply.”
-
-On the next day Fort Sumter was on fire. The warships of the North were
-outside the bar, and could not enter for want of depth of water. On
-the 15th Anderson had to give the fort up to the South.
-
-The slaves were taking it all very quietly, seemed not much moved by
-the thought of being free--rather preferred to be slaves and be well
-fed.
-
-A negro was rowing in the bay towards Charleston during the bombardment
-with some supplies from a plantation. He was met and asked: “Are you
-not afraid of Colonel Anderson’s cannon?”
-
-“No, sar. Mars Anderson ain’t daresn’t hit me. He knows marster
-wouldn’t ’low it.”
-
-The next step taken by the President was to declare all the Southern
-ports in a state of blockade, in order that the seceding States might
-be starved out. The coast-line was some 3,000 miles in length, and the
-whole fleet of the United States did not reach 150 ships, of which many
-were unseaworthy. But the energy of the North increased this fleet to
-nearly 700 vessels. Thus any attempt to run in through the blockading
-squadron was very dangerous.
-
-A royal proclamation in England admonished all loyal subjects to
-respect the Federal blockade; but the high profits to be made tempted
-many Liverpool firms to adventure their argosies. A ship taken while
-running the blockade is treated as an enemy, and if she resists she is
-treated as a pirate.
-
-During the first year of the war many captures were made, and stories
-came to England of hairbreadth escapes which set many young men longing
-to join in the exciting game.
-
-I remember a man coming to Oxford when I was an undergraduate with a
-letter of introduction from a friend. He was running into Charleston,
-and had brought from that port a store of watches and jewellery, which
-he persuaded us to take in exchange for a quantity of discarded
-clothing. The lady’s gold watch which I got is, I hear, still going
-strong, and belies the suspicion with which I took it. At this time
-there were no mills, and almost no manufactories in the Southern
-States, so that they soon began to feel the want of clothes, buttons,
-boots, socks, medicines, and chemicals. Nassau, a little island in the
-Bahamas, was the chief base for the steamers that were running the
-blockade. It is about 560 miles from Charleston and 640 from Wilmington.
-
-The Bahama group afforded neutral water to within fifty miles of the
-American coast, but it required a very fast vessel to succeed in
-evading the chain of cruisers which soon patrolled the coast. These
-fast vessels were being built in England and elsewhere. Let us follow
-the fortunes of one of them--the _Banshee_.
-
-She arrived safely across the Atlantic and put into Nassau. There she
-was stripped for the work that lay before her. Everything aloft was
-taken down, and nothing was left standing but the two lower masts, with
-cross-trees for a look-out man. The ship was painted a dull white,
-and the crew wore a grey uniform. As the success of a blockade-runner
-depends much on her speed, the qualities of the engineer are important.
-
-The _Banshee_ possessed a model chief engineer in Mr. Erskine, a man
-cool in danger and full of resource. In her pilot, Tom Burroughs,
-she had a man who knew the waters thoroughly, and was a genius in
-smelling out a blockader on the darkest night. A good pilot received
-about £800 for the trip there and back, for there was some risk in the
-service, and if they were captured they went to prison. The pay of the
-seamen was from £50 to £60 for the trip. So the _Banshee_ stole out of
-Nassau Harbour on a dark night, laden with arms, gunpowder, boots, and
-clothing, on her way to Wilmington.
-
-Wilmington lies to the north of Charleston, some sixteen miles up the
-Cape Fear River. Off the mouth of this river lies Smith’s Island, which
-divides the approach to the port into two widely different channels.
-
-Fort Fisher, placed at the northern point, obliged the blockaders
-to lie far out, beyond the range of the guns. Further out still was
-a cordon of cruisers, and outside these were gunboats always on the
-move; so that it required speed and a good look-out to elude the three
-lines of blockaders. They crept as noiselessly as possible along the
-shores of the Bahamas, and ran on safely for the first two days out,
-though as often as they saw a sail on the horizon they had to turn the
-_Banshee’s_ stern to it till it vanished. The look-out man had a dollar
-for every sail he sighted, and was fined five dollars if it were seen
-first from the deck. On the third day they found they had only just
-time to run under cover of Fort Fisher before dawn, and they tried to
-do it.
-
-“Now the real excitement began,” says Mr. Taylor, who was in charge
-of the cargo, “and nothing I have ever experienced can compare with
-it. Hunting, pig-sticking, big-game shooting, polo--all have their
-thrilling moments, but none can approach ‘running a blockade.’ Consider
-the dangers to be encountered, after three days of constant anxiety and
-little sleep, in threading our way through a swarm of blockaders, and
-the accuracy required to hit in the nick of time the mouth of a river
-only half a mile wide, without lights, and with a coast-line so low
-that as a rule the first intimation we had of its nearness was the dim
-white line of the surf.”
-
-They steamed along cautiously until nightfall. Though the night was
-dark it was dangerously clear. No lights, not even a cigar. The
-hatchways of the engine-room were covered with tarpaulins, and the poor
-stokers had to breathe as best they could.
-
-All hands were on deck, crouching down behind the bulwarks. On the
-bridge were Taylor, the captain, Mr. Steele, and the pilot, all
-straining their eyes into the “vasty deep.”
-
-Presently the pilot muttered: “Better cast the lead, captain.”
-
-Steele murmured down the tube that led to the engine-room, and the
-vessel slowed down and then stopped. A weird figure crept into the
-fore-chains and dropped the leaded line, while the crew listened to
-see if the engines would seize the opportunity to blow off steam and
-so advertise their presence for miles around. In two minutes came the
-seaman, saying: “Sixteen fathoms, sir. Sandy bottom, with black specks.”
-
-“We are not so far in as I thought,” said the pilot. “Port two points
-and go a little faster.”
-
-He knew by the speckled bottom where they were. They had to be north of
-that before it was safe to head for the shore.
-
-In an hour or less the pilot asked for another sounding. No more specks
-this time. “Starboard and go ahead easy” was the order now.
-
-The paddle-floats were flapping the water softly, but to the crew the
-noise they made was terrifying. They could be heard a long way.
-
-Suddenly the pilot said: “There’s one of them, Mr. Taylor, on the
-starboard bow.”
-
-Presently straining eyes could see a long, low, black object lying
-quite still. Would she see the _Banshee_?
-
-They passed within a hundred yards of her and were not heard.
-
-Soon after Burroughs whispered: “Steamer on the port bow.”
-
-A second cruiser was made out close to them.
-
-“Hard a port,” said the captain, and the steamer swung round, bringing
-the enemy upon her beam. No sound! The enemy slept! Then suddenly
-a third cruiser came out of the gloom and steamed slowly across the
-_Banshee’s_ bows.
-
-“Stop her,” said Captain Steele down the tube, and the blockade-runner
-gurgled to a standstill, while the cruiser moved across and was lost in
-the darkness.
-
-Then “Slow ahead” was the order, until the low-lying coast and the grey
-surf came dim to the eye. But it was getting near dawn, and there was
-no trace of the river mouth.
-
-They knew not quite where they were, and thoughts of prison and prison
-fare would come uppermost.
-
-At length the pilot said: “All right, boys. I can see the big hill
-yonder.”
-
-The only hill on the coast was near Fort Fisher. Now they knew where
-they were; so did six or seven gunboats, which, in the silver light of
-early dawn, catching sight of their prey, steamed hard and fast towards
-the _Banshee_, with angry shots from the bow gun. The balls were
-dropping all around and churning up the sea. It was mighty unpleasant
-to men who knew they had several tons of gunpowder in the hold; and
-just then they were obliged to steer out to avoid the North Breaker
-shoal, so that the gunboats crept ever nearer and nearer, barking like
-disappointed puppies.
-
-The pilot looked at the captain and the captain at the supercargo.
-Their lips tightened and their breath came faster as they eyed the
-gunboats askance.
-
-“One good shot into the paddle will end this trip,” thought Mr. Taylor;
-“and it is my first run in, too!”
-
-Then came a welcome sound overhead. A shell from the fort whirred its
-way towards the gunboats and warned them off.
-
-With a parting broadside they sheered off out of range, and after half
-an hour’s run the _Banshee_ was over the bar and in quiet waters. They
-soon sped up the sixteen miles to Wilmington, and found a large posse
-of willing slaves ready to discharge their cargo.
-
-The poor folk at Wilmington were then very much pinched for want of
-good food and drink, and the advent of the _Banshee_ restored smiles
-all round. Living on corn-bread, bacon, and water grows monotonous, and
-invitations to lunch on board the _Banshee_ were never declined--in
-fact, many friends did not even wait for an invitation.
-
-Within a very few days the _Banshee_ was again ready for sea, ballasted
-with tobacco and laden with cotton--three tiers even on deck! High
-profit tempted them to pile up their vessels like hay-waggons, and put
-to sea in a condition quite unfit to meet a boisterous wind.
-
-It was fortunately more easy to run out than to run in, as there was no
-harbour mouth to find in the dark, and the open sea lay before them.
-They learnt that the Admiral’s ship remained at anchor during the
-night, while the other vessels moved slowly to and fro across the mouth
-of the river; so they formed a bold plan, thinking that security lay in
-a startling impudence. They hid the _Banshee_ behind Fort Fisher till
-nightfall, rowing ashore to get the latest news from Colonel Lamb, who
-commanded the fort.
-
-“Which, sir, is the Admiral’s flag-ship?”
-
-“The _Minnesota_, a sixty-gun frigate. Don’t go too near her.”
-
-“That is just what we mean to do, Colonel; but first we will take her
-bearings exactly. We don’t want to bump into her.”
-
-The Colonel was very kind and helpful, and they often enjoyed his
-society and that of his wife, who lived in a cottage not far off.
-
-As soon as night fell over the sea the _Banshee_ slipped quietly
-from her secret anchorage, crossed the river bar, and following the
-observations they had taken, ran close by the flagship, and so out to
-sea, clear of the first cordon. But in trying to pass the second they
-ran across a gunboat, which at once opened fire. The men lay down on
-the deck, and the engines throbbed and thumped. Luckily the gunboat was
-very slow, and they soon lost one another; but as they could hear her
-pounding along behind, they attempted a ruse. The helm was put hard
-over, so that they steamed in a direction at right angles to their
-former course, and in a few minutes their engines were stopped. The
-_Banshee_ lay perfectly still. The crew rose on their elbows and peeped
-over the bulwarks, following the course of the gunboat by the flashes
-of her guns and by the rockets she was sending up madly to attract or
-warn her consorts. So they saw her go plunging past them and firing
-madly into the dark abyss of the night.
-
-After resting five minutes on the heaving wave, the _Banshee_ started
-again as noiselessly as she could. One danger remained--the third
-cordon. You may be sure they stared wide-eyed round the horizon as
-morning broke. With the _Banshee_ so heavily laden it would be fatal to
-meet a cruiser in the daylight.
-
-No smoke visible--no sail! All that day and for two days more they
-steamed on with fear beside them. On the evening of the third day they
-steamed proudly into Nassau, though a heavy list to starboard made them
-present a rather drunken appearance.
-
-The profits of blockade-running may be estimated by the fact that
-though the _Banshee_ afterwards became a total loss by capture, she
-earned enough on her eight successful trips to pay the shareholders
-700 per cent. on their investment. The Northerners turned her into a
-gunboat, but she asserted her sympathies for the South by running foul
-of the jetty in the naval yard at Washington.
-
-On another run in the _Night Hawk_, after getting safely through the
-blockading fleet, they grounded on the bar, and two launches speedily
-boarded them. The Northerners were very excited, and evidently expected
-to meet with desperate resistance, for firing of revolvers and wild
-cutlass blows surprised the crew of the _Night Hawk_, who stood quietly
-on the poop waiting to be taken prisoners.
-
-“This roused my wrath,” says Taylor, “and I expostulated with the
-Lieutenant upon his firing on unarmed men.”
-
-They then cooled down and began a search for portable valuables; but,
-perhaps because they feared Colonel Lamb might come to the rescue, they
-made haste about this, and then set fire to the ship fore and aft.
-
-They were quickened in their departure by the humour of an Irish
-fireman, who sang out lustily:
-
-“Begorra! begorra! but we shall all be in the air in a minute, with
-this ship full of gunpowder!”
-
-The men who were holding Taylor dropped him “like a hot potato,” and
-away they rowed, taking some of the crew as prisoners. The gunpowder
-existed only in the fancy of the Irishman.
-
-The blockaders opened fire on the _Night Hawk_, which was blazing
-merrily, and Colonel Lamb shelled the blockading fleet; then through
-the boiling surf the rest of the crew rowed safely, wet through and
-exhausted.
-
-With the rising tide she bumped herself over the sandbank, still
-burning. They telegraphed to Wilmington for help, and some 300 negroes
-came down the river to assist in baling and pumping. So they managed
-to save the _Night Hawk_ and make her fit to undertake other voyages,
-though to look at she was no beauty, for her sides were all corrugated
-with the heat, and her stern twisted, and not a bit of woodwork on her
-was left unconsumed by the fire. Yet she managed to stagger across the
-Atlantic through some very bad weather.
-
-Such were some of the adventures of the blockade-runners in the Civil
-War of the United States. To those who bought the ships it was a
-matter of pecuniary profit merely; to the Southerners in Richmond,
-Wilmington, and Charleston, and even on the plantations inland, the
-arrival of these vessels staved off famine and cold and nakedness. To
-the Northerners they meant a prolongation of the unequal struggle, and
-it was no wonder that they dealt rather harshly with those whom they
-caught.
-
-A rich lady of South Carolina wrote during this war: “I have had an
-excellent pair of shoes given me. For more than a year I have had none
-but some dreadful things made by our carpenter, and they do hurt my
-feet so. Uncle William says the men who went into the war to save their
-negroes are abjectly wretched. Neither side now cares a fig for these
-beloved negroes, and would send them all to heaven in a hand-basket to
-win the fight.”
-
-The negroes on the whole were very faithful to their old masters, for
-many of them had been treated with all justice and kindness. Of course,
-some of them gave themselves airs on becoming free and independent
-voters. One old negro said to his master: “When you all had de power
-you was good to me, and I’ll protect you now, massa. No niggers nor
-nobody shall tech you. If you want anything, call for Sambo. Ahem! I
-mean call for Mr. Samuel: dat my name now.”
-
- From “Running the Blockade,” by T. E. Taylor. By kind permission of
- Mr. John Murray.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-THE FIRST IRONCLADS (1862)
-
- Will they sink or swim?--Captain Ericsson, the Swede--The
- _Merrimac_ raised and armoured--The _Monitor_ built by private
- venture--_Merrimac_ surprises Fort Monroe--The _Cumberland_
- attacked--The silent monster comes on--Her ram makes an
- impression--Morris refuses to strike his flag--The _Cumberland_
- goes down--The _Congress_ is next for attention--On fire and
- forced to surrender--Blows up at midnight--The _Minnesota_ aground
- shows she can bite--General panic--Was it Providence?--A light
- at sea--Only a cheese-box on a raft--Sunday’s fight between two
- monsters--The _Merrimac_ finds she is deeply hurt, wounded to
- death--The four long hours--Worden and Buchanan both do their
- best--Signals for help--The fiery end of the _Whitehall_ gunboat.
-
-
-The War of Secession between the Federals and Confederate States
-gave rise to a new kind of warship--the ironclad. The _Merrimac_ was
-converted into such a vessel by the South, and the _Monitor_ was built
-by the North, or Federals, in the space of 100 days.
-
-Most people, experts and others, predicted a watery grave for a
-ship cased in iron. Very few ventured on board at the launching of
-the _Monitor_, and even the builders provided a steam-tug to save
-the passengers in case she went to the bottom. But the _Monitor_,
-after the first graceful dip, sat like a wild duck on a mere, being
-flat-bottomed, having a turret 9 feet high, capable of revolving, with
-two circular portholes to fire from. Captain Ericsson, a Swede, was her
-architect.
-
-The South had seized all the forts and dockyards below Chesapeake Bay,
-and had struck great consternation into the Federal hearts. When the
-Federals burnt and evacuated the Norfolk Navy Yard they scuttled the
-steam frigate _Merrimac_; but the Confederates raised her, plated her
-with railroad iron, and fitted her with a slanting roof to serve as
-a shield. The _Merrimac_, when finished, did not take the water so
-gracefully as the _Monitor_, for her weight was so enormous that she
-nearly broke her back in launching. It was known that both sides were
-at work upon some monster of the deep, but which would be ready first
-no one could predict.
-
-However, on the 8th of March the _Merrimac_ left Norfolk, accompanied
-by two other war vessels--the _Jamestown_ and _Yorktown_--and followed
-by a little fleet of armed tugs. She was heading for Newport News,
-where there was a Federal garrison, guarded by the sailing frigates the
-_Cumberland_ and the _Congress_, which rode at anchor within half a
-mile of the shore battery. Their boats were hanging at the booms, and
-the week’s washing fluttered in the rigging--as peaceful a scene as
-could be imagined.
-
-But the look-out on Fortress Monroe caught sight of a monster vessel
-ploughing the waves, and signalled to the war-ships to get under way.
-The _Minnesota_ had her steam up and soon went off towards Newport
-News, where the _Cumberland_ and _Congress_ lay on blockading duty.
-The crew of the _Cumberland_, seeing a strange ship come round Craney
-Island, recognized her as the expected ironclad. All hands were beat
-to quarters, and the _Cumberland_ swung across the channel in order
-to bring her broadside to bear. The slanting roof of the _Merrimac_
-puzzled them, and the long iron ram churned up the water as she
-advanced relentlessly and in silence. At the distance of a mile
-the _Cumberland_ began to use her pivot guns, but the _Merrimac_
-made no reply, only steamed majestically on, though broadside after
-broadside was poured upon her like hail; but the heavy shot glanced off
-harmlessly, and ever the _Merrimac_ came closer and closer.
-
-As she passed the _Congress_ the _Merrimac_ fired one broadside, and
-then, leaving her to the tender mercies of the _Jamestown_ and the
-_Yorktown_, made straight for the _Cumberland_. Both the Federal ships
-discharged their broadsides against the armoured monster. She just
-quivered under the blow and came on in silence. The National battery
-at Newport News opened upon her at point-blank range, and every
-man on board the _Cumberland_ drew a breath of relief. “Now,” they
-thought, “our massive guns will teach her a lesson.” But it seemed as
-if the _Merrimac_ had received no damage. Not a soul could be seen on
-her decks, not a splinter on her sides; but she was coming towards
-them--coming madly, as it seemed, to destruction.
-
-What did the _Merrimac_ mean? Why did she not fire her guns? The crew
-on the _Cumberland_ soon found out, when the great ram struck their
-frigate amidships with a shock that threw every man down on the deck,
-crushed in the ribs, and heeled the ship over till her topsail yards
-almost splashed the water. The _Merrimac_ reversed her engines and
-backed away under a murderous broadside, replying as she too turned
-her broadside with a deadly volley of shot and shell, which swept her
-enemy’s decks of guns and men. Meanwhile the water was pouring into the
-terrible gaping wound in the side of the _Cumberland_; but Lieutenant
-Morris, who was in command, fought her to the last with unflinching
-courage. Yet once again the _Merrimac_ turned her prow and crushed in
-close upon the old wound, and the great oak ribs snapped like twigs
-under the weight of iron. The _Cumberland_ began to ride lower in the
-water, but still aimed with calm accuracy at the _Merrimac_, riddling
-her smoke-stack and bending her anchor. But the _Merrimac_ lay off a
-little and poured a storm of shot into the sinking frigate, dealing
-death and mutilation. Yet Morris refused to yield, and the whole crew
-in their desperate plight thought of nothing but saving the honour of
-the flag. One sailor, with both his legs shot off, hobbled up to his
-gun on bleeding stumps and pulled the lanyard, then fell in a swoon by
-the gun.
-
-“She is sinking!” was the cry; but they still fought on, though the
-frigate was settling deeper every minute. Then the water came gurgling
-into the portholes, and choked the guns and drowned the gunners. The
-last gunner was knee-deep in water when he fired the last shot, and
-then the _Cumberland_ careened over on her side. Down she sank amid a
-whirl of circling waters, a caldron of wave and air--caught in one, and
-vomiting steam all around and over the dying vessel, and in a moment
-400 men were on the verge of death, some being carried down into the
-revolving vortex, some being cast up on the outside, some swimming
-frantically towards the shore, or reaching desperately for fragments of
-wreck. About 100 went down with the ship. The chaplain went down with
-the wounded who were below deck.
-
-It took forty-five minutes for the _Merrimac_ to finish off the
-_Cumberland_, and she now turned her ram towards the _Congress_, which
-spread all sail and endeavoured to get clear away.
-
-But at this moment the _Congress_ grounded and became helpless. The
-gunboats of the Confederates were still firing heavily at her from a
-respectful distance, but as they saw the _Merrimac_ approaching they
-too drew near under her protection.
-
-The _Merrimac_ chose her position at about 100 yards’ range, despising
-the guns of the _Congress_, and raked her fore and aft, dismounting
-guns and covering her deck with mangled limbs. In three places the
-_Congress_ burst into flames, and the dry timber crackled and blazed
-and smoked like a volcano. The men could not stand by the guns for the
-fervent heat. The wounded were slowly burned alive. The officers could
-not bear this sight, and hauled down the flag.
-
-A tug was sent by the Confederates to take off the prisoners from the
-burning wreck, but, unfortunately, some sharpshooters from the shore
-still kept up a hot fire upon the Southern vessels. In consequence
-of this the _Merrimac_ fired another broadside into the sinking
-_Congress_, and killed many more of her crew. The _Congress_, being
-deserted, still burned on till darkness fell, and the ruddy glare lit
-up the moving waters as if they had been a sea of blood. At midnight
-the fire reached her magazine, and with a thunder of explosion the
-_Congress_ blew up into a myriad fragments. The Northern warship
-_Minnesota_ had also grounded, so had the frigate _St. Lawrence_, and
-the _Merrimac_, while it was still light enough to aim a gun, steamed
-towards them to see what little attention she could bestow upon them.
-The _Merrimac_ was, perhaps, a little overconfident in her coat of
-mail. Anyhow, she risked receiving a broadside at very short range from
-the heavy guns of the _Minnesota_.
-
-A shot seems to have entered her porthole and damaged her machinery,
-for she hesitated, put about, and returned to safe anchorage behind
-Craney Island.
-
-Meanwhile, a very natural terror was gnawing at the hearts of the
-Federal crews and garrison in Hampton Roads.
-
-They had listened to the sounds of the conflict and seen the dire
-results in wonder, almost in despair. The _Merrimac_, they said, was
-invulnerable. Not a shot could pierce her. On Sunday morning she
-would return and destroy the whole Federal fleet at her leisure. She
-would shell Newport News Point and Fortress Monroe, at the entrance
-of Hampton Roads, set everything on fire, and drive the garrisons
-from their guns. Nay, as the telegraph wires flashed the news to
-Washington, it was foreseen with an agony of horror that the _Merrimac_
-might ascend the Potomac and lay the capital in ashes. Baltimore,
-Philadelphia, New York, Boston, were in a state of panic. No one knew
-what might not follow. It was a blind horror of a new and unknown
-danger. For the experience of one hour had rendered the shipbuilding
-of the past a scorn and a laughing-stock. Wooden frigates might go to
-the scrap-heap now. With the _Cumberland_ had gone down morally all
-the great navies of Europe. A new order had to be found for ship and
-battery, and steel must take the place of planks of oak.
-
-Such a night of anxiety and alarm the Northern States had never
-experienced. It was ten o’clock at night when the look-out in the
-garrison thought he saw lights out at sea in Chesapeake Bay. He called
-his mate. By-and-by they made them out to be two small steamers heading
-for Old Point Comfort. An eye-witness from Fort Monroe thus describes
-what happened:
-
-“Oh, what a night that was! I can never forget it. There was no fear
-during the long hours--danger, I find, does not bring that--but there
-was a longing for some interposition of God and waiting upon Him, from
-whom we felt our help must come, in earnest, fervent prayer, while not
-neglecting all the means of martial defence. Fugitives from Newport
-News kept arriving. Ladies and children had walked the long ten miles
-from Newport News, feeling that their presence only embarrassed their
-brave husbands. Sailors from the _Congress_ and _Cumberland_ came, one
-of them with his ship’s flag bound about his waist, as he had swum
-with it ashore. Dusky fugitives came mournfully fleeing from a fate
-worse than death--slavery. These entered my cabin hungry and weary.
-The heavens were aflame with the burning _Congress_. But there were no
-soldiers among the flying host. The sailors came only to seek another
-chance at the enemy, since the _Cumberland_ had gone down in deep
-waters, and the _Congress_ had gone upward, as if a chariot of fire,
-to convey the manly souls whose bodies had perished in that conflict
-upward to heaven.
-
- “The heavy night hung dark the hills and waters o’er,”
-
-but the night was not half so heavy as our hearts, nor so dark as our
-prospects. All at once a speck of light gleamed on the distant wave.
-It moved; it came nearer and nearer, and at ten o’clock at night the
-_Monitor_ appeared.
-
-“‘When the tale of bricks is doubled, Moses comes!’
-
-“I never more firmly believed in special Providence than at that hour.
-Even sceptics for the moment were converted, and said: ‘God has sent
-her!’ But how insignificant she looked! She was but a speck on the dark
-blue sea at night, almost a laughable object by day. The enemy call her
-‘a cheese-box on a raft,’ and the comparison is a good one. Could she
-meet the _Merrimac_? The morrow must determine, for, under God, the
-_Monitor_ is our only hope now.”
-
-Lieutenant Worden, the Commander of the _Monitor_, on arriving at
-Fort Monroe was instructed to lie alongside the _Minnesota_, to guard
-her in case of a night attack. At eleven o’clock she set out, and
-her arrival was hailed with delight by the men on board the frigate,
-though some shook their heads at the strange unshapely toy which a
-private individual had constructed to save the Federal fleet. But few
-slept that night. The odds against the _Monitor_ seemed too great. She
-mounted but two guns, while the _Merrimac_ carried ten. Sunday morning
-broke sunny and beautiful, and the sea was peaceful and calm. Near
-Sewell’s Point, opposite Hampton Roads, three vessels were at anchor,
-one of them the _Merrimac_.
-
-About nine o’clock glasses showed a stir amongst them, and instantly
-the _Monitor_ awoke to life and action, closing her iron hatches
-and putting on the dead-light covers. The _Monitor_, like a great
-girdle-cake, only stood 2 feet out of the water; her smooth surface was
-broken only by the turret and pilot-house.
-
-Then they saw the _Merrimac_ coming, looking like a submerged house,
-with roof only out of the water. After her came the _Jamestown_ and
-_Yorktown_, and a fleet of tug-boats crowded with ladies and gentlemen
-from Norfolk eager to see the fun.
-
-The _Merrimac_, entirely unconscious of the new enemy she had to
-encounter, steamed slowly along and fired upon the _Minnesota_, which
-was still aground. The _Minnesota_ replied with a broadside and the
-usual result; but the _Monitor_ steamed out from behind and boldly
-advanced to meet her antagonist, and when at a distance of half a
-mile Lieutenant Worden from the pilot-house gave the order to fire.
-The ball, weighing 170 pounds, rattled against the mailed side of the
-_Merrimac_. She staggered under the force of the concussion, and at
-once seemed to realize that in this floating turret she had no mean
-antagonist. At the range of only a few yards she poured in a terrible
-broadside. To her disgust, the shots seemed to have glided off and done
-no harm. Then the two vessels closed and poured a hail of heavy metal
-upon each other. The _Monitor_ being the quicker, would circle round
-the _Merrimac_, while the turret, turning with ease, always presented
-the guns to the foe.
-
-Worden in his pilot-house could speak through tubes to Lieutenant
-Green, who commanded the gunners in the tower. Once Green trained his
-guns on the _Merrimac’s_ water-line, and the shot penetrated.
-
-“Splendid, sir! splendid!” roared Worden. “You have made the iron fly.”
-
-But the spectators who lined the ramparts of Fort Monroe could not see
-what was happening for the clouds of smoke, and they stood, silent and
-wretched, almost afraid to look.
-
-But at last the veil parted, and they saw the little _Monitor_ lying
-alongside the _Merrimac_, trim and spiteful, with the Stars and Stripes
-flying proudly from her stern, and a great cheer arose from every
-throat. Then they saw the _Merrimac_ bear down upon the little flat
-cheese, as if to sink her. She struck fair and square, but the iron ram
-glided up on her low-sheathed deck and simply careened her over; but in
-so doing the _Merrimac_ showed her unarmed hull below the iron coat of
-mail, and the _Monitor_ planted one of her shots in a vital place.
-
-For four long hours had this strange duel lasted, the _Merrimac_
-firing heavily, the _Monitor_ steaming round and choosing her place
-and time, with careful aim at rudder, screw, and water-line. At last
-Buchanan, the Commander of the _Merrimac_, was severely wounded, and
-as his ship began to take in water through three gaping wounds, the
-helm was put over and the conqueror of yesterday limped away. But her
-last shot struck point-blank upon the iron grating of the pilot-house
-just where Lieutenant Worden was looking out. The concussion threw him
-down senseless, and minute pieces of iron and powder were driven into
-his eyes, so that he was blinded. When after a time he recovered his
-consciousness he asked:
-
-“Have I saved the _Minnesota_?”
-
-“Yes, sir, and whipped the _Merrimac_,” was the reply.
-
-“Then I care not what becomes of me,” murmured the Lieutenant.
-
-The _Merrimac_ slowly made her way to a safe anchorage under the
-batteries at Sewell’s Point. Here she signalled for help, and tugs came
-up, took her in tow, and escorted her to Norfolk. Her injuries were so
-severe that after months of work upon her she never ventured to quit
-her retreat, whereas the _Monitor_ seemed but slightly damaged. She had
-been hit twenty-two times, and only showed slight indentations, but a
-ball striking full on the pilot-house had bent a huge iron beam. The
-ram of the _Merrimac_ had torn off some of the plating from the side
-of the _Monitor_. The latter drew only 10 feet of water, and could go
-where the _Merrimac_ could not venture.
-
-But though the _Merrimac_ had fired her last shot, she gave the North
-a great fright in the night which followed the battle. At midnight
-thousands of people along the coast were roused from their sleep by
-cries that came over the water: “Fire! fire! For God’s sake, save us!”
-
-The shore was soon lined by spectators, who stood unable to get a
-boat to put out or help in any way. There was the gunboat _Whitehall_
-roaring with flames, and the dark figures of the crew were plainly
-visible on her deck, either wrapped in red fire or jumping into the
-deep water beneath.
-
-The _Whitehall’s_ shotted guns were going off here and there through
-the thick crowds or clustering houses, and one shell struck the
-hospital, making the inmates believe that the _Merrimac_ had returned.
-It transpired that a red-hot shot had been thrown from the _Merrimac_
-during the day and had lodged between the _Whitehall’s_ timbers, where
-the fire smouldered until late at night.
-
-The general conclusion from this momentous fight between the first
-ironclads was that “England’s naval supremacy is gone for ever.” But
-men are more potent than masses of metal. America and England have
-navies now in comparison with which the _Merrimac_ and _Monitor_ are
-but tin kettles. Yet we must remember that Russia, too, a few months
-ago possessed a strong navy as far as metal goes. But once again the
-Japanese proved to the world that it is in the hearts of brave men, the
-science of clever men, and the enduring patience of patriotic men, that
-the issues of victory or defeat are mainly determined.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-CAPTURE OF NEW ORLEANS (1862)
-
- New Orleans and its forts--Farragut despises craven counsel--The
- mortar-fleet in disguise--Fire-rafts rush down--A week of hot
- gun-fire--A dash through the defences--The _Varuna’s_ last
- shot--Oscar, aged thirteen--Ranged before the city--Anger of
- mob--Summary justice--Soldiers insulted in the streets--General
- Butler in command--Porter nearly blown up in council--Fort Jackson
- in ruins--“The fuse is out.”
-
-
-New Orleans, on the Mississippi River, was the great market of the
-South, a rich and powerful city of 200,000 inhabitants. Everything
-possible had been done to defend it from the Northern arms. Sixty miles
-below New Orleans the river makes a sharp bend, and here, fronting each
-other on either side, stood the forts of Jackson and St. Philip. These
-strong forts the Confederates had seized, and the Federal fleet had to
-pass them on its way to New Orleans. They were heavily armoured with
-180 pieces of ordinance, but besides the forts the warships would have
-to cut through an iron cable stretched across the river and supported
-by seven hulks and rafts. Above these were eighteen gunboats and
-floating batteries, with fire-rafts and rams; so that the city felt
-itself tolerably secure behind these obstructions, and laughed to scorn
-any thought of being besieged. Besides, had not English and French
-officers examined the forts and pronounced the attempt to pass them
-madness? But Commodore Farragut, who was in command of the National
-fleet, answered them in these words:
-
-“You may be right, gentlemen, but I was sent here to make the attempt.
-I came here to reduce or pass the forts and to take New Orleans, and I
-shall try it on.”
-
-The Federal mortar-fleet was getting ready for action. Topmasts were
-lowered, all spars and booms unshipped, the main-decks cleared, and
-armour of chain cables was improvised to protect the gunners. The ships
-were painted with mud to make them invisible. On the 17th of April
-the order was given to advance up-stream. There was a thick forest
-on the western bank, a low bank and marshy ground on the east. In
-order to confuse the enemy, the masts and rigging of the Northerners
-were festooned with leafy branches; others were sheathed with reeds
-to blend with the background of the river-bank. Five sloops of war
-waited behind the mortar-boats, carrying 104 guns; 150 boats supplied
-with grapnel-ropes, axes, and buckets, were ready to deal with the
-fire-ships. And they soon had the work to do, for one dark night a
-blazing raft came down upon them, lighting up water and bank, trees and
-rushes; but the _Westfield_ dashed into the burning pile and turned her
-hose upon it; and the boats leapt forth to hack and grapple and plunge
-the burning timbers into the river. Then cheers broke forth when the
-peril had been subdued.
-
-At 9 a.m. of the 16th of April Fort Jackson threw a shell into the
-Northern flotilla a mile off, and at once the mortar-boats replied,
-sending their big shells with great accuracy into the very ramparts.
-New Orleans, seventy-two miles away, distinctly heard the thunder of
-the bombardment, kept up for more than a week. The citadel was set on
-fire, the walls cracked and shattered, and the forts were flooded.
-The men on deck would fall down and sleep in the midst of the great
-thunder, so exhausted were they by toil night and day. On the second
-day the _Carleton_ received a shell into her magazine, which exploded,
-and she sank. At the end of a week, after all this terrible storm of
-flying metal, only one man had been killed and six wounded in the
-Federal fleet. But the forts had not been silenced.
-
-On the 24th of April, at 2 a.m., two red lights were run up on the
-flag-ship, and very soon the fleet was under way for the passage
-between the forts. As each ship passed it delivered its broadside and
-swept on towards the gunboats beyond. Fire-rafts kept floating down,
-and the roar of 500 cannon shook the air.
-
-The _Ithaca_ was riddled by shot and fell behind. The ram _Manasses_
-came down on the flag-ship, and Admiral Farragut got aground while
-trying to avoid her. His ship took fire from a fire-raft, but it was
-extinguished.
-
-Captain Boggs in the _Varuna_ sunk five gunboats one after another,
-then his vessel’s sides were stove in by a ram; but with his last
-broadside before he sank he disabled her. A boy named Oscar was on
-board the _Varuna_, only thirteen years old, and during the fight was
-very busy passing ammunition to the gunners. All covered with dirt and
-powder-begrimed, he was met by Captain Boggs, who asked where he was
-running in such a hurry.
-
-“To get a passing-box, sir. My other was smashed by a ball.”
-
-When the _Varuna_ went down with her crew Boggs missed the boy, and
-feared he was among the drowned. But presently he saw the lad gallantly
-swimming towards the _Oneida_, a neighbour ship. Oscar clambered on
-board, dripping and grinning from ear to ear, as if he had just enjoyed
-the finest fun in life. Seeing his Captain, he put his hand to his
-forehead in the usual salute, and saying, “All right, sir; I report
-myself on board,” shook off the water and was ready for the next duty
-to hand.
-
-On the morning of the 25th the Federal ships ranged up near the city
-batteries and silenced their fire in a few minutes. Soon the whole
-fleet was moored opposite New Orleans, with the Stars and Stripes
-proudly flying from every masthead, and the bands playing their
-national airs.
-
-The citizens of New Orleans had rested in full persuasion that they
-were absolutely safe behind their forts and gunboats, and now that they
-saw the enemy actually threatening their city, they were transported by
-a passion of panic, mortification, and rage.
-
-When they first heard that the forts had been passed and that the
-Yankee ships were coming up the river, the mob of the city became so
-desperate in their fury that martial law had to be proclaimed. At
-least, they said, these hated Yankees should not get the wealth of the
-city, and they put the torch to everything that would burn. Offices,
-banks, ships, cotton, piers, warehouses, coal, and sugar--all were
-fired and consumed in one vast conflagration. The river was dotted with
-floating islands of flame, as richly freighted merchantmen were fired
-and cut adrift.
-
-The Confederate General Lovell and his troops were withdrawn, as no
-reasonable promise of a successful defence remained.
-
-Two iron rams of immense power which had been in building were
-destroyed before Admiral Farragut arrived.
-
-As soon as the fleet appeared before the city some of the citizens who
-favoured the Union foolishly expressed their delight by cheers. Civil
-war is always conducted with greater bitterness than war with a foreign
-Power. These unfortunates were promptly shot down in the street or on
-the quay.
-
-[Illustration: SHOT DOWN BY THEIR FELLOW-CITIZENS
-
-During the siege of New Orleans, some of those who favoured the North
-were foolish enough to cheer when the Northern fleet arrived.]
-
-On the 26th of April the city was formally surrendered, and a body
-of troops was landed to raise the Stars and Stripes over the public
-buildings. Crowds of angry men followed the marines with hoot and
-yell, and were only prevented from inflicting actual outrage by the
-fear of being shelled from the ships. It is said that Captain Bailey
-and his men on landing at the crowded pier were jostled and jeered
-at by angry bands of rowdies. We have to remember this when we pass
-judgment on General Butler’s order to treat all ladies who insulted
-the troops as disorderly women. We may wonder how the Germans would
-have treated the French in Paris had the Parisians dared to conduct
-themselves so outrageously.
-
-General Butler writes thus to a friend: “We were 2,500 men in a city
-seven miles long by two to four wide, of 150,000 inhabitants, all
-hostile, bitter, defiant, explosive--standing literally on a magazine.
-The devil had entered the hearts of the women to stir up strife in
-every way. Every opprobrious epithet, every insulting gesture, was
-made by these bejewelled, becrinolined and laced creatures, calling
-themselves ladies, towards my soldiers and officers from the windows of
-houses and in the streets. How long do you think our flesh and blood
-could have stood this?...”
-
-It is clear that General Butler was as angry as the ladies. The _Albany
-Journal_ adds this fact: “Women who have been regarded as the pattern
-of refinement and good breeding not only assail our men with the
-tongue, but with more material weapons. Buckets of slops are emptied
-upon them as they pass, decayed oranges and rotten eggs are hurled at
-them. The forbearance of our troops is wonderful.”
-
-Commander Porter had been left behind to receive the capitulation of
-the forts Jackson and St. Philip, when the Federal fleet steamed up to
-New Orleans. He pitched a few shells into Fort Jackson, but there “was
-no response; the fight had all been taken out of them.” On the 28th
-a flag of truce from Fort Jackson came on board the _Harriet Lane_
-with offer to surrender. When officers of both sides were assembled in
-the cabin of the _Harriet Lane_ discussing the details of surrender,
-an officer came below and informed Commander Porter that the Southern
-battery _Louisiana_ had been set on fire and was drifting down upon
-them. She was a steam floating battery of 4,000 tons, mounting sixteen
-heavy guns. The battery had been fired so quietly that no one suspected
-any such thing until it blazed up, for flags of truce were flying upon
-both forts and ships.
-
-Porter proceeded with the conference as if nothing were the matter.
-Soon another officer came down, reporting that the battery, on fire
-from stem to stern, was drifting down upon them.
-
-Turning to the Confederate officers, Porter asked: “Has she powder and
-loaded guns on board, gentlemen?”
-
-“We presume so, but we know nothing of naval matters here.”
-
-Just at this moment the hot guns began to go off and throw shot and
-shell at random amongst friends and foes.
-
-Commander Porter, with severe coolness of manner, only said: “Then we
-will go on with our business, gentlemen. If you don’t mind the effect
-of the explosion which is soon to come, we can stand it.”
-
-Fortunately, the _Louisiana_ drifted across towards St. Philip, and
-exploded her magazine when just abreast of it. The sound of the
-explosion was heard for miles up and down the river. When the smoke
-cleared away the battery had gone into fragments and sunk in the
-Mississippi. If it had drifted upon the _Harriet Lane_, as had been
-intended, and blown into smithereens the consulting officers of both
-North and South, that would have been a consequence of treachery almost
-worse than the insults of the New Orleans ladies or the indiscreet
-edict of General Butler.
-
-Fort Jackson had crumbled into powder under the impact of the huge
-shells from the mortars. On the first night of the bombardment the
-magazine was in such danger that only wet blankets saved it from
-blowing up. One bomb came leaping into the officers’ mess-room when
-they were dining. With a thud and a rumble it rolled under the very
-table. All rose and clustered in a corner in some consternation,
-expecting to go skywards with the crockery. They waited one minute, two
-minutes. Not yet had death come! Then a young officer crawled under the
-table and burst into a hearty laugh.
-
-“What is it, Jimmy?”
-
-“Oh, you can go on with that Irish stew now. The fuse is out.”
-
-They returned to their dinners with such appetite as they could.
-Fortunately, men who are living at high pressure and strain, meeting
-death at every turn, are easily moved to see the funny side of things.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-THE SIEGE OF RICHMOND (1862 AND 1865)
-
- Fair Oaks a drawn battle--Robert Lee succeeds Johnston--Reforms in
- the army--Humours of the sentinels--Chaffing the niggers--Their
- idea of liberty--The pickets chum together--Stuart’s raid--A duel
- between a Texan and a German--Effect of music on soldiers--A
- terrible retreat to James River--Malvern Hill battle-scenes--Three
- years after--General Grant before Richmond--Coloured troops enter
- the Southern capital in triumph--Lee surrenders--Friends once more.
-
-
-The battle of Fair Oaks had been fought, and General McClellan began to
-entrench himself in view of the siege of Richmond. It had been a drawn
-battle: the South had taken some guns, but the Federal forces were too
-strong for them, and swamps, rough ground, and woods all helped to
-throw the South into confusion. Upon a field hardly a mile square were
-lying some 7,000 or 8,000 dead and wounded, many of them having been
-there for twenty-four hours. Some had gone deep into the muddy swamps
-and stuck fast there, dying or laying the foundation of some terrible
-disease. Acres of forest had been slashed, or cut about 5 feet from the
-ground, to prevent the passage of troops and artillery.
-
-The Southern Commander-in-Chief, General Johnston, had been killed
-by a shell in this battle, but the substitution of General Robert E.
-Lee as Commander led to great reforms in the Confederate Army. Lee at
-once removed the camps from malarious swamps; he provided supplies of
-wholesome provisions, and reclothed the hungry, starving and mutinous
-men, so that in a few weeks they looked stronger, fought better, and
-behaved as men under discipline.
-
-Every evening the countersign was given out, and sentinels were posted
-to prevent spies crossing the Chickahominy. In the Federal Army were
-men of many nations--Scotch, Irish, German, Norsemen, and others. It
-was told of an Irish sentinel that he stopped a stranger.
-
-“Halt! Who comes there?”
-
-“Me--a friend of the chaplain.”
-
-“Have ye the countersign?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Faith! an’ if ye were a friend of the divil and had no counthersign ye
-couldn’t pass this way--not on no account, sor.”
-
-“But I tell you I am a friend of your chaplain, and I forgot to ask him
-for the countersign. Don’t you see?”
-
-“Is that it, sor? Then, be jabers! what’s to prevint me giving to ye
-the counthersign, eh?”
-
-“Nothing, I suppose, if you will be so kind.”
-
-“Come closer, and, be jabers! I’ll just whisper it in your ear. There!
-Now stand and answer. Who comes here?”
-
-“A friend.”
-
-“A friend! Right! and maybe ye have the counthersign?”
-
-“I have; it is ‘Good-night, mother.’”
-
-“Quite correct, sor. Pass on, and good luck to ye!”
-
-A long siege is such dull work that the Northerners used to amuse
-themselves by chaffing the young negroes when they caught them in the
-lines. Perhaps they would give the nigger-boy a bit of food, then
-suddenly say:
-
-“Sambo, what relation are you to Jeff Davis’s coachman?”
-
-The black eyes would roll and the whites enlarge as the grinning nigger
-replied:
-
-“I ain’t no sort o’ connexion with that ere, sah.”
-
-“You’re a Secesh, I reckon.”
-
-“No, sah; I’m Union boy.”
-
-“Oh, then we shall have to flog you, Sambo. Don’t you know that in this
-part of McClellan’s army we are all at heart good rebels?”
-
-“Lord ha’ mercy! I never thought o’ that; and now I do think on it, I
-do agree dat I am a bit of a rebel, anyhow.”
-
-Then all the listeners would burst out laughing at poor Sambo, and he
-left the camp befogged and bewildered.
-
-Once an old grey-headed negro came into camp, and some young officers
-began to tackle him.
-
-“Think we can take Richmond, boy?”
-
-“Dar be right smart o’ men round here, but I dunno ’bout dar being able
-for to take Richmond, sah.”
-
-“‘Right smart o’ men!’” said a Captain. “Why, this is only a flea-bite
-to what’s coming to eat up the rebel army. You’ll see them coming
-up like locusts. Here’s McClellan with half a million around here,
-and there’s Burnside down there, coming from Carolina with a hundred
-thousand more, and General Banks with two hundred thousand more, and
-General Fremont--why, he can’t count his men he has so many!”
-
-The old fellow opened his eyes wider and wider as the list of imaginary
-armies was run over. Then, gazing up intently in the officer’s face:
-
-“Got all dem men?” he asked in a subdued voice.
-
-“Yes, and more.”
-
-The negro threw out his arms and ejaculated:
-
-“Oh! dear Mesopotamia! Whatever will become of massa, I wonder?”
-
-The negroes wanted to be free, but they did not want to work. Many of
-them who had run away from their masters were employed by the Federals
-in unloading stores. They worked from daylight until dark, singing over
-it, talking, shouting, arguing, making such a shindy. A Virginian negro
-never did a quarter of a day’s work on his master’s plantations, and
-they soon found out the difference when they became free niggers and
-earned wages. They did not much relish their rise. A party of niggers
-would come up to the Colonel’s tent.
-
-“Well, boys, what made you leave your master? Wasn’t he kind to you?”
-
-“Oh yes, massa berry kind--berry kind indeed.”
-
-“Well, didn’t he give you enough to eat?”
-
-“Oh yes, plenty of dat, plenty of dat--’nuff to eat.”
-
-“Well, boys, what made you leave him?”
-
-“Why, de trufe am dat he made us work ’mong sugar-canes,” said one.
-
-“And we heerd ’bout de Norf am such a nice place, so we tort dat we
-would go to um,” said another.
-
-“Nice place? Why, how do you mean a nice place?”
-
-“Well, sah, we was told dat nobody did no work up dar.”
-
-Even the white peasants in Virginia seemed to be lazy and indolent.
-They lived in little cabins, and only the very young or old were left,
-as every able-bodied man was in the army. They were dressed in homespun
-and spoke with a drawl. They did not wish to be richer, content with
-one acre and a single cow--Tories of a most old-fashioned kind; and the
-women, like the Boers, were far more dangerous rebels than the men, and
-tried to entrap unwary Federals when they got them drinking in their
-houses.
-
-All round by the river four miles from Richmond was a succession of
-dark swamp, yellow field, and brown hill-side. Batteries were placed
-on all the ridges, guarded on either side by woods and in front by
-earthworks. The Confederates on the other side of the river had
-fewer trees but stronger earthworks. On the 1st of June there was an
-artillery duel, begun by the Richmond batteries, but they had to beat
-a retreat into the woods before the precision of some German gunners.
-Sometimes the pickets of both armies were so close to each other that
-they made an agreement not to fire at one another. Then they got to
-exchanging newspapers and tobacco, telling the news, and altogether
-behaving as if they were rational human beings, and not machines
-sent to kill one another for political ideals far beyond their ken.
-Once when a New Jersey regiment was upon picket Federal scouts were
-being served with their allowance of coffee, and one of these latter
-observing a Southerner gazing wistfully at his smoking cup, beckoned to
-him to come over and have a drink. He came, drank, smacked his lips,
-and walked slowly back. Then he looked round and said:
-
-“I say, friend, how many times a month do you fellows get this good
-coffee?”
-
-“Oh, just three times a day,” said the Jersey man.
-
-“Three times a day! Why, if that’s true I’ll not stay a day longer in
-the Confederate Army. Here, lad, I give myself up.” And the fellow
-actually let his friend take him prisoner.
-
-On the 20th of June General McClellan reported that he had 156,839 men,
-but he could get no reinforcements, and the armies of the South were
-increasing. The rains were making quagmires all around, and disease
-was rife among the troops. About this time the Confederate General
-Stuart led a successful raid with 1,200 horse and two pieces of
-artillery round the rear of the Federals, driving in their cavalry
-pickets till he came to Garlick’s Landing, where he destroyed two
-schooners and many waggons and captured many prisoners. One Federal--a
-German Dragoon--scorned to fly with his comrades, and fought a duel
-with a Texan trooper. The German was a veteran in the wars of Europe,
-and attacked the Texan, who was a little in advance of his troop. Both
-were skilled swordsmen, and while they fought the rest pulled rein
-and looked on. The German sat his horse as if he were a part of the
-animal and wielded his sword with parry, cut, and thrust like lightning
-flash. The Texan, on his fleet barb, wheeled swiftly round and round,
-seeking in vain for an opening. At last the Texan slashed the German’s
-shoulder, and as blood spirted from the wound the Texans, looking on,
-raised a cheer. But as quick as thought, with a back-stroke the German
-cut through the sleeve and flesh of the Texan’s left arm, and his blood
-began to flow. Then the Texan backed his horse and spurred again upon
-his opponent, making a lunge at his breast. This the Dragoon parried
-with great dexterity, and brought down his sharp blade upon the other’s
-shoulder. Thereat the Texan wheeled his horse once more, drew a pistol
-and shot the Dragoon through the heart.
-
-[Illustration: A DUEL BETWEEN A TEXAN AND A GERMAN
-
-After a successful raid by the Southerners, the Federals had almost all
-fled, but one--a German dragoon--scorned to do so, and instead attacked
-a Texan. The other Southerners let them fight a duel, and the German
-was having the best of it, when the Texan drew a pistol and shot him
-dead.]
-
-Colonel Estran, a Prussian officer in the service of the South, who
-witnessed this scene, but disapproved of the Texan having recourse to
-his pistol, writes thus: “Much moved by his fate, I ordered a grave to
-receive the remains of the brave German trooper. We buried him in his
-regimentals, with his trusty sword on his breast and his pistols by his
-side. I then sent for the Texan, and, after reprimanding him severely
-for his cowardly conduct, I ordered him to seek service in some other
-corps, telling him that I could not think of allowing a fellow of
-his stamp to remain in my regiment. The Texan scowled at me with his
-cat-like eyes, and, muttering a curse, mounted his horse and rode away.”
-
-I think some of us may deem that the Texan was hardly treated by this
-Prussian officer who felt so indignant at the shooting of the German
-trooper. The Texan had received two severe wounds. He was not bound to
-fight only with the sword. He carried pistols; so did the German. Why?
-if they were not to be used, why carry them? It was the Texan’s duty to
-kill the German, and he did so. No wonder the poor fellow muttered a
-curse.
-
-Days of disaster were coming for the Northern Army. They were spread
-along the river and through the swamps for more than twenty miles.
-The South could sally out of Richmond and strike any one point before
-support could be sent up. Part of the army was north of the river, part
-south. They dared not march on Richmond, now so strongly fortified,
-and to retreat was fatal. General Jackson had joined General Lee, and
-every day there was fierce fighting. In the battle of Gaine’s Mill,
-where the North lost twenty-two guns, the Federal General Butterfield
-at a critical moment came coolly down the knoll in the thick of a hot
-fire, and sword in hand, seized the colours, waved them aloft, and so
-encouraged the valour of his regiment, shouting:
-
-“Your ammunition is never exhausted while you have your bayonets; and
-use them to the socket, my boys!”
-
-Seventy thousand men were hurling grape, canister, and bullet against
-30,000. It was one loud and continuous roar. It was only gradually that
-it was forced upon the Federal troops that they were beaten and were in
-full retreat to the James River.
-
-Battles are like games of chess. The great thing is to bring as many
-pieces into play as you can and mass them on one or two points. The
-Federals had over 100,000 fighting men, but only 30,000 were engaged in
-the battle of Gaine’s Mill.
-
-On the 28th McClellan wrote to the Secretary for War: “I have lost
-the battle because my force was too small. If I save this army now I
-tell you plainly that I owe no thanks to you or to any other person in
-Washington. You have done your best to sacrifice this army.”
-
-The Federal rearguard did their best to cover the retreat. They blew up
-the ammunition which had to be deserted, emptied the barrels of whisky
-and molasses, bent the muskets, and dismantled the forsaken waggons.
-But the roads were thronged with the sick and wounded, and hundreds lay
-down to die in the awful sun.
-
-Ever the victorious South were riding in upon them and making havoc.
-On one of these charges General Butterfield, seeing the utter misery
-and downheartedness of the men, gathered together all the regimental
-bands and placed them at the head of a brigade. In one great burst of
-sound, which rose above the clamour of the battle, they started “The
-Star-spangled Banner.” With the first few notes the men’s spirits rose
-and a new energy came to them. They stepped out and sang lustily, and
-other regiments caught the brave infection and cheered in chorus.
-
-Such are the uses of music in war. In our own regiments in the Boer
-War, when the men got weary with the long march, a Colonel would shout
-to his sergeants: “Have you any men who can sing? Put them in front.”
-Then the regiment would step out and forget their weariness.
-
-The _Richmond Dispatch_ describes the battle-field thus: “Money was
-found abundantly among the slain. One man found not less than 150
-dollars in gold. One lucky finder had no less than six chronometers
-ticking in his pocket at the same time. Our men seemed to take great
-delight in assuming Federal officers’ uniforms, and strutted about
-serio-comically, much to the amusement of powder-begrimed youths who
-sat lolling and smoking in the shade. The cannon and arms captured
-in this battle were numerous and of very superior workmanship. The
-twenty-six pieces were the most beautiful we have ever seen, while
-immense piles of guns could be seen on every hand, many even hardly
-tarnished.”
-
-The road to James River was strewn with stragglers, tired to death.
-Hospitals were filled to overflowing. When they came to White Oak Swamp
-Bridge there was a block of waggons, cannon, ambulances, etc. Twenty
-rows of waggons stood side by side; teamsters swore, and horses gibbed,
-and officers shouted.
-
-A Confederate officer, writing of the battle of Malvern Hill, describes
-how the gunboats on the James River helped the Federal retreat, how
-shot from rifled guns came hurtling through the woods, tearing down
-the largest trees. “We passed over four lines of our own men who lay
-close to the ground and dare not rise to face the grape and canister.
-Our men trampled them into the mud like logs. One man in his haste to
-get out of danger shoved me on one side, and just at that instant a
-canister-shot tore his head off. As you may suppose, I was not much
-vexed at his want of politeness. Early next morning I rode over the
-battle-ground. I came upon numbers of dead and dying horses--and the
-wounded! One, a fair-haired Yankee boy of sixteen, was lying with both
-legs broken, half of his body submerged in water, his teeth clenched,
-his finger-nails buried in the flesh, his whole body quivering with
-agony and benumbed with cold. In this case my pity got the better of my
-resentment, and I dismounted, pulled him out of the water and wrapped
-him in my blanket, for which he seemed very grateful. One of the most
-touching things I saw was a couple of brothers, both wounded, who had
-crawled together, and one of them, in the act of arranging a pillow for
-the other with a blanket, had fallen. They had died with their arms
-around one another, and their cheeks together. But your heart will
-sicken at these details, as mine did at seeing them, and I will cease.”
-
-The word “resentment” in this letter reveals the bitter feeling
-that springs up when men of the same nation are at war. The battle
-of Malvern Hill was the fiercest of the seven days’ battles, and
-the loss on both sides was terrible. When the troops came in sight
-of James River, muddy current and low banks, they rushed down with
-mad impetuosity. Many plunged into the stream in a very frenzy of
-delight. Those who for hours had suffered agonies from thirst now
-stood knee-deep in the water and drank like fish. The horses were as
-delighted as the men, and neighed to their friends. Here the troops
-rested and enjoyed the supplies sent up from White House. But a storm
-came on the 2nd of July and changed all to mud and sticky surfaces; but
-the sound gave up their tents to the wounded, and soon many steamers
-took the poor victims of the fight to a more comfortable abode.
-
-McClellan had lost 15,000 men in the awful struggle of the last seven
-days, but the South had suffered more heavily, and Richmond was crowded
-with the wounded and dying. The President thanked the General in a
-letter, saying: “I am satisfied that yourself, officers, and men have
-done the best you could.”
-
-It was not until three years after this--in April, 1865--that Richmond
-was evacuated by General Lee before Generals Grant and Sheridan.
-President Davis was in church when an orderly, splashed with mud,
-walked up the aisle and handed him a paper. In the first glance he
-saw that all was over, and a few hours after he was in full flight.
-On Monday morning Weitzel with his army, composed partly of coloured
-troops, marched into Richmond with bands playing. The city had been
-fired and the stores plundered. Main Street was in ruins, and the
-bridges over the river were broken. A thousand prisoners were taken and
-500 pieces of artillery.
-
-It is said that the coloured troops entered Richmond with proud gait
-and shouts of ecstasy, welcomed enthusiastically by their dusky
-brethren who thronged the streets. They laughed and shouted, prayed and
-wept, and kissed one another in a delirium of happiness. They thought
-that now at last the white races would acknowledge their equality;
-but the world has not yet got rid of its old prejudices, and their
-sun of happiness was doomed to suffer an eclipse. In a few days Lee
-surrendered. The Federals first heard the news from the cheers of the
-poor famished army of the South. Twenty-two thousand--all that was
-left of them--stacked their arms and filed past in a great and solemn
-silence. The cruel, devastating war was over. Now was seen the strange
-spectacle of the enemy sharing their rations with a conquered foe. They
-were no longer North and South now: they were all Americans--citizens
-once more of the United States, destined, perhaps, in a not distant
-future to teach Europe that peace is better than war, love is stronger
-than hate, God’s kingdom supreme over the transient empires of this
-little world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-THE SIEGE OF PARIS (1870-1871)
-
-WITH THE GERMANS OUTSIDE
-
- The Germans invest Paris--Trochu’s sortie fails--The English
- ambulance welcomed--A Prince’s visit to the wounded--In the
- snow--Madame Simon--A brave Lieutenant--Piano and jam--The big guns
- begin--St. Denis--Old Jacob writes to the Crown Prince--A dramatic
- telegram--Spy fever--Journalists mobbed.
-
-
-After the French Emperor was defeated and taken prisoner at Sedan a
-revolution broke out in Paris, and the terms of peace which had been
-agreed upon were refused by the Parisians. So the Germans marched on
-Paris, arriving on the 18th of September. By the end of October 240,000
-men began to encircle the ring of fifteen outer forts which guarded
-Paris.
-
-Trochu was the Governor of Paris. On the 30th of September he made a
-vigorous sortie across the Marne, to the south-east, where he hoped to
-join the French army of the Loire, and also at the same time to relieve
-Paris of some hungry mouths.
-
-But the grip of the Germans was too strong. They had been allowed time
-to strengthen their positions, and the sortie failed, though the great
-guns of the forts had boomed and crashed until they were glowing hot.
-
-An English ambulance under Mr. Young and Captain Furley was received
-by the German doctor with great enthusiasm, for medical comforts were
-growing scarce in the field hospital.
-
-The stores were carried into the doctor’s own room, and as the box of
-sundries was unpacked it was splendid to see the delight of the good
-man.
-
-“Porter,” he cried--“ganz gut! Ale--ganz gut! Chloroform--ach Gott!
-Twelve hundred cigars--du lieber Gott!” and his hands and eyes went up
-in delight and gratitude.
-
-The woollen clothing alone must have saved many lives. After supper
-that evening the German doctor got up and made a little speech.
-
-“Gentlemen, some people go about and make large promises which are
-never fulfilled. What an example of the contrary we have now before
-us! Mr. Young and Captain Furley heard of our state; they let no red
-tape stand in their way, and now this afternoon there comes jogging up
-our avenue a waggon bringing what is health--nay, what is life--to our
-poor sick and wounded. Here is the Englander all over, gentlemen--the
-bulldog that has no wind to spare in superfluous barking.”
-
-The officers present raised their glasses and shouted “Hochs!” for the
-English ambulance. It is pleasant to hear of such comradeship between
-men of different nations.
-
-The next day we are told that, after desperate fighting, the
-Head-quarters Staff of the German 12th Army Corps sat down to a very
-sombre dinner-table and spoke to one another in hushed voices, for
-many chairs were empty this dinner-time that had been occupied at
-breakfast. Not a man in the room but had lost dear friends, and many
-had lost kinsmen, and some had brothers lying out on the snow. On the
-forenoon of the fourth day there were found eight poor wretches who had
-survived the inclemency of two nights’ hard frost. Frostbitten, they
-lived two days after they were found.
-
-The Germans, after two days’ hard fighting, drove the French back
-into Paris, with the loss of 6,000 men; but they themselves were very
-disheartened.
-
-Their loss in officers was very large. The 108th Regiment lost
-thirty-six officers out of forty-five. In the knapsacks of the French
-soldiers were found provisions for six days, showing that they had
-hoped to co-operate with the Southern Army of the Loire.
-
-One day the Prince of Saxe-Weimar went to visit the wounded
-Würtembergers, a big man and a kindly heart. He went round with a box
-of cigars under his arm, asking each patient, “Can you smoke?” It was
-pitiful to see how they all tried to smoke, though some were too weak
-to enjoy their weed. Now the Prince comes upon a stalwart under officer.
-
-“Are you married?”
-
-“No, Highness; but my mother--she has three sons down, all wounded, and
-it might be bad for her.”
-
-The Prince took out a gold piece.
-
-“Here, my man, send that to the mother, and let her know it comes from
-your Queen.”
-
-It seems that the Germans had quite mistaken the amount of provisions
-existing in Paris. According to their calculations by the middle of
-December Paris ought to be feeling very hungry, on salt rations at the
-very best. They had not yet prepared for a bombardment with siege guns,
-hoping that Lady Famine would drive the Parisians to surrender. But
-they made no sign.
-
-Down at Argenteuil, on the north-west of Paris, there was the crackling
-of the chasse-pot from over the river, and yet most of the population
-had come back to their shops. They gossiped in the streets with French
-gaiety and unconcern, while the bullets sang overhead pretty freely.
-The steeple of their beautiful church made a good observatory, though
-its sides were riddled with holes made by shells. The French peasants
-drove their carts into the market-place below the church and sold eggs
-and butter full merrily; yet somehow, if a German stood at a window to
-gaze out, the French sharpshooters would aim at him. At Lagny there
-were generally 1,000 prisoners a day passing through to Germany. Some
-were so ravenous with hunger that they stooped to pick up turnip-tops
-and bones from the gutter, until the British Society organized a relief
-with stores of preserved meat and bread. And there was no hospital
-for the wounded! the poor creatures were dumped down in sheds, vans,
-the station-rooms, the church, the _mairie_. In one day there arrived
-1,800 wounded. They were bestowed--frozen, hungry, hopeless--in the
-cold comfort of the church. Madame Simon, the lady superintendent of
-the Saxon ambulance, did noble things day and night--a most devoted
-woman. There were feats of quiet bravery done every day. There was a
-colporteur of the English Bible Society who used to drive his waggon on
-a road between Gonesse and Aulnay, a road exposed to shell-fire more
-than most.
-
-“Yes,” he said, “it is a good time for the men to read good words when
-they are standing with the shadow of death hanging over them.”
-
-There is a story of a boy Lieutenant, von Schramm, who found himself
-suddenly in a crowd of Frenchmen. He leapt from his horse and hid in
-a house, in the hope of escaping by the back-door; but his pursuers
-caught him, and were taking him towards St. Denis, which lies to the
-north of Paris. In going through the park of Le Bourget the officer who
-carried von Schramm’s sword was shot and fell. The boy made a dash for
-his own sword, grasped the hilt and cut down the man on his other side,
-rushed for the small lake, dived to avoid pursuing bullets, and swam
-safely across to rejoin his regiment. The strange thing was that he had
-been on the sick-list before his winter ducking, but now he was blessed
-with a boy’s appetite.
-
-It spoke well for the German besiegers that they got on so cordially
-with the villagers round Paris. These were mostly of the humbler sort;
-or servants left behind to take care of their master’s house. There
-were lovely country houses inhabited by a few German officers, and,
-were it not for the rents made by shot and shell, the owners would
-not have grumbled much at their condition when they returned to them,
-though, of course, there were cases where the boisterous fun of German
-Lieutenants played havoc with ormolu and gilding. I remember hearing[A]
-of a grand piano which gave forth reluctant sounds when the notes were
-pressed down. It was discovered that the strings had been plentifully
-smeared with jams and sweetmeats! But these jests were the exception.
-
-The bombardment by the big guns had begun late in December with much
-excited wonder on the part of the Germans. Surely in a few days the
-Parisians will have had enough of exploding shells! Now here was almost
-the middle of January, and no effect visible. But the forts round Paris
-had no living population: no houses to be burnt, no women and children
-to mutilate. They had to be battered to bits, if possible; and Paris
-was behaving very heroically now. By the middle of January she was
-living very poorly indeed, but she endured yet another fifteen days
-longer.
-
-As for the German soldiers, they began now to feel bored to death, as
-so often happens in a long siege. The first excitement evaporates; each
-day’s unlovely duties recur with abominable sameness--and the Germans
-could find no beer to drink. A German is used to drink plenty of beer,
-and can carry it without ill effects; but when Fritz took to drinking
-rum, schnapps, or arrack, he began to reel about the village streets
-and look rather disreputable.
-
-It was a strange sight to mount some hill and get a view of Paris
-surrounded by its fifteen forts, and in a yet wider circle by the
-German lines. The foam of white smoke surged up all round; the
-thundering roar of cannon, the dull echo of distant guns made dismal
-music to the ear. The air of Paris is so clear compared to our English
-cities that all was quite visible; and now that wood was scarce and
-fires few, it was easy to mark the outlines of the larger buildings,
-though above them hung a brown pall of smoke, caused by exploding
-shells or houses that had caught fire.
-
-Day after day there were rumours of this or that fort having been
-silenced. Now it was St. Denis, on the north side; now Valérien, on the
-west; now Vincennes, on the east; but the respite was only given to
-cool the guns or renew the emplacements, and all was as it had been.
-Besides this there was the daily fear of a new sortie, as Issy or
-Ivry broke out into fierce clamour on the south-west and south-east.
-Then troops would be hurriedly transferred along frozen or sometimes
-muddy roads, while splinters of shell were whizzing about rather too
-familiarly.
-
-It was calculated that on a fierce day of firing the Germans shot
-away 10 tons of powder, and nearly 200 tons of heavy matter--iron and
-steel--were hurled upon the forts and city in twenty-four hours.
-
-There is a story of the Crown Prince of Prussia which illustrates
-his kindness of heart. In the 3rd Würtemberg Dragoons was a certain
-Jacob, who had an aged and anxious father. This father had not heard
-from his son Jacob for so long a time that the old man, in his rustic
-simplicity, sat down and laboriously wrote a letter to the Crown
-Prince, asking, “Can Your Highness find out anything about my son?”
-The old man knew his son had fought at Wörth and at Sedan, but nothing
-later than Sedan. The Crown Prince did not throw this letter into the
-waste-paper basket, but sent it to the officer commanding the 3rd
-Würtembergers, requesting that the old man’s mind should be set at
-ease. Jacob was sent for by his commanding officer and asked why he had
-not written home.
-
-“Do you know that His Royal Highness the Crown Prince wants to know why
-you have not written home for many weeks?”
-
-The man saluted. His purple face was a study.
-
-“Go and write instantly, and bring the envelope to me, sirrah.”
-
-How that story got about among the men! How often has the same
-experience come to house-masters, when some loving mother appeals for
-help: “Please make Harry write home.” Both Harry and Fritz need a touch
-of the spur at times, but how promptly the letter is written when they
-feel that touch!
-
-The town of St. Denis suffered terribly. The front of the theatre was
-in ruins. The cathedral, being banked up high with sand-bags, had not
-suffered so much. The tombs of the kings had all been thus protected,
-so had the statues, and not even a nose had been knocked off. But the
-bombardment had shattered many houses and churches, and the shells had
-ploughed up the streets, or rather hoed them into holes. It was only in
-the cold and dark cellars that safety could be found. Even there people
-were not always safe, and when they were pressed to take refuge in
-Paris they peeped forth shuddering, and swore they would rather die in
-their own cellars than sally forth through a tempest of shell-fire.
-
-“At nine o’clock on the evening of the 28th of January, 1871, while
-the Head-quarters Staff of the Maes Army were assembled in the
-drawing-rooms of the Crown Prince’s château after dinner, an orderly
-brought in a telegram to the Crown Prince. His Royal Highness, having
-read it, handed it to General von Schlottheim, the Chief of the Staff.
-That officer perused it in his turn, and then rising, walked to the
-door communicating between the billiard-room and the saloon, and there
-read the telegram aloud. It was from the Emperor, and it announced
-that, two hours before, Count Bismarck and M. Jules Favre had set their
-hands to a convention, in terms of which an armistice to last for
-twenty-one days had already come into effect.”
-
-This startling news meant that Paris was ready to surrender. How many
-hearts were lighter in both camps next day! War is not all glory
-and heroic achievement. Those who know what war is pray to God that
-statesmen and nations may think twice before they rush into so terrible
-a calamity. In this war of 180 days the Germans had won fifteen great
-victories, captured twenty-six fortresses, and made 363,000 prisoners.
-
-“Paris is utterly cowed, fairly beaten”--so they said who came from
-Paris to the German lines, and a few non-combatants, journalists, and
-philanthropists, ventured to enter the city before the German troops
-passed in on the 1st of March. They found the streets crowded with
-men in uniform. The food shops had nothing to sell. There were a few
-sickly preserves, nothing solid worth eating--some horses’ fat for a
-delicacy to help down the stuff they called bread. A fowl was priced at
-forty-five francs; stickleback were fourteen francs a pound; butter,
-forty francs a pound. Outside the bakers’ shops stood a shivering line
-of ladies and women, waiting their turn for loaves that tasted like
-putty, and pulled to pieces like chopped straw.
-
-But there were in side streets many of the roughest, the most
-cowardly and cruel ruffians of the worst parts of Paris. They were on
-the prowl, waiting for their prey; so no wonder that Mr. Archibald
-Forbes, journalist, and several others in divers parts of the city had
-unpleasant experiences.
-
-Forbes tells us he was walking down the Champs Elysées when he met the
-Crown Prince of Saxony with his staff riding by. Forbes raised his hat;
-the Prince returned the salute and passed on. But the dirty _gamins_
-of Paris had been looking on. They hustled the Englishman, called him
-_mouchard_ (spy), _sacré Prussien_, _cochon_, tripped him up, hit him
-on the back of the head with a stick; then, when he was down, they
-jumped on his stomach with their sabots or wooden shoes. He struggled,
-as a Scotsman can, got up, hit out right and left; but numbers
-prevailed, and he was dragged by the legs on his back, with many bumps
-and bruises, to the police-station. There he showed his papers, and
-the Prefect released him in a humour that said, “I am mighty glad you
-Parisians have had a good thrashing.”
-
-Another journalist--so he told me in London a few weeks later--also had
-ventured to stray away from the German sentries in order to see what
-Paris thought of a siege. He soon found himself the centre of an angry
-throng.
-
-Some cried: “He is a _sacré Prussien_! See his yellow hair!”
-
-“No; I am an English artist,” shouted my friend, still smiling.
-
-“He is a confounded spy! Take him to the Seine! duck him in the river!”
-
-They dragged him towards the river-bank. Out of his eye corners my
-friend saw several boys pick up stones to help him to sink. He thought
-his last hour was come. They were close to the river: the water looked
-very cold. Then there came to his ears the “tuck” of a drum. A company
-of French soldiers was marching by; a Colonel on horseback rode beside
-them.
-
-The artist recognized him, for they had once chummed together near
-Metz. He called to him by name, and the Colonel cried “Halt!”
-
-He spurred his horse through the evil-smelling crowd, and seeing who it
-was whom the rascals were going to plunge into the Seine, held up his
-hand and cried:
-
-“Let that English gentleman go. He is no Prussian, but an artist who
-has drawn my portrait--mine, I tell you--for the London journals. He is
-my friend--an English friend, like Mr. Wallace.”
-
-This testimony was enough for them. The excitable crowd flew to
-the opposite extreme. Those who had made ready to stone him like a
-water-rat now dropped those stones, and rushing up with remorse and
-even affection in their changed looks, threw fusty arms round his neck,
-kissed him on both cheeks, sobbed and cried for forgiveness for their
-little mistake.
-
-Indeed it is not safe to enter too soon into a conquered city.
-
- From “My Experiences of the War,” by Archibald Forbes. With the
- kind permission of Messrs. Hurst and Blackett.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[A] My informant was an English artist.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-THE SIEGE OF PARIS--_Continued_
-
-WITH THE BESIEGED (1870-1871)
-
- Moods in Paris--The Empress escapes--Taking down Imperial
- flags--Playing dominoes under fire--Cowards branded--Balloon
- post--Return of the wounded--French numbed by cold--The lady and
- the dogs--The nurse who was mighty particular--Castor and Pollux
- pronounced tough--Stories of suffering.
-
-
-One who was in Paris on the 3rd of September, 1870, might have heard
-strange things said in the cafés as evening came on. The French had
-suffered a great disaster; they had surrendered to the Germans at
-Sedan! MacMahon was wounded and taken prisoner; the Emperor had given
-himself up, and was going to Germany as a first-class prisoner; 80,000
-men captured, and 200 guns. Was not that news enough to sell every
-paper in the street?
-
-Shouts were heard of “Déchéance! Vive la République!”
-
-Where was the poor Empress all this time? “Never mind her; it was she
-who had stirred up the Emperor Napoleon III. to make this horrible
-war.” So the papers print cruel caricatures of her. On Sunday, the
-4th, very early in the morning, a huge crowd thronged the Place de la
-Concorde; men were pulling down Imperial eagles while the mob cheered.
-The regular soldiers met the National Guard and made friends.
-
-Men said to one another: “What will become of the Empress?” “Will she
-fall a victim to the new patriots?” And whilst some wondered, a few
-friends were even then helping her to escape to England.
-
-Everywhere on walls of houses were bills fixed announcing the Republic,
-and inviting all men to rally to the rescue of “La patrie en danger.”
-
-But the railway-stations were very full of men, women, and children,
-who were trying to get a little country air. Could it be possible that
-they feared Paris might before long be besieged?
-
-Drums and bugles incessant, uniforms always, rifles and side-arms very
-often. Men stood before the black-draped statue of Strasbourg, and
-waved arms wildly, shouting and screaming, “Revenge!” “Liberty!” and
-the like.
-
-By the 10th of the month the Prussian forces, 300,000 strong, were
-about twenty-five miles from the capital. People began to look grave,
-and the more thoughtful went to the stores, and made secret purchases
-of coffee, rice, sugar, and other portable provisions. Still, the
-Parisians have not lost their gaiety yet; comic songs and punchinello
-evoke hilarious laughter.
-
-Then came the news, “Versailles has honourably capitulated.”
-
-What! so near as that! People are becoming nervous, so that the new
-authorities proclaim by billposters that the fifteen strong forts
-beyond the line of ramparts are fully armed and manned by the sailors
-from the fleet.
-
-A captive balloon goes up from Montmartre to watch the enemy. Then it
-occurs that obstacles outside the city must be cleared away, so that
-the chassepot may have space to reach the Prussians; and many houses
-and bridges go down.
-
-“Well, if there is a siege, have we not got a goodly store of
-food--enough for two months? Are there not plenty of cattle and
-sheep, fodder and grain collected within the walls? Who cares for the
-Prussians?”
-
-Yet when they see notices posted on the walls instructing the newly
-enrolled how to load their muskets, some have a twinge of doubt and
-anxiety. A few days more, and Paris begins to feel she is being
-encircled by the enemy. Great movement of troops towards Vincennes.
-Official notices now state that all men liable to military service must
-report themselves within twenty-four hours, under penalty of being
-treated as deserters--and shot.
-
-Yet still many are placidly playing dominoes, or calmly fishing from
-the bridges in the Seine, quite content if they catch a gudgeon two
-inches long.
-
-Yet, if some are betraying levity and selfishness, others are filled
-with a desire to do something for their country. The doctors offer
-their services in a body, and hospitals for the wounded are being
-established at various points.
-
-Ladies wearing a _brassard_ on the arm (the Red Cross badge) were
-almost too numerous; and some of these had more zeal than strength, and
-failed lamentably when brought face to face with horrible sights.
-
-On the 19th of September some French forces, who occupied the heights
-of Chatillon, were attacked in force by the Germans, and driven away,
-and they ran through Paris crying, “We are betrayed!” but the people
-gloomily replied, “Cowards!”
-
-The next day many of these fugitives were marched along the boulevards,
-their hands tied behind their backs, and the word _Lâche_ (coward)
-printed in large letters between their shoulders. Yet still crowds
-of men in uniform and ladies fashionably dressed crowded the cafés,
-laughing and full of mirth.
-
-As the bombardment grew, it became the fashion to gather at the
-Trocadero, and watch the Prussian shells exploding in mid-air.
-
-The village folk who had lived within the lines of investment were
-brought inside the ramparts, and formed a class of _bouches inutiles_,
-though some of the men were employed to cut down trees and build
-barricades.
-
-The Palace of St. Cloud was burnt down about this time--some said by
-the French themselves, either by accident or design.
-
-A post by balloon and by carrier-pigeons had been introduced--_par
-ballon monté_--by which letters were sent away, but could not be
-received.
-
-[Illustration: THE BALLOON POST USED DURING THE SIEGE OF PARIS
-
-Letters could be sent away by this method, but not received.]
-
-In the middle of October Colonel Lloyd Lindsay arrived from England,
-bringing with him £20,000 as a gift from England to the sick and
-wounded. He came into Paris in the uniform of his rank. This did not
-prevent his being captured as a spy, and suffering some indignities at
-the hands of the great unwashed of Belleville. Some with questionable
-taste said, “The English send us money--all right!--but why do they not
-help us with men and guns?”
-
-Trochu, the Governor of Paris, was thought to be rather infirm of
-purpose; his sympathies were given more to Napoleon than to the
-Republic, and he evidently distrusted the fighting men within Paris.
-Indeed, there were many officers quite unfit for work, who used to
-lounge about the cafés, their hands buried in a warm muff and their
-noses red with the little glasses they had emptied. Many battalions
-of Federals elected their own officers, and some men were seen to
-be soliciting votes, bottle in hand. The National Guard, which was
-somewhat like our militia, was distinct from the French army, and
-contained many bad characters; they were apt to desert in time of
-danger.
-
-On the 21st of October there was a sortie against the Prussians on
-the west of Paris. They started at noon, as Mont Valérien fired
-three guns in quick succession. They took with them some new guns,
-called mitrailleuses, from which great things were expected. In the
-evening there came back a long procession of sixty-four carriages, all
-filled with wounded. Crowds of anxious mothers came clustering round,
-inquiring for friends. The people in the street formed two lines for
-the carriages to pass between; the men respectfully uncovered their
-heads.
-
-November came, with snow and bitter frost. Strange skins of animals
-began to be worn; fuel was scarce, gas was forbidden, and epidemics
-arose. The very poor received free meals from the _mairies_, while the
-more respectable poor stayed at home, making no sign, but starving in
-dumb agony.
-
-On the 30th of November another sortie was attempted. Some villages
-were taken by the French, Champigny and Brie, the mitrailleuses being
-found very useful in sweeping the streets; but towards evening the
-French were repulsed, and the commander of the 4th Zouaves was left by
-his own men on the ground wounded, a shell having dropped near them.
-Fortunately, the English ambulance was close by, and rendered such help
-as was possible. Then they drove the helpless officer in a private
-brougham back to Paris. What was their indignation when they found
-great crowds of people of both sexes indulging in noisy games, as if it
-was a holiday! The poor Chef de Bataillon only lived a few hours after
-being taken to the hospital.
-
-Next day ambulances were sent out to search for the wounded, but
-they came upon many stragglers bent on loot. The wounded were in
-sore plight after spending a night on the frozen ground. Some had
-been able to make a little fire out of bits of broken wheels, and to
-roast horse-flesh cut from horses which the shells had killed. The
-French troops had remained in bivouac all that night, their strength
-impaired by fatigue and cold; the German troops, on the contrary,
-were withdrawn from the field of battle, their places being taken by
-others who had not seen the carnage of the previous day, who were well
-fed and sheltered, and thus far better fitted to renew the fight. No
-wonder that the poor benumbed French failed to make a stout resistance.
-Hundreds of wounded returned to Paris all the following day, and it
-became evident that no effort to break the circle of besiegers could
-succeed. Paris awoke at last to the humiliating truth. The day was
-cold and foggy; the transport of wounded was the only sound heard in
-the streets; in the evening the streets were dimly lit by oil-lamps,
-shops all closed at sundown, and the boom of heavy guns seemed to ring
-the knell of doom. All hope was now fixed on the provinces, but a
-pigeon-post came in, telling them of a defeat near Orleans.
-
-“The Army of the Loire has been cut in two! Tant mieux! (So much the
-better!) Now we have two Armies of the Loire.” So the dandy of the
-pavement dismissed the disaster with an epigram.
-
-The scarcity of meat was felt in various ways; even the rich found
-it difficult to smuggle a joint into their houses, for it was liable
-to arrest on its way: some patriots would take it from a cart or the
-shoulder of the butcher’s boy, saying, “Ciel! this aristocrat is going
-to have more than his share.” One day a fashionable lady was returning
-home carrying a parasol and a neat parcel under her shawl. After her
-came six hungry dogs, who could not be persuaded to go home, though she
-hissed and scolded and poked them with her gay parasol. On meeting a
-friend, she first asked him to drive them away, and then confided to
-him that she had two pounds of mutton in her parcel. And so the poor
-dogs got none!
-
-Amongst the hungry folk we must not forget that there were nearly
-4,000 English in Paris, about 800 of whom were destitute, and would
-have starved had it not been for the kindness of Dr. Herbert and
-Mr. Wallace. The wounded were well looked after, for there were
-243 ambulances, of which the largest, the International, had its
-headquarters at the Grand Hotel. In one of the Paris journals it was
-stated that a lady went to the Mayor’s house of her district to ask to
-be given a wounded soldier, that she might nurse him back to life. They
-offered her a Zouave, small and swarthy.
-
-“No, no,” she exclaimed; “I wish for a blonde patient, being a brunette
-myself.”
-
-It was hardly worth while going to pay a visit to the Zoological
-Gardens, for most of the animals had been eaten.
-
-Castor and Pollux were amongst the last to render up their bodies
-for this service. Castor and Pollux were two very popular elephants,
-on whose backs half the boys and girls in Paris had taken afternoon
-excursions. Poor fellows! they were pronounced later on by the critical
-to be tough and oily--to such lengths can human ingratitude go when
-mutton is abundant.
-
-They were twins and inseparables in life. Their trunks were sold for 45
-francs a pound, the residue for about 10 francs a pound. Besides the
-loss of the animals, all the glass of the conservatories in the Jardin
-des Plantes was shattered by the concussion of the big guns, and many
-valuable tropical plants were dying.
-
-The citizens, usually so gay and hopeful, presented a woebegone
-appearance whenever they saw their soldiers return from unsuccessful
-sorties. They began to look about for traitors. “Nous sommes trahis!”
-was their cry. There was one private of the 119th Battalion who refused
-to advance with the others. His Captain remonstrated with him; the
-private shot his Captain rather than face the Germans. A General who
-was near ordered the private to be shot at once. A file was drawn
-up, and fired on him; he fell, and was left for dead. Presently an
-ambulance stretcher came by, and picked him up, as a wounded man; he
-was still alive, and had to be dealt with further by other of his
-comrades. Let us hope that this man’s relations never learnt how
-Jacques came to be so riddled by bullets.
-
-The houses on the left bank of the Seine were so damaged that the
-citizens had to be transferred to the right bank. In a few days the
-terrible battery of Meudon opened fire upon the city. The shells now
-fell near to the centre of Paris; day and night without rest or stay
-the pitiless hail fell, and this went on for twelve days and nights.
-Meanwhile the cold increased and the fuel failed; diseases spread, and
-discontent with the Government arose. Women waiting in the streets
-for their rations would fall from exhaustion; others were mangled
-by shells. The daily ration for which the poor creatures struggled
-consisted now of 10 ounces of bread, 1 ounce of horse-flesh, and a
-quarter litre of bad wine.
-
-One more effort the starving Parisians made to break through on the
-19th of January. Early that morning people were reading the latest
-proclamation on the walls: “Citizens, the enemy kills our wives and
-children, bombards us night and day, covers with shells our hospitals.
-Those who can shed their life’s blood on the field of battle will march
-against the enemy--suffer and die, if necessary, but conquer!”
-
-Three _corps d’armée_, more than 100,000 men, were taking up their
-positions under cover of Mont Valérien; but a dense fog prevailed,
-and several hours were lost in wandering aimlessly about, so that the
-French became worn out with fatigue, whereas the Germans had passed a
-quiet night, with good food to sustain their strength. Yet for many
-hours the French obstinately held their ground; then stragglers began
-to fall away, and officers tried in vain to rally their companies.
-Night fell on a beaten army hurrying back through the city gates.
-
-Meanwhile the bombardment went on with increasing violence, until early
-on the night of the 26th there was a sudden lull; just before midnight
-a volley of fire came from all points of the circle round Paris, then
-a weird silence. Then it was known that the terms of surrender had
-been signed--not too soon, for all were at starvation point, and only
-six days’ rations remained. Paris had been very patient under great
-sufferings through the cold winter. It is pleasant to remember that
-supplies of food sent from England were then waiting admission outside
-the northern gates.
-
-An English doctor residing in Paris during the siege writes thus:
-
-“One lady to whom I carried a fowl was prostrate in bed, her physical
-powers reduced by starvation to an extremely low ebb. When I told her
-that she was simply dying from want of food, her reply was that she
-really had no appetite; she could not eat anything. Yet when I gave
-her some savoury morsel to be taken at once, and then the fowl to be
-cooked later on, her face brightened; she half raised herself in bed,
-and pressed the little articles I had brought to her as a child presses
-a doll. I was told also that the nurses in an ambulance which I had
-aided with the British supplies danced round the tables, and invoked
-blessings on our heads. As regards myself, what I most craved for was
-fried fat, bacon, and fruit, and, above all, apples.”
-
-Besides the wild animals of the French Zoological Gardens, most of the
-domestic pets had been eaten. A story is told of one French lady who
-carefully guarded her little dog Fido, feeding him from her own plate
-with great self-sacrifice. One day the family had the rare treat of a
-hot joint, and in the middle of dinner the lady took up a small bone to
-carry to Fido in the next room. She returned in trouble, saying:
-
-“Fido is not in the house; he would so have enjoyed this bone. I hope
-he has not got out. They will kill him--the brutes!--and eat him.”
-
-The members of that starving family exchanged uneasy glances; they were
-even now engaged upon a salmi, or hash, formed from a portion of the
-lady’s pet!
-
- “From Memoirs of Dr. Gordon.” By kind permission of Messrs. Swan
- Sonnenschein and Co.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-METZ (1870)
-
- Metz surrounded--Taken for a spy--Work with an ambulance--Fierce
- Prussians rob an old woman--Attempt to leave Metz--Refusing
- an honour--The _cantinière’s_ horse--The grey pet of the
- regiment--Deserters abound--A village fired for punishment--Sad
- scenes at the end.
-
-
-One Englishman, the Special Correspondent of the _Manchester Guardian_,
-contrived to enter Metz shortly before it was besieged. But he had not
-been there long before a disagreeable experience befell him. He was
-riding quietly outside the city towards the French camps which were
-pitched all round it, when suddenly a soldier stepped across the road,
-and cried, “Halt!”
-
-Two men seized his reins, asking, “Have you any papers?”
-
-“Yes; here is my passport,” he replied confidently.
-
-The passport puzzled them; it was taken to a superior officer, who knew
-that it was English, but looked suspiciously at the German visé which
-it bears.
-
-The Englishman was taken to a General across the road, who shook his
-head and remanded him to another officer of the staff, a mile back
-towards Metz. It begins to look serious; this man may be shot as a spy.
-
-Two gendarmes were called up to guard him; soldiers came up to stare
-with savage scowls--he was a spy undoubtedly; but cigarettes were
-offered by the spy, and things began to look less cloudy. Then up came
-General Bourbaki, and fresh questions were put and answered; then
-a mounted messenger was sent to Metz to find out if the prisoner’s
-statements were correct. On his return with a satisfactory account, the
-prisoner was told to mount and ride with escort to the head-quarters of
-the Commander-in-Chief, Marshal Bazaine. As he rode soldiers jeered and
-prophesied a speedy death in a ditch, which made him feel ill at ease.
-
-A ride of a mile brought him to a pretty château, where he was received
-with courtesy and kindness. At a long common deal table in a wooden
-pavilion in the garden sat the Marshal and some twenty officers of the
-staff. Dispatches were being written, signed, and sent off by mounted
-messengers. In the corner was an electric telegraph, ticking off
-reports from distant points.
-
-When the conference broke up, Marshal Bazaine motioned the suspect to
-a seat, and questioned him, made him show on a map where he had been
-riding, found he understood no German and was a fool at maps (perhaps a
-little stupidity was put on), then he left him to his secretary.
-
-The latter said, with a sly glance: “We have so many spies that we
-are bound to be careful, but the arrest in this case is a stupid
-thing (_une bêtise_). I will give you a _laissez-passer_ for the day,
-monsieur.”
-
-So he went off, relieved at not being shot for a spy, but somewhat
-mortified.
-
-There was hard fighting going on in the country round Metz. Our
-countryman managed to get attached to an ambulance, and went on to a
-battle-field at night.
-
-“We lit our lanterns,” he says, “and went cautiously into the valley.
-There were Prussian sharpshooters in the wood beyond, and I confess I
-was very nervous at first: the still night, the errand we were on, all
-awed one. But so soon as we reached the outskirts of the battle-field
-all personal feelings gave way to others. Here at every turn we found
-our aid was wanted. Thousands of dead and wounded were around us, and
-we, a few strangers sent by the International Society of London, were
-all that were present to help them. Plugging and bandaging such wounds
-as were hopeful of cure, giving a life-saving drink here and there,
-moving a broken limb into a more easy position, and speaking a word
-of encouragement where the heart was failing--this was all we could
-do. But all that night each worked his utmost, and when our water
-failed two of us walked back four miles to Gravelotte and brought a
-bucketful. We can dress, but not remove, the wounded now. Often have
-I been tempted to put a poor fellow out of his pain; it seems kinder,
-wiser, and more Christian to blow out the flickering lamp than let
-it smoulder away in hours of anguish. Daylight begins to dawn, and
-we seek carriages--that is, jolting unhung carts--to convey some of
-the wounded. Now, as we raise them up and torture their poor wounds
-by moving them, for the first time we hear a cry. The groans of the
-dying, the shrieks of the wounded, are absent from the battle-field,
-but far more dreadful and awe-inspiring is the awful stillness of that
-battle-field at night. There is a low, quivering moan floats over
-it--nothing more; it is a sound almost too deep for utterance, and it
-thrills through one with a strange horror. Hardly a word is uttered,
-save only a half-wailed-out cry of ‘Ohé! ma pauvre mère!’ Nothing is
-more touching, nothing fills one’s eyes with tears more, than this
-plaintive refrain chanted out as a death-chant by so many sons who
-never more on this side the grave will see again that longed-for
-mother--‘Ohé! ma mère, ma pauvre mère!’
-
-“We select sixty or seventy of those whose wounds will bear removal,
-and turn our faces towards Metz. Slowly and sadly we creep out of the
-death-valley. The quaint hooded forms of the sentinels who challenge
-us cut out strangely against the green and gold of the morning sky.
-Not a walking-stick, not a pipe is left us: they were cut up into
-tourniquet-keys. I am ashamed to say I regretted my pipe; but it came
-back to me after many weeks, being brought to me by the man whose
-life it had saved. Very grateful he was. As we toil upwards, musing
-on life and death, bang! right in our very faces spits out a cannon.
-Good heavens! they surely are not going to begin this devil’s work
-again! Yes; there goes a battery to the crest of the hill. We must take
-care of ourselves and those we have so far rescued from slaughter. On
-we tramp, but there is no food, not a crust of bread, not a drop of
-water for our wounded. It is nine miles more back to Metz, and tired
-as we are, we must walk it. Very tired and hungry and cross we enter
-Metz, and there see the French ambulances waiting with waggon-loads of
-appliances and well-groomed horses. They had stopped to breakfast, and
-many hundreds have died because they did so. Well, we have earned ours,
-at any rate.”
-
-It was now the 28th of August. Metz was blockaded. No letters could be
-sent, for the German hosts were holding the heights all round. Ruthless
-rough-riders were riding into every French village. In one of these,
-the story goes, a poor old woman was washing her little store of linen.
-She was very old, and her grey hair sprouted in silver tufts from her
-yellow skin. All the rest had fled in panic; she alone was left busy at
-her tub, when up rode some score of huge Dragoons. They pulled up in
-front of her, speaking their barbarous tongue. One Dragoon dismounts
-and draws his sword. Poor old woman! she falls upon her knees and lifts
-up wrinkled hands and cries feebly for mercy. It is in vain! Neither
-age nor ugliness protects her. Raising his sword with one hand, he
-stretches out the other towards her--the Prussian monster!--and grasps
-her soap. He quietly cuts it in two, pockets the one half and replaces
-the other on the well wall, growling out, “Madame, pardon!”
-
-The reaction was too great. When they rode away laughing, the old woman
-forgot to be thankful that they had not hurt her, and swore at them for
-hairy thieves.
-
-On the 15th of September there were around Metz 138,000 men fit to take
-the field, 6,000 cavalry and artillery. The Prussians had not anything
-like that number. They were dying fast of dysentery and fever, and yet
-Bazaine did nothing. Yet, though Metz was not strongly held, it was
-very difficult to get through the lines, and many a man, tempted by the
-bribe of 1,000 francs, lost his life in the attempt.
-
-The English journalist tried to be his own courier and carry his own
-letters. He presented himself at the Prussian outposts in daylight,
-showed his passport, and demanded permission to “pass freely without
-let or hindrance.” In vain. The German soldiers treated him to beer
-and cigars, and suggested he should return to Metz. Next time he
-dressed himself up as a peasant, with blouse, and sabots on his feet,
-and when it was growing dusk tried to slip through the posts. “Halte
-là!” rang out, and a sound of a rifle’s click brought him up sharp. He
-was a prisoner, taken to the guard-house, and questioned severely. He
-pretended to be very weak-headed, almost an idiot.
-
-“How many soldiers be there in Metz, master? I dunno. Maybe 300.
-There’s a power of men walking about the streets, sir.”
-
-They smiled a superior smile, and offered the poor idiot some dark
-rye-bread, cheese, and beer, and some clean straw to lie down upon.
-Officers came to stare at him, asked him what village he was bound
-for. One of them knew the village he named, and recognized his
-description of it, for luckily he had got up this local knowledge from
-a native in Metz. However, he was not permitted to go to it, for before
-dawn next morning they led him, shuffling in his wooden sabots, to a
-distant outpost, turned his face towards Metz, with the curt remark:
-“Go straight on to Metz, friend, or you will feel a bullet go through
-your back.”
-
-Grumbling to himself, he drew near the French outposts, who fired at
-him. He lay down for some time, then, finding he was in a potato-field,
-he set to work and grubbed up a few potatoes to sell for a sou a piece.
-So at last he found his way back to Metz, and got well laughed at for
-his pains.
-
-He then tried his hand at making small balloons to carry his letters
-away; but the Germans used to fire at them, wing them, and read the
-contents.
-
-Many spies were shot in Metz, and some who were not spies, but only
-suspected. It was the only excitement in the city to go out to the
-fosse and see a spy shot.
-
-There was one man whom all raised their hats to salute when he passed.
-He was a short, thick-set man, wore a light canvas jacket and leather
-gaiters. Under one arm hung a large game-bag, and over the other sloped
-a chassepot rifle. His name was Hitter, and he had made a great name
-by going out in front of the _avant-poste_ and shooting the Prussian
-sentinels. One night he encountered some waggons, shot down the escort
-from his hiding-place, and brought four waggons full of corn into Metz,
-riding on the box by the driver, pistol in hand. This man organized a
-body of sharp-shooters for night work, and many a poor sentinel met his
-death at their hands.
-
-One favourite dodge was to take out with them a tin can fastened to a
-long string. When they got near the Prussian outposts they made this
-go tingle tangle along the ground. Then cautious heads would peep out;
-more tangle tingle from the tin can, until the sentinels jump up and
-blaze away at the weird thing that startles them in the dark. Their
-fire has been drawn, and Hitter’s men have the outpost at their mercy.
-They either shoot them or bring them into Metz as prisoners.
-
-At length Marshal Bazaine heard of Hitter’s prowess, and sent for him,
-wanting to decorate him; but Hitter was sensitive, and thought he ought
-to have been decorated weeks ago. He came reluctantly.
-
-“My man, I have heard of your doings--your clever work at night--and in
-the name of France I give you this decoration to wear.”
-
-“I don’t want it, Marshal. Pray excuse me, if you please.”
-
-“Nonsense, my fine fellow. I insist on your acceptance of the honour.”
-
-“Oh! very well,” said Hitter, “if you insist, I suppose I must; but, by
-your leave, I shall wear it on my back--and very low down, too.”
-
-The Marshal glared at Hitter, turned red, and ordered him out.
-
-As the siege went on the poor horses got thinner and thinner. Their
-coats stood out in the wet weather rough and bristly; often they
-staggered and fell dead in the streets. They were soon set upon, and
-in a short time flesh, bones, and hide had vanished, and only a little
-pool of blood remained behind to tell where some hungry citizens had
-snatched a good dinner.
-
-One day a _cantinière_ had left her cart full of drinkables just
-outside the gate while she went to the fort to ask what was wanted.
-She tarried, and her poor horse felt faint, knelt down, and tried to
-die. No sooner was the poor beast on his knees than half a score of
-soldiers rushed out to save his life by cutting his throat--at least,
-it made him eat better. They quickly slipped off his skin and cut him
-up in all haste. So many knives were “e’en at him,” they soon carried
-off his “meat.” Then, in a merry mood, seeing the gay _cantinière_ was
-too busy flirting to attend to her cart, they carefully set to work
-and built him up again. They put the bones together neatly, dragged
-the hide over the carcass, and arranged the harness to look as if the
-animal had lain down between the shafts. Then they retired to watch
-the comedy that sprang out of a tragedy. Madame comes bustling out of
-the fort. Eh! what’s that? Poor Adolfe is down on the ground! The fat
-woman waddles faster to him, calls him by name, taunts him with want
-of pluck, scolds, gets out her whip; then is dumb for some seconds,
-touches him, cries, weeps, wrings her hands in despair. Sounds of
-laughter come to her ears; then she rises majestically to the occasion,
-pours out a volley of oaths--oaths of many syllables, oaths that tax a
-genius in arithmetic: _diable! cent diables, mille diables, cent mille
-diables!_ and so on, until she loses her breath, puts her fat hand
-to her heart, and again falls into a pathetic mood, passing later on
-into hysteria, and being led away between two gendarmes. Poor madame!
-She had loved Adolfe, and would have eaten him in her own home circle
-rather than that those _sacrés_ soldiers should filch him away.
-
-Well, they ate horses, when they could get them; but donkeys were even
-more delicious, though very rare, for they seldom died, and refused to
-get fat. Food was growing so scarce in October that when you went out
-to dinner you were expected to take your own bread with you. Potatoes
-were sold at fifteen pence a pound; a scraggy fowl might be bought
-for thirty shillings. The Prussians had spread nets across the river,
-above and below, to prevent the French from catching too many fish. As
-for sugar, it rose to seven shillings a pound. Salt was almost beyond
-price. The poor horses looked most woebegone. Many of them were Arabs,
-their bones nearly through their skin, and they looked at their friends
-with such a pitiful, appealing eye that it was most touching. You
-might have gone into a trooper’s tent and wondered to see the big tear
-rolling slowly down the bronzed cheek of a brave soldier.
-
-“What is it, m’sieur? I have just lost my best friend--my best friend.
-He was with me in Algeria. Never tumbled, never went lame. And he
-understood me better than any Christian. He would have done anything
-for me--in reason! Now he has had to go to the slaughter-house. Oh, it
-is cruel, m’sieur! I shall never be the same man again, for he loved me
-and understood me--and I loved him.”
-
-At last there was only one horse left in that camp, and this was how
-he survived: He had laid himself down to die; his eyes were fogging
-over, he felt so weak; but one of the sick soldiers happened to pass
-that way, and being full of pity from his own recent sufferings, he
-bethought him of a disused mattress which he had seen in the hospital
-close by. He returned and took out a handful of straws, with which he
-fed the poor beast, a straw at a time. The flaccid lips mumbled them
-awhile. At last he managed to moisten the straw and eat a little.
-Another handful was fetched, and the horse pricked his ears, and tried
-to lift his head. That was the turning-point; life became almost worth
-living again. The story rapidly spread, and it became the charitable
-custom to spare a bit of bread from dinner for the white horse of the
-Ile Cambière. In time that spoilt child would neigh and trot to meet
-any trooper who approached, confidently looking for his perquisite of
-crust.
-
-There were 20,000 horses in Metz at the beginning of the siege; at the
-time of the surrender a little over 2,000.
-
-We are told by an Englishman who was with the German Army outside Metz
-that in October a good many Frenchmen deserted from Metz. On the 11th
-a poor wretch was brought into the German lines. He said that his
-desertion was a matter of arrangement with his comrades. The man was an
-Alsatian, and spoke German well. His regiment was supposed to be living
-under canvas, but the stench in the tents was so strong, by reason of
-skin diseases, that nearly all slept in the open air. The skin disease
-was caused by the want of vegetables and salt, and by living wholly on
-horse-flesh. The deserter reported that the troops had refused to make
-any more sorties, and they were all suffering from scurvy.
-
-There was one village, Nouilly, which contained secret stores, to which
-the French used to resort, and which the Germans could not find; so the
-order was given to burn it. Most of its inhabitants had gone to live in
-Metz.
-
-“I was sitting at supper with Lieutenant von Hosius and Fischer when an
-orderly entered with a note. It was read aloud:
-
-“‘Lieutenant von Hosius will parade at nine o’clock with fifteen
-volunteers of his company, and will proceed to burn the village of
-Nouilly.’
-
-“Von Hosius was fond of herrings, so he stayed at table to finish them,
-while Fischer went out for volunteers. In a few minutes von Hosius
-was putting on his long boots, taking his little dagger, which every
-officer wore to ward off the vultures of the battle-field in case of
-being wounded; then, taking his revolver, he sallied out to meet his
-little band. The service was full of danger, for the French lay very
-near, and had strong temptations for entering it by night. If he did
-encounter a French force inside the village, where would his fifteen
-volunteers be?
-
-“A little group of us watched by the watch-fire as they marched down
-at the German quick step. For a while we could hear the crashing
-through the vines, then the hoarse challenge of the German rear
-sentry; then all became quiet. For a few minutes the officer in
-command of the outpost and myself were the only persons who enjoyed
-the genial warmth of the fire; then through the gloom came stalking
-the Major, who squatted down silently by our side. Presently another
-form appeared--the Colonel himself--and in half an hour nearly all the
-officers of the battalion were round that bright wood fire. They all
-tried to look unconcerned, but everybody was very fidgety.
-
-“Von Hosius was a long time. An hour had gone, and Nouilly was but ten
-minutes or so distant, and the Colonel’s nervousness was undisguised
-as he hacked at the burning log with his naked sword. Suddenly the
-vigilant Lieutenant gave a smothered shout, and we all sprang to our
-feet. Flame-coloured smoke at last, and plenty of it. But, bah! it was
-too far away--a false alarm.
-
-“The Colonel sat down moodily, and the Major muttered something like a
-swear. One thing was good: there was no sound of musketry firing.
-
-“Another half-hour of suspense, and then a loud “Ha!” from both
-Lieutenant and sentry. This time it was Nouilly, and no mistake. Not
-from one isolated house, but in six places at once, belched out the
-long streaks of flame against the black darkness, and the separate
-fires made haste to connect themselves. In ten minutes the whole place
-was in one grand blaze, the church steeple standing up in the midst of
-the sea of flame until a firework of sparks burst from its top and it
-reeled to its fall.
-
-“Presently they came back, von Hosius panting with the exertion (he
-was of a portly figure). The duty had been done without firing a single
-shot, and they brought with them a respectable old horse which they had
-found in a village stable.”
-
-One evening, when the German officers were discussing the causes of the
-French defeats, a First Lieutenant told this story to illustrate it:
-
-The Chief Rabbi of the Dantzic Jews had taken a new house, and his
-flock determined to stock his wine-butt for him. On a stated evening
-his friends went down one after another into the Rabbi’s cellar, and
-emptied each his bottle into the big vat. When the Rabbi came next day
-to draw off his dinner wine he found the cask was full of pure water.
-Each Jew had said to himself that one bottle of water could never be
-noticed in so great a quantity of wine, and so the poor Rabbi had not
-got a drop of wine in his butt.
-
-Now, it was just the same with the French army. One soldier said to
-himself that it would not matter a copper if he sneaked away; but the
-bother was that one and all took the same line of reasoning, and the
-result was that nobody was left to look the enemy in the face.
-
-In order to bring about the fall of Metz a little sooner, the Prussians
-drove out all the peasants from the neighbouring villages, and forced
-them down to Metz. The Mayor of Metz ordered them back; then the
-Prussians fired over their heads, and tried to frighten them down
-again. Meanwhile, the women and children were worn out and hungry,
-and sat down to cry and wish for death. These are some of the glories
-of war. Sometimes, when they returned to their village home after a
-week’s absence, they found a remarkable change. They had left a pretty
-villa, trim gardens, and tiny pond and summer-house. This is what an
-Englishman saw one day:
-
-“I came on a little group, the extreme pathos of which made my heart
-swell. It was a family, and they sat in front of what had once been
-their home. That home was now roofless. The stones of the walls were
-all that was left. The garden was a wreck, and the whole scene was
-concentrated desolation. The husband leaned against the wall, his arms
-folded, his head on his chest. The wife sat on the wet ground, weeping
-over the babe at her breast. Two elder children stared around them with
-wonder and unconcern--too young to realize their misfortune. No home,
-no food, a waggon and a field with four graves in it--a sight enough to
-melt the hardest heart.”
-
-But there were so many similar scenes, and some much more terrible to
-witness.
-
-On the 29th of October, in torrents of rain, the French soldiers went
-out of Metz, casting down their rifles and swords in heaps at the gate,
-many glad enough to become prisoners of war and have a full stomach.
-The Germans came in very cautiously, examining fort and bastion and
-bridge, to prevent any mine explosions, and in a few hours “Metz la
-Pucelle” had become a German city. Marshal Bazaine, who had done so
-little to help them, was the object of every citizen’s curses. The
-women pelted him with mud and called him “Coward!” as he set off for
-the Prussian headquarters.
-
- From “The Siege of Metz,” by Mr. G. T. Robinson, by kind permission
- of Messrs. Bradbury and Evans.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-PLEVNA (1877)
-
- An English boy as Turkish Lieutenant--A mêlée--Wounded by a
- horseman--Takes letter to Russian camp--The Czar watches the
- guns--Skobeleff’s charge--The great Todleben arrives--Skobeleff
- deals with cowards--Pasting labels--The last sortie--Osman
- surrenders--Prisoners in the snow--Bukarest ladies very kind.
-
-
-After Turkey had put down the insurrection in Bulgaria (1876) and had
-beaten Servia (October, 1876), Russia made her tenth attempt to seize
-Constantinople. The Czar, Alexander II., declared war against the
-Sultan, Abdul Hamid II., and the result was a war which in cruelty and
-horrors has had no equal since the first Napoleon retired to St. Helena.
-
-There were a few young Englishmen fighting on the side of the Turks,
-one of whom, Lieutenant Herbert, has left us a full account of the
-siege of Plevna. He says in his preface:
-
-“I have witnessed much that was heroic, much that was grand,
-soul-stirring, sublime, but infinitely more of what was hideous and
-terrible. If you have too firm a belief in the glories of soldiering,
-try a war.”
-
-Herbert was soon made Mulazim, or Lieutenant, and his friend Jack
-Seymour was in the same company. The first successes of the Russians
-were checked when Osman Pasha stood at bay at Plevna, and the Turks
-literally dug themselves into the hills around the city, while the
-Russians lost thousands of men in vain assaults upon the earthworks.
-
-It was in the second battle of Plevna that a Bimbashi, or Major, came
-up to Herbert and said:
-
-“The General has sent for reinforcements. Take your company; an
-orderly will show the way. Do your best, Mulazim. You are but a boy,
-in a position which might unnerve a man twice your age. Rise to the
-occasion, as Englishmen are wont to do. The soldiers love you. You and
-your compatriot have but to lead, and they will follow. Remember the
-Czar Nicholas’ furious cry in the Crimean War: ‘We have been beaten by
-a handful of savages led by British boys!’”
-
-As they climbed to a distant hill they suddenly overlooked a
-battle-field of twenty square miles in area--terrible to see, terrible
-to hear. The thunder of 240 guns seemed like the crash of so many
-volcanoes; the earth trembled like a living thing. It was like standing
-in the centre of a raging fire. Presently the Russian troops drew near.
-The Turks began a quick fire of three minutes’ duration. Deep gaps
-showed in their lines, but they were soon filled up, and still they
-drew nearer. The Russian “Hurrah!” and the wild Turkish cry of “Allah!”
-mingled together. Now there were only 100 paces between the charging
-lines, the Russians coming up hill, the Turks rushing down. Then came
-a chaos of stabbing, clubbing, hacking, shouting, cursing men: knots
-of two or three on the ground, clinging to each other in a deadlier
-Rugby football; butt-ends of rifles rising and falling like the cranks
-of many engines; horses charging into solid bodies of men; frantic
-faces streaming with blood. All the mad-houses of the world might be
-discharging their contents into this seething caldron of human passion.
-
-“I remember nothing; all I know is that I discharged the six chambers
-of my revolver, but at whom I have no notion; that my sabre was stained
-with blood, but with whose I cannot tell; that suddenly we looked at
-one another in blank surprise, for the Russians had gone, save those
-left on the ground, and we were among friends, all frantic, breathless,
-perspiring, many bleeding, the lines broken, all of us jabbering,
-laughing, dancing about like maniacs. Fifteen minutes after the first
-charge the Russians returned. Of this charge I remember one item too
-well. A giant on a big horse--a Colonel, I think--galloped up to me
-and dealt me a terrific blow from above. I parried as well as I could,
-but his sword cut across my upturned face, across nose and chin, where
-the mark is visible to this day. I felt the hot blood trickle down my
-throat. He passed on. Sergeant Bakal, my friend and counsellor, spoke
-to me, pointing to my face. Jack said something in a compassionate
-voice. I fainted. When I came to myself, my head had been bandaged, the
-nose plastered all over. Water was given me. How grateful I was for
-that delicious drink! Then I was supported by friends to the outskirts
-of Plevna. As we went along I noticed a Russian Lieutenant who, after
-creeping along for a space, had sat down by the side of the track,
-leaning against the belly of a dead horse. He was calmly awaiting death
-in awful forsakenness. He counted barely twenty summers, poor boy! He
-looked at me, oh! so wistfully and sadly, with the sweet, divine light
-of deliverance shining in his tearful eyes. He said faintly: ‘De l’eau,
-monsieur?’
-
-“I had some cold coffee left in my flask, which I got my companion to
-pour down his throat. He bowed his poor bruised head gratefully, and we
-left him to die. The ground was strewn with haversacks, rifles, swords,
-wounded men; riderless horses, neighing vehemently, trotted about in
-search of food. These sights were revealed to me by the peaceful,
-dying golden light of a summer sunset. Even war, that hell-born product
-of the iniquity of monarchs and statesmen, receives its quota of
-sunshine.”
-
-A few weeks later Herbert was summoned to the Ferik, or General of
-Division, and asked if he could speak French well enough to take a
-letter into the Russian camp. He said “Yes,” made himself smart in
-new tunic and boots, and flattered himself that his tanned, smooth,
-youthful face looked well below the bright red fez with its jaunty
-tassel, in spite of his chin being still under repair. A corporal
-carrying a white flag and a bugler well mounted rode with him. They
-were handsome, strapping fellows, in the highest of spirits. After a
-ride of six miles they came in sight of a detachment of Cossacks. A
-young Russian Lieutenant rode to meet them, waving his handkerchief.
-Herbert stated his business in French, was asked to dismount while
-awaiting instructions. The Russians crowded round out of curiosity; the
-horses were fed and watered, cigarettes were exchanged, and friendly
-talk ensued. In half an hour a horseman rode up, and Herbert was bidden
-to mount. His eyes were bandaged, his horse was led. After a sharp
-trot of twenty minutes they halted, the handkerchief was taken off,
-and he found himself in a battery. An officer came up and took the
-letter, then handed Herbert over to an infantry Colonel, who took him
-into a small tent. Here, with some other officers, they had a cosy
-meal--wine, bread, and soup--a pleasant chat and smiles all round. It
-was a fortnight since the last battle, and the Russians were still lost
-in admiration of the bravery with which the Turks had defended their
-positions.
-
-“Vos hommes, mon camarade, sont des diables. Jamais je n’ai vu pareille
-chose.”
-
-That was just a glimpse of the enemy, and proved that, though men may
-fight by order, they may yet be friends at heart.
-
-The Czar Alexander had been present, watching the varied issues of
-every fight and assault. The sappers had built for him a kind of
-outlook on a little hill beyond the line of fire, where he could see
-far away on all sides. A large tent was standing behind, supplied with
-food and wine, where his suite made merry; but the poor, worn, anxious
-Czar could not eat, could not bide in his safe tower, but would go
-wandering round among the gunners and the guns. It was his fête-day
-when the great September battle was being fought. There he stood alone
-on his little balcony, under the lowering sky of an autumn day, gazing
-through his glass at the efforts of his soldiers to storm the Gravitza
-redoubt. All the afternoon assault had followed assault in vain, and
-now the last desperate effort, the forlorn hope, was being pushed to
-the front. The pale, drawn face on the balcony was now quivering with
-agonized sorrow; the tall figure was bent and bowed, and seemed to
-wince under the lash of some destroying angel. With awful losses the
-Russian battalions staggered and struggled up the slopes slippery with
-their comrades’ blood.
-
-“See, sire, they have entered the redoubt; it is carried at last!”
-
-Hardly has the Czar time to smile and breathe a prayer of gratitude
-when from a second redoubt higher up a terrible fire is turned on the
-Russians, and they are swept out of the place they had so hardly won.
-
-There was one Russian officer who seemed to have a charmed life. He
-was the bravest of the brave, was beloved by his men, and did marvels
-of heroic feats--Skobeleff. On a day of battle Skobeleff always wore
-a white frock-coat, with all his decorations. Seeing the battalions
-coming back from the Gravitza in disorderly route, the tall white
-figure on the white horse dashed at full speed down the slope, passed
-the linesmen, who gave their loved chief a great cheer as he galloped
-by, caught up the riflemen who were advancing in support, and swept
-them on at the double. Men sprang to their feet and rapturously cheered
-the white-clad leader. He reached the wavering beaten mass, pointed
-upwards with his sword, and imparted to daunted hearts some of his own
-courage and enthusiasm. They turned with him and tried yet once more.
-Then the white horse went down. The glass trembled in the hands of
-Alexander.
-
-“He is down!”
-
-“No, sire; he rises--he mounts again! See, they are over and into the
-Turkish entrenchments!”
-
-What a medley of sights and sounds--flame and smoke and shouts and
-screams! But the Russians were for the present masters of the redoubt.
-
-In the evening Skobeleff rode back without a scratch on him, though his
-white coat was covered with blood and froth and mud. His horse--his
-last white charger--was shot dead on the edge of the ditch; his blade
-was broken off short by the hilt. Every man of his staff was killed or
-wounded, except Kuropatkin.
-
-“General Skobeleff,” wrote MacGahan to the _Daily News_, “was in a
-fearful state of excitement and fury. His cross of St. George twisted
-over his shoulder, his face black with powder and smoke, his eyes
-haggard and bloodshot, his voice quite gone. I never saw such a picture
-of battle as he presented.”
-
-But a few hours later the General was calm and collected. He said in a
-low, quiet voice:
-
-“I have done my best; I could do no more. My detachment is half
-destroyed; my regiments no longer exist; I have no officers left. They
-sent me no reinforcements. I have lost three guns!”
-
-“Why did they send you no help? Who was to blame?”
-
-“I blame nobody,” said Skobeleff; then solemnly crossing himself, he
-added: “It was the will of God--the will of God!”
-
-Skobeleff’s heroism was magnificent, and did much to nerve the common
-soldier to face the Turkish batteries; but success came not that way.
-Men and officers began to ask one another why the Czar did not send
-them the help of the great Todleben, who had defended Sebastopol so
-brilliantly. It seems that the Grand Duke Nicholas had nourished a
-grudge against Russia’s most eminent engineer, and had kept him out
-of all honourable employment. But Alexander had sent for Todleben,
-and this was the turn of the tide. Todleben came in such haste from
-Russia that he had brought no horses with him. Now he was at last in
-the Russian camp--a handsome, tall, dignified man of sixty, straight
-and active, and very affable to all. The attack was to be changed. No
-more deadly assaults in front, but a complete investment, and wait till
-famine steps in to make Osman submit.
-
-But Skobeleff had not yet finished with daring assaults. One day the
-“Green Hill,” which the Russians had taken under his command, was being
-endangered by Turkish sharp-shooters. Russian recruits who were posted
-near had fallen back in a scare, thrown down their rifles, and simply
-run like hares. Skobeleff met them in full flight, and in grim humour
-shouted: “Good health, my fine fellows--my fine, brave fellows!”
-
-The men halted and gave the customary salute, being very shamefaced
-withal.
-
-“You are all noble fellows; perfect heroes you are. I am proud to
-command you!”
-
-Silent and confounded, they shambled from one leg to another.
-
-“By the way,” said Skobeleff, still blandly smiling, “I do not see your
-rifles!”
-
-The men cast their eyes down and said not a word.
-
-“Where are your rifles, I ask you?” in a sterner tone.
-
-There was a painful silence, which Skobeleff broke with a voice of
-thunder. His face changed to an awful frown, his glance made the men
-cower.
-
-“So you have thrown away your weapons! You are cowards! You run away
-from Turks! You are a disgrace to your country! My God! Right about
-face! My children, follow me!”
-
-The General marched them up to the spot where they had left their
-rifles, and ordered them to take them up and follow him. Then he led
-them out into the space in front of the trench, right in the line
-of the Turkish fire, and there he put them through their exercises,
-standing with his back to the Turks, while the bullets could be heard
-whistling over and around them. Only two of them were hit during this
-strange drill. Then he let them go back to their trenches, saying: “The
-next time any one of you runs away, he will be shot!”
-
-The investment of Plevna went on relentlessly through October,
-November, and part of December. By the 9th almost all their food
-was exhausted, and Osman determined to try one last sortie before
-surrendering. Herbert had charge of a train of a battalion outside
-the town. He made up a fire, saw his men installed for the night, and
-then walked to the town. A snowfall was coming down lazily; bivouac
-fires lit up the gaunt figures of men and beasts. The men, talking
-of to-morrow’s fight in a subdued tone, were yet excited and eager.
-Many Turkish residents, with their carts and vehicles, were spending
-the night on the snow-covered plain, the men brooding and gloomy, the
-veiled women sobbing, the children playing hide-and-seek around the
-fires and among the carts. It was a weird sight--all these thousands
-eager to go out after the army when the last struggle should have
-carved them an open road through the surrounding foe.
-
-At head-quarters an officer met Herbert, and asked him to post some
-labels at the ambulance doors of a certain street. He says:
-
-“Armed with a brush and paste-pot, I turned bill-sticker, and affixed
-a notice on some twenty house doors which were showing the ambulance
-flag. Anything more dismal than that deserted town, abandoned by all
-but dying and helpless men and some 400 starving Bulgarian families,
-cannot be imagined. Desolate, dead, God-forsaken Plevna during the
-night of the 9th and 10th of December was no more like the thriving and
-pretty Plevna of July than the decaying corpse of an old hag is like
-the living body of a blooming girl. The streets, unlighted and empty,
-save for a slouching outcast here and there bent on rapine, echoed to
-the metallic ring of my solitary steps; while occasional groans or
-curses proceeding from the interior of the ambulances haunted me long
-afterwards as sounding unearthly in the dark. Twice I stumbled over
-corpses which had been thrust into the gutter as the quickest way of
-getting rid of them.
-
-“As I walked I had to shake myself and pinch my flesh, so much like the
-phantasy of an ugly dream was the scene to my mind. As I plied my brush
-on the door-panels, I felt like one alive in a gigantic graveyard.
-
-“At one of the ambulances I was bidden to enter, and found, by the
-feeble light of a reeking oil-lamp, some invalids fighting for a
-remnant of half-rotten food which they had just discovered in a
-forgotten cupboard. Men without legs, hands, or feet were clutching,
-scratching, kicking, struggling for morsels that no respectable dog
-or cat would look at twice. I pacified them, and distributed the
-unsavoury bits of meat. As I turned to go a man without legs caught
-hold of me from his mattress, begging me to carry him to the train
-bivouac, that he might follow the army. Happily an attendant turned up,
-and I wrenched myself away.”
-
-Herbert was returning by a narrow dark lane when someone sprang upon
-him and tore the paste-pot away from him. He had doubtless seen it by
-the light of the Lieutenant’s lantern, and thought the vessel contained
-food.
-
-He belaboured the fellow’s face with his brush, making it ghastly
-white, and setting him off to splutter and croak and swear, and finally
-he rammed the bristles hard down his throat. At this moment two other
-Bulgarians came up; but, taking time by the forelock, Herbert pasted
-their mouths and eyes before they could speak, then shouted out,
-“Good-night, gentlemen, and I wish you a very hearty appetite.” He then
-turned and ran for all he was worth to the officers’ mess-room. It was
-about ten o’clock p.m. when Osman Pasha and his staff rode up, preceded
-by a mounted torch-bearer, and escorted by a body of Saloniki cavalry.
-
-When he came out again, the light from the torch fell full upon his
-face. His features were drawn and care-worn, the cheeks hollow; there
-were deep lines on the forehead, and blue rings under his eyes. Their
-expression was one of angry determination. He responded to the salute
-with that peculiar nod which was more a frown than a greeting. They all
-rose and went after him into the street to see him mount his fine Arab
-horse. He and his staff spent that last night in one of the farm-houses
-on the western outskirts of Plevna.
-
-After a supper of gruel and bread, Herbert and the others walked in
-a body to the train bivouac. The night was intensely dark; a few
-snowflakes were flying about; it was freezing a little. They did not
-talk, for each was saying to himself, “It is all over with us now.”
-Hardly any expected to see the next nightfall.
-
-Herbert and two other Lieutenants slept in a hut by the river’s brink;
-they could hear the water murmuring, and every now and then a lump of
-ice made music against the piles. A little after five in the morning
-he moved on, crossed with the first division the shaky pontoon bridge,
-and rejoined his company. Twenty-four crack battalions of the First
-Division were marching on to face the ring of Russian guns; the dark
-hoods of the great-coats drawn over the fez and pointing upwards gave
-an element of grotesqueness to the men. They were marching to certain
-death, with hope in their hearts.
-
-In front the Russian entrenchments rose out of the vapours and fog in
-threatening silence; once beyond them, and they were free! The country
-and military honour called for this supreme sacrifice, and they offered
-it full willingly.
-
-At 9.30 a.m. the bugles sounded “Advance,” and the whole line, two
-miles long, began to move in one grand column. The Turks went at the
-quick, hurling a hail of lead before them. The troops kept repeating
-the Arabic phrase, “Bismillah rahmin!” (In the name of the merciful
-God!), but the fire became so deadly that they came to a dead-stop. The
-men in the front line lay down on their stomachs. After an interval of
-ten minutes, the bugles of the First Division sounded “Storm.”
-
-The men jumped to their feet and rushed at the nearest trench. A
-murderous discharge of rifle fire greeted them; many bit the dust.
-
-But very soon the Turks had the first trench in their possession, then
-a second and third; and before they knew what they were about, they
-were in the midst of the Russian guns, hacking, clubbing, stabbing,
-shooting, whilst overhead flew countless shells, hissing and leaving a
-white trail in their track.
-
-Then they waited for the support of the second line, which never came;
-but at noon the Russians came down upon them in force. Herbert was
-ordered to ride and report that they could not hold out longer without
-reinforcements. He says:
-
-“As I rode towards the centre, I was drawn into the vortex of a most
-awful panic--a wild flight for safety to the right bank of the river.
-
-“I had never been in a general retreat. It is far more terrible than
-the most desperate encounter. I was simply drawn along in a mad stream
-of men, horses, and carts. Officers, their faces streaming with
-perspiration in spite of the cold, were trying to restore order; the
-train got mixed with the infantry and the batteries, and the confusion
-baffles description. My horse slipped into a ditch, and I continued on
-foot. I heard that Osman had been wounded and carted across the river;
-the pitiless shells followed us even to the other side of the river.
-The screams of the women in the carts unnerved many a sturdy man. I
-came to a sort of barn, where two Saloniki horsemen stood sentry. Being
-dead-beat and hungry to starving-point, I sat down on a stone. Whilst
-I crunched a biscuit a cart drove up, and a man badly wounded in the
-leg was assisted into the building. So sallow and pain-drawn was his
-face that at first I failed to recognize Osman. There were tears in
-his eyes--tears of grief and rage rather than of physical pain--and in
-their expression lay that awful thought, ‘The game is up, the end is
-come,’ which we see in Meissonier’s picture of Napoleon in the retreat
-from Waterloo.”
-
-The last sortie from Plevna was witnessed by Skobeleff from the heights
-above. The Turkish infantry were deploying with great smartness, taking
-advantage of the cover afforded by the ground. The skirmishers were
-already out in the open, driving before them the Russian outposts.
-
-Skobeleff was very excited.
-
-“Were there ever more skilful tactics?” he said. “They are born
-soldiers, those Turks--already half-way to Ganetzky’s front, hidden
-first by the darkness and now by the long bank under which they are
-forming in perfect safety. Beautiful indeed! Never was a sortie more
-skilfully prepared. How I should like to be in command of it!”
-
-Skobeleff then turned his glass on the Russian defence line. He seldom
-swore, but now a torrent of oaths burst from his lips.
-
-“Oh, that ass--that consummate ass--Ganetzky!” he shouted, striking his
-thigh with his clenched fist. “What fool’s work! He had his orders;
-he was warned of the intended sortie; he might have had any number
-of reinforcements. And what preparation has he made? None. He is
-confronting Osman’s army with six battalions when he might have had
-twenty-four. Mark my words: the Turks will carry our first line with
-a rush. We shall retrieve it, but to have lost it for ever so short a
-time will be our disgrace for ever.” Then Skobeleff spat angrily and
-rode off at a gallop. How true those words were we have seen already.
-
-At 2 p.m. Osman had been obliged to surrender, and shortly after he
-met the Russian Grand Duke Nicholas--Osman in a carriage, Nicholas on
-horseback. They looked one another long in the face, then Nicholas
-offered his hand heartily, and said:
-
-“General, I honour you for your noble defence of Plevna. It has been
-among the most splendid examples of skill and heroism in modern
-history!”
-
-Osman’s face winced a little--perhaps a twitch of pain crossed it--as,
-in spite of his wound, he struggled to his feet and uttered a few
-broken words in a low tone. The Russian officers saluted with great
-demonstration of respect, and shouts of “Bravo!” rang out again and
-again.
-
-Poor victorious Osman! conquered at last by King Famine. He had lived
-in a common green tent during the whole period of the investment; his
-last night at Plevna was the first he spent under a roof.
-
-Lieutenant Herbert says concerning the surrender: “As the Roumanian
-soldiers seized our weapons I became possessed of an uncontrollable
-fury. I broke my sword, thrust carbine, revolvers, and ammunition into
-the waggon. A private with Semitic features perceived my Circassian
-dagger, but I managed to spoil it by breaking the point before handing
-it over. Another man annexed my field-glass. I never saw my valise
-again, which had been stored on one of the battalion’s carts. I had
-saved a portion of my notes and manuscripts by carrying them like a
-breast cuirass between uniform and vest. Having given vent to rage, I
-fell into the opposite mood, and, sitting down on a stone, I hid my
-face in my hands, and abandoned myself to the bitterest half-hour of
-reflection I have ever endured.”
-
-Luckily Herbert fell in with a Roumanian Lieutenant whom he knew, who
-took him to the Russian camp, and gave him hot grog, bread, and cold
-meat. “How we devoured the food!” he says. “We actually licked the mugs
-out.”
-
-As they walked away in the dark to their night quarters, they happened
-to pass the spot where Herbert’s battalion was encamped, without fires
-or tents, in an open, snow-covered field, exposed to the north wind.
-Cries of distress and rage greeted them, and they found that the
-drunken Russian soldiers were robbing their Turkish prisoners, not
-only of watches, money, etc., but also of their biscuits--their only
-food.
-
-Herbert stopped for a minute, and gave away all he had left; but some
-Russians jumped upon him and rifled his pockets, before he could recall
-his companions to his aid. Everybody in camp seemed to be drunk.
-Herbert went to sleep in a mud hut, and slept for twelve hours without
-awaking, being very kindly treated by a Russian Major.
-
-But the Turks suffered terribly. They spent the night of the 10th on
-the same cold spot. Their arms had been taken from them, also their
-money, biscuits, and even their great-coats. It froze and snowed, and
-they were allowed no fires.
-
-It was a fortnight before all the prisoners had left the neighbourhood;
-during this time from 3,000 to 4,000 men had succumbed to their
-privations. The defence of Plevna had lasted 143 days. As the Grand
-Duke Nicholas told Osman, it was one of the finest things done in
-military history. But it cost the Russians 55,000 men, the Roumanians
-10,000, and the Turks 30,000.
-
-There is a Turkish proverb, “Though your enemy be as small as an ant,
-yet act as if he were as big as an elephant.” Had the Russians been
-guided by this, they might have saved many losses.
-
-“One bitterly cold morning, with two feet of snow on the ground, I
-joined a detachment of prisoners, escorted by Roumanians. We travelled
-viâ Sistoon to Bukarest, crossing the Danube by the Russian pontoon
-bridge. This journey, which lasted eight days, was the most dreadful
-part of my experience, lying as it did through snow-clad country, with
-storms and bitter winds. I and fifty others had seats on carts; the
-bulk of the prisoners had to tramp. I saw at least 400 men drop, to
-be taken as little notice of as if they were so much offal, to die
-of starvation, or be devoured by the wolves which prowled around our
-column.
-
-“Over each man who fell a hideous crowd of crows, ravens, vultures,
-hovered until he was exhausted enough to be attacked with impunity.
-
-“Some of the soldiers of the escort were extremely brutal; others
-displayed a touching kindness; most were as stolid and apathetic as
-their captives. Of Osman’s army of 48,000 men, only 15,000 reached
-Russian soil; only 12,000 returned to their homes.
-
-“In Bukarest our sufferings were at an end. In the streets ladies
-distributed coffee, broth, bread, tobacco, cigarettes, spirit. Our
-quarters in the barracks appeared to us like Paradise.”
-
-Then by train to Kharkoff, where Herbert got a cheque from his father,
-and was allowed much freedom on parole; he made many friends, was
-lionized and feasted and fattened “like a show beast.” “I was treated,”
-he says, “with all the chivalrous kindness and open-handed hospitality
-which are the characteristics of the educated Russians. The effects of
-the brutal propensities developed in warfare wore off speedily, and I
-am now a mild and inoffensive being, whose conscience does not allow
-the killing of a flea or the plucking of a flower!”
-
- From “The Defence of Plevna,” by W. V. Herbert, 1895, by kind
- permission of Messrs. Longmans, Green and Co.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-SIEGE OF KHARTOUM (1884)
-
- Gordon invited to the Soudan--The Mahdi--Chinese Gordon--His
- religious feeling--Not supported by England--Arabs attack--Blacks
- as cowards--Pashas shot--The _Abbas_ sent down with Stewart--Her
- fate--Relief coming--Provisions fail--A sick steamer--_Bordein_
- sent down to Shendy--Alone on the house-top--Sir Charles Wilson
- and Beresford steam up--The rapids and sand-bank--“Do you see the
- flag?”--“Turn and fly”--Gordon’s fate.
-
-
-In January, 1884, Charles Gordon was asked by the British Government
-to go to Egypt and withdraw from the Soudan the garrisons, the civil
-officials, and any of the inhabitants who might wish to be taken away.
-It was a dangerous duty he had to perform, as the Mahdi, a religious
-pretender in whom many believed, had just annihilated an Egyptian
-army led by an Englishman, Hicks Pasha, and, supported by the Arab
-slave-dealers, had revolted against Egyptian rule.
-
-Gordon had some years before been Governor-General of the Soudan for
-the Khedive Ismail. He had been then offered £10,000 a year, but would
-not take more than £2,000, for he knew it would be “blood money wrung
-from the wretches under his rule.” When previously “Chinese Gordon,”
-as he was called, had put down the Taiping rebels for the Chinese
-Government, he refused the enormous treasure which was offered him, in
-order to mark his resentment at the treachery of the Emperor for having
-executed the rebel chiefs after Gordon had promised them their lives.
-
-Gordon was a man of simple piety. “God dwells in us”--this was the
-doctrine he most valued. After the Bible, the “Imitation of Christ,”
-the writings of Epictetus and Marcus Aurelius, seem to have been
-his favourites. He once wrote: “Amongst troubles and worries no one
-can have peace till he stays his soul upon his God. It gives a man
-superhuman strength.... The quiet, peaceful life of our Lord was solely
-due to His submission to God’s will.”
-
-Such was the man whom England sent out too late to face the rising
-storm of Arab rebellion. Gordon reached Khartoum on the 18th of
-February, taking up his quarters in the palace which had been his home
-in years before. He had come, he said, without troops, nor would he
-fight with any weapons but justice. The chains were struck off from the
-limbs of the prisoners in the dungeons.
-
-“I shall make them love me,” he said; and the black people came in
-their thousands to kiss his feet, calling him “the Sultan of the
-Soudan.”
-
-But time went by, and Gordon could not get the Government at home to
-second his schemes, so that the natives began to lose confidence in
-him, and sided with the Mahdi.
-
-The Arabs began to attack Khartoum on the 12th of March, and from
-that date until his death Gordon was engaged in defending the city.
-Khartoum is situated on the western bank of the Blue Nile, on a spit
-of sand between the junction of that river with the White Nile. Nearly
-all the records of this period have been lost, but it is proved that
-wire entanglements were stretched in front of the earthworks, mines
-were laid down, the Yarrow-built steamers were made bullet-proof and
-furnished with towers, guns were mounted on the public buildings, and
-expeditions in search of food were sent out.
-
-It was Gordon’s habit to go up on the roof at sunrise and scan the
-country around.
-
-“I am not alone,” he would say, “for He is ever with me.”
-
-On the 16th of March he had to look upon his native troops retiring
-before the rebel horsemen. He writes:
-
-“Our gun with the regulars opened fire. Very soon a body of about sixty
-rebel horsemen charged down upon my Bashi-Bazouks, who fired a volley,
-then turned and fled. The horsemen galloped towards my square of
-regulars, which they immediately broke. The whole force then retreated
-slowly towards the fort with their rifles shouldered. The men made no
-effort to stand, and the gun was abandoned. Pursuit ceased about a mile
-from stockade, and there the men rallied. We brought in the wounded.
-Nothing could be more dismal than seeing these horsemen, and some men
-even on camels, pursuing close to troops, who with arms shouldered
-plodded their way back.”
-
-But Gordon was no weak humanitarian. Two Pashas were tried, and found
-guilty of cowardice, and were promptly shot--_pour encourager les
-autres_. After that he tried to train his men to face the enemy by
-little skirmishes, and he made frequent sallies with his river steamers.
-
-“You see,” he wrote, “when you have steam on the men can’t run away.”
-
-Then began a long and weary waiting for the relief which came not until
-it was too late. The Arabs kept on making attacks, which they never
-pressed home, expecting to effect a surrender from scarcity of food.
-
-[Illustration: A STRANGE WEAPON OF OFFENCE
-
-Lieut. Herbert was ordered to paste some labels at the ambulance doors
-in Plevna. In passing a dark lane someone sprang at him and seized his
-paste-pot, no doubt taking it for food. To defend himself he belaboured
-and plastered his opponents’ face with the paste-brush, and later on
-those of two others. He then turned and ran.]
-
-In September only three months’ food remained. No news came from
-England; they knew not if England even thought of them. The population
-of Khartoum was at first about 60,000 souls; nearly 20,000 of these
-were sent away as the siege went on as being friends of the Mahdi.
-
-On the 9th of September Gordon sent down the Nile, in a small
-paddle-boat named the _Abbas_, Colonel Stewart, Mr. Power, M. Herbin,
-the French Consul, some Greeks, and about fifty soldiers. They took
-with them letters, journals, dispatches which were to be sent from
-Dongola. The _Abbas_ drew little water, the river was in full flood,
-and they seemed likely to be able to get over the rapids with safety.
-Henceforth Gordon was alone with his black and Egyptian troops. One
-might have thought that his heart would have sunk within him at the
-loneliness of his situation, at the feeling of desertion by England,
-and of treachery in his own garrison. He had no friend to speak to, no
-sympathetic companion left at Khartoum. Yes, he had one Friend left,
-and in his journal he tells us that he was happier and more peaceful
-now than in the earlier months of the siege.
-
-“He is always with me. May our Lord not visit us as a nation for our
-sins, but may His wrath fall on me, hid in Christ. This is my frequent
-prayer, and may He spare these people and bring them to peace.”
-
-The ill-fated _Abbas_ was wrecked, her passengers and crew were
-murdered, her papers were taken to the Mahdi, who now knew exactly how
-long Khartoum could hold out against famine.
-
-On the 21st of September Gordon first heard the news of a relief
-expedition being sent from England, and three days later he resolved to
-dispatch armed steamers to Metemma down the Nile to await the arrival
-of our troops. They started on the 30th, taking with them many of
-Gordon’s best men; but Gordon went on, drilling, feeding the hungry,
-visiting the sick, writing hopefully, and sometimes merrily, in his
-journals. For instance, writing of an official who had telegraphed,
-“I should like to be informed exactly when Gordon expects to be in
-difficulties as to provisions and ammunition,” Gordon remarks:
-
-“This man must be preparing a great statistical work. If he will only
-turn to his archives he will see we have been in difficulties for
-provisions for some months. It is as if a man on the bank, having seen
-his friend in a river already bobbed down two or three times, hails, ‘I
-say, old fellow, let us know when we are to throw you the life-buoy.
-I know you have bobbed down two or three times, but it is a pity to
-throw you the life-buoy until you are _in extremis_, and I want to know
-exactly.’”
-
-On the 21st of October the Mahdi arrived before Khartoum, and Gordon
-was informed of the loss of the _Abbas_ and the death of his friends.
-To this Gordon replied:
-
-“Tell the Mahdi that it is all one to me whether he has captured 20,000
-steamers like the _Abbas_--I am here like iron.”
-
-On the 2nd of November there were left provisions for six weeks, and he
-could not put the troops on half rations, lest they should desert.
-
-On the 12th an attack was made upon Omdurman, a little way down the
-river, and on Gordon’s steamers _Ismailia_ and _Hussineyeh_. The latter
-was struck by shells, and had to be run aground. In the journal we read:
-
-“From the roof of the palace I saw that poor little beast _Hussineyeh_
-fall back, stern foremost, under a terrific fire of breechloaders. I
-saw a shell strike the water at her bows; I saw her stop and puff off
-steam, and then I gave the glass to my boy, _sickened unto death_. My
-boy (he is thirty) said, ‘_Hussineyeh_ is sick.’ I knew it, but said
-quietly, ‘Go down and telegraph to Mogrim, “Is _Hussineyeh_ sick?”’”
-
-On the 22nd of November Gordon summed up his losses. He had lost
-nearly 1,900 men, and 242 had been wounded. And where were the English
-boats that were to hurry up the Nile to his rescue?
-
-On the 30th of November only one boat had passed the third cataract,
-the remaining 600 were creaking and groaning under the huge strain that
-was hauling them painfully through the “Womb of Rocks.”
-
-In December the desertions from the garrison increased, as the
-food-supply decreased. There was not fifteen days’ food left now in
-Khartoum. So the steamer _Bordein_ was sent down to Shendy with letters
-and his journal. In a letter to his sister he writes:
-
-“I am quite happy, thank God! and, like Lawrence, I have _tried_ to do
-my duty.”
-
-The last entry in his journal runs as follows:
-
-“I have done the best for the honour of our country. Good-bye. You send
-me no information, though you have lots of money.”
-
-Evidently this high-souled man was cut to the heart by what he thought
-was the ingratitude and neglect of England. He could not know that
-thousands of Englishmen and Canadians were toiling up the Nile flood
-to save him, if it were possible. But alas! they all started too late,
-since valuable time had been wasted in long arguments held in London as
-to which might be the best route to Khartoum.
-
-Meanwhile, starvation was beginning: strange things were eaten by
-those who still remained faithful to the last. Only 14,000 now were
-left in the city. But Omdurman had been taken, the Arabs were pressing
-closer and fiercer, and Egyptian officers came to Gordon clamouring
-for surrender. Then he would go up upon the roof, his face set, his
-teeth clenched. He would strain his eyes in looking to the north for
-some sign, some tiny sign of help coming. He cared not for his own
-life--“The Almighty God will help me,” he wrote--but he did care for
-the honour of England, and that honour seemed to him to be sullied by
-our leaving him here at bay--and all alone!
-
-Meanwhile, the English had fought their way to Gubat, where they found
-the steamers which Gordon had sent to meet them. So tired were the men
-that, after a drink of river-water, they fell down like logs. Four of
-Gordon’s steamers, with Sir Charles Wilson and Captain C. Beresford,
-started from Gubat on the 24th of January with twenty English
-soldiers and some undisciplined blacks. They were like the London
-penny steamers, that one shell would have sent to the bottom. They
-were heavily laden with Indian corn, fuel, and dura for the Khartoum
-garrison. Each steamer flew two Egyptian flags, one at the foremast and
-one at the stern. Every day they had to stop for wood to supply the
-engines, when the men would be off after loot or fresh meat.
-
-When they reached the cataract and rapids the _Bordein_ struck on a
-rock, and could not be moved for many hours, the Nile water running
-like a mill-race under her keel. Arabs on the bank were taking
-pot-shots at her, and the blacks on board grinned good-humouredly, and
-replied with a wasteful fusillade. After shifting the guns and stores,
-the crew got the _Bordein_ to move on the 26th of January, but only to
-get fast upon a sand-bank. Precious time was thus lost, and on the 27th
-of January a camel man shouted from the bank that Khartoum was taken
-and Gordon killed. No one believed this news.
-
-Near Halfiyeh a heavy fire was opened upon them at 600 yards from four
-guns and many rifles. The gunners on the steamers were naked, and
-looked like demons in the smoke.
-
-“One huge giant was the very incarnation of savagery drunk with war,”
-writes Sir Charles Wilson.
-
-When the steamers had passed the batteries the Soudanese crews screamed
-with delight, lifting up their rifles and shaking them above their
-heads.
-
-Soon they saw the Government House at Khartoum above the trees, and
-excitement stirred every heart. The Soudanese commander, Khashm el Mus,
-kept on saying, “Do you see the flag?”
-
-No one could see the flag.
-
-“Then something has happened!” he muttered.
-
-However, there was no help for it; they had to go on past Tuti Island
-and Omdurman, spattered and flogged with thousands of bullets.
-
-“It is all over--all over!” groaned Khashm, as to the sound of the
-Nordenfeldt was added the deeper note of the Krupp guns from Khartoum
-itself.
-
-As they reached the “Elephant’s Trunk”--so the sand-spit was called
-below Khartoum--they saw hundreds of Dervishes ranged under their
-banners in order to resist a landing; so the order was given with a
-heavy heart: “Turn her, and run full speed down.” Then the Soudanese on
-board, who till now had been fighting enthusiastically, collapsed and
-sank wearily on the deck. The poor fellows had lost their all--wives,
-families, houses!
-
-“What is the use of firing? I have lost all,” said Khashm, burying his
-face in his mantle.
-
-But they got him upon his legs, and the moment of sorrowful despair
-changed again to desperate revenge. After all the steamers got safely
-back.
-
-And General Gordon--we left him alone in command of a hungry
-garrison--what of him? From examinations of Gordon’s officers taken
-later it seems that before daylight on the 26th of January the Arabs
-attacked one of the gates, and met with little or no resistance. There
-was reason to fear treachery. For some three hours the Arabs went
-through the city killing every one they met. Some of them went to the
-palace, and there met Gordon walking in front of a small party of men.
-He was probably going to the church, where the ammunition was stored,
-to make his last stand. The rebels fired a volley, and Gordon fell
-dead. It is reported that his head was cut off and exposed above the
-gate at Omdurman. We may be glad that it was a sudden death--called
-away by the God in whom he trusted so simply. Thus died one of
-England’s greatest heroes, one of the world’s most holy men.
-
-The siege had lasted 317 days, nine days less than the siege of
-Sebastopol, and the Mahdi ascribed the result to his God. In a letter
-sent to the British officers on the steamers he says:
-
-“God has destroyed Khartoum and other places by our hands. Nothing can
-withstand His power and might, and by the bounty of God all has come
-into our hands. There is no God but God.
-
- “MUHAMMED, THE SON OF ABDULLAH.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-KUMASSI (1900)
-
- The Governor’s visit--Pageant of Kings--Evil omens--The Fetish
- Grove--The fort--Loyal natives locked out--A fight--King Aguna’s
- triumph--Relief at last--Their perils--Saved by a dog--Second
- relief--Governor retires--Wait for Colonel Willcocks--The flag
- still flying--Lady Hodgson’s adventures.
-
-
-In 1874 Sir Garnet Wolseley captured Kumassi, the capital of the
-Ashantis, whose country lies in the interior of the Gold Coast, in
-West Africa. In March, 1900, Sir Frederick Hodgson, Governor of the
-Gold Coast, set out with Lady Hodgson and a large party of carriers
-and attendants to visit Ashantiland. They had no anticipation of any
-trouble arising, and on their march held several palavers with friendly
-Kings and chiefs.
-
-On Sunday, the 25th of March, they entered Kumassi in state. At the
-brow of a steep hill the European officials met the Governor’s party,
-and escorted them into the town. At the base of the hill they had to
-cross a swamp on a high causeway, and then ascend a shorter hill to the
-fort. Some children under the Basel missionaries sang “God Save the
-Queen!” at a spot where only a few years before human sacrifices and
-every species of horrible torture used to be enacted.
-
-Soon they passed under a triumphal arch, decorated with palms, having
-“Welcome” worked upon it in flowers. Near the fort were assembled in
-a gorgeous pageant native Kings and chiefs, with their followers, who
-all rose up to salute the Governor, while the royal umbrellas of state
-were rapidly whirled round and round to signify the general applause.
-Everything seemed to promise order and contentment. But that night Lady
-Hodgson was informed by her native servants that very bad fetishes, or
-portents, had been passed on the road through the forest. One of these
-was a fowl split open while still alive, and laid upon a fetish stone;
-another was a string of eggs twined about a fetish house; a third was
-the presence of little mounds of earth to represent graves--a token
-that the white man would find burial in Ashanti.
-
-The next day Lady Hodgson went to see the once famous Fetish Grove--the
-place into which the bodies of those slain for human sacrifices were
-thrown. Most of its trees had been blown up with dynamite in 1896, when
-our troops had marched in to restore order, and the bones and skulls
-had been buried. The executioners--a hereditary office--used to have a
-busy time in the old days, for every offence was punished by mutilation
-or death; for, as the King of the Quia country once told the boys at
-Harrow School, “We have no prisons, and we have to chop off ear or nose
-or hand, and let the rascal go.”
-
-But the Ashanti victim had the right of appealing to the King against
-his sentence. This right had become a dead-letter, because, as soon
-as the sentence of execution had been pronounced, the victim was
-surrounded by a clamorous crowd, and a sharp knife was run through one
-cheek, through the tongue, and so out through the other cheek, which
-somewhat impeded his power of appeal. One would have thought that
-English rule and white justice would have been a pleasant change after
-the severity of the native law.
-
-The fort is a good square building, with rounded bastions at the four
-corners. On each of these bastions is a platform on which can be
-worked a Maxim gun, each gun being protected by a roof above and by
-iron shutters at the sides. The only entrance to the fort lies on the
-south, where are heavy iron bullet-proof gates, which can be secured
-by heavy beams resting in slots in the wall. The walls of the fort
-are loopholed, and inside are platforms for those who are defending
-to shoot from. There is a well of good water in one corner of the
-square. The ground all round the fort was cleared, and it would be very
-difficult for an enemy to cross the open in any assault.
-
-As soon as the Governor of the Gold Coast knew that the Ashanti
-Kings were bent on war, he telegraphed for help from the coast and
-from the north, where most of the Hausa troops were employed. They
-were 150 miles away from help, with a climate hot and unhealthy, the
-rainy season being near at hand; and they were surrounded by warlike
-and savage tribes. Fortunately, some of the native Kings, with their
-followers, were loyal to the English Queen; these tried to persuade
-the rebels to desist from revolt, and lay their grievances before the
-Governor in palaver. But the more they tried to pacify them, the more
-insolent were their demands. The first detachment of Hausa troops
-arrived on the 18th of April, to the great joy of the little garrison;
-but soon after their arrival the market began to fail: the natives dare
-not come with food-stuffs, and the roads were now closed. On the 25th a
-Maxim gun was run out of the fort to check the advance of the Ashantis;
-but they possessed themselves of the town, and loopholed the huts near
-the fort. The loyal inhabitants of Kumassi had left their homes, and
-were crowded outside the walls of the fort, bringing with them their
-portable goods, being upwards of 3,000 men, women, and children. The
-gates of the fort had hitherto remained open, but it was evident that
-the small English force would be compelled to concentrate in the fort;
-and as the refugees seemed to be bent on rushing the gates for safer
-shelter, the order was given to close the gates.
-
-“Gradually the gate guard was removed one by one, and then came
-the work of shutting the gates and barricading them. Never shall I
-forget the sight. My heart stood still, for I knew that were this
-panic-stricken crowd to get in, the fort would fall an easy prey to
-the rebels, and we should be lost. It was an anxious moment. Could the
-guards close the gates in face of that rushing multitude? A moment
-later, and the suspense was over. There was a desperate struggle, a
-cry, a bang, and the refugees fell back.” Then they tried to climb
-up by the posts of the veranda. So sentries had to be posted on the
-veranda to force them down again. “I felt very much for these poor
-folk,” writes Lady Hodgson; “but, besides the fact that the fort would
-not have accommodated a third of them, the whole space was wanted for
-our troops.”
-
-The hours of that day went on, with sniping from all sides. Sometimes
-the rebels would come out into the open to challenge a fight, but the
-machine guns made them aware that boldness was not the best policy.
-
-At night, when our men flung themselves down to rest, the whole sky was
-lit up with the fire of the Hausa cantonments and of the town. Tongues
-of fire were leaping up to the skies on all sides, lighting up the
-horrors of the scene around, affrighting the women and children, and
-adding to the anxiety of all.
-
-Night at Kumassi was not a time of quiet repose; the incessant chatter
-of the men and women just outside the walls, the yelling and squealing
-of children, all made sleep difficult. And there was ever the thought
-underlying all that to-morrow might be the end, that the fort might be
-rushed by numbers.
-
-But, as it turned out, the 26th dawned quietly. So, later in the day,
-a strong escort of Hausas was sent to the hospital to recover, if
-possible, the drugs and medical stores which had been abandoned through
-lack of carriers when the sick were brought into the fort. Fortunately,
-the rebels had left the drugs and stores untouched, and they were
-brought in with thankful alacrity.
-
-The next night there was a hurricane of wind rushing through the forest
-trees and drenching the poor refugees, who tried to light fires to keep
-themselves warm.
-
-“There was a dear old Hausa sentry on the veranda near my bedroom, who
-regarded me as his special charge. On this occasion, and on others,
-when my curiosity prompted me to go on the veranda to see what was
-happening, this old man would push me back, saying in very broken
-English, ‘Go to room--Ashanti man come--very bad. You no come out,
-miss.’”
-
-It had been hoped that by the 29th of April the Lagos Hausas would have
-arrived to rescue them, but they did not come, and the rebels fired the
-hospital. Not liking our shells bursting amongst them, the Ashantis,
-instead of retiring, swarmed out into the open, and advanced upon the
-fort. The refugees were cowering down close to the walls, and around
-them were the Hausa outposts ready with their rifles. In the fort were
-the gunners standing to their guns. As the rebels came on, jumping and
-shouting, and dancing and firing, the Maxims opened upon them; still
-they came on, and now the Hausa outposts took up the fire. At last
-the fight became a hand-to-hand struggle, and the guns in the fort
-had to cease firing, lest they should hit friend and foe alike. Then
-some 200 loyal natives, led by Captain Armitage, sallied out to the
-fight. “At their head were their chiefs, prominent amongst whom was
-the young King of Aguna, dressed in his fetish war-coat, in the form
-of a ‘jumper,’ and hung back and front with fetish charms made from
-snake and other skins. He also wore a pair of thick leather boots, and
-where these ended his black legs began, and continued until they met
-well above the knee a short trouser of coloured cotton. He also wore
-a fierce-looking head-dress, and carried war charms made of elephant
-tails. Proudly and well did he bear himself; and at last, to our joy,
-a great cheer rose in the distance, and proclaimed that the enemy
-were retiring. Soon King Aguna came back, triumphantly carried on the
-shoulders of two of his warriors to the gate of the fort, where he met
-with a great ovation from his ‘ladies,’ who flocked round him, pressing
-forward to shake his hand and congratulate him upon the victory.” So
-the day was won, and with the loss of only one man killed and three
-wounded, as the rebels fired over our heads.
-
-Captain Middlemist had been too ill to take the command, and it
-devolved upon Captain G. Marshall, Royal West Kent Regiment, who, after
-his severe exertions, suddenly succumbed, and was brought into quarters
-half delirious. The heat of the sun, the excitement, and the work had
-been too much for him; fortunately, he was well again the next day.
-
-By this victory the rebels had been driven out of Kumassi and across
-the swamps; they had left behind large supplies of food and war stores,
-which the garrison secured; even the refugees outside the walls began
-to smile and sing. It is astonishing how these children of Nature
-suddenly change from the depth of woe to an ecstasy and delirium of
-delight.
-
-But where were the Lagos Hausas all this time?
-
-Four o’clock came, five o’clock came, and still no sign of their
-arriving. Anxious faces scanned the Cape Coast road. Something must
-have happened to them; they had been met, checked, repulsed.
-
-But at half-past five firing was heard in the forest. “There they are,”
-said each to his neighbour, and a feverish excitement made numbers run
-to the veranda posts, and climb up to get a better view. A force also
-was sent down the road to meet them. How slow the time went with the
-watchers in the fort!
-
-Just before six o’clock there was a yell from the loyal natives, and
-shouts announced that the Hausas were coming round the bend of the
-road. The relief came in through two long lines of natives, who wanted
-to see the brave fellows who had fought their way up to Kumassi from
-the coast. But, poor fellows! they had had a terrible time: their
-officers were all wounded; they had had nothing to eat or drink since
-early morning, and they were fearfully exhausted.
-
-However, after they had slept a few hours and drunk some tea, they were
-able to tell their tale. Captain Aplin, who led them, said:
-
-“We got on all right till we came to a village called Esiago, when
-we were attacked on both sides by a large force concealed among the
-trees. I formed the men up two deep, kneeling, and facing the bush on
-either side. By Jove! it was a perfect hail of slugs; and we could not
-see a soul, as the black chaps slid down the trunks of the trees into
-the jungle. Captain Cochrane, who was with the Maxim, was hit in the
-shoulder, but would not leave his post, and Dr. Macfarlane was wounded
-while tending him. Then the machine-guns became overheated and jammed,
-and had to cease firing. Four times the enemy returned to the attack.
-I got this graze on my cheek from a bullet which passed through my
-orderly’s leg.
-
-“Next day, after crossing the Ordah River, we were attacked at eleven
-a.m., and the fight lasted till five in the evening. A sudden turn in
-the track, and we saw a strongly-built stockade, horseshoe shape. Some
-Ashantis were looking over the top and peering between the logs. The
-track was so narrow that we had no front for firing, and the whole path
-was swept by their guns. I told off Captain Cochrane to outflank the
-stockade. He, with thirty Hausas, crept away into the bush to do so.
-Meanwhile, we ran short of ammunition, and had to load with gravel and
-stones. When I told the men to fix bayonets ready for a charge, I found
-they were so done up they could hardly stand. Our hour seemed to have
-struck, and the guns had again jammed. Just then three volleys sounded
-near the stockade. Cochrane was enfilading them. Hurrah! Instantly the
-Ashanti fire began to slacken. One charge, and it was ours.”
-
-Amongst those who had come in with the Hausas was Mr. Branch, an
-officer in the telegraph department. In reply to Lady Hodgson as to how
-he was so lame, he replied:
-
-“I and my men were busy putting the line right to Kumassi. We were
-peacefully going through the forest when--bang! one of my hammock-men
-went down, shot, and the rest, carriers and all, threw down their
-loads, and bolted into the tangle of trees and undergrowth. By good
-luck, I had taken off my helmet and placed it at the foot of my
-hammock. The rebels thought it was my head, and every gun was blazing
-away at my poor helmet. It was fairly riddled, I can tell you. I jumped
-out of the hammock, and made for the bush; but it was so thick and
-thorny, the brutes caught me and beat me with sticks about the legs and
-feet, so that I can scarcely walk, as you see. Well, it was my poor
-terrier dog that saved me; for he came nosing after me, but somehow
-took a wrong turn, was fired on and wounded, and went off whimpering
-into the bush in a different direction. The Ashantis followed my
-doggie, thinking he was with me; so I got away from them that night. I
-wandered about, trying to find the village, where a Kokofu chief was
-friendly to me. As daylight came I heard natives talking, and threw
-myself down under some leaves, thinking it would be rather unpleasant
-to be taken and tortured. Well, they came up, saw the grass had been
-disturbed, stopped, examined, found me! I was done for! No, I was not.
-I saw by their grinning and other signs that they were friendly. In
-fact, my carriers had told the friendly chief about me, and he had sent
-these men to bring me back; they had been looking for me all night.
-They carried me back to Esumeja, where I stayed until the Lagos Hausas
-came up on the 27th of April.”
-
-Next day the garrison of Kumassi found that their rescuers had been
-compelled to abandon their rice, and to fire away most of their
-ammunition on the road. Now there were 250 more mouths to feed, and
-food was running short. Rations were served out every morning, and
-it was a very delicate operation, for the loyal natives thought it
-a clever thing to steal a tin of beef or biscuits. The biscuits and
-tinned meat had been stored four years in a tropical climate; the
-meat-tins were covered inside by a coating of green mould, and the
-biscuits were either too hard to bite or were half-eaten already
-by weevils. Captain Middleton died on the 6th of May, and when he
-was buried, his “boy” Mounchi lay down on his master’s grave like a
-faithful dog and sobbed bitterly. That boy became a famous nurse; they
-called him the “Rough Diamond.” The poor refugees had now left the
-walls of the fort and had gone to their huts; they looked so wan and
-piteous.
-
-Night after night there came a fearful noise of drumming from the rebel
-camps. The loyal chiefs said the drums were beating out defiance and
-challenge to fight.
-
-“Why not send for more white men?” Ah! why did they not come?
-
-Every day news came of a rescue column; every night the rumour was
-proved false.
-
-On the 15th of May, about 3.30 p.m., there was a terrific hubbub all
-round the fort. Officers rushed on to the veranda to see what was the
-matter. Hundreds of friendly natives were streaming along the north
-road.
-
-“What is it, chief?”
-
-“Heavy loads of food coming in. Much eat! much eat--very good for
-belly!”
-
-In a few minutes the garrison saw a joyful sight: Major Morris leading
-in his troops from the northern territories--such a fine body of men,
-all wearing the picturesque many-coloured straw hats of the north.
-Some of the officers were on ponies. Oh, what shaking of hands! what
-delightful chatter! But they, too, had had to fight their way through
-several stockades, and some were wounded.
-
-“The arrival of Major Morris,” writes Lady Hodgson, “seemed to take a
-load off our minds. He was so cheery, confident, and resourceful, and
-seemed always able to raise the spirits of the faint-hearted.... But
-the large loads of food did not in reality exist: they had only brought
-enough to last a week; they had, however, brought plenty of ammunition.”
-
-Major Morris was now in command of 750 of all ranks, and he resolved
-to make a reconnaissance in force. They went after the rebels far
-from the fort, and whilst they were away fighting, the wives of the
-refugees were doing a slow funeral dance up and down the road, chanting
-a mournful dirge, their faces and bodies daubed with white paint. In
-spite of this appeal to their gods, many wounded were carried back to
-the fort.
-
-Many a weary day came and went; no strong relief came--no news. The
-natives were dying of starvation: some went mad and shrieked; others
-sat still and picked their cloth to pieces. It was bad enough for all.
-A rat cost ten shillings; all pets had been eaten long ago.
-
-Then it was determined that the Governor and Lady Hodgson and most of
-the garrison should try to force their way to the coast, as there were
-only three days’ supply of rations left. The 23rd of June was to be the
-day of departure.
-
-The Governor’s last words to the men left behind in the fort were:
-“Well, you have a supply of food for twenty-three days, and are safe
-for that period; but we are going to die to-day.” Captain Bishop was
-left in command of the fort, with a small force.
-
-From Captain Bishop’s report we learn that Major Morris had scarcely
-left Kumassi when he saw a band of Ashantis coming towards the fort
-from their stockade. They thought, no doubt, that the fort had been
-deserted, but the fire from two Maxims soon convinced them to the
-contrary. The refugees, who had built shelters round the walls, had
-all, with the exception of 150, gone away with the Governor’s column;
-but their empty shelters formed a pestilential area: over them hovered
-vultures--a sure proof of what some of them contained--and one of
-the first duties of the little garrison was to burn them up, after
-examining their contents.
-
-The day after the column left three men died of starvation, and almost
-daily one or more succumbed. When no relief came, as promised--though
-they had been told it was only sixteen miles off--their hopes fell, and
-after ten days they gave up all hope of surviving.
-
-“But,” he says, “we kept up an appearance of cheerfulness for the sake
-of our men. I regard the conduct of the native troops as marvellous;
-they maintained perfect discipline, and never complained. Some were
-too weak even to stand at the table to receive their rations, and lay
-about on the ground. All were worn to skin and bone, but there were
-a few who, to relieve their hunger, had been eating poisonous herbs,
-which caused great swellings of the body. Sometimes native women would
-come outside the fort and offer to sell food. A penny piece of cocoa
-realized fifteen shillings; bananas were eighteen-pence each; half a
-biscuit could be bought for three shillings. This may give some idea of
-the scarcity of food.
-
-“On the 14th of July we heard terrific firing at 4.30 p.m. Hopes jumped
-up again, but most of the men were too weak to care for anything. It
-was very pathetic that now, when relief was at hand, some of the men
-were just at the point of death.
-
-“At 4.45, amid the din of the ever-approaching firing, we heard ringing
-British cheers, and a shell passed over the top of the fort. We soon
-saw shells bursting in all directions about 400 yards off, and we fired
-a Maxim to show that we were alive. Then, to our intense relief, we
-heard a distant bugle sound the ‘Halt!’ and at six o’clock on this
-Sunday evening, the 15th of July, we saw the heads of the advance guard
-emerge from the bush, with a fox-terrier trotting gaily in front.
-
-“Instantly the two buglers on the veranda sounded the ‘Welcome,’
-blowing it over and over again in their excitement. A few minutes later
-a group of white helmets told us of the arrival of the staff, and
-we rushed out of the fort, cheering to the best of our ability. The
-meeting with our rescuers was of a most affecting character.
-
-“Colonel Willcocks and his officers plainly showed what they had gone
-through. The whole of the force was halted in front of the fort, and
-three cheers for the Queen and the waving of caps and helmets formed an
-evening scene that none of us will ever forget.” So they won through
-by pluck and patience--33 Europeans and some 720 Hausas opposing many
-thousands of savage and cruel natives.
-
-And what about the Governor’s party?
-
-They stole away on the morning of the 23rd of June in a blue-white
-mist, through the swamp and the clinging bush, till they came to a
-stockade. Then they were seen by the Ashantis, who began to beat their
-tom-toms and drums, signalling for help from other camps. But they took
-the stockade, and found beyond it a nice little camp; before every hut
-a fire was burning and food cooking, and no one to look after it. Many
-a square meal was hurriedly snatched and eaten, but some who were too
-greedy and stayed behind to eat fell victims to the returning foe.
-
-Then came a terrible wrestling with bad roads and sniping blacks and a
-deluge of rain, and most of their boxes were thrown away or lost.
-
-Of course there were many cases of theft. On the third night two
-men were brought into the village in a dying state. One of them was
-clasping in his hand a label taken from a bottle of Scrubb’s ammonia.
-They had broken open a box, and finished the two bottles which they
-found there: one was whisky, the other ammonia!
-
-Lady Hodgson writes: “One stream I remember well; it was some 30 feet
-wide, and flowing swiftly. Across it was a tree-trunk, very slippery.
-How was I to get over? The difficulty was solved by my cook carrying
-me over in his arms. He was a tall man, and managed to take me over
-safely; but more than once he stumbled, and I thought I should be
-dropped into the torrent. Often the road led through high reeds and
-long grass, and many a time I thought we had lost our way, and might
-suddenly emerge into some unfriendly village, to be taken prisoners or
-cut down.
-
-“At last N’kwanta came in sight, perched on a hill. We could see the
-Union Jack flying on a flagstaff in the centre of the town, and the
-King’s people drawn up to receive the Governor. We were at last among
-friends.
-
-“Fires were burning everywhere, and the cooking of food was the sole
-pursuit. Our poor starved Hausas had now before them the diet in which
-their hearts delighted. It was a pleasant sight to see the joy with
-which they welcomed their altered prospects, and the dispersal of the
-gloom which had so long rested upon all of us like a pall.”
-
- From Lady Hodgson’s “Kumassi,” by kind permission of Messrs. C.
- Arthur Pearson, Ltd.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-MAFEKING (1899-1900)
-
- Snyman begins to fire--A flag of truce--Midnight sortie--The
- dynamite trolley--Kaffirs careless--A cattle raid--Eloff nearly
- takes Mafeking--Is taken himself instead--The relief dribble in--At
- 2 a.m. come cannon with Mahon and Plumer.
-
-
-On the 7th of October, 1899, Colonel Baden-Powell issued a notice to
-the people of Mafeking, in which he told them that “forces of armed
-Boers are now massed upon the Natal and Bechuanaland borders. Their
-orders are not to cross the border until the British fire a shot. As
-this is not likely to occur, at least for some time, no immediate
-danger is to be apprehended.... It is possible they might attempt to
-shell the town, and although every endeavour will be made to provide
-shelter for the women and children, yet arrangements could be made
-to move them to a place of safety if they desire to go away from
-Mafeking....”
-
-Mafeking is situated upon a rise about 300 yards north of the Matopo
-River. The railway, which runs north to Buluwayo, is to the west of
-the town, and crosses the river by an iron bridge. To the west of the
-railway is the native stadt, which consists of Kaffir huts, being
-called in Kaffir language “The Place Among the Rocks.”
-
-The centre of the town is the market-square, from which bungalows
-built of mud-bricks, with roofs of corrugated iron, extend regularly
-into the veldt. The streets were barricaded, and the houses protected
-by sand-bags. An armour-plated train, fitted with quick-firing guns,
-patrolled the railway at times. The population during the siege
-included 1,500 whites and 8,000 natives. The town was garrisoned by the
-Cape Police and by the Protectorate Regiment, under Colonel Hore, by
-the Town Guard, and volunteers.
-
-Great was the excitement of the inhabitants as the day of bombardment
-drew near. They had been very busy constructing earthworks and
-gun-emplacements, piling up tiers of sand-bags and banks of earth
-to face them; some had dug deep pits to sit in, but at first such
-makeshifts were derided by the inexperienced.
-
-It had been notified that a red flag would fly from headquarters if an
-attack were threatening, together with an alarm bell rung in the centre
-of the town. Mines had been placed outside the town, and a telephone
-attached.
-
-Commandant Snyman had prophesied that when he did begin to bombard
-Mafeking English heads would roll on the veldt like marbles. Mafeking
-had no artillery to speak of, so no wonder that many hearts felt uneasy
-tremors as the fatal Monday drew near. Yet curiosity ofttimes overcame
-fear, and many coigns of vantage were chosen by those who wished to
-climb up and see the gory sport. The bombardment began at 9.15 a.m.,
-and the first shell sank in a sand-heap, and forgot to explode. The
-second and third fell short, but not very short. Then came shell after
-shell, falling into street or backyard, and exploding with a bang.
-Numbers rushed to find out what damage had been done. Then grins stole
-across surprised faces: the area of damage was about 3 square feet.
-Three shells fell into the hospital, luckily doing no harm to anyone.
-After some hours of terrible, thundering cannon-fire, it suddenly
-ceased. The garrison counted up their casualties. Three buildings had
-been struck--the hospital, the monastery, and Riesle’s Hotel; one
-life had been taken--it was a pullet that had never yet laid an egg!
-
-[Illustration: THE BOERS, TAKEN BY SURPRISE, WERE UNSTEADY AND
-PANIC-STRUCK
-
-An incident during the siege of Mafeking, when the British had sapped
-their way to within eighty yards of the Boer position.]
-
-Shortly after this bill of butchery had been presented the Boer General
-sent an emissary to Colonel Baden-Powell.
-
-“Commandant Snyman presents his compliments, and desires to know if, to
-save further bloodshed, the English would now surrender.”
-
-Baden-Powell is a great actor; he never smiled as he replied:
-
-“Tell the Commandant, with my compliments, that we have not yet begun.”
-
-But a few days later the Boers were seen to be very active on the veldt
-about three miles from the town, and the rumour spread that they had
-sent to Pretoria for siege guns. The townsfolk stood in groups and
-discussed the new peril.
-
-About noon next day the red flag flew from head-quarters. Presently
-a great cloud of smoke rose on the skyline; then came a rush of air,
-a roar as of some great bird flying, a terrific concussion, and then
-flying fragments of steel buried themselves in distant buildings,
-creating a sense of terror throughout the town.
-
-“Mafeking is doomed!” was the general cry that afternoon; those alone
-who had dug themselves deep pits were fairly comfortable in their
-minds. The second shot of the big Creusot gun wrecked the rear of
-the Mafeking Hotel, and the force of the explosion hurled the war
-correspondent of the _Chronicle_ upon a pile of wood. Next day more
-than 200 shells were thrown into Mafeking, which was saved by its mud
-walls; where bricks would have been shattered and shaken, these walls
-only threw out a cloud of dust.
-
-As the Boers began to construct trenches round the city, Captain
-Fitzclarence was ordered to make a midnight sortie. Shortly after
-eleven o’clock the little party started on their perilous expedition;
-they crept on over the veldt in extended order, noiseless as possible,
-nearer and nearer to the Boer entrenchments. Those who watched them
-felt the weirdness of the scene--the deep silence, the mysterious
-noises of the veldt, the shadows caused by the bush. Now they were
-within a few yards; as they fixed bayonets they rushed forward with a
-cheer. Then figures showed in the Boer position; shots rang out, horses
-neighed and stampeded in fright. The Boers, taken by surprise, were
-unsteady and panic-struck; not many in the first trenches resisted long
-and stubbornly. Captain Fitzclarence, a splendid swordsman, laid four
-Boers who faced him on the ground; his men pursued with the bayonet.
-
-Botha said next day that they thought a thousand men had been hurled
-against them, and the Boers in the other trenches fired as fast as they
-could at anything they could see or not see, many of the bullets going
-as far as the town.
-
-This useless firing went on for a long time. When the attacking party
-arrived at the town again, they found they had lost only six men,
-eleven wounded, and two taken prisoners. Next day the Boers fired no
-gun until evening, and had plenty to do in collecting their wounded.
-
-Several such night attacks were made in order to check the Boers’
-advance. After six weeks of siege, Colonel Baden-Powell said in a
-published order: “Provisions are not yet scarce, danger is purely
-incidental, and everything in the garden is lovely.” He was always
-trying to cheer up his little garrison with humorous speeches and funny
-doings, with concerts and dances and theatrical entertainments. It was
-the knowledge of what he had done to keep up the spirits of his men and
-the spirits of Englishmen at home which caused such a frenzy of delight
-when Mafeking was finally relieved. What seemed a madness of joy was
-a sure instinct in the nation. It is true that Mafeking, through the
-foresight of Julius Weil, the contractor, possessed immense stocks of
-food; but as to its defences, dummy camps and dummy earthworks built
-to affright the Boers would not have availed unless the loyalty and
-bravery of the colonists had been equal to the severest strain. There
-was a wild desire to spike “Big Ben,” but the Creusot was hedged round
-by barbed wire, guarded by mines, and flanked by Nordenfeldt guns. It
-seemed wearisome work, week after week, to find the Boers standing away
-four or five miles, while from their places of safety they launched
-their shells. Sometimes in the night Baden-Powell would go forth alone,
-and creep or stand and examine and ferret out the plans of the enemy.
-Often, as he returned, he would startle some dozing sentry, even as
-the great Napoleon, who once found a sentry asleep, and shouldered his
-musket until the fellow awoke with a start. “I will not tell, but don’t
-do it again!”
-
-Seven weary weeks have passed, and Mafeking still endures the straits
-of a siege and the terrors of a bombardment. The Boers have summoned to
-their aid the finest guns from their arsenal in Pretoria to breach and
-pound the earthworks; they pour shot and shell into the little town:
-but everybody is living below ground now.
-
-But they have bethought them of a new engine of terror and death. All
-was dark outside, the good folk in Mafeking were going to bed in peace,
-when a deafening roar shook the town to its foundation of rock; a
-lurid glow of blood-red fire lit up square and street and veldt, while
-pattering down on roofs of corrugated iron dropped a hailstorm of sand
-and stones, and twigs broken from many trees. The frightened folk ran
-out to see what had happened, and they saw a huge column of fire and
-smoke rising from the ground to the north of Mafeking. After the great
-roar of explosion came a weird silence and then the rattle of falling
-fragments on roof after roof; and then the cry of terror, the shriek of
-those who had been aroused from sleep to face the great trumpet-call of
-the Day of Judgment: for this they imagined that awful phenomenon to
-portend.
-
-It was not until the morning that they knew what had caused the alarm.
-About half a mile up the line the ground was rent and torn; the rails
-were bent and scattered and flung about as by an earthquake.
-
-On inquiry, they found that the Boers had filled a trolley with
-dynamite, and were to impel it forwards towards Mafeking. They lit the
-time-fuse, and proceeded to push the trolley up a slight incline. A
-few yards further, and it would reach the down incline, and would run
-merrily into town without need of further aid from muscle of man.
-
-But they gave over pushing a little too soon; the trolley began to run
-back, and it was so dark they did not realize it until it had gathered
-way; then they called to one another, and some pushed, but others
-remembered the time-fuse, and stood aloof with their mouths open.
-
-Very soon the time-fuse met the charge, and the dynamite hastened to
-work all the evil it could, regardless of friend or foe.
-
-Piet Cronje was in command of the Boers now; he was vexed by this
-unlucky accident, but threatened to send to Pretoria for dynamite guns,
-just to make this absurd veldt-city jump and squeal. Cronje was willing
-to ride up and storm Mafeking, but the idle braggarts who formed the
-greater part of his army dared not face the steel; yet there was more
-than one lady in the trenches able and ready to use her rifle. The
-natives had suffered more from shell-fire than the whites. It is not
-easy to impress the Kaffir mind with the peril of a bursting shell;
-though the Kaffir may have helped to build bomb-proof shelters for
-Europeans, yet for himself and his family he thinks a dug-out pit too
-costly, and will lie about under a tarpaulin or behind a wooden box,
-until the inevitable explosion some day sends him and his family into
-the air in fragments.
-
-[Illustration: AN AMAZON AT MAFEKING
-
-Mrs. Davies, the lady sharpshooter, in the British trenches.]
-
-One such victim was heard to murmur feebly as they put him on the
-stretcher, “Boss, boss, me hurt very.” They bear pain very stoically,
-and turn their brown pathetic eyes on those who come to help them, much
-as a faithful hound will look in his master’s face for sympathy when in
-the agony of death. There were so many shells that missed human life
-that the people grew careless and ventured out too often.
-
-Late in November a local wheelwright thought he would extract the
-charge from a Boer shell which had not exploded. The good man used a
-steel drill. For a time all went well, and his two companions bent over
-to watch the operation; then came a hideous row, a smell, a smoke, and
-the wheelwright, with both his comrades, was hurled into space.
-
-The Boers had not spared the hospital or the convent. The poor Sisters
-had had a fearful time; the children’s dormitory was in ruins, and
-their home riddled with holes. Still the brave Sisters stuck to their
-post, comforted the dying, nursed the sick, and set an example of holy
-heroism. Here is an extract from a letter describing a scene with the
-Kaffirs:
-
-“It is amusing to take a walk into the stadt, the place of rocks, and
-watch the humours of the Kaffirs, some 8,000 in number. Now and then
-they hold a meeting, when their attire is a funny mixture of savagery
-and semi-civilization. You come upon a man wearing a fine pair of
-check trousers, and nothing else, but mighty proud of his check;
-another will wear nothing but a coat, with the sleeves tied round his
-neck; some wear hats adorned with an ostrich feather, and a small
-loin-cloth. My black friend was such a swell among them that he wore
-one of my waistcoats, a loin-cloth, and a pair of tennis shoes. He
-wore the waistcoat in order to disport a silver chain, to which was
-attached an old watch that refused to go. But it was a very valuable
-ornament to Setsedi, and won him great influence in the kraal. Yet when
-my friend Setsedi wanted to know the time of day, if he was alone, he
-just glanced at the shadow of a tree; or if in company, he lugged out
-his non-ticker, and made believe to consult it in conjunction with
-the sun. The sun might be wrong--that was the impression he wished
-to create--and it was perhaps more prudent to correct solar time by
-this relic of Ludgate Circus. Thus Setsedi, like other prominent
-politicians, did not disdain to play upon the credulity of his
-compatriots.
-
-“Sometimes on a Sunday afternoon, when the Boers were keeping the
-Sabbath and no shells were flying around, the children of the veldt
-would begin a dance. They formed into groups of forty or fifty, and
-began with hand-clapping, jumping, and stamping of bare feet. The old
-crones came capering round, grinning and shrieking delight in high
-voices apt to crack for age. From stamping the young girls passed on
-to swaying bodies, every limb vibrating with rising emotion, as they
-flung out sinewy arms with languorous movement; then more wild grew the
-dance, more loud the cries of the dancers, as they threw themselves
-into striking postures, glided, shifted, retreated, laughed, or cried.
-
-“I had been watching them for some time when Setsedi came up to me and
-said:
-
-“‘Baas, I go now to mark some cows for to-night; will you come?’
-
-“‘What! has the big white chief given you leave to make a raid?’ I
-asked.
-
-“‘Yes, Marenna--yes; we are to go out to-night, and bring in a herd
-from beyond the brickfields yonder--if we can.’
-
-“‘And you go now, this afternoon, to mark them down, and spy out the
-ground?’
-
-“He smiled, showing a set of splendid teeth, pulled out his watch, hit
-it back and front with his knuckles till it rattled to the very centre
-of the works, spat carefully, and replied with some pride:
-
-“‘We brought in twenty oxen last week; the chief very pleased with us,
-and gave us a nice share, Marenna.’
-
-“Setsedi addressed me thus when he was pleased with himself and the
-universe: Marenna means sir.
-
-“‘Well, Setsedi,’ said I, ‘if I can get leave, I would like to go out
-with you to-night. May I bring my boy, Malasata?’
-
-“The idea of my asking his permission gave Setsedi such a lift up in
-his own opinion of himself that he actually reflected with his chin in
-the air before he finally gave his royal assent to my proposition.
-
-“Time and place were settled, and I went back to the club for a wash.
-These black chaps, if they don’t help us much in fighting, have proved
-themselves very useful in providing us now and then with rich, juicy
-beef from the Boer herds that stray about the veldt. When I went home
-and told Malasata he was to accompany me to-night on a cattle-raiding
-foray, like a true Kaffir, he concealed his delight, and only said,
-‘Ā-hă, Ā-hă, Unkos!’ but he could not prevent his great brown eyes from
-sparkling with pleasure. When it was pitch-dark we started--about a
-score of us--and crept along silently past the outposts, word having
-been passed that the raiders were to go and come with a Kaffir password
-or countersign.
-
-“Most of the Kaffirs were stark naked, the better to evade the grasp
-of any Boer who might clutch at them. A sergeant had been told off to
-accompany them; he and I were the only white men out that night. After
-an hour’s careful climbing and crawling, stopping to listen and feel
-the wind, the better to gauge our direction, Setsedi came close to my
-ear and whispered:
-
-“‘We can smell them, Baas; plenty good smell. You and sergeant stay
-here; sit down, wait a bit; boots too much hullabaloo; too loud talkee!’
-
-“It was disappointing, but we quite saw the need of this caution, and
-we neither of us saw the necessity of walking barefoot upon a stony
-veldt; so we sat down in the black silence, and waited. Yet it was not
-so silent as it seemed: we could hear the bull-frogs croaking a mile
-away in the river-bed, and sometimes a distant tinkle of a cow-bell
-came to us on the soft breeze, or a meercat rustled in the grass
-after a partridge. In about half an hour we heard something; was it a
-reed-buck? Then came the falling of a stone, the crackling of a stick
-as it broke under their tread; then we rose and walked towards our
-black friends.
-
-“Three or four Kaffirs were shepherding each ox, ‘getting a move’ on
-him by persuasion or fist-law. Sometimes one ox would be restive and
-‘moo’ to his mates, or gallop wildly hither and thither; but always the
-persistent, ubiquitous Kaffir kept in touch with his beast, talking
-to him softly like a man and a brother, and guiding him the way he
-should go. And all this time the Boers were snoring not 300 yards
-off, sentry and all, very probably. But it would not do to count upon
-their negligence; any indiscreet noise might awake a trenchful of
-Mauser-armed men, and bring upon us a volley of death.
-
-“When we had got the cattle well out of earshot of the Boer lines, the
-Kaffirs urged on the oxen by running up and pinching them, but without
-uttering a sound. As we drew near to the native stadt, a great number
-of natives who had been lying concealed in the veldt rose up to help
-their friends drive the raided cattle into the enclosure, and the
-sergeant went to head-quarters with the report of twenty-four head of
-cattle safely housed.”
-
-The besieged had persevered in their “dug-outs” until May, 1900, being
-weary and sometimes sick, faint with poor food, and hopes blighted.
-They had been asked by Lord Roberts to endure a little longer;
-Kimberley had been relieved, and their turn would come soon.
-
-Meanwhile, President Kruger’s nephew, Commandant Eloff, had come into
-the Boer camp with men who had once served as troopers at Mafeking, and
-who knew much about the fortifications. Eloff made a skilful attack
-upon the town on the 12th of May, and was successful in capturing a
-fort, Colonel Hore, and twenty-three men. This attack had been urgent,
-because news had reached the Boers that the British relief column had
-reached Vryburg on the 10th of May, and Vryburg is only ninety-six
-miles south of Mafeking. During the fight Mr. J. A. Hamilton, not
-knowing that the fort had been taken, thought that he would ride across
-to see Colonel Hore. It was a short ride from where he was--only a few
-hundred yards. The bullets whistled near his head, and he scampered
-across the open to reach cover. It was a bad light, and smoke was
-drifting about, but he saw men standing about the head-quarters
-or sitting on the stoep facing the town. As he rode his horse was
-struck, and swerved violently; some one seized his bridle and shouted
-“Surrender!” They were Boers, and amongst them were Germans, Italians,
-and Frenchmen. Many speaking at once, they ordered him to hold up his
-hands, give up his revolver, get off his horse.
-
-“We had better all take cover, I think,” said Hamilton, as English
-bullets were falling rather near them.
-
-Then they took him within the walls. But he had not yet obeyed any of
-their orders.
-
-“Will you hold your hands up?” said one Boer, thrusting a rifle into
-his ribs with a grin.
-
-“With pleasure, under the circumstances,” he replied, trying to smile.
-
-“Will you kindly hand over that revolver?” said another.
-
-“What! and hold my hands up at the same time?”
-
-They were dull; they did not see the joke, but shouted, “Get off!”
-
-Some one unstrapped the girths, and Mr. Hamilton rolled to the ground.
-It was only then that he saw his horse had been shot in the shoulder,
-and he asked them to put the poor beast out of his pain.
-
-“No, no! Your men will do that soon enough,” said they.
-
-The poor animal stood quietly looking at him, as he says, with a sad,
-pathetic, inquiring look in his eyes, as if he were asking, “What can
-you do for me? I assure you my shoulder gives me awful pain.”
-
-Hamilton was taken inside the fort and made prisoner. When, later in
-the day, he came out, he found his poor horse lying with his throat cut
-and seven bullet-wounds in his body.
-
-There were thirty-three prisoners crowded in a small, ill-ventilated
-store-room, and they grew very hungry. As dusk settled down they began
-to hear echoes of desperate fighting outside. Bullets came through the
-wall and roofing, splintering window and door; through the grating
-of the windows they could see limping figures scurry and scramble;
-they heard voices cursing them and urging Eloff to handcuff and march
-the prisoners across the line of fire as a screen for them in their
-retreat. Then the firing died down, and the Boers seemed to have
-rallied; then came a fresh outburst of heavy firing, and then a sudden
-silence. Eloff rushed to the door.
-
-“Where is Colonel Hore?”
-
-“Here!”
-
-“Sir, if you can induce the town to cease fire, we will surrender.”
-
-It was quite unexpected, this turn of events. No one spoke. Then Eloff
-said:
-
-“I give myself up as a hostage. Get them to cease fire.”
-
-The prisoners went out, waved handkerchiefs, shouted, “Surrender! Cease
-fire, boys.”
-
-When this was done sixty-seven Boers laid down their rifles, and the
-prisoners stacked them up in their late prison.
-
-Commandant Eloff was now a prisoner instead of being master of
-Mafeking; his partial success he owed to his own dash and gallantry,
-his failure to the half-hearted support of General Snyman. He dined at
-head-quarters, and a bottle of champagne was opened to console him and
-distinguish this day of surprises.
-
-On the 16th of May there was great excitement in the town; the great
-activity in the Boer laagers, the clouds of dust rising in the south,
-all showed that something new and strange was coming. News had come of
-General Mahon having joined Colonel Plumer a few miles up the river.
-“When will they come?” everybody was asking. About half-past two
-General Mahon’s guns were heard, and the smoke of the bursting shells
-could be seen in the north-west.
-
-In the town people were taking things very calmly. Had they not enjoyed
-this siege now for seven months, when it had been expected to last
-three weeks at the most? They were playing off the final match in the
-billiard tournament at the club. Then came a hubbub, and Major Pansera
-galloped by with the guns to get a parting shot at the retiring Boers.
-
-Then fell the dusk, and the guns came back. Everybody went to dinner
-very elated and happy. “By noon to-morrow we shall be relieved,” they
-said.
-
-It was now about seven o’clock; the moon was shining brightly in the
-square.
-
-“Hello! what’s this? Who are you, then?”
-
-There were eight mounted men sitting on horseback outside the
-head-quarters office.
-
-“Who are you, and what do you want?” asked a man in the crowd.
-
-“We are under Major Karie Davis with a despatch from General Mahon.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-“Yes, we’ve come to relieve you fellows; but you don’t seem to care
-much whether you are relieved or not.”
-
-Then the news travelled round the town; a great crowd gathered, and
-round after round of cheers broke out. The troopers were surrounded by
-enthusiastic citizens, cross-questioned, congratulated, slapped on the
-back, shaken by the hand, and offered--coffee!
-
-Major Davis came out and called for cheers for the garrison; then all
-fell to hallooing of such anthems as “Rule Britannia” and “God save the
-Queen.”
-
-Then the troopers of the Imperial Light Horse were taken in to supper.
-
-About two in the morning the troops entered Mafeking--not quite
-2,000 men; but when the townsfolk, hearing the noise, ran out into
-the starry, moonlit night, they saw such a host of horses, mules,
-and bullocks, such a line of waggons and camp-followers, and such a
-beautiful battery of bright Royal Horse and Canadian Artillery and
-Maxims that life seemed worth living at last. Those who did not laugh
-quietly went home and cried for joy. They had earned their day of
-delight.
-
-Mafeking had endured 1,498 shells from the 100-pound Creusot; besides
-this, they had had to dodge 21,000 odd shells of smaller calibre. Men
-who saw Ladysmith said that the ruin at Mafeking was far greater.
-
-Lord Roberts had, with his wonted generosity, sent a mob of prime
-bullocks and a convoy of other luxuries. So when the Queen’s birthday
-came, as it soon did, the town made merry and were very thankful.
-
-England was thankful too, for although it was only a little town on the
-veldt, every eye at home had been upon the brave defenders who, out of
-so little material, had produced so grand a defence.
-
-It is not too much to say that Colonel Baden-Powell and his gallant
-company had not only kept the flag flying; they had done far more:
-they had kept up the spirits of a nation beginning to be humiliated by
-defeat after defeat, when most of the nations of Europe were jeering at
-her, and wishing for her downfall. But God gave us victory in the end.
-
- In part from J. A. Hamilton’s “Siege of Mafeking,” by kind
- permission of Messrs. Methuen and Co.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-THE SIEGE OF KIMBERLEY (1899-1900)
-
- The diamond-mines--Cecil Rhodes comes in--Streets
- barricaded--Colonel Kekewich sends out the armoured train--Water
- got from the De Beers Company’s mines--A job lot of shells--De
- Beers can make shells too--Milner’s message--Beef or horse?--Long
- Cecil--Labram killed--Shelter down the mines--A capture of
- dainties--Major Rodger’s adventures--General French comes to the
- rescue--Outposts astonished to see Lancers and New Zealanders.
-
-
-Kimberley is the second largest town in Cape Colony, and is the great
-diamond-mining district, having a population of about 25,000 whites.
-Mr. Cecil Rhodes was the Chairman of the De Beers Mines Company, which
-pays over a million a year in wages.
-
-Kimberley could not at first believe war to be possible between the
-Dutch and English, though they saw the regular troops putting up
-earthworks and loopholed forts all round the town. Next a Town Guard
-was formed to man the forts, while the 600 regulars and artillery were
-to be camped in a central position ready for emergencies. Cecil Rhodes
-arrived the last day the railway was open, and began at once to raise
-a regiment at his own expense--the Kimberley Light Horse. All the
-streets were blocked with barricades and barbed wires to prevent the
-Boers rushing in. The main streets had a narrow opening left in the
-centre guarded by volunteers, who had orders to let none pass without
-a signed permit. Rhodes used to ride far out on the veldt, dressed in
-white flannel trousers, though the Boers hated him, and would dearly
-have liked to pot him at a safe distance.
-
-Colonel Kekewich was in command--a man of Devon, and very popular with
-his men. On the 24th of October they had their first taste of fighting,
-when a patrol came across a force of Boers who were out with the object
-of raiding the De Beers’ cattle. Kekewich, from his conning-tower,
-could see his men in difficulties, and sent out the armoured train,
-and the Boers were speedily dispersed. There were many wounded on both
-sides, and the Mauser bullet was found to be able to drill a neat hole
-through bone and muscle, in some cases without doing so much damage as
-the old bullets of lower velocity in earlier wars.
-
-At the beginning of the siege it was feared that water might fail, but
-in three weeks the De Beers Company had contrived to supply the town
-with water from an underground stream in one of their mines.
-
-The bombardment began on the 7th of November, and, as at Mafeking, did
-not do much damage, for the shells, being fired from Spytfontein, four
-miles away, and being a “job lot” supplied to the Transvaal Government,
-did not often reach the houses, and often forgot to burst. So that, it
-is said, an Irish policeman, hearing a shell explode in the street near
-him, remarked calmly to himself: “The blazes! and what will they be
-playing at next?”
-
-But by the 11th the Boers had brought their guns nearer, had found the
-range, and were becoming a positive nuisance to quiet citizens.
-
-Sunday was a day of rest and no shelling took place, but on other
-days it began at daylight, and, with pauses for meals and a siesta,
-continued till nine or ten o’clock at night. As usual, there were
-extraordinary escapes. One shell just missed the dining-room of the
-Queen’s Hotel, where a large company were at dinner, and, choosing the
-pantry close beside it, killed two cats. Luckily there was time between
-the sound of the gun and the arrival of the shell to get into cover.
-
-The De Beers Company, having many clever engineers and artisans, soon
-began to make their own shells, which had “With C. J. R.’s Compts.”
-stamped upon them--rather a grim jest when they did arrive.
-
-On the 28th November Colonel Scott Turner, who commanded the mounted
-men, was killed in a sortie. He was a very brave, but rather reckless,
-officer, and was shot dead close to the Boer fort.
-
-Sometimes our own men would go out alone, spying and sniping, and in
-many cases they were shot by their own comrades by mistake.
-
-By December the milk-farms outside the town had been looted, and fresh
-milk began to be very scarce; even tinned milk could not be bought
-without a doctor’s order, countersigned by the military officer who was
-in charge of the stores. The result was that many young children died.
-
-At Christmas Sir Alfred Milner sent a message to Kimberley, wishing
-them a _lucky_ Christmas. This gave the garrison matter for thought,
-and the townsfolk wondered if England had forgotten their existence.
-
-Those who could spent some time and care on their gardens, for they
-tried to find a nice change from wurzels to beet, and even beans and
-lettuce. For scurvy, the consequence of eating too much meat without
-green stuff, had already threatened the town. Those who wanted food had
-to go to the market hall and fetch it, showing a ticket which mentioned
-how many persons were to be supplied. When horse-flesh first began to
-be used by the officers, Colonel Peakman, presiding at mess, said
-cheerfully: “Gentlemen, very sorry we can’t supply you all with beef
-to-day. Beef this end, very nice joint of horse the other end. Please
-try it.” But the officers all applied for beef, as the Colonel had
-feared they would.
-
-Then suddenly, when all had finished, he banged his hand on the table,
-and said: “By Jove! I see I have made a mistake in the joints. This is
-the capital joint of horse which I am carving! Dear! dear! I wanted
-so to taste the horse, but--what! not so bad after all? Then you will
-forgive me, I am sure, for being so stupid.”
-
-All the same, some of them thought that the Colonel had made the
-mistake on purpose, just to get them past the barrier of prejudice.
-
-Towards the end of January the bombardment grew more severe; the shells
-came from many quarters, and some were shrapnel, which caused many
-wounds. The new gun made by the De Beers Company did its best to reply,
-but it was only one against eight or nine. The Boers confessed that
-they directed their fire to the centre of the town, where there were
-mostly only women and children, for the men were away from home in the
-forts or behind the earthworks. The townsfolk tried to improve their
-shell-proof places, but most of them were deadly holes, hot and stuffy
-beyond description, but that made by Mr. Rhodes around the Public
-Gardens was far superior to the rest. The De Beers gun was named “Long
-Cecil,” after Mr. Rhodes, and was about 10 feet long; it threw a shell
-weighing 28 pounds. When it was first fired, the great question was,
-“Will it burst?”
-
-But the Boers were surprised, when they sat at breakfast in a safe
-spot, to hear shells dropping around like ripe apples. That breakfast
-was left unfinished, as an intercepted letter informed the garrison.
-
-However, the Boers soon placed a bigger gun near Kimberley, and shells
-began to fall in the market-place very freely.
-
-In February the garrison had a great loss. The last shell of that day
-fell into the Grand Hotel and killed George Labram, the De Beers chief
-engineer. It was Labram who had arranged for the new water-supply, who
-had made the new shells, and planned “Long Cecil.” He was to Kimberley
-what Kondrachenko was to the Russians at Port Arthur--a man of many
-inventions, an American, ready at all points. He had just gone upstairs
-to wash before dinner, when a shell entered and cut him to ribbons, so
-that he died instantly. A servant of the hotel was in his room at the
-time, and was not touched.
-
-Towards the middle of February notices signed by Cecil Rhodes were
-posted up all over the town to the effect that women and children
-should take shelter in the two big mines. So very soon the streets were
-full of people running to the mines with babies, blankets, bread, and
-bedding. The crowd was so great that it took from 5.30 p.m. to midnight
-to lower them all down the shafts. Kimberley mine took more than 1,000,
-the De Beers mine 1,500, and all were lowered without a single accident.
-
-One day some natives came in with a story that the Boers had deserted
-the fort Alexandersfontein. Spies were sent out to investigate, and
-reported it to be a fact, so some of the Town Guard, with help from the
-Lancashires, sallied out and took possession of the fort. A few Boers
-who had been left there were wounded or taken prisoners.
-
-“We will wait a bit in this fort, boys, to see what will turn up,”
-said the Captain; and in a short time they saw four waggons coming
-up, which were driven unsuspiciously right into his hands. Other
-waggons followed, all full of most delicious dainties for Boer
-stomachs, but likely to be received in starving Kimberley with greater
-enthusiasm--such things as poultry, grain, butter, fresh vegetables,
-and bacon. The waggons were drawn by fat bullocks--a sight for mirth
-and jollity.
-
-In the afternoon the poor Boers knew what they had missed, and some
-very spiteful bullets were sent across for several hours.
-
-Major Rodger had sent some men to spy out the country, and was waiting
-for their return. Presently he saw two men advancing towards him, and
-thinking they were his own men he rode up to them. On drawing near
-he saw they were Boers. His main body of men were far behind, and he
-realized that if he galloped away he would be shot, so he quietly
-walked his horse up to them. One of the Boers said: “Who are you?”
-“Only one of the fighting-men from Kimberley,” the Major replied. They
-did not draw their revolvers, they did not cry “Hands up!” and seize
-him by the collar--no, all they did was to utter a brief swear, turn
-their horses’ heads, and scamper over the veldt as fast as they could,
-stooping over the pommel to avoid the Major’s fire. But half a mile
-away they hit upon some of their own comrades, fired a few volleys,
-broke the Major’s arm, and retired.
-
-Major Rodger, however, had not done his day’s work, and never told his
-men he had been shot until they returned to Kimberley in the evening.
-So much for a Kimberley volunteer!
-
-Meanwhile, the little folks and the women deep down in the mine--some
-1,500 feet--were busy devouring sandwiches of corned-beef and horse,
-and buckets of tea and coffee, with condensed milk, were lowered down
-too. The large chamber cut out of the rock was lit with electric light,
-and was not very hot, though it was crammed with children, many of
-whom were lying on rugs or blankets; they lay so thick on the floor
-that walking amongst them was the feat of an acrobat. But they were
-safe down there! No ghastly sights of mangled limbs met their gaze, no
-whizz of deadly shell, no scream of pain reached them there. It was
-worth something to have escaped the horrors of a siege, and to feel no
-nervous tremors, no cowardly panic, no dull despair.
-
-Meanwhile Lord Roberts had not forgotten Kimberley. A force of some
-5,000 sabres, led by General French, with two batteries of Horse
-Artillery, had galloped in the dead of night to the Modder River. Here
-a small Boer force fled from before them, and ever on through the
-quivering heat rode Hussars, Dragoons, and Lancers, until both men and
-horses fell out exhausted on the veldt. On the third day they came
-close to some kopjes, or hills, on which Boers were posted, who stared
-in amazement at the sight of the 9th Lancers sweeping in open order
-round the base of the hills. A hundred miles they had ridden with scant
-food and scanter water, so that the Boers might have been still more
-surprised to see many a trooper walking by his tired steed, and even
-carrying the saddle.
-
-Dr. Conan Doyle tells us that “a skirmish was in progress on the 15th
-of February between a party of the Kimberley Light Horse and some
-Boers, when a new body of horsemen, unrecognized by either side,
-appeared upon the plain, and opened fire upon the enemy. One of the
-strangers rode up to the Kimberley patrol, and said:
-
-“‘What the dickens does K.L.H. mean on your shoulder-strap?’
-
-“‘It means Kimberley Light Horse. Who are you?’
-
-“‘I am one of the New Zealanders.’”
-
-How puzzled that member of the Kimberley force must have been--a New
-Zealander out on the African veldt!
-
-Soon the little clouds of dust on the horizon drew hundreds of
-townsfolk to the earthworks, and as the glint of spear-head and
-scabbard flashed out of the cloud, and the besieged garrison knew their
-troubles were over, men waved their hats and shouted, and tearful,
-laughing ladies flocked round the first men who rode in, and nearly
-pulled them out of the saddle. Then they set to and hauled the rest out
-of the mines, finishing that job well by midnight.
-
-For 124 days Kimberley had been besieged. The Boers had never once
-attacked the town, though not more than 550 mounted men were latterly
-available for offensive work; these, with the Town Guard, Lancashires,
-and Kimberley Rifles, made a total of 3,764. Colonel Kekewich might
-well look radiantly happy; he had administered everything with strict
-justice, and had earned the respect and admiration of all, while Cecil
-Rhodes and the De Beers officials had magnificently met and countered
-every difficulty with generous skill and unflagging energy.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH (1899-1900)
-
- Ladysmith--Humours of the shell--The _Lyre_ tries to be
- funny--Attack on Long Tom--A brave bugler--Practical jokes--The
- black postman--A big trek--Last shots--Some one comes--Saved at
- last.
-
-
-Ladysmith, where Sir George White and his men detained the Boers so
-long, is a scattered town lying on a lake-like plain, and surrounded by
-an amphitheatre of rocky hills. To the north-west was Pepworth Hill,
-where the Boer Long Tom was placed; north-east of the town, and four
-miles away, was Unbulwana: here the Boers had dragged a large siege-gun.
-
-South of the town the Klip River runs close under the hills, and here
-many caves were dug as hiding-places for the residents. There were many
-women and children there all day long. On the 3rd of November the wires
-were cut; Ladysmith was isolated and besieged. On the next day it was
-discussed whether General Joubert’s proposal should be accepted--that
-the civilians, women, and children should go out and form a camp five
-miles off under the white flag. Archdeacon Barker got up, and said:
-“Our women and children shall stay with the men under the Union Jack,
-and those who would do them harm may come to them at their peril.”
-
-The meeting cheered the tall, white-haired priest, and agreed thereto.
-
-The townsfolk soon got used to shell-fire, but they spent most of the
-day by the river in their cool caves. There was a Dr. Starke, a visitor
-from Torquay, who used to go about with a fishing-rod, and spend hours
-by the river--a kindly man, who one day found a cat mewing piteously at
-a deserted house, and, making friends with it, used to carry it about
-with him. This gentleman, having the cat in his arms, was standing near
-the door of the Royal Hotel talking to Mr. McHugh, when a shell came
-through the roof, passed through two bedrooms, and whizzed out at the
-front-door, catching the poor doctor just above the knees. His friend
-escaped without a scratch. Dr. Starke had always tried to avoid the
-peril of shells, and they used to banter him on his over-anxiety. It
-is strange how many hits and how many misses are in the nature of a
-surprise.
-
-Late in November a shell entered a room in which a little child was
-sleeping, and knocked one of the walls of the bedroom clean out. In the
-cloud of dust and smoke the parents heard the cry of the little babe,
-rushed in, and found her absolutely untouched, while 20 yards away a
-splinter of the same shell killed a man of the Natal Police. At the
-same house later in the evening two friends called to congratulate the
-mother; they were being shown two pet rabbits, when a splinter of a
-shell came in and cut in two one of the rabbits.
-
-One day a Natal Mounted Rifleman was lying in his tent, stretched
-himself, yawned, and turned over. At that instant a shell struck the
-spot where he had just been lying, made a hole in the ground, and
-burst. The tent was blown away from its ropes, his pillow and clothes
-were tossed into the air. Poor fellow! his comrades ran towards him,
-and found him sitting up, pale, but unharmed. They could hardly believe
-their senses. “Why, man, you ought to have been blown to smithereens!”
-Another day a trooper of the 18th Hussars was rolled over, horse and
-all, yet neither of them suffered any severe injury.
-
-December came, and by then the poor women were looking harassed and
-worn: so many grievous sights, so many perils to try and avoid, so many
-losses to weep over.
-
-Some of the correspondents brought out a local paper, the _Ladysmith
-Lyre_, to enliven the spirits of the dull and timid and sick. The news
-may be sampled by the following extracts:
-
-“_November 14._--General French has twice been seen in Ladysmith
-disguised as a Kaffir. His force is entrenched behind Bulwen. Hurrah!
-
-“_November 20._--H.M.S. _Powerful_ ran aground in attempting to come up
-Klip River; feared total loss. [Klip River is 2 feet deep in parts.]
-
-“_November 21._--We hear on good authority that the gunner of Long Tom
-is Dreyfus.
-
-“_November 26._--Boers broke Sabbath firing on our bathing parties.
-Believed so infuriated by sight of people washing that they quite
-forgot it was Sunday.”
-
-The _Ladysmith Lyre_ had come out three times before December.
-
-On the 7th of December, at 10 p.m., 400 men, who had volunteered for
-the task, were ordered to turn out, carrying rifles and revolvers
-only, and to make no noise. A small party of Engineers were to be with
-them. Their object was to destroy Long Tom, which was now removed from
-Pepworth to Lombard’s Kop, on the north-east. They started when the
-moon went down on a fine starlight night. By a quarter to two a.m.
-they were close to the foot of Lombard’s Kop, but the Boer pickets had
-not been alarmed. General Hunter, who led them, explained how 100 of
-the Imperial Light Horse and 100 of the Carbineers would steal up the
-mountain and take the Boer guns, while 200 of the Border Mounted (on
-foot) would go round the hill to protect their comrades from a flank
-attack. The Engineers, carrying gun-cotton and tools, followed close
-after the storming party. As our men were creeping quietly up the
-hill on hands and knees, amazed that there were no outposts, a sudden
-challenge rang out behind them: “Wis kom dar?”
-
-Had the Boer sentry been dreaming in the drowsy night?
-
-“Wis (pronounced ve) kom dar? Wis kom dar?” he impatiently shouted. Our
-men sat down on the slope above him, grinning to themselves, and made
-no answer.
-
-“Wis kom dar?” He was getting angry and frightened this time, by the
-tone of it.
-
-“Take that fellow in the wind with the butt of a rifle, and stop his
-mouth.”
-
-Then the Boer knew who they were, and yelled to his comrades for help;
-then they heard him say to his after-rider: “Bring my peart--my horse!”
-and he was safely off!
-
-Further up the hill a shrill voice shouted: “Martinas, Carl Joubert,
-der Rovinek!” (the Red-neck). At this our men clambered up like goats,
-while a volley was fired, and bullets whizzed over their heads.
-
-“Stick to me, guides!” shouted General Hunter.
-
-As they neared the top Colonel Edwards, of the volunteers, shouted:
-“Now then, boys, fix bayonets, and give them a taste of the steel.”
-This was meant for the Dutchmen to hear, for there was not a bayonet
-amongst the assaulting party.
-
-The Boers do not like cold steel, and they were heard slithering and
-stumbling down the other side of the mountain. Now they were up on the
-top. There stood Long Tom pointing at high heaven, loaded ready, and
-laid to a range of 8,000 yards, or over four miles. Not a Boer was to
-be seen or heard anywhere.
-
-Quickly the Engineers got to work. Some removed the breech-block,
-others filled the barrel with gun-cotton, plugged both muzzle and
-breech, and ran a pretty necklace of gun-cotton round the dainty
-ribs of the barrel. Long Tom was looking quite unconscious of their
-attentions, and shone in the starlight.
-
-He had been set on solid masonry, was mounted on high iron wheels, and
-a short railway line had been laid down for purposes of locomotion. A
-thick bomb-proof arch was built over him, and huge pyramids of shells
-were piled up round about him. A Howitzer and a field-gun, which stood
-close by, were then destroyed, and a Maxim was reserved to be brought
-away.
-
-In about twenty minutes the Engineers announced that they were ready.
-
-Like goats they had swarmed about him, and now it was Long Tom’s turn
-to say “Baa!”
-
-The firing fuse was attached. “Keep back! keep back!”
-
-There was heard a dull roar from the monster, and the whole mountain
-flared out with a flash as if of lightning.
-
-“Had the gun-cotton done its work?” They ran back to inspect.
-
-“Barrel rent, sir; part of the muzzle torn away.” Long Tom has fired
-his last shot. The ladies of Ladysmith will be very thankful for this
-small favour. The men came back, most of them carrying small trophies.
-
-Down they scrambled; no barbed wire, no impediments. Who would have
-thought that these English would stir out o’ night? Had they no desire
-to sleep and rest? But when they got down they found some had been
-wounded. Major Henderson had been twice hit--thumb almost torn away,
-and a couple of slugs in his thigh. Yet he had never halted, and was
-the first to tackle the gun. A few privates were also hit, but only one
-so seriously as to be left behind in care of a surgeon.
-
-Great rejoicing at breakfast, and congratulations from Sir George White.
-
-But the time wore on, and sickness came--far worse and more fatal than
-shell-fire. There were hundreds of fever patients in the hospital
-outside at Intombi Spruit.
-
-Fever--typhoid, enteric--and no stimulants, no jellies, no beef-tea!
-
-The only luxury was a small ration of tinned milk. Scores of
-convalescents died of sheer starvation. The doctors were overworked,
-and they, too, broke down.
-
-No wonder that many in the garrison chafed at inaction, found fault
-with their superiors, and asked bitterly: “Are we to stay here till we
-rot?”
-
-By New Year’s Eve Ladysmith had endured some 8,000 rounds of shell;
-many buildings had been hit half a dozen times. On New Year’s Day an
-officer of the Lancers was sleeping in his house, when a shell exploded
-and buried him in a heap of timber. When they pulled the mess off him,
-he sat up, rubbed the dust out of his eyes, and asked, “What o’clock is
-it?” He was unhurt.
-
-There was a small bugler of the 5th Lancers who was the envy of every
-boy in the town. This boy was in the battle at Elands Laagte, and
-when a regiment seemed wavering he sounded the call, the advance, the
-charge. The result was that that regiment faced the music, and did
-valiantly. A General rode up to the bugler after the fight, and took
-his name, saying: “You are a plucky boy. I shall report you!”
-
-For this boy, after sounding the charge, had drawn his revolver, rode
-into the thick of the fight on his Colonel’s flank, and shot three
-Boers one after the other.
-
-Scores of officers gave the boy a sovereign for his pluck, and he wore
-his cap all through the siege in a very swagger fashion.
-
-Some of the regiments had their pet dogs in Ladysmith.
-
-When the King’s Royals went into action their regimental dog went with
-them. He had never been out of the fighting line, and had never had
-a scratch, but seemed to enjoy the fun of barking and looking back,
-saying, “Come on--faster!”
-
-There was another, a little red mongrel, who insisted on seeing every
-phase of warfare; he had lost a leg in India--it was so smashed up that
-the doctor had to cut it off. There he was, pottering about on three
-legs, full of inquisitive ardour, and when not engaged on sanitary
-inspection work, always to the front when the guns were at it. This was
-the Hussars’ dog.
-
-The Boers were fond of playing practical jokes. On Christmas Day they
-had fired a shell containing a plum-pudding into the artillery camp. On
-the hundred and first day of the siege one of the Boers on Bulwana Hill
-called up the signallers at Cæsar’s Camp, and flashed the message, “A
-hundred and one, not out.”
-
-The Manchesters flashed back: “Ladysmith still batting.”
-
-“What is the use of shelling these Britishers?” once said a Boer
-artilleryman. “They just go on playing cricket. Look yonder!”
-
-Ah! but that was in the early days of the siege, when they had some
-strength in them. Later, after having short rations of horse-flesh,
-they could hardly creep from hill to hill.
-
-Another day a heliograph message came: “How do you like horse-meat?”
-
-“Fine,” was the answer, “When the horses are finished we shall eat
-baked Boer!”
-
-It became very difficult to get letters through the Boer pickets; they
-had so many ways of trapping the native runners. The Kaffir paths were
-watched; bell-wires were doubled--one placed close to the ground, the
-other at the height of a man’s head. When the Kaffir touched one of
-these an electric bell rang on one of the kopjes, or hills, and swarms
-of guards swooped down to intercept him. But the Kaffir, being paid £15
-a journey, did his best too.
-
-He left the outer line of our pickets at dusk, and flitted away
-silently to the nearest native kraal; he handed in the letters to the
-black chief, and wandered on empty-handed towards General Buller’s
-camp. Meanwhile a simple Kaffir girl would pass the Boer camp, calabash
-on head, going to fetch water from the spring in the early morning. The
-letters were in the empty water-vessel!
-
-She put them under a stone by the spring, and another maiden would come
-from the other side, and take them on in her calabash or mealie-jar.
-
-At last the native runner would call for them and carry the letters to
-the English lines.
-
-On the 6th of January a determined attack was made by the pick of
-the Boers upon Cæsar’s Camp. Our pickets in Buller’s relieving army
-could hear the sound of the guns, muffled by distance; officers and
-men gathered in groups on the hill-sides and listened intently to the
-long low growl of the rifle. Then came a helio message from Sir George
-White to General Clery: “Attacked on every side.” The nervous strain on
-these men, condemned to inaction after each new failure to cross the
-Tugela and fight their way into Ladysmith, became almost insupportable.
-They sat outside the big camp, gazing on Bulwana with telescopes and
-field-glasses, hardly daring to utter their thoughts. A second helio
-was flashed across: “Enemy everywhere repulsed; fighting continues.”
-Then tongues were once more loosened, and hope arose as the distant
-firing sank to a sullen minute-gun. But half an hour later the booming
-of big guns on Bulwana was renewed, and away to the west arose a fierce
-rifle fire. “Attack renewed; enemy reinforced,” winked the helio from
-the top of Convent Hill, and again a dumb despair fell on the watchers.
-“Very hard pressed,” came the third message, firing our soldiers with
-indignant rage, as they thought of the poor part they had hitherto
-taken in relieving Ladysmith. But at length the heroism of the Devons,
-the Imperial Light Horse, and others of the Ladysmith garrison beat
-back the Boers’ desperate assault.
-
-The Devons had climbed up the hill late in the afternoon to avenge
-their fallen comrades. They had charged straight up the hill in a
-line, but a deadly fire at short range brought down dozens of them as
-they rushed the top. However, there was no wavering in the Devons, but
-they pressed forward at the double with the steel advanced, and only a
-few Boers waited for that disagreeable operation in war. There was a
-terrific hailstorm going on as Colonel Park halted his men just below
-the crest: it was a moment to try the nerves of the strongest. Once
-over that lip of hillside and a fiercer storm than hail would meet them
-in the face, and call many of them to their last account. No wonder
-many a hand went for the water-bottle, and little nervous tricks of
-foot and hand betrayed the tension of the moment.
-
-“Now then, Devons, get ready!” The men gripped their rifles in the old
-way of drill, quick and altogether, brows were knit, teeth set, and
-away they went into the jaws of death.
-
-“Steady, Devons, steady!” No need to bid them be steady. They bore
-down upon the Boers with dogged and irresistible force, and the Boers
-turned and ran. Many an English officer fell that day, and several
-doctors were wounded while doing their duty.
-
-The Boers who fought most fiercely were the old Dopper Boers, who
-nursed a bitter hatred for all Englishmen. These men would refuse
-all kind help even when lying hurt. They were suspected sometimes of
-cruelty to our wounded; for more than one of our men was found covered
-with bruises, as though he had been kicked or beaten to death. But
-these things were exceptional, and such conduct was confined to the
-most ignorant and uncivilized of the old Boers.
-
-Many of the wounded lay where they fell for twenty-four hours and more.
-The Kaffir boys as they dug the long shallow graves would hum a low
-refrain; above wheeled the vultures, looking down upon the slain. The
-Boers confessed that it was the worst day they had ever had, and five
-days after the battle they were still searching for their dead. Our
-dead numbered about 150.
-
-The Imperial Light Horse, containing many young Englishmen in their
-ranks, greatly distinguished themselves. The Brigadier commanding in
-the fight wrote to their chief officer: “No one realizes more clearly
-than I do that your men were the backbone of the defence during that
-day’s long fighting.” But sickness carried off far more than rifle or
-cannon. The Imperial Light Horse, who came to Ladysmith 475 strong,
-were now reduced to 150; the Devons, from 984 had gone down to 480.
-
-As Majuba Day was coming near the messages brought by the runners
-became more hopeful: “All going well,” “Cronje is surrounded.”
-
-But time after time came the news of Buller’s failure on the Tugela,
-and with every piece of ill news came reduced rations at Ladysmith.
-The artillery horses were nearly all eaten, the cavalry horses too;
-those that remained were too weak even to raise a trot. Would Buller
-ever cut his way through? The garrison were beginning to despond. If
-they had to fight a fierce battle again like that at Cæsar’s Camp a few
-weeks ago, when the pick of the Boer forces tried to take it by storm,
-would they not reel and faint for very want of food? Then, when all
-looked dark, and the far-off sound of Buller’s guns seemed to be dying
-away in another failure, something happened.
-
-Men on outpost duty upon the hills round Ladysmith saw what seemed to
-them to be a long white snake crawling over the veldt. Officers seized
-their glasses, and started with an ejaculation of surprise, for what
-they saw was a long sinuous line of white-tilted waggons. “It’s the
-Boers coming away from the Tugela! By Jove! it’s a great trek!” Yes,
-the enemy were in full retreat at last; Buller had hammered them in so
-many places, and now at last he had succeeded.
-
-There they came, waggon after waggon, in endless succession, as it
-seemed. Verily, it was a retreat of an army, for there were thousands
-of horsemen too, riding at a hand gallop, singly or in clusters, a
-continuous stream of moving figures coming round the corner of End Hill
-and then riding north behind Telegraph Hill. They were seeking their
-railway base.
-
-But, though they rode fast in retreat, there was no confusion; the
-Boers know how to trek, and they do it well.
-
-Oh! that we had had some horses, good strong horses, to gallop our guns
-in their direction. But the horses were all either eaten or too weak to
-trot. Those who looked to Bulwana Hill saw a strange black tripod being
-erected above the big Boer gun: they were going to take the gun away.
-The gunners of the _Powerful_ saw the tripod too. They set to work to
-try and prevent that work from being accomplished; both the 4·7’s were
-in action, and made the red earth fly near the Boer redoubt.
-
-The third shell burst upon the summit of the hill. The many clusters
-of men who were watching waited breathlessly for the white smoke to
-clear away, and when it cleared there was no tripod to be seen! Then an
-exultant shout rose up from hill-side and from spruit; some in their
-excitement danced and sang and shook hands and laughed. They were weak
-for want of food, and had not the usual English restraint. Then a great
-hailstorm came drifting by, and there was a rush into the town to tell
-the glad news.
-
-What a Babel of talk there was at dinner that evening! Why, some
-officers were so hopeful now that they ventured to predict that by
-to-morrow some of Buller’s men would be in Ladysmith.
-
-The dinner of horse-flesh was progressing merrily when all at once a
-strange clattering of shoes outside awoke attention. They listened in
-the mess-room, and heard eager voices, cries of men and boys as they
-hurried past. One went to the window and shouted: “What’s the row?”
-
-“Buller’s troopers are in sight; they have been seen riding across the
-flats!”
-
-What! Then they all jumped up, and the youngest and strongest fared
-forth with the hurrying crowd towards the nearest river-drift.
-
-On reaching this they saw across the river and the flat ground beyond,
-riding down a little ridge, a column of horsemen trotting towards them.
-Horsemen at full trot! Then they could not be any of their men, for
-their horses could not trot to save their lives.
-
-The evening sun shone upon their full kit, and no one could doubt that
-it was the relief column at last! God be thanked!
-
-Now they had pulled up, and were welcomed by some officers of Sir
-George White’s staff. Meanwhile the motley crowd grew, at first too
-dazed to cheer or shout, but rather moist about the eyes. Malays
-were there in their red fezes, coolies in many-coloured turbans, and
-white-clad Indians, dhoolie-bearers, grinning a silent welcome. But
-the most excited and the noisiest in all that throng were the Kaffir
-boys and Zulus, the Basutos and Bechuanas. They felt no cold reserve
-strangle their expressions of delight, but danced and shouted and leapt
-like madmen, showing gleaming white teeth and sparkling eyes.
-
-As they drew near the town they met many of the sick and wounded who
-had hobbled out, in their great joy, to receive the relievers, and who
-tried to wave their caps and say Hurrah! with the rest--a piteous sight
-of wan faces and poor shrunk shanks!
-
-And the men of the Relief Column--so brown and well they looked--were
-feeling in their pockets for tobacco to distribute round, for the
-spectacle they saw of white-faced, feeble-kneed invalids smote them to
-the heart. They had never realized until at this moment all that the
-defenders of Ladysmith had suffered for England.
-
-They rode in slowly, two by two, Dundonald and Gough and Mackenzie of
-Natal at the head of the column. All through the main street they rode,
-nodding to a friend here and a friend there, for the Imperial Light
-Horse had many friends in Ladysmith.
-
-There were wild cheers half choked by emotion, and the little ones were
-hoisted on shoulder to be able to see the strong men who had come to
-save them. Then in the twilight came Sir George White and his staff to
-welcome the rescue party. As the leaders shook hands the excitement
-and joy of relief broke forth again. Men bit their lips as if nothing
-was happening, but women and children cried and laughed and cried
-again. All in their heart, many in their voices, were thanking God for
-this timely deliverance. And then they fell to and cheered Sir George
-White: just then his patient heroism and kindly grip of power appealed
-to them. And some who had not wept before cried now when they looked on
-the old soldier, sitting so erect and proud in his saddle, with all the
-heavy cloud of care suddenly removed from his brow and the light of joy
-and gratitude shining through wet eyes. Twice--aye, thrice--he tried
-to speak, but the tears were in his throat and he could not utter his
-thoughts. Then the cheers came again, and gave him time to pull himself
-together.
-
-He lifted his bowed head and thanked them for all their loyal help,
-soldiers and civilians alike, and then finished by one solemn phrase
-that touched all hearts: “Thank God, we kept the old flag flying!”
-
-Why, the very Zulus caught the enthusiasm and leapt high into the air,
-waving bare arms aloft and shouting the old war-cry of Cetewayo and his
-savage _impis_. That night there were long stories to be told in the
-camp of the Relief Column.
-
-Mr. Winston Spencer Churchill, M.P., wrote his story down of how they
-rode into Ladysmith: “Never shall I forget that ride. The evening was
-deliciously cool. My horse was strong and fresh, for I had changed
-him at midday. The ground was rough with many stones, but we cared
-little for that--onward, wildly, recklessly, up and down hill, over
-the boulders, through the scrub. We turned the shoulder of a hill, and
-there before us lay the tin houses and dark trees we had come so far
-to see and save. The British guns on Cæsar’s Camp were firing steadily
-in spite of the twilight. What was happening? Never mind, we were
-nearly through the dangerous ground. Now we were all on the flat.
-Brigadier, staff, and troops let their horses go. We raced through
-the thorn-bushes by Intombi Spruit. Suddenly there was a challenge:
-‘Halt! Who goes there?’ ‘The Ladysmith Relief Column.’ And thereat,
-from out of trenches and rifle-pits artfully concealed in the scrub
-a score of tattered men came running, cheering feebly, and some were
-crying. In the half-light they looked ghastly pale and thin, but the
-tall, strong colonial horsemen, standing up in their stirrups, raised
-a loud resounding cheer, for then we knew we had reached the Ladysmith
-picket-line.”
-
-One word more on Sir Ian Hamilton, one of the greatest of our soldiers.
-It was he who held command on Cæsar’s Hill during those desperate
-seventeen hours of fighting. Spare, tall, quiet, smiling, he had the
-masterful manner of the born soldier, who fights and makes no fuss
-about it, and draws the soldiers after him in the forlornest of hopes
-by the magic of his sympathy and valour. Valour without sympathy,
-ability without the devotion of your men, can do little; but when both
-are united, steel and lead cannot prevail against them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-SIEGE OF PORT ARTHUR (1904)
-
- Port Arthur--Its hotel life--Stoessel not popular--Fleet
- surprised--Shelled at twelve miles--Japanese pickets make
- a mistake--Wounded cannot be brought in--Polite even
- under the knife--The etiquette of the bath--The unknown
- death--Kondrachenko, the real hero--The white flag at last--Nogi
- the modest--“Banzai”--Effect of good news on the wounded--The fleet
- sink with alacrity.
-
-
-Port Arthur consists of a small land-locked harbour surrounded by
-hills. As you sail into the harbour you have on your right the
-Admiralty depots, dock-basin, and dockyard, sheltered by Golden
-Hill; next the waterfront, or commercial quarter; on the left the
-Tiger’s Tail, a sand spit which narrows the entrance, behind which
-the torpedo-boats lie moored. The new town lies south of Signal Hill,
-on a plateau rising to the west. All round the town were hill-forts
-elaborately fortified.
-
-The hotels were, like the houses, very primitive: the best was a
-one-storied building containing about twenty rooms, each room being
-furnished with a camp bedstead and no bedding, one deal table, and one
-chair. Sometimes, if you swore hard at the Chinese coolie, you could
-get a small basin of water and a jug. There was a permanent circus, a
-Chinese theatre, music-halls, and grog-shops; a band played on summer
-evenings.
-
-General Stoessel, the military commander, was not loved by soldier or
-citizen: he was very strict, and, during the war became despotic. They
-say he once struck a civilian across the face with his riding-whip
-because the man had not noticed and saluted him as he passed. His
-soldiers dreaded him, and would slink away at his appearing. Some such
-words as these would come from him on seeing a sentry:
-
-“Who are you? Where do you come from? When did you join? Why are you so
-dirty? Take off your boots and let me inspect your foot-rags? Oh, got
-an extra pair in your kit? Show them at once. Go and wash your face.”
-
-Though it was known that war between Russia and Japan was imminent,
-the officers and men of both navy and army took little heed, but
-relied on the strength of their fortress, its fleet, and batteries.
-What could the little yellow monkeys do against Russia? Well, on the
-7th of February invitations were sent out for a great reception at the
-residence of the Port Admiral, for it was the name-day of his wife and
-daughter. Officers of all grades flocked thither from the forts and the
-ships. After the reception followed a dance, very enjoyable, gay, and
-delightful.
-
-It was midnight, and many were down by the water’s edge waiting for gig
-and pinnace. A dull sound echoed through the streets that night.
-
-“Dear me! what is that, I wonder?”
-
-“Oh! only naval manœuvres, sir. We sailors must be practising a bit,
-you know, in case the Japs come.”
-
-Then there was a laugh: “They won’t dare to come under our guns!”
-
-But they had come! In their torpedo-boats the brave sailors of the
-“Rising Sun” were quietly steaming round the harbour, launching a
-deadly torpedo at battleship and cruiser.
-
-Next morning, when the Russians went down to see what was going on,
-they found the _Retvisan_ nose down and heeling over, the _Tsarevich_
-settling down by the stern and with a pretty list to starboard, other
-vessels looking very uncomfortable, and a long way off, near the
-horizon, some black specks that actually “had the cheek” to bombard
-Port Arthur.
-
-Why, yes, as the curious citizen came to the Bund, he was so astonished
-that he forgot to run. Crates and sacks had been hurled about, double
-glass windows all smashed; and what was that big hole on the quay, big
-enough to hold an omnibus and four horses? “Good gracious! you don’t
-mean to say that those specks twelve miles away have done all this!
-Come, sir, let us seek shelter in the stone-quarries.”
-
-And the Russian batteries on Golden Hill? They were returning the fire
-from 10-inch guns; but the Japanese possessed 13-inch guns and were
-outside striking distance.
-
-A party of ladies and gentlemen had gone to the terrace before the
-Mayor’s house to see the pretty sight--it is not often you can see such
-a sight. A shell fell just below them! They scattered and went to bed.
-
-“What was it like? Oh, my dear, a noise like a big rocket, a blaze,
-a bang, an awful clatter all round, as the glass breaks and falls.
-You are dazed, you see yellow smoke, you smell something nasty, you
-shake--you run--run!”
-
-Yes, they all ran away from Port Arthur, all who could--merchants,
-tradesmen, coolies--all went by train or boat. Then there were no
-bakers or butchers, no servants, until the Russian troops were ordered
-to take the vacant places.
-
-If the Japanese had only known they might have taken Port Arthur that
-night of the torpedo attack; but they left the Russians sixteen days
-of quiet to recover from their panic and to repair their ships. Then it
-was more difficult.
-
-The hole in the _Retvisan_ was 40 feet long and 20 feet in depth. Seven
-compartments were full of water, and many dead bodies floated in them.
-But, beached and water-logged as she was, she used her guns with effect
-many times during the siege, so difficult is it to destroy a battleship
-unless you can sink her in deep water.
-
-It was not long before all foreigners, newspaper correspondents, or
-candid friends were ordered out of Port Arthur, so we have to rely on
-the evidence of those who witnessed the siege from the Japanese side.
-Even they did not at first find their freedom to see and pass from one
-hill to another very secure. One night two of them tried to get to the
-front under cover of the darkness. They soon met a Japanese officer,
-who reined in and asked where they were going. One of them could speak
-Japanese, and replied that they were looking for their camp. So he let
-them go. But what if they stumbled upon the Japanese outposts and were
-shot at as Russians? They must be very wary. In the starlight they saw
-a small hill in front of them, which they made for, hoping to see or
-hear more of the great fight which sounded louder as they walked--a
-roar of rifles broken by the rattle of machine-guns. As they climbed
-one of them said he saw a trench near the top of the hill and men
-sitting near it. They hesitated, but finally made up their minds to
-risk it, and advanced boldly, whistling carelessly as they went. The
-Japanese were all looking out in front, and did not at first notice
-the new-comers, who approached from behind. Then suddenly the thought
-came, “We are being taken in flank by the Russians.” The entire picket
-started to their feet. Many of them had been fast asleep, and, being
-aroused to hear the noise of heavy firing, they called out “Ruskies!”
-One Englishman tried to seize a Japanese by the hand to show he was
-a friend, but his intention failed, for both of them rolled into the
-trench. The other threw himself flat on the ground and called out in
-Japanese, “English friends!”
-
-[Illustration: A RUSSIAN TORPEDO-BOAT DESTROYER ELUDING THE JAPANESE
-FLEET
-
-During the siege of Port Arthur the _Raztoropny_, with despatches, ran
-safely through the Japanese men-of-war in the teeth of a tremendous
-storm. She was pursued, but reached Chifu harbour, and her crew, having
-achieved their object, blew her up.]
-
-When at last the Japanese discovered their mistake they were all smiles
-and apologies, and “Please go to the front, sir.”
-
-The Japanese made great mistakes at first: they lost many thousands by
-attacking in front hills and forts scientifically fortified. They were
-trying to do what was impossible. Some years before they had captured
-Port Arthur from the Chinese speedily and easily by a fierce assault.
-They had then been compelled by Russia, France, and Germany to give up
-their fair prize of victory. Afterwards Russia had seized Port Arthur
-and Manchuria. So honour and revenge both spurred on the Japanese to
-retake it from the Russians. The war became most cruel and sanguinary.
-
-After one night attack the Japanese left 7,000 dead and wounded on
-the hill-side. They could not fetch them in, though they were within
-call. Some few crawled back to their friends at night; many lay out for
-days, being fed by biscuits and balls of rice thrown from the Japanese
-trenches--the Japanese were fed almost entirely on rice.
-
-A naval surgeon tells a story which explains the conduct of the
-Japanese when suffering intense pain. He says:
-
-“When the battleship _Hatsure_ was sunk in May, a sailor was laid on
-the operating-table who had a piece of shell 2½ inches long bedded in
-his right thigh. I offered him a cigar as he came in, which he eagerly
-took, but the surgeon told him not to smoke it just then. His smaller
-injuries were first attended to, and then the surgeon turned to the
-severe wound in the man’s thigh.
-
-“In order to pull out the piece of steel still embedded in the limb, he
-was obliged to pass his hand into the wound, which was deep enough to
-hide it as far as the wrist. During this painful operation the sailor
-never spoke or winced, but kept trying to reach the breast-pocket of
-his coat. At length the surgeon, irritated by his fidgety manner,
-asked: ‘What are you doing? Why can’t you keep quiet?’
-
-“The sailor replied: ‘I want to give that English gentleman a cigarette
-in exchange for the cigar he kindly gave me.’ Even in the throes of
-that agony the Japanese sailor could not forget his politeness and
-gratitude.”
-
-They are a curious mixture of opposites, these Japanese--one day facing
-machine-guns like fiends incarnate, or giving their bodies to be used
-as a human ladder in attempt to escalade a fort, the next day sucking
-sweetmeats like little boys. You come upon some groups by a creek:
-they are laughing and playing practical jokes as they sharpen up their
-bayonets with busy, innocent faces, making ready for the great assault
-at dawn to-morrow. A few yards further on you find them in all states
-of undress, their underwear fluttering to the breeze, some of them
-sitting on the stones and tubbing with real soap. You ask them, Why
-so busy this afternoon? They smile and nod their heads towards Port
-Arthur, and one who speaks English explains that they had been taught
-at school this proverb: “Japanese fight like gentlemen, and if they are
-found dead on the field, they will be found like gentlemen, clean and
-comely.”
-
-There were so many forms of death in this siege--_plurima mortis
-imago_, as Virgil says--from the speedy bullet to the common shell,
-shrapnel, and pom-pom. But besides these common inventions there were
-mines that exploded under their feet as they walked, hand-grenades
-thrown in their faces as they approached the forts; there were pits
-filled with petroleum ready to be lit by an electric wire, and
-poisonous gases to be flung from wide-mouthed mortars. But the one
-which spread terror even amongst the bravest was what they called “the
-unknown death.” It was said that during the early attacks in August,
-one whole line of infantry which was rushing to the assault had fallen
-dead side by side, and that no wounds had been found on them. At last
-it was discovered the Russian chief electrician had ordered a “live”
-wire to be placed among the ordinary wire entanglements, furnished with
-a current strong enough to kill anyone who touched it.
-
-Of course, it was liable to be destroyed by shell or cannon fire, but
-in many cases it proved fatal, and always made the attackers nervous.
-The Russians had such steel-wire entanglements placed at the foot of
-all their positions, and where success depended on the dash and speed
-of the infantry, they succeeded in stopping them and exposing them
-to a heavy fire. As a rule, volunteers went out at night with strong
-wire-nippers and cut the strands, or they set fire to the wooden posts
-and let them come to the ground together. Sometimes in a fierce charge
-the sappers used to lie down beneath the wires, pretending to be dead,
-and choose a moment for using their nippers; some even, in their
-desperate efforts to get through, would seize the wire between their
-teeth and try and bite it through.
-
-The man among the Russians who was the mainspring of the defence was
-General Kondrachenko. He was an eminent engineer, very popular with the
-men, one of the bravest and most scientific of the Russian officers.
-On the 15th of December the General and his staff were sitting inside
-North Keikwansan Fort, in the concrete barrack just underneath the spot
-where a shell had made a hole in the roof. This had been repaired, and
-they had come to see if it had been well done. As luck would have it, a
-second 28-centimetre shell came through the same place and burst inside
-the barrack, killing the gallant Kondrachenko and eight other officers
-who were with him. This was the gravest blow that Port Arthur could
-have suffered, for this man was the spirit of resistance personified.
-
-After his death Stoessel began to seek for excuses to surrender. He
-called a council of war, and proposed that, as the Japanese had taken
-so many forts and sunk their warships, terms of surrender should be
-proposed. Almost every one was opposed to it, and some officers were so
-disgusted that they privately suggested kidnapping Stoessel and locking
-him up.
-
-The Japanese policy of mining and firing mines under the redoubts had
-succeeded so often that the Russians had got into a nervous state.
-On the 1st of January the fort of Wantai was rushed and captured;
-mountain-guns and quick-firers were sent up to help in holding the
-ground, ammunition was sent forward, everything made ready to rush the
-whole of the eastern defences, when, to the astonishment of all, from
-General to private, a white flag was seen fluttering over the valley.
-The news spread like wild-fire that Stoessel wished to capitulate.
-Could it be possible?
-
-[Illustration: A HUMAN LADDER
-
-The Japanese soldiers made their bodies practically into a ladder, and
-thus enabled their comrades to escalade a fort.]
-
-At 9 a.m. on the following morning, the 2nd of January, a little group
-of foreign pressmen assembled as usual in the small room provided for
-them at head-quarters. They discussed the white flag incident; but they
-remembered that Stoessel had said that he would die in the last ditch,
-so it did not seem probable. Captain Zasuhara, whose duty it was
-to inform them of what was going on, was late in appearing, and when
-the door opened, it was not the Captain, but an orderly, who entered,
-carrying a tray on which was a bottle of liqueur brandy and several
-glasses. Something strange must be going to happen when a Japanese
-officer begins drinking liqueur so early!
-
-A few moments later Captain Zasuhara came in.
-
-“Gentlemen, General Stoessel has capitulated; Port Arthur has
-surrendered. Banzai!”
-
-They all joined in the shout “Banzai!” which means “Live for ever!” and
-then gave three lusty Saxon cheers, which brought out General Nogi,
-the Commander-in-Chief. He who for so many months had borne the grave
-responsibility of sending so many thousands to their death, he who had
-lost both his sons before Port Arthur, and tried so hard to conceal his
-grief, now beamed with joy at the sudden relief, and the lines that
-used to seam his forehead were smoothed out and almost invisible. A
-grand gentleman was Nogi, gentle and polite and kind to all. Who could
-have grudged him this triumph after so much sorrow and disappointment?
-
-He offered his hand, received their congratulations with dignity,
-and said with an under-current of sadness and a voice as soft as a
-woman’s: “I thank you all for staying with me through the dark days of
-disappointment and all the sorrowful hours of this terrible siege.”
-
-The proud spirit of the Samurai soldier seemed blended with the gentle
-feeling of the Buddhist. It was a touching sight to have seen.
-
-And how the news stirred the troops! Men broke into snatches of
-song, then shouted and yelled “Banzai!” until they choked. In the
-field-hospitals the wounded, trying to rise from their canvas
-stretchers, joined in the cheering with thin, weak voices. At night
-wood fires were lit all round the hills, and many of the Russian
-garrison left their dismal forts and came down to sip _saké_ (rice
-wine), and after spending a night of carousal with their late enemies,
-the big, burly foemen of the North were glad to be helped homewards by
-their polite hosts, who bowed on leaving them and hoped they would not
-suffer from the after-effects of Japanese hospitality.
-
-Astonishing, too, was the effect of the good news on the wounded.
-Desperately wounded men crawled over the stony hills and walked to the
-hospitals without aid. If you said to one such, “You are badly hurt;
-let me give you an arm,” he smiled proudly, and said with a salute,
-“No, no; Port Arthur has fallen!”
-
-One man who had been shot in the head, and whose right arm had been
-smashed to pieces by a shell, walked to the dressing-station, had his
-arm amputated and his head dressed, and then walked two miles further
-to the field-hospital. The news was too good for him to think of his
-own pain. Another man had a bullet through his chest. He walked two
-miles to the hospital; there he coolly asked the surgeon if he thought
-he might live. The surgeon, though he knew the man’s case was hopeless,
-said, “Oh yes; but” (after a pause) “if you have any letter you wish
-written, do it at once.” The soldier replied, “All I desire is that
-a letter should be written to my mother.” No sooner had he uttered
-these words than he fell dead on the spot. It reminds one of a young
-Lieutenant in Browning’s poem, who had ridden with dispatches to
-Napoleon. “Why, my boy, you are wounded!” “Nay, sire; I am killed.”
-
-In the harbour at Port Arthur there were riding at anchor five
-battleships and two cruisers. On the 10th of August they had gone out
-to meet Admiral Togo, and had returned next day badly damaged.
-
-By the 1st of September they had been repaired. But on November the
-27th began a tremendous battle for the possession of 203 Metre Hill. On
-the 5th of December that hill was taken at a fearful cost of lives, and
-a Japanese naval Lieutenant wormed his way into the shallow trench and
-by help of his nautical instruments was able to take observations and
-give the correct direction and distance to the artillery commander, who
-at once trained Howitzers on the fleet. All the ships were sunk by the
-6th of December, with the exception of the _Sevastopol_, which steamed
-out under Captain von Essen and anchored under the batteries of Tiger’s
-Tail.
-
-This brave officer tried to protect his ship by a wooden boom and
-by torpedo-nets. For three nights he was attacked by Japanese boats
-and torpedoes, and inflicted great damage on them. At last the boom
-was pierced and the ship’s steering-gear ruined by a torpedo. The
-_Sevastopol_ showed signs of settling down, so that night steam was got
-up for the last time, and the gallant commander with a few picked men
-took her out into deep water, opened the sluice-cocks, and then, taking
-to his launch, pulled away a bit and watched the great battleship
-settle down stern first in the dim and misty moonlight.
-
-It is only right that the pluck of this Russian Captain should be
-remembered when we think of the poor defence made by the Russian Navy.
-
-As for the rest of the fleet, the battleships and cruisers were huddled
-together with a strong list and their upper works destroyed. They have
-since been raised and repaired, and belong to the Mikado.
-
-The siege of Port Arthur cost General Nogi’s army 89,000 men in killed,
-wounded, and sick; of these 10,000 were officers.
-
-The Japanese have read a great lesson in patriotism and sense of
-duty to the whole world. To the courtly and feudal chivalry of
-their old-world Samurai, or Noble, they have added the foresight and
-inventive genius of the European. They have suddenly sprung into the
-front rank of civilized nations, and no one can forecast the greatness
-of their future.
-
- From “The Siege of Port Arthur,” by E. Ashmead Bartlet, by kind
- permission of Messrs. W. Blackwood and Sons.
-
-
- THE END
-
-
- BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Romance of Modern Sieges, by Edward Gilliat
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMANCE OF MODERN SIEGES ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50231-0.txt or 50231-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/2/3/50231/
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Paul Clark and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/50231-0.zip b/old/50231-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 1c59e0d..0000000
--- a/old/50231-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h.zip b/old/50231-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index cd7297f..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/50231-h.htm b/old/50231-h/50231-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 56a424c..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/50231-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,14425 +0,0 @@
-
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en_GB" lang="en_GB">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Romance Of Modern Sieges, by Edward Gilliat
- </title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .75em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
-}
-
-.summary {
- margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- font-size: small;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
-}
-
-.source {
- font-size: small;
- margin-top: 2em;
-}
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
- .tdr {text-align: right;}
- .tdb {vertical-align: bottom;}
-.tdhanging {
- padding-left: 2em;
- padding-bottom: .75em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.tdpn {
- padding-left: 2em;
- padding-bottom: .75em;
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- white-space: nowrap;
-}
-
-.tdpn2 {
- padding-bottom: .75em;
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-.tddo {
- padding-left: 2em;
- padding-bottom: .75em;
- text-align: center;
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.bt {border-top: solid 1px;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.caption p {
- text-align: center;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.caption p.header {
- font-weight: bold;
- font-variant: small-caps;
-}
-
-/* Images */
-.figcenter {
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: dashed 1px;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: small;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poem {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poem .stanza {margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;}
-.poem div.i0 {margin-left: 0em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-.large { font-size: large; }
-.xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
-.small { font-size: small; }
-.smaller { font-size: smaller; }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-Project Gutenberg's The Romance of Modern Sieges, by Edward Gilliat
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: The Romance of Modern Sieges
- Describing the personal adventures, resource and daring
- of besiegers and beseiged in all parts of the world
-
-Author: Edward Gilliat
-
-Release Date: October 16, 2015 [EBook #50231]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMANCE OF MODERN SIEGES ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Paul Clark and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="transnote"><h3>Transcriber's Note:</h3>
-
-<p>Every effort has been made to replicate this text as faithfully as
-possible, including some inconsistent hyphenation. Some minor
-corrections of spelling and punctuation have been made.</p></div>
-
-<div class="center">
-<img id="coverpage" src="images/cover.jpg" width="381" height="600" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>The Romance of Modern Sieges</h1>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_1" src="images/i_004.jpg" width="393" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Sally from the Fort at Kumassi</p>
-
-<p>Led by Capt. Armitage, some two hundred loyal natives sallied forth. At their head
-marched the native chiefs, prominent amongst whom was the young king of Aguna.
-He was covered back and front with fetish charms, and on his feet were boots, and
-where these ended his black legs began.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p class="center xlarge">THE ROMANCE OF<br />
-MODERN SIEGES</p>
-
-<p class="center large">DESCRIBING THE PERSONAL ADVENTURES,<br />
-RESOURCE AND DARING OF BESIEGERS<br />
-AND BESIEGED IN ALL PARTS OF<br />
-THE WORLD</p>
-
-<p class="p2 center">BY<br />
-<span class="large">EDWARD GILLIAT, M.A.</span><br />
-<span class="small">SOMETIME MASTER AT HARROW SCHOOL<br />
-AUTHOR OF “FOREST OUTLAWS,” “IN LINCOLN GREEN,” <i>&amp;c.</i>, <i>&amp;c.</i></span></p>
-
-<p class="p2 center">WITH SIXTEEN ILLUSTRATIONS</p>
-
-<p class="p2 center large">PHILADELPHIA<br />
-J. B. LIPPINCOTT COMPANY<br />
-LONDON: SEELEY &amp; CO. LIMITED<br />
-1908
-</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">[Pg vii]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="PREFACE" id="PREFACE">PREFACE</a></h2>
-
-<p>These chapters are not histories of sieges, but narratives
-of such incidents as occur in beleaguered cities, and
-illustrate human nature in some of its strangest moods.
-That “facts are stranger than fiction” these stories go to
-prove: such unexpected issues, such improbable interpositions
-meet us in the pages of history. What writer
-of fiction would dare to throw down battlements and
-walls by an earthquake, and represent besiegers as paralysed
-by religious fear? These tales are full, indeed,
-of all the elements of romance, from the heroism and self-devotion
-of the brave and the patient suffering of the
-wounded, to the generosity of mortal foes and the
-kindliness and humour which gleam even on the battle-field
-and in the hospital. But the realities of war have
-not been kept out of sight; now and then the veil has
-been lifted, and the reader has been shown a glimpse of
-those awful scenes which haunt the memory of even the
-stoutest veteran.</p>
-
-<p>We cannot realize fully the life that a soldier lives
-unless we see both sides of that life. We cannot feel the
-gratitude that we ought to feel unless we know the
-strain and suspense, the agony and endurance, that go<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">[Pg viii]</a></span>
-to make up victory or defeat. In time of war we are
-full of admiration for our soldiers and sailors, but in the
-past they have been too often forgotten or slighted when
-peace has ensued. Not to keep in memory the great
-deeds of our countrymen is mere ingratitude.</p>
-
-<p>Hearty acknowledgments are due to the authors and
-publishers who have so kindly permitted quotation from
-their books. Every such permission is more particularly
-mentioned in its place. The writer has also had many a
-talk with men who have fought in the Crimea, in India,
-in France, and in South Africa, and is indebted to them
-for some little personal touches such as give life and
-colour to a narrative.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">[Pg ix]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CONTENTS" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS</a></h2>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I</a><br /><span class="smaller">SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR (1779-1782)</span></h3></td>
-<td class="small tdr tdb">PAGES</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The position of the Rock&mdash;State of defence&mdash;Food-supply&mdash;Rodney
-brings relief&mdash;Fire-ships sent in&mdash;A convoy in a fog&mdash;Heavy
-guns bombard the town&mdash;Watching the cannon-ball&mdash;Catalina
-gets no gift&mdash;One against fourteen&mdash;Red-hot shot save the
-day&mdash;Lord Howe to the rescue</td>
-<td class="tdpn">17-27</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II</a><br /><span class="smaller">DEFENCE OF ACRE (1799)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Jaffa stormed by Napoleon&mdash;Sir Sidney Smith hurries to Acre&mdash;Takes
-a convoy&mdash;How the French procured cannon-balls&mdash;The
-Turks fear the mines&mdash;A noisy sortie&mdash;Fourteen
-assaults&mdash;A Damascus blade&mdash;Seventy shells explode&mdash;Napoleon
-nearly killed&mdash;The siege raised&mdash;A painful retreat</td>
-<td class="tdpn">28-36</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE WOUNDED CAPTAIN IN TALAVERA (1809)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Talavera between two fires&mdash;Captain Boothby wounded&mdash;Brought
-into Talavera&mdash;The fear of the citizens&mdash;The surgeons’ delay&mdash;Operations
-without chloroform&mdash;The English retire&mdash;French
-troops arrive&mdash;Plunder&mdash;French officers kind, and protect
-Boothby&mdash;A private bent on loot beats a hasty retreat</td>
-<td class="tdpn">37-52<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">[Pg x]</a></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE CAPTURE OF CIUDAD RODRIGO (1812)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">A night march&mdash;Waiting for scaling-ladders&mdash;The assault&mdash;Ladders
-break&mdash;Shells and grenades&mdash;A magazine explodes&mdash;Street
-fighting&mdash;Drink brings disorder and plunder&mdash;Great spoil</td>
-<td class="tdpn">53-61</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE STORMING OF BADAJOS (1812)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Rescue of wounded men&mdash;A forlorn hope&mdash;Fire-balls light up the
-scene&mdash;A mine explodes&mdash;Partial failure of the English&mdash;Escalade
-of the castle&mdash;Pat’s humour and heroism&mdash;Saving
-a General&mdash;Wellington hears the news&mdash;The day after the
-storm</td>
-<td class="tdpn">62-75</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI</a><br /><span class="smaller">A PRISONER IN ST. SEBASTIAN (1813)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The <i>coup de grâce</i>&mdash;The hospital&mdash;A cruel order&mdash;An attempt
-at escape&mdash;Removed to the castle&mdash;The English at the breach&mdash;Many
-are wounded&mdash;French ladies sleep in the open&mdash;A
-vertical fire&mdash;English gunners shoot too well&mdash;A good sabre
-lightly won</td>
-<td class="tdpn">76-89</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII</a><br /><span class="smaller">JELLALABAD (1842)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Position of the town&mdash;Sale’s brigade rebuilds the defences&mdash;A
-sortie&mdash;Bad news&mdash;A queer noise&mdash;A ruse that did not
-succeed&mdash;The only survivor comes in&mdash;Story of a massacre&mdash;The
-earthquake&mdash;The walls are down&mdash;Are rebuilt&mdash;English
-magic&mdash;Pollock comes&mdash;Fight outside&mdash;The peril of Lady
-Sale</td>
-<td class="tdpn">90-109</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</a><br /><span class="smaller">SIEGE OF SEBASTOPOL (1854-1856)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The English land without tents&mdash;Mr. Kinglake shows off before
-Lord Raglan&mdash;The Alma&mdash;Strange escapes&mdash;Looted houses&mdash;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[Pg xi]</a></span>Fair
-plunder&mdash;Balaklava Bay&mdash;Horses lost at sea&mdash;A derelict
-worth having&mdash;Jack very helpful&mdash;The Heavy and Light
-Brigades&mdash;Spies&mdash;Fraternizing</td>
-<td class="tdpn">110-125</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</a><br /><span class="smaller">AFTER INKERMANN (1854)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Valiant deeds&mdash;Lord Raglan under fire&mdash;Tryon the best shot&mdash;A
-Prince’s button&mdash;A cold Christmas&mdash;Savage horses&mdash;The
-Mamelon redoubt&mdash;Corporal Quin&mdash;Colonel Zea</td>
-<td class="tdpn">126-136</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE INDIAN MUTINY&mdash;DELHI (1857-1858)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The Mutiny begins&mdash;A warning from a sepoy&mdash;A near thing&mdash;A
-noble act of a native officer&mdash;In camp at Delhi with no kit&mdash;A
-plan that failed&mdash;Our first check&mdash;Wilson in command&mdash;Seaton
-wounded&mdash;Arrival of Nicholson&mdash;Captures guns&mdash;The
-assault&mdash;The fate of the Princes&mdash;Pandy in a box</td>
-<td class="tdpn">137-158</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE DEFENCE OF LUCKNOW (<span class="smcap">31st of May to 25th of September, 1857</span>)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Firing at close quarters&mdash;Adventures of fugitives&mdash;Death of Sir H.
-Lawrence&mdash;His character&mdash;Difficulty of sending letters&mdash;Mines
-and counter-mines&mdash;Fulton killed&mdash;Signs of the relief
-coming&mdash;A great welcome&mdash;Story of the escape from
-Cawnpore</td>
-<td class="tdpn">159-174</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW (1857)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The scene at Cawnpore&mdash;Fights before Lucknow&mdash;Nearly blown
-up&mdash;A hideous nightmare&mdash;Cheering a runaway&mdash;All safe out
-of the Residency&mdash;A quick march back&mdash;Who stole the
-biscuits?&mdash;Sir Colin’s own regiment</td>
-<td class="tdpn">175-190<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xii" id="Page_xii">[Pg xii]</a></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</a><br /><span class="smaller">RUNNING THE BLOCKADE (1861)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">North <i>v.</i> South&mdash;A new President hates slavery&mdash;Port Sumter is
-bombarded&mdash;Ladies on the house-top&mdash;Niggers don’t mind
-shells&mdash;A blockade-runner comes to Oxford&mdash;The <i>Banshee</i>
-strips for the race&mdash;Wilmington&mdash;High pay&mdash;Lights out&mdash;Cast
-the lead&mdash;A stern chase&mdash;The run home&mdash;Lying <i>perdu</i>&mdash;The
-<i>Night-hawk</i> saved by Irish humour&mdash;Southern need at
-the end of the war&mdash;Negro dignity waxes big</td>
-<td class="tdpn">191-201</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE FIRST IRONCLADS (1862)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Will they sink or swim?&mdash;Captain Ericsson, the Swede&mdash;The
-<i>Merrimac</i> raised and armoured&mdash;The <i>Monitor</i> built by private
-venture&mdash;<i>Merrimac</i> surprises Fort Monroe&mdash;The <i>Cumberland</i>
-attacked&mdash;The silent monster comes on&mdash;Her ram makes an
-impression&mdash;Morris refuses to strike his flag&mdash;The <i>Cumberland</i>
-goes down&mdash;The <i>Congress</i> is next for attention&mdash;On fire
-and forced to surrender&mdash;Blows up at midnight&mdash;The <i>Minnesota</i>
-aground shows she can bite&mdash;General panic&mdash;Was it
-Providence?&mdash;A light at sea&mdash;Only a cheese-box on a raft&mdash;Sunday’s
-fight between two monsters&mdash;The <i>Merrimac</i> finds
-she is deeply hurt, wounded to death&mdash;The four long hours&mdash;Worden
-and Buchanan both do their best&mdash;Signals for help&mdash;The
-fiery end of the <i>Whitehall</i> gunboat</td>
-<td class="tdpn">202-212</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV</a><br /><span class="smaller">CAPTURE OF NEW ORLEANS (1862)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">New Orleans and its forts&mdash;Farragut despises craven counsel&mdash;The
-mortar-fleet in disguise&mdash;Fire-rafts rush down&mdash;A week of hot
-gun-fire&mdash;A dash through the defences&mdash;The <i>Varuna’s</i> last
-shot&mdash;Oscar, aged thirteen&mdash;Ranged before the city&mdash;Anger
-of mob&mdash;Summary justice&mdash;Soldiers insulted in the streets&mdash;General
-Butler in command&mdash;Porter nearly blown up in
-council&mdash;Fort Jackson in ruins&mdash;“The fuse is out”</td>
-<td class="tdpn">213-219<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiii" id="Page_xiii">[Pg xiii]</a></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF RICHMOND (1862 <span class="smaller">AND</span> 1865)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Fair Oaks a drawn battle&mdash;Robert Lee succeeds Johnston&mdash;Reforms
-in the army&mdash;Humours of the sentinels&mdash;Chaffing the niggers&mdash;Their
-idea of liberty&mdash;The pickets chum together&mdash;Stuart’s
-raid&mdash;A duel between a Texan and a German&mdash;Effect of music
-on soldiers&mdash;A terrible retreat to James River&mdash;Malvern Hill
-battle-scenes&mdash;Three years after&mdash;General Grant before Richmond&mdash;Coloured
-troops enter the Southern capital in triumph&mdash;Lee
-surrenders&mdash;Friends once more</td>
-<td class="tdpn">220-230</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF PARIS (1870-1871)</span>
-<br /><span class="smaller">WITH THE GERMANS OUTSIDE</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The Germans invest Paris&mdash;Trochu’s sortie fails&mdash;The English
-ambulance welcomed&mdash;A Prince’s visit to the wounded&mdash;In
-the snow&mdash;Madame Simon&mdash;A brave Lieutenant&mdash;Piano and
-jam&mdash;The big guns begin&mdash;St. Denis&mdash;Old Jacob writes to
-the Crown Prince&mdash;A dramatic telegram&mdash;Spy fever&mdash;Journalists
-mobbed</td>
-<td class="tdpn">231-240</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF PARIS&mdash;<i>Continued</i></span>
-<br /><span class="smaller">WITH THE BESIEGED (1870-1871)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Moods in Paris&mdash;The Empress escapes&mdash;Taking down Imperial
-flags&mdash;Playing dominoes under fire&mdash;Cowards branded&mdash;Balloon
-post&mdash;Return of the wounded&mdash;French numbed by
-cold&mdash;The lady and the dogs&mdash;The nurse who was mighty
-particular&mdash;Castor and Pollux pronounced tough&mdash;Stories of
-suffering</td>
-<td class="tdpn">241-250</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX</a><br /><span class="smaller">METZ (1870)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Metz surrounded&mdash;Taken for a spy&mdash;Work with an ambulance&mdash;Fierce
-Prussians rob an old woman&mdash;Attempt to leave Metz<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiv" id="Page_xiv">[Pg xiv]</a></span>&mdash;Refusing
-an honour&mdash;The <i>cantinière’s</i> horse&mdash;The grey pet
-of the regiment&mdash;Deserters abound&mdash;A village fired for punishment&mdash;Sad
-scenes at the end</td>
-<td class="tdpn">251-263</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX</a><br /><span class="smaller">PLEVNA (1877)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">An English boy as Turkish Lieutenant&mdash;A mêlée&mdash;Wounded by a
-horseman&mdash;Takes letter to Russian camp&mdash;The Czar watches
-the guns&mdash;Skobeleff’s charge&mdash;The great Todleben arrives&mdash;Skobeleff
-deals with cowards&mdash;Pasting labels&mdash;The last sortie&mdash;Osman
-surrenders&mdash;Prisoners in the snow&mdash;Bukarest ladies
-very kind</td>
-<td class="tdpn">264-279</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI</a><br /><span class="smaller">SIEGE OF KHARTOUM (1884)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Gordon invited to the Soudan&mdash;The Mahdi&mdash;Chinese Gordon&mdash;His
-religious feeling&mdash;Not supported by England&mdash;Arabs attack&mdash;Blacks
-as cowards&mdash;Pashas shot&mdash;The <i>Abbas</i> sent down with
-Stewart&mdash;Her fate&mdash;Relief coming&mdash;Provisions fail&mdash;A sick
-steamer&mdash;<i>Bordein</i> sent down to Shendy&mdash;Alone on the house-top&mdash;Sir
-Charles Wilson and Beresford steam up&mdash;The rapids
-and sand-bank&mdash;“Do you see the flag?”&mdash;“Turn and fly”&mdash;Gordon’s
-fate</td>
-<td class="tdpn">280-288</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII</a><br /><span class="smaller">KUMASSI (1900)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The Governor’s visit&mdash;Pageant of Kings&mdash;Evil omens&mdash;The Fetish
-Grove&mdash;The fort&mdash;Loyal natives locked out&mdash;A fight&mdash;King
-Aguna’s triumph&mdash;Relief at last&mdash;Their perils&mdash;Saved by a
-dog&mdash;Second relief&mdash;Governor retires&mdash;Wait for Colonel Willcocks&mdash;The
-flag still flying&mdash;Lady Hodgson’s adventures</td>
-<td class="tdpn">289-302<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xv" id="Page_xv">[Pg xv]</a></span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII</a><br /><span class="smaller">MAFEKING (1899-1900)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Snyman begins to fire&mdash;A flag of trace&mdash;Midnight sortie&mdash;The
-dynamite trolley&mdash;Kaffirs careless&mdash;A cattle raid&mdash;Eloff
-nearly takes Mafeking&mdash;Is taken himself instead&mdash;The relief
-dribble in&mdash;At 2 a.m. come cannon with Mahon and
-Plumer</td>
-<td class="tdpn">303-317</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF KIMBERLEY (1899-1900)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">The diamond-mines&mdash;Cecil Rhodes comes in&mdash;Streets barricaded&mdash;Colonel
-Kekewich sends out the armoured train&mdash;Water got
-from the De Beers Company’s mines&mdash;A job lot of shells&mdash;De
-Beers can make shells too&mdash;Milner’s message&mdash;Beef or
-horse?&mdash;Long Cecil&mdash;Labram killed&mdash;Shelter down the mines&mdash;A
-capture of dainties&mdash;Major Rodger’s adventures&mdash;General
-French comes to the rescue&mdash;Outposts astonished to see
-Lancers and New Zealanders</td>
-<td class="tdpn">318-325</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV</a><br /><span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH (1899-1900)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Ladysmith&mdash;Humours of the shell&mdash;The <i>Lyre</i> tries to be funny&mdash;Attack
-on Long Tom&mdash;A brave bugler&mdash;Practical jokes&mdash;The
-black postman&mdash;A big trek&mdash;Last shots&mdash;Some one
-comes&mdash;Saved at last</td>
-<td class="tdpn">326-340</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td><h3><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI</a><br /><span class="smaller">SIEGE OF PORT ARTHUR (1904)</span></h3></td>
-<td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging">Port Arthur&mdash;Its hotel life&mdash;Stoessel not popular&mdash;Fleet surprised&mdash;Shelled
-at twelve miles&mdash;Japanese pickets make a mistake&mdash;Wounded
-cannot be brought in&mdash;Polite even under the knife&mdash;The
-etiquette of the bath&mdash;The unknown death&mdash;Kondrachenko,
-the real hero&mdash;The white flag at last&mdash;Nogi the
-modest&mdash;“Banzai!”&mdash;Effect of good news on the wounded&mdash;The
-fleet sink with alacrity</td>
-<td class="tdpn">341-352</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvi" id="Page_xvi">[Pg xvi]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2><a name="LIST_OF_ILLUSTRATIONS" id="LIST_OF_ILLUSTRATIONS">LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</a></h2>
-
-<table summary="Illustrations">
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_1">THE SALLY FROM THE FORT AT KUMASSI (see p. 294)</a></td>
-<td class="tdpn" colspan="2"><i>Frontispiece</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_2">THE LAST SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR BY FRANCE AND SPAIN</a></td>
-<td class="tdpn"><i>To face p.</i></td>
-<td class="tdpn">&nbsp;26</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_3">THE NIGHT ASSAULT OF CIUDAD RODRIGO</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">56</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_4">THE ESCALADE OF THE CASTLE</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">66</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_5">THE LAST OF AN ARMY</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">96</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_6">GETTING RID OF HIS CAPTORS</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">128</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_7">A DARING DEED: BLOWING UP THE CASHMERE GATE, DELHI</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">154</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_8">THE LIGHTER SIDE OF WAR AT LUCKNOW</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">180</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_9">SHOT DOWN BY THEIR FELLOW-CITIZENS</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">216</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_10">A DUEL BETWEEN A TEXAN AND A GERMAN</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">224</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_11">THE BALLOON POST USED DURING THE SIEGE OF PARIS</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">244</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_12">A STRANGE WEAPON OF OFFENCE</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">282</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_13">THE BOERS, TAKEN BY SURPRISE, WERE UNSTEADY AND PANIC-STRUCK</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">304</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_14">A BRITISH AMAZON AT MAFEKING</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">308</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_15">A RUSSIAN TORPEDO-BOAT DESTROYER ELUDING THE JAPANESE FLEET</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">344</td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdhanging"><a href="#img_16">A HUMAN LADDER</a></td>
-<td class="tddo">"</td>
-<td class="tdpn2">348</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2><a name="THE_ROMANCE" id="THE_ROMANCE">THE ROMANCE
-OF MODERN SIEGES</a></h2>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_I" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">SIEGE OF GIBRALTAR (1779-1782).</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The position of the Rock&mdash;State of defence&mdash;Food-supply&mdash;Rodney
-brings relief&mdash;Fire-ships sent in&mdash;A convoy in a fog&mdash;Heavy guns
-bombard the town&mdash;Watching the cannon-ball&mdash;Catalina gets no
-gift&mdash;One against fourteen&mdash;Red-hot shot save the day&mdash;Lord
-Howe to the rescue.</p>
-
-<p>Gibraltar! What a thrill does the very name evoke
-to one who knows a little of English history and England’s
-heroes! But to those who have the good fortune to
-steam in a P. and O. liner down the coast of Portugal,
-and catch sight of the Rock on turning by Cabrita Point
-into the Bay of Algeciras the thrill of admiration is
-intensified. For the great Rock lies like a lion couched
-on the marge of the Mediterranean. It is one of the
-pillars of Hercules: it commands the entrance to the
-inner sea.</p>
-
-<p>From 712 to the beginning of the fourteenth century
-Gibraltar was in the hands of the Saracens; then it fell
-into the hands of the Spaniards. In 1704, the year of
-Blenheim, a combined English and Dutch fleet under
-Sir George Rooke captured the Rock from the Marquis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</a></span>
-de Salines, and Gibraltar has since then remained in the
-possession of the English, though several attempts
-have been made to wrest it from us. Before we follow
-Captain Drinkwater in some details of the great siege, a
-few words must be said about the Rock and its defences
-as they then were.</p>
-
-<p>The Rock itself juts out like a promontory, rising to
-a height of 1,300 feet, and joined to the Spanish mainland
-by a low sandy isthmus, which is at the foot of the
-Rock about 2,700 feet broad. On a narrow ledge at
-the foot of the north-west slope lies the little town,
-huddled up beneath the frowning precipice and bristling
-batteries excavated out of the solid rock. At different
-heights, up to the very crest, batteries are planted, half
-or wholly concealed by the galleries. All along the sea-line
-were bastions, mounted with great guns and howitzers,
-and supplied with casemates for 1,000 men. In all the
-fortifications were armed with 663 pieces of artillery.
-Conspicuous among the buildings was an old Moorish
-castle on the north-west side of the hill: here was planted
-the Grand Battery, with the Governor’s residence at
-the upper corner of the walls. Many caves and hollows
-are found in the hill convenient both for powder
-magazines and also for hiding-places to the apes who
-colonize the Rock. The climate even at mid-winter is
-so mild and warm that cricket and tennis can be played
-on dry grass, wherever a lawn can be found in the
-neighbourhood, as the writer has experienced. But at
-Gibraltar itself all is stony ground and barren rock; only
-on the western slope a few palmettos grow, with lavender
-and Spanish broom, roses and asphodels.</p>
-
-<p>In 1777 a good opportunity seemed to be offered
-for Spain to recover the Rock from England. The
-North American colonies had seceded, and the prestige
-of Britain had suffered a severe blow. The fleets of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</a></span>
-France and Spain, sixty-six sail of the line, were opposed
-by Sir Charles Hardy’s thirty-eight, but with these he
-prevented the enemy from landing an invading army
-on the English shore. But Spain was intent on retaking
-Gibraltar, and had already planted batteries across the
-isthmus which connects the Rock with Spain.</p>
-
-<p>General Elliot, the Governor of Gibraltar, had a
-garrison 5,382 strong, 428 artillerymen, and 106 engineers.
-Admiral Duff had brought his ships&mdash;a sixty-gun
-man-of-war, three frigates, and a sloop&mdash;alongside the
-New Mole. All preparations were made to resist a siege.
-Towards the middle of August the enemy succeeded in
-establishing a strict blockade with the object of reducing
-the garrison by famine. There were not more than
-forty head of cattle in the place, and supplies from
-Africa were intercepted by the Spanish cruisers. In
-November the effects of scarcity began to be felt, though
-many of the inhabitants had been sent away. Mutton
-was three shillings a pound, ducks fourteen shillings a
-couple; even fish and bread were very scarce. General
-Elliot set the example of abstemious living, and for
-eight days he lived on 4 ounces of rice a day. The
-inhabitants had for some time been put upon a daily
-ration of bread, delivered under the protection of sentries
-with fixed bayonets. But even with this safeguard for
-the week there was a scene of struggling daily. Many
-times the stronger got more than their share, the weaker
-came away empty-handed, and eked out a wretched
-existence on leeks and thistles. Even soldiers and their
-families were perilously near starvation. So that a
-listless apathy fell on the majority, and they looked
-seaward in vain for a help that did not arrive.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until the 15th of January, 1780, that the
-joyful news went round the little town of a brig in the
-offing which bore the British flag.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She cannot pass the batteries!”</p>
-
-<p>“She is standing in for the Old Mole! Hurrah!”</p>
-
-<p>That brig brought the tidings of approaching relief,
-and many a wet eye kindled with hope.</p>
-
-<p>But the look-out on Signal Point could see the Spaniards
-in Algeciras Bay preparing for sea eleven men-of-war
-to cut off the convoy. Again the hopes of the garrison
-went down. They did not know, neither did the
-Spaniards, that Admiral Sir George Rodney, an old
-Harrow boy, was escorting the convoy with a powerful
-fleet of twenty-one sail of the line. He quickly drove
-the eleven Spaniards into headlong flight, but before
-rounding into the bay he fell in with fifteen Spanish
-merchant-men and six ships of war, which became his
-prize.</p>
-
-<p>Then for a time the town and garrison enjoyed themselves
-frugally, and life became worth living. But on
-the departure of Rodney the Spaniards tried to destroy
-the British vessels in the bay with fire-ships.</p>
-
-<p>It was on a June night that the fire spread, and the
-gleam shot across the water, lighting up Algeciras and the
-cork forests that clothe the mountain-side. Then the
-alarm was given. The <i>Panther</i>, a sixty-gun man-of-war,
-and the other armed ships opened fire on the assailants;
-officers and men sprang into their boats and grappled
-the blazing ships, making fast hawsers, and towing them
-under the great guns of the Rock, where they were
-promptly sunk.</p>
-
-<p>Again the blight of ennui, sickness, and famine came
-on the little garrison; but in October a cargo of fruit
-came just in time to save them from scurvy. In March,
-1781, the want of bread became serious: biscuit crumbs
-were selling for a shilling a pound. “How long?” was
-the anxious cry that was felt, if not expressed in words.
-Had England forgotten her brave men?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 12th of April, to the joyful surprise of all, a great
-convoy was signalled, escorted by a strong fleet. Every
-man, woman, and child who could walk came out upon
-the ramparts and gazed seawards with glistening eyes.
-At daybreak, says the historian of the siege, “Admiral
-Darby’s much-expected fleet was in sight from our
-signal-house, but was not discernible from below, being
-obscured by a thick mist in the Gut. As the sun rose,
-however, the fog rose too like the curtain of a vast
-theatre, discovering to the anxious garrison one of the
-most beautiful and pleasing scenes it is possible to
-conceive. The ecstasies of the inhabitants at this
-grand and exhilarating sight are not to be described;
-but, alas! they little dreamed of the tremendous blow
-that impended, which was to annihilate their property,
-and reduce many of them to indigence and beggary.”</p>
-
-<p>For this second relief of the garrison stung the Spaniards
-into the adoption of a measure which inflicted a large
-amount of suffering on the citizens. They at once began
-to bombard the town with sixty-four heavy guns and
-fifty mortars. All amongst the crowds in the narrow,
-winding streets, through the frail roofs and windows, came
-shot and shell, so that one and all fled from their homes,
-seeking cover among the rocks. This was the time for
-thieves to operate, and many houses were rifled of their
-contents. Then it was discovered that many hucksters
-and liquor-dealers had been hoarding and hiding their
-stocks, and a fire having broken out in a wine-shop,
-the soldiers tasted and drank to excess. Then in a few
-days the discipline became relaxed; many of the garrison
-stole and took away to their quarters barrels of wine,
-which they proceeded to stow away, to their own peril and
-ruin. At length General Elliot was compelled to issue
-orders that any soldier found drunk or asleep at his post
-should be shot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>What surprises us in our days of long-distance firing
-is the strange fact that a man with sharp vision could
-see one of the cannon-balls as it came towards him.
-One day, we are told, an officer saw a ball coming his
-way, but he was so fascinated by it that he could not
-move out of the way. Another day a shot fell into a
-house in which nearly twenty people were gathered
-together: all escaped except one child. On another
-occasion a shot came through the embrasures of one of
-the British batteries, took off the legs of two men, one
-leg of another, and wounded a fourth man in both legs,
-so that “four men had seven legs taken off and wounded
-by one shot.” A boy who had been posted on the
-works, on account of his keenness of vision, to warn the
-men when a cannon-ball was coming their way, had
-only just been complaining that they did not heed his
-warnings, and while he turned to the men this shot
-which did all this hurt was fired by the enemy. A large
-cannon-ball in those days weighed 30 pounds, others
-much less. The author remembers Admiral Colomb
-telling the Harrow boys in a lecture that a Captain of
-those days could carry two or more cannon-balls in his
-coat-tail pocket; the balls of modern guns have to be
-moved by hydraulic machinery. Yet it is astonishing
-how much damage the old cannon-balls could inflict,
-lopping along like overgrown cricket-balls as they did.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes incidents happened of an amusing character.</p>
-
-<p>One day a soldier was rummaging about among the
-ruins of a fallen house, and came upon a find of watches
-and jewels. He bethought him at once of a very pretty
-Spanish girl who had coquetted with him in the gardens
-of the Alameda.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, let me see,” he murmured to himself, “how
-can I put this away safe? Little Catalina will laugh
-when she sees them there jewels, I’ll be bound! Humph!<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</a></span>
-I can’t take this lot to quarters, that’s sartin! Them
-sergeants, as feel one all round on return from duty, will
-grab the lot.”</p>
-
-<p>So he walked on, musing and pondering over his
-weighty affair.</p>
-
-<p>As he was passing the King’s Bastion a happy thought
-struck him.</p>
-
-<p>“By George, sir!” he said to himself, “it’s just the
-very thing. Who would think of looking for a watch
-inside a gun?” and he chuckled to himself.</p>
-
-<p>It was high noon; the sentinel seemed half asleep. The
-soldier tied up his prize in his handkerchief, took out the
-wad of the gun, and slipped his treasure-trove into the
-bore of the cannon, replacing the wad carefully. That
-evening he met Catalina, and managed to inform her
-that he had a pleasant surprise for her, if she could come
-to the King’s Bastion.</p>
-
-<p>Her dark eyes glanced mischievously.</p>
-
-<p>“No, not in the evening, I thank you, Jacko. I will
-come to-morrow, an hour ofter sunrise.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, Catalina; I see you do not trust me. To-morrow,
-then, you shall come with me to the King’s Bastion,
-and see with your own eyes how rich I can make you.”</p>
-
-<p>Catalina understood enough English to laugh heartily
-at her lover’s grave and mysterious words.</p>
-
-<p>“He has stolen a loaf and a bottle of wine,” she thought
-in her simplicity.</p>
-
-<p>However, Catalina did not disappoint Jack, and
-together they paced towards the semi-circular platform
-of the King’s Bastion.</p>
-
-<p>Jack was a very proud man as he tried to explain to his
-lady-love what a surprise was in store for her: he touched
-her wrists to show how the bracelets would fit, and her
-shapely neck to prove the existence of a splendid necklace,
-and Catalina began to believe her boy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But as they came out upon the gun platform, Jack
-stopped suddenly, and uttered a fearful oath.</p>
-
-<p>“O dios!” cried the maid, “what is there to hurt,
-Jacko?”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you see? Oh, Catalina, the game is up!
-That devil of a gunner is wiping out the bore of his gun!”</p>
-
-<p>Jack ran up, and, seizing the man by the arm, said:
-“I say, mate, if you have found a parcel in that gun, it’s
-mine! I put it in last night. I tell you it’s mine, mate!
-Don’t you try to make believe you have not seen it, ’cos
-I know you has.”</p>
-
-<p>The gunner stared in open-mouthed astonishment at the
-speaker. At last he said, with a touch of sarcasm:</p>
-
-<p>“What for do you think I am wiping out her mouth,
-you silly! You must have slept pretty sound not to
-know that them gun-boats crept up again last night.”</p>
-
-<p>“The devil take them! Then, where’s that gold watch
-of mine and them jewels? I put ’em for safety in that
-fool of a gun.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, then, you may depend upon it, my lad, that the
-watch-glass has got broke, for we fired a many rounds in
-the night.”</p>
-
-<p>“What for you look so to cry?” asked little Catalina
-in wonder.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come away, sweetheart. You’ll get no rich present
-this year; them Spaniards have collared ’em all. O
-Lord! O Lord!”</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th of July the Spaniards at Cabrita Point were
-seen to be signalling the approach of an enemy. As the
-mists melted away, the garrison could see a ship becalmed
-out in the bay. Fourteen gunboats from Algeciras had put
-out to cut her off; on this, Captain Curtis, of the <i>Brilliant</i>,
-ordered three barges to row alongside, and receive any
-dispatches she might have on board. This was done just
-before the leading Spanish gunboat got within range;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</a></span>
-then came a hideous storm of round and grape shot as
-the fourteen gunboats circled round the <i>Helma</i>.</p>
-
-<p>But Captain Roberts, though he had only fourteen
-small guns, returned their fire gallantly. The English
-sloop was lying becalmed about a league from the Rock,
-and the garrison in Gibraltar could do nothing to help her.
-They looked every minute to see the <i>Helma</i> sink, but still
-she battled on against their 26-pounders.</p>
-
-<p>Then, when hope seemed desperate, a westerly breeze
-sprang up; the waters darkened and rippled round the
-<i>Helma</i>, her canvas slowly filled out, and she came away
-with torn sails and rigging to the shelter of the Mole.</p>
-
-<p>In September, 1782, a grand attack was made by the
-Spaniards with ten men-of-war, gunboats, mortar-boats,
-and floating batteries. They took up their position about
-900 yards from the King’s Bastion. Four hundred pieces
-of the heaviest artillery were crashing and thundering,
-while all the air was thick with smoke. General Elliott
-had made his preparations: the round shot was being
-heated in portable furnaces all along the front, and as the
-furnaces were insufficient, huge fires were lit in the angles
-between buildings on which our “roast potatoes,” as
-the soldiers nicknamed the hot shot, were being baked.</p>
-
-<p>But the enemy’s battering-ships seemed invulnerable.
-“Our heaviest shells often rebounded from their tops,
-whilst the 32-pound shot seemed incapable of making
-any visible impression upon their hulls. Frequently we
-flattered ourselves they were on fire, but no sooner did
-any smoke appear than, with admirable intrepidity, men
-were observed applying water from their engines within
-to those places whence the smoke issued. Even the artillery
-themselves at this period had their doubts of the
-effect of the red-hot shot, which began to be used about
-twelve, but were not general till between one and two
-o’clock.” After some hours’ incessant firing, the masts<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</a></span>
-of several Spanish ships were seen to be toppling over;
-the flag-ship and the Admiral’s second ship were on fire,
-and on board some others confusion was seen to be prevailing.
-Their fire slackened, while ours increased.
-Then, as night came on, the gleams spread across the
-troubled waters; the cannonade of the garrison increased
-in rapidity and power. At one in the morning two ships
-were blazing mast-high, and the others soon caught fire
-from the red-hot shot or from the flying sparks. The
-light and glow of this fearful conflagration brought out
-the weird features of the whole bay: the sombre Rock,
-the blood-red sea, the white houses of Algeciras five miles
-across, the dark cork forests, and the Spanish mountains&mdash;all
-stood out in strange perspective. Amid the roar of
-cannon were fitfully heard the hoarse murmurs of the
-crowds that lined the shore and the screams of burning
-men. Sometimes a deep gloom shrouded the background
-of earth and sea, while gigantic columns of curling, serpent
-flame shot up from the blazing hulls.</p>
-
-<p>Brigadier Curtis, who was encamped at Europa Point,
-now took out his flotilla of twelve gunboats, each being
-armed with a 24-pounder in its bow, and took the floating
-batteries in flank, compelling the Spanish relieving boats
-to retire.</p>
-
-<p>Daylight showed a sight never to be forgotten: the
-flames had paled before the sun, but the dark forms of the
-Spaniards moving amongst the fire and shrieking for help
-and compassion stirred all the feelings of humanity.
-Some were clinging to the sides of the burning ships,
-others were flinging themselves into the waves. Curtis
-led his boats up to the smoking hulks in order to rescue
-some of the victims. He and his men climbed on board
-the battering-ships at the risk of their lives, and helped
-down the Spaniards, who were profuse in their expressions
-of gratitude.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_2" src="images/i_027.jpg" width="600" height="402" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Last Siege of Gibraltar by France and Spain</p>
-
-<p>A floating battery may be seen to the extreme left beyond the heeling ship.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But as the English thus worked for the rescue of their
-enemies, the magazine of one of the Spanish ships blew
-up with a crash at about five o’clock, and a quarter of an
-hour after another exploded in the centre of the line.
-Burning splinters were hurled around in all directions,
-and involved the British gunboats in grave danger. In
-the Brigadier’s boat his coxswain was killed, his stroke
-wounded, and a hole was forced through the bottom of the
-boat. After landing 357 Spaniards, the English were
-compelled to retire under the cover of the Rock, leaving
-the remainder to their dreadful fate. Of the six ships still
-on fire, three blew up before eleven o’clock; the other
-three burned down to the water’s edge.</p>
-
-<p>Thus ended the attempt to take the Rock by means of
-floating castles. The loss sustained by the Spaniards was
-about 2,000 killed, wounded, and taken prisoners;
-whereas the losses in the garrison were surprisingly small,
-considering how long a cannonade had been kept up
-upon the forts: 16 only were killed; 18 officers, sergeants,
-and rank and file were wounded. Yet the enemy
-had been firing more than 300 pieces of heavy ordnance,
-while the English garrison could bring to bear only 80
-cannon, 7 mortars, and 9 howitzers; but even for these
-they expended 716 barrels of powder.</p>
-
-<p>As Admiral Lord Howe was sailing with a powerful
-fleet to the help of Gibraltar, he heard the news of General
-Elliot’s splendid defence. On the night of the 18th of October,
-1782, a great storm scattered the French and Spanish
-ships; and soon after the delighted garrison saw Lord
-Howe’s fleet and his convoy, containing fresh troops and
-provisions, approaching in order of battle. The blockade
-was now virtually at an end. The siege had lasted three
-years, seven months, and twelve days. Since then no
-attempt has been made to capture Gibraltar.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_II" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">DEFENCE OF ACRE (1799)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Jaffa stormed by Napoleon&mdash;Sir Sidney Smith hurries to Acre&mdash;Takes
-a convoy&mdash;How the French procured cannon-balls&mdash;The Turks
-fear the mines&mdash;A noisy sortie&mdash;Fourteen assaults&mdash;A Damascus
-blade&mdash;Seventy shells explode&mdash;Napoleon nearly killed&mdash;The siege
-raised&mdash;A painful retreat.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon Bonaparte had crushed all opposition in
-Central and Southern Europe, but there was one Power
-which foiled him&mdash;Great Britain.</p>
-
-<p>The French Government compelled Spain and Holland
-to join in a naval war against England, but Jervis and
-Nelson broke and scattered the combined fleets.</p>
-
-<p>Bonaparte had conceived a bitter hatred against the
-only Power which now defied the might of France, and
-was causing him “to miss his destiny.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will conquer Egypt and India; then, attacking
-Turkey, I will take Europe in the rear.” So he wrote.
-In the spring of 1798 he set out for Egypt, reducing
-Malta on the way, and just eluding Nelson’s fleet.</p>
-
-<p>He had got as far as Cairo when he heard of Nelson’s
-victory in Aboukir Bay, where his French fleet was
-destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>But Bonaparte, undaunted, pressed on to attack
-Syria. He stormed Jaffa, and put the garrison to the
-sword. Not content with this cruelty, he marched the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</a></span>
-townsfolk, to the number of 3,700, into the middle of a
-vast square, formed by the French troops. The poor
-wretches shed no tears, uttered no cries. Some who
-were wounded and could not march so fast as the rest
-were bayonetted on the way.</p>
-
-<p>The others were halted near a pool of dirty, stagnant
-water, divided into small bodies, marched in different
-directions, and there shot down. When the French
-soldiers had exhausted their cartridges, the sword and
-bayonet finished the business. Sir Sidney Smith, a
-Captain commanding a few ships in the Levant, hearing
-of these atrocities, hurried with his ships to St. Jean
-d’Acre, which lies north of Jaffa, on the north end of the
-bay which is protected on the south by the chalk headland
-of Carmel, jutting out like our Beachy Head far into
-the sea.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Sidney arrived in the <i>Tigre</i> at Acre only two days
-before Bonaparte appeared. On the 17th of March he sent
-the <i>Tigre’s</i> boats by night to the foot of Mount Carmel, and
-there they found the French advanced guard encamped
-close to the water’s edge. The boats opened with grape,
-and the French retired in a hurry up the side of the
-mount.</p>
-
-<p>The main body of the army, hearing that the sea-road
-was exposed to gun-fire from British ships, went round
-by Nazareth and invested Acre to the east. A French
-corvette and nine sail of gun vessels coming round Mount
-Carmel, found themselves close to the English fleet, and
-seven of them were made prizes, manned from the ships,
-and employed to harass the enemy’s posts.</p>
-
-<p>The French trenches were opened on the 20th of March
-with thirty-two cannon, but they were deficient in balls.
-The French General, Montholon, tells us how they made
-the English provide them with cannon-balls. It reminds
-us of our own plan at Jellalabad. He says that Napoleon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</a></span>
-from time to time ordered a few waggons to be driven
-near the sea, on sight of which Sir Sidney would send in
-shore one of his ships and pour a rolling fire around the
-waggons. Presently the French troops would run to the
-spot, collect all the balls they could find and bring them
-in to the Director of Artillery, receiving five sous for each
-ball. This they did, while laughter resounded on every
-side. The French could afford to be merry. Under
-Bonaparte they had become the masters of the greater
-part of Europe. Nothing seemed impossible to them
-under that military genius. Here they were besieging a
-little trumpery Syrian town, which they calculated they
-could take in three days; “for,” said they, “it is not so
-strong as Jaffa. Its garrison only amounts to 2,000
-or 3,000 men, whereas Jaffa had a garrison of 8,000
-Turks.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th of March the French had made a breach in
-the tower which was considered practicable. A young
-officer with fifteen sappers and twenty-five Grenadiers,
-was ordered to mount to the assault and clear the tower
-fort; but a counter-scarp 15 feet high stopped them.
-Many were wounded, and they hastily retired. On the
-28th a mine was sprung, and they assaulted again;
-but “the Turks exerted themselves so far on this occasion,”
-writes Sir Sidney, “as to knock the assailants off
-their ladders into the ditch, where about forty of their
-bodies now lie.” Montholon writes: “The breach was
-found to be too high by several feet, and Mailly, an officer
-of the staff, and others were killed. When the Turks
-saw Adjutant Lusigier fixing the ladder, a panic seized
-them, and many fled to the port. Even Djezzar, the
-Governor, had embarked. It was very unfortunate.
-That was the day on which the town ought to have been
-taken.”</p>
-
-<p>Early in April a sortie took place, in which the British<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</a></span>
-Marines were to force their way into the French mine,
-while the Turks attacked the trenches. The sally took
-place just before daylight, but the noise and shouting
-of the Turks rendered the attempt to surprise the enemy
-useless; but they succeeded in destroying part of the
-mine, at considerable loss. The Turks brought in above
-sixty heads, many muskets and entrenching tools. “We
-have taught the besiegers,” writes Sir Sidney, “to respect
-the enemy they have to deal with, so as to keep at a
-greater distance.” On the 1st of May the enemy, after many
-hours’ heavy cannonade from thirty pieces of artillery
-brought from Jaffa, made a fourth attempt to mount the
-breach, now much widened, but were repulsed with loss.</p>
-
-<p>“The <i>Tigre</i> moored on one side and the <i>Theseus</i> on
-the other, flank the town walls, and the gunboats,
-launches, etc., flank the enemy’s trenches, to their great
-annoyance. Nothing but desperation can induce them
-to make the sort of attempts they do to mount the breach
-under such a fire as we pour in upon them; and it is
-impossible to see the lives, even of our enemies, thus
-sacrificed, and so much bravery misapplied, without
-regret. I must not omit to mention, to the credit of the
-Turks, that they fetch gabions, fascines, and other
-material which the garrison does not afford from the
-face of the enemy’s works.”</p>
-
-<p>By the 9th of May the French had on nine several occasions
-attempted to storm, but had been beaten back with
-immense slaughter. On the fifty-first day of the siege
-the English had been reinforced by Hassan Bey with
-corvettes and transports; but this only made Bonaparte
-attack with more ferocity, having protected themselves
-with sand-bags and the bodies of their dead built in with
-them. It was a touch and go whether the French would
-not fight their way in. A group of Generals was assembled
-on Cœur-de-Lion’s Mount, among whom Napoleon was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</a></span>
-distinguishable, as he raised his glasses and gesticulated.
-At this critical moment Sir Sidney landed his boats at
-the mole and took the crews up to the breach armed with
-pikes. The enthusiastic gratitude of the Turks&mdash;men,
-women, and children&mdash;at sight of such a reinforcement is
-not to be described. The few Turks who were standing
-their ground in the breach were flinging heavy stones
-down on the heads of the advancing foe, but many of the
-French mounted to the heap of ruins in the breach so
-close that the muzzles of their muskets touched and their
-spear-heads locked.</p>
-
-<p>Djezzar Pasha, on hearing that so large a force of the
-English were fighting in the breach, left his seat, where,
-according to Turkish custom, he was sitting to distribute
-rewards to such as should bring him the heads of the
-enemy, and coming behind our men, the energetic old
-man pulled back his English friends with violence, saying,
-“If any harm happen to the English, all is lost.”</p>
-
-<p>A sally made by the Turks in another quarter caused
-the French in the trenches to uncover themselves above
-their parapet, so that the fire from our boats brought
-down numbers of them. A little before sunset a massive
-column came up to the breach with solemn step. By the
-Pasha’s orders a good number of the French were let
-in, and they descended from the rampart into the Pasha’s
-garden, where in a very few minutes their bravest lay
-headless corpses, the sabre proving more than a match
-for the bayonet. The rest, seeing what was done, fled
-precipitately. The breach was now practicable for fifty
-men abreast. “We felt,” says Sir Sidney, “that we
-must defend it at all costs, for by this breach Bonaparte
-means to march to further conquest, and on the issue
-of this conflict depends the conduct of the thousands of
-spectators who sit on the surrounding hills, waiting to
-see which side they shall join.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>With regard to the cutting off of heads by the Turks,
-one day, when out riding, Sir Sidney questioned the
-superior metal of the Damascus blade, when Djezzar
-Pasha replied that such a blade would separate the head
-from the body of any animal without turning the edge.</p>
-
-<p>“Look!” said the Pasha; “this one I carry about with
-me never fails. It has taken off some dozens of heads.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, Pasha,” said Sir Sidney. “Could you not
-give me ocular proof of the merit of your Damascus, and
-at the same time of your own expertness, by slicing off,
-<i>en passant</i>, the head of one of the oxen we are now
-approaching?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, q’oui, monsieur, c’est déjà fait;” and springing
-off at a gallop, he smote a poor ox as it was grazing close
-to the path, and the head immediately rolled on the
-ground. A Damascus sabre regards neither joints nor
-bones, but goes slicing through, and you cannot feel any
-dint on the edge thereof.</p>
-
-<p>On the 14th of May Sir Sidney writes to his brother:
-“Our labour is excessive: many of us have died of fatigue.
-I am but half dead, and nearly blinded by sun and sand.
-Bonaparte brings fresh troops to the assault two or three
-times in the night, and so we are obliged to be always
-under arms. He has lost the flower of his army in these
-desperate attempts to storm, as appears by the certificates
-of former services which we find in their pockets. We
-have been now near two months constantly under fire
-and firing. We cannot guard the coast lower down than
-Mount Carmel, for the Pasha tells me, if we go away, the
-place will fall, so that the French get supplies from Jaffa
-to the south. I sent Captain Miller in the <i>Theseus</i>
-yesterday to chase three French frigates off Cæsarea;
-but, alas! seventy shells burst at the forepart of Captain
-Miller’s cabin, killing him and thirty-two men, including
-some who jumped overboard and were drowned.” The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</a></span>
-ship got on fire in five places, but was saved. By the 16th
-of May Bonaparte had lost eight Generals and most of his
-artillerymen&mdash;in all upwards of 4,000 men. The Turks
-were becoming quite brave and confident. They boldly
-rushed in on the assaulting columns, sabre in hand, and
-cut them to pieces before they could fire twice. But they
-were struck with terror at the thought of the mines which
-they imagined might blow up at any time, and could not
-be forced to remain on the walls or in the tower. However,
-the knowledge which the garrison had of the
-massacre at Jaffa rendered them desperate in their personal
-defence.</p>
-
-<p>In the fourteenth assault General Kleber led his victorious
-troops to the breach. It was a grand and terrific
-spectacle. The Grenadiers rushed forward under a
-shower of balls. Kleber, with the gait of a giant, with
-his thick head of hair and stentorian voice, had taken his
-post, sword in hand, on the bank of the breach. The
-noise of the cannon, the rage of the soldiers, the yells of
-the Turks, were all bewildering and awful.</p>
-
-<p>General Bonaparte, standing on the battery of the
-breach, looking rather paler than usual, was following the
-progress of the assault through his glass, when a ball
-passed above his head; but he would not budge. In vain
-did Berthier ask him to quit this perilous post&mdash;he received
-no answer&mdash;and two or three officers were killed
-close to him; yet he made no sign of moving from the
-spot. All at once the column of the besiegers came to
-a standstill. Bonaparte went further forward, and then
-perceived that the ditch was vomiting out flames and
-smoke. It was impossible to go on. Kleber, in a great
-rage, struck his thigh with his sword and swore. But
-the General-in-Chief, judging the obstacle to be insurmountable,
-gave a gesture and ordered a retreat. After
-this failure the French Grenadiers absolutely refused to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</a></span>
-mount the breach any more over the putrid bodies of
-their unburied companions. Bonaparte for once seems
-to have lost his judgment, first by sacrificing so many of
-his best men in trying to take a third-rate fort; and,
-secondly, because, even if he had succeeded in taking the
-town, the fire of the English ships must have driven him
-out again in a short time.</p>
-
-<p>One last desperate throw was made for success by
-sending an Arab dervish with a letter to the Pasha proposing
-a cessation of arms for the purpose of burying the
-dead. During the conference of the English and Turkish
-Generals on this subject a volley of shot and shells on a
-sudden announced an assault; but the garrison was ready,
-and all they did was to increase the numbers of the slain,
-to the disgrace of the General who thus disloyally sacrificed
-them. The game was up after a siege of sixty
-days: in the night following the 20th of May the French
-army began to retreat. But as they could not carry their
-guns and wounded with them, these were hurried to sea
-without seamen to navigate the ships, in want of water
-and food. They steered straight for the English ships,
-and claimed and received succour. Their expressions of
-gratitude to Sir Sidney were mingled with execrations on
-their General for his cruel treatment of them. English
-boats rowed along the shore and harassed their march
-south. The whole track between Acre and Gaza was
-strewn with the dead bodies of those who had sunk under
-fatigue or from their wounds. At Gaza Bonaparte turned
-inland, but there he was much molested by the Arabs.
-The remnant of a mighty host went on, creeping towards
-Egypt in much confusion and disorder.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Sidney Smith had thus defeated the great General
-of France, who grudgingly said: “This man has made
-me miss my destiny.” In the hour of victory Sir Sidney
-was generous and humane, for he had a good heart, good<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</a></span>
-humour, and much pity. Nor did he forget the Giver
-of all victory, as the following extract from a letter
-testifies:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Nazareth, 1799.</i>&mdash;I am just returned from the Cave of
-the Annunciation, where, secretly and alone, I have been
-returning thanks to the Almighty for our late wonderful
-success. Well may we exclaim, ‘the race is not always
-to the swift, nor the battle to the strong.’&mdash;W. S. S.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_III" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE WOUNDED CAPTAIN IN TALAVERA (1809)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Talavera between two fires&mdash;Captain Boothby wounded&mdash;Brought into
-Talavera&mdash;The fear of the citizens&mdash;The surgeons’ delay&mdash;Operations
-without chloroform&mdash;The English retire&mdash;French troops
-arrive&mdash;Plunder&mdash;French officers kind, and protect Boothby&mdash;A
-private bent on loot beats a hasty retreat.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Boothby, of the Royal Engineers, left behind
-him a diary of his experiences in Spain during part of
-the Peninsular War in 1809. It will help us to understand
-how much suffering war inflicts, and how much pain
-we have been saved by the inventions of modern science.</p>
-
-<p>He tells us he had been provided with quarters in
-Talavera, at the house of Donna Pollonia di Monton, a
-venerable dame. She was the only person left in the
-house, the rest having fled to the mountains in fear lest
-the French should come and sack the city; for in the
-streets those who remained were shouting in their panic,
-“The French have taken the suburbs!” or “The British
-General is in full retreat!” or “O Dios! los Ingleses nos
-abandonan!” (“O God! the English are deserting us!”).
-The fact was that Wellesley was not sure if he could hold
-his ground at Talavera.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Boothby went out one morning towards the
-enemy’s position; he was brought back in the evening
-on a bier by four men, his leg shattered by a musket-ball.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</a></span>
-The old lady threw up her hands when she saw him
-return.</p>
-
-<p>“What!” she exclaimed, while the tears ran down
-her cheeks. “Can this be the same? This he whose
-cheeks in the morning were glowing with health? Blessed
-Virgin, see how white they are now!”</p>
-
-<p>She made haste to prepare a bed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what luxury to be laid upon it, after the hours
-of pain and anxiety, almost hopeless, I had undergone!
-The surgeon, Mr. Bell, cut off my boot, and having
-examined the wound, said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Sir, I fear there is no chance of saving your leg,
-and the amputation must be above the knee.’</p>
-
-<p>“He said the operation could not be performed until
-the morning, and went back to the hospital.</p>
-
-<p>“I passed a night of excruciating pain. My groans
-were faint, because my body was exhausted with the
-three hours’ stumbling about in the woods. Daylight
-was ushered in by a roar of cannon so loud, so continuous,
-that I hardly conceived the wars of all the earth
-could produce such a wild and illimitable din. Every
-shot seemed to shake the house with increasing violence,
-and poor Donna Pollonia rushed in crying:</p>
-
-<p>“‘They are firing the town!’</p>
-
-<p>“‘No, no,’ said I; ‘don’t be frightened. Why should
-they fire the town? Don’t you perceive that the firing
-is becoming more distant?’”</p>
-
-<p>So the poor lady became less distraught, and watched
-by him with sympathizing sorrow. But at length, finding
-the day advancing, his pains unabating, and no signs
-of any medical help coming, he tore a leaf from his
-pocket-book, and with a pencil wrote a note to the chief
-surgeon, Mr. Higgins, saying that, as he had been informed
-no time was to be lost in the amputation, he was naturally
-anxious that his case should be attended to. The mes<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</a></span>senger
-returned, saying that the surgeon could not possibly
-leave the hospital. He sent a second note, and a
-third, and towards ten o’clock a.m. the harrassed surgeon
-made his appearance.</p>
-
-<p>“Captain Boothby,” said he, “I am extremely sorry
-that I could not possibly come here before, still more
-sorry that I only come now to tell you I cannot serve
-you. There is but one case of instruments. This I cannot
-bring from the hospital while crowds of wounded,
-both officers and men, are pressing for assistance.”</p>
-
-<p>“I did but wish to take my turn,” said the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope,” he added, “that towards evening the crowd
-will decrease, and that I shall be able to bring Mr. Gunning
-with me to consult upon your case.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you examine my wound, sir,” said Boothby,
-“and tell me honestly whether you apprehend any
-danger from the delay?”</p>
-
-<p>He examined the leg, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“No, I see nothing in this case from which the danger
-would be increased by waiting five or six hours.”</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing for it but patience.</p>
-
-<p>“I taxed my mind to make an effort, but pain, far
-from loosening his fangs at the suggestion of reason, clung
-fast, and taught me that, in spite of mental pride, he is,
-and must be, dreadful to the human frame.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Higgins came to him about three o’clock, bringing
-with him Mr. Gunning and Mr. Bell, and such instruments
-as they might have occasion for.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gunning sat down by his bedside, and made a
-formal exhortation: explained that to save the life it
-was necessary to part with the limb, and he required of
-him an effort of mind and a manly resolution.</p>
-
-<p>“Whatever is necessary, that I am ready to bear,”
-said the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>Then the surgeons, having examined his wound, went<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</a></span>
-to another part of the room to consult, after which they
-withdrew&mdash;to bring the apparatus, as he imagined.
-Hours passed, and they did not return. His servant,
-Aaron, having sought Mr. Gunning, was told that he was
-too much occupied. This after having warned him that
-there was no time to be lost!</p>
-
-<p>“Go, then,” said the Captain to Aaron&mdash;“go into the
-street, and bring me the first medical officer you happen
-to fall in with.”</p>
-
-<p>He returned, bringing with him Mr. Grasset, surgeon
-of the 48th Regiment.</p>
-
-<p>After examining the wound, Mr. Grasset declared that
-he was by no means convinced of the necessity of the
-amputation, and would not undertake the responsibility.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said the wounded man, “I suppose an attempt
-to save the leg will be attended with great danger.”</p>
-
-<p>“So will the amputation,” he replied. “But we must
-hope for the best, and I see nothing to make your cure
-impossible. The bones, to be sure, are much shattered,
-and the leg is much mangled and swollen; but have you
-been bled, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Captain Boothby.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Grasset conceived bleeding absolutely necessary,
-though he had already lost much, and at his request he
-bled him in the arm.</p>
-
-<p>He guessed that Mr. Gunning’s departure proceeded
-from his conviction that a gangrene had already begun,
-and that it would be cruel to disturb his dying moments
-by a painful and fruitless operation.</p>
-
-<p>As he had taken nothing but vinegar and water since
-his misfortune, his strength was exhausted, and the
-operation of bleeding was succeeded by an interval of
-unconsciousness. From this state he was roused by
-some one taking hold of his hand. It was his friend Dr.
-FitzPatrick.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“If I had you in London,” said he with a sigh, “I
-might attempt to save your limb; but amid the present
-circumstances it would be hopeless. I had been told
-that the amputation had been performed, else, ill as I
-could have been spared, I would have left the field and
-come to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think you are come too late?” asked the
-Captain.</p>
-
-<p>He said “No”; but he dissembled. At that time
-Boothby was under strong symptoms of lockjaw, which
-did not disappear until many hours after the operation.
-The doctor took a towel, and soaking it in vinegar and
-water, laid it on the wound, which gave much relief.
-He stayed with him till late, changing the lotion as often
-as needed. The operation was fixed for daylight on the
-morrow.</p>
-
-<p>The patient passed another dismal night. At nine
-o’clock next morning FitzPatrick and Miller, Higgins and
-Bell, staff-surgeons, came to his bedside. They had put
-a table in the middle of the room, and placed on it a
-mattress. Then one of the surgeons came and exhorted
-him to summon his fortitude. Boothby told him he need
-not be afraid, and FitzPatrick said he could answer for
-him. They then carried him to the table and laid him
-on the mattress. Mr. Miller wished to place a handkerchief
-over his eyes, but he assured him that it was
-unnecessary; he would look another way.</p>
-
-<p>“I saw that the knife was in FitzPatrick’s hand, which
-being as I wished, I averted my head.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not shock the reader by describing the operation
-in detail, but as it is a common idea that the most
-painful part of an operation lies in sundering the bone,
-I may rectify an error by declaring that the only part
-of the process in which the pain comes up to the natural
-anticipation is the first incision round the limb, by which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</a></span>
-the skin is divided, the sensation of which is as if a prodigious
-weight were impelling the severing edge. The
-sawing of the bone gives no uneasy sensation; or, if any,
-it is overpowered by others more violent.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Is it off?’ said I, as I felt it separate.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Yes,’ said FitzPatrick, ‘your sufferings are over.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Ah no! you have yet to take up the arteries.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘It will give you no pain,’ he said kindly; and that
-was true&mdash;at least, after what I had undergone, the pain
-seemed nothing.</p>
-
-<p>“I was carried back to my bed much exhausted.
-Soon hope returned to my breast; it was something to
-have preserved the possibility of yet being given back
-to happiness and friendship.”</p>
-
-<p>For some time after the operation his stomach refused
-sustenance, and a constant hiccough was recognized by
-the surgeons as a fatal prognostic.</p>
-
-<p>His faithful friend, Edmund Mulcaster, hardly ever
-left his bedside. General Sherbrooke came to see him often,
-and evinced the most earnest anxiety for his welfare.
-They wrote to his friends for him, and to his mother.
-This last he signed himself.</p>
-
-<p>In the night of the 30th, by the perseverance of Mulcaster,
-he managed to retain some mulled wine, strongly
-spiced, and in the morning took two eggs from the same
-welcome hand. This was the “turn.” The unfavourable
-symptoms began to subside, and the flowing stream
-of life began to fill by degrees its almost deserted channels.</p>
-
-<p>On the 2nd of August some officers, entering his room,
-said that information had been received of Soult’s
-arrival at Placentia, and that General Wellesley intended
-to head back and engage him.</p>
-
-<p>“If the French come while we are away, Boothby,”
-said Goldfinch, “you must cry out, ‘Capitaine anglais,’
-and you will be treated well.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 3rd of August his friends all came to take leave
-of him. It was a blank, rugged moment. Mr. Higgins,
-the senior surgeon, was left behind to tend the wounded.</p>
-
-<p>The mass of the people of England is hasty, and often
-unjust, in its judgment of military events. They will
-condemn a General as rash when he advances, or revile
-him as a coward when he retreats. News of the battle
-of Talavera had been announced by the trumpet of
-victory. The people of England expected the emancipation
-of Spain. Now were they cast down when told that
-the victors had been obliged to retire and leave their
-wounded to the mercy of a vanquished enemy.</p>
-
-<p>If Lord Wellington knew the strength and condition
-of the force under Soult, it would be hard to justify his
-conduct in facing back. In Spain, however, it was
-impossible to get correct information. The Spaniards
-are deaf to bad news and idiotically credulous to all
-reports that flatter their hopes. Thus the rashness of
-Lord Wellington in placing himself between two armies,
-Soult and Ney, the least of whom was equal to himself,
-may be palliated.</p>
-
-<p>The repulse and flight of the French after the Battle of
-Talavera restored confidence to the fugitive townsfolk.
-They left the mountains and re-entered Talavera. The
-house was again filled with old and young, who strove
-to wait on the Captain. But soon the evacuation of the
-town by the British awoke their fears; but with thankfulness
-let us record that a British officer, wounded and
-mutilated, was to the women of the house too sacred an
-object to be abandoned.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens of Talavera had clung to the hope that at
-least their countrymen would stay and protect them;
-but on the 4th, seeing them also file under their windows
-in a long, receding array, they came to the Captain&mdash;those
-near his house&mdash;beating their breasts and tearing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</a></span>
-their hair, and demanded of him if he knew what was to
-become of them.</p>
-
-<p>Boothby sent Aaron to take a message to the Colonel
-left Commandant by General Wellesley, but he came back
-saying that the Colonel was gone, having given orders
-that those in the hospitals who were able to move should
-set off instantly for Oropesa, as the French were at hand.
-The sensation this notice produced is beyond all description.
-The Captain lay perfectly still; other wounded
-men had themselves placed across horses and mules, and
-fruitlessly attempted to escape. The road to Oropesa
-was covered with our poor wounded, limping, bloodless
-soldiers. On crutches or sticks they hobbled woefully
-along. For the moment panic terror lent them a new force,
-but many lay down on the road to take their last sleep.</p>
-
-<p>Such were the tales that Aaron and others came to
-tell him. He tried to comfort them, and said the French
-were not so bad as they fancied. Still, his mind was far
-from being at ease. He thought it possible that some
-foraging party might plunder him and commit excesses
-in the house, or on the women, who would run to him
-for protection, however uselessly. The evening of the
-4th, however, closed in quietness, and a visit from the
-senior medical officer, Mr. Higgins, gave him great comfort.</p>
-
-<p>The 5th of August dawned still and lovely. A traveller
-might have supposed Talavera to be in profound peace
-until, gazing on her gory heights, he saw they were covered
-with heaps of ghastly slain. The tranquil interval was
-employed in laying in a stock of provisions. Pedro
-argued with him.</p>
-
-<p>“But, signore, the Brencone asks a dollar a couple
-for his chickens!”</p>
-
-<p>“Buy, buy, buy!” was all the answer he could get
-from the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>Wine, eggs, and other provender were laid in at a rate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</a></span>
-which provoked the rage and remonstrance of the little
-Italian servant.</p>
-
-<p>About the middle of the day a violent running and
-crying under the windows announced an alarm. The
-women rushed into his room, exclaiming, “Los Franceses,
-los Franceses!” The assistant surgeon of artillery
-came in.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Mr. Steniland,” said the Captain, “are the
-French coming?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he answered; “I believe so. Mr. Higgins is
-gone out to meet them.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right,” said Boothby.</p>
-
-<p>In about an hour Mr. Higgins entered, saying, “I
-have been out of town above two leagues and can see
-nothing of them. If they do come, they will have every
-reason to treat us with attention, for they will find their
-own wounded lying alongside of ours, provided with the
-same comforts and the same care.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th, reports of the enemy’s approach were
-treated with total disregard. Between eight and nine
-o’clock the galloping of horses was heard in the street.
-The women ran to the windows and instantly shrank
-back, pale as death, with finger on lip.</p>
-
-<p>“Los demonios!” they whispered, and then on tiptoe
-watched in breathless expectation of seeing some bloody
-scene.</p>
-
-<p>“They have swords and pistols all ready,” cried
-Manoela, trembling.</p>
-
-<p>“How’s this?” cried old Donna Pollonia. “Why,
-they pass the English soldiers. They go on talking
-and laughing. Jesus! Maria! What does it mean?”</p>
-
-<p>Presently Mr. Higgins came in. He had ridden out to
-meet the French General, and had found that officer full
-of encomiums and good assurances.</p>
-
-<p>“Your wounded are the most sacred trust to our<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</a></span>
-national generosity. As for you, medical gentlemen,
-who have been humane and manly enough not to desert
-your duty to your patients (many of whom are Frenchmen),
-stay amongst us as long as you please. You are as
-free as the air you breathe.”</p>
-
-<p>The town owed much to Mr. Higgins!</p>
-
-<p>To prepare for the approaching crisis, to ride forth and
-parley with the enemy and persuade him that he owes
-you respect, gratitude&mdash;this is to be an officer of the first
-class. Throughout Mr. Higgins displayed the character
-of no common man.</p>
-
-<p>We should say something of the household among
-which the Captain was placed.</p>
-
-<p>Servants and masters and mistresses in Spain associate
-very freely together, but the submissive docility of the
-servants keeps pace with the affability with which they
-are treated. First after Don Manoel and Donna Pollonia
-came Catalina&mdash;a tall, elegant woman of forty, a
-sort of housekeeper held in high estimation by the señora.
-Then come two old women, Tia Maria and Tia Pepa
-“tia” means “aunt”); then Manoela, a lively, simple
-lass, plain and hardy, capable of chastising with her fists
-any ill-mannered youth. Then the carpenter’s daughters,
-two pretty little girls, often came to play in his room&mdash;Martita,
-aged about ten, and Maria Dolores, perhaps
-fifteen, pensive, tender, full of feminine charm. These
-fair sisters used to play about him with the familiarity
-and gentleness of kittens, and lightened many an hour.</p>
-
-<p>Well, it was not all plain sailing, for stories of pillage
-and plunder came to their ears. Three troopers had gone
-to the quarters of his wounded friend, Taylor, and began
-coolly to rifle his portmanteau.</p>
-
-<p>Taylor stormed and said he was an English Captain.</p>
-
-<p>“Major, ’tis very possible,” said they; “but your
-money, your watch, and your linen are never the worse<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</a></span>
-for that; no, nor your wine either!” and the ruthless
-savages swallowed the wine and the bread which had
-been portioned out as his sustenance and comfort for the
-day.</p>
-
-<p>Feeling that such might be his case, Boothby put his
-money and watch in a little earthen vessel and sent it
-to be buried in the yard; then calling for his soup and a
-large glass of claret, he tossed it off defiantly, saying
-to himself, “You don’t get this, my boys!”</p>
-
-<p>Next morning they heard that the French infantry
-were coming, and the town was to be given up to pillage,
-as so many of the citizens had deserted it.</p>
-
-<p>The women came to him. “Shall we lock the street
-door, Don Carlos?” they said.</p>
-
-<p>“By all means,” said he. “Make it as fast as you
-can, and don’t go near the windows.”</p>
-
-<p>Soon they heard the bands playing, and the women
-rushed to the windows, as if to see a raree-show, forgetting
-all his injunctions.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after thump! thump! thump! sounded at the
-door.</p>
-
-<p>“Virgin of my soul!” cried old Pollonia, tottering to
-the window. “There they are!” But, peeping out
-cautiously, she added, “No, ’tis but a neighbour. Open,
-Pepa.”</p>
-
-<p>“You had better not suffer your door to be opened at
-all,” said the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>But Pepa pulled the string, and in came the neighbour,
-shrieking:</p>
-
-<p>“Jesus! Maria! Dios Santissimo! The demons are
-breaking open every door and plundering every house;
-all the goods-chests&mdash;everything&mdash;dragged out into the
-street.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maria di mi alma! Oh, señora!”</p>
-
-<p>The crashing of doors, breaking of windows, loud<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</a></span>
-thumpings and clatterings, were now distinctly heard
-in all directions. All outside seemed to boil in turmoil.</p>
-
-<p>Ere long, thump! thump! at their own door.</p>
-
-<p>But it was only another neighbour. Pepa pulled the
-string, and in she came. Her head was piled up with
-mattresses, blankets, quilts, and pillows. Under one
-arm were gowns, caps, bonnets, and ribbons. Her other
-hand held a child’s chair. Add to all this that her figure
-was of a stunted and ludicrous character, and she came
-in puffing and crying under that cumbrous weight of
-furniture. They could not resist laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“For the love of God, señora,” she whined, “let me
-put these things in your house.”</p>
-
-<p>She was shown up into the garret. Others followed
-after her.</p>
-
-<p>But soon there was a louder knocking, with a volley
-of French oaths. The house shook under the blows.</p>
-
-<p>“Pedro, tell them in French that this is the quarter
-of an English Captain.”</p>
-
-<p>Pedro cautiously peeped out of the window.</p>
-
-<p>“Dios! there is but one,” said Pedro, “and he carries
-no arms. Hallo, sair! la maison for Inglis Captin! Go
-to hell!”</p>
-
-<p>This strange language, and his abrupt, jabbering way
-of talking, forced a laugh out of his master.</p>
-
-<p>“Ouvrez la porte, bête!” shouted the Frenchman. “I
-want some water.”</p>
-
-<p>“Holy Virgin!” cried Pollonia. “We had better
-open the door.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, no!” said Boothby. “Tell him, Pedro,
-that if he does not take himself off I shall report him to
-his General.”</p>
-
-<p>Pedro had not got half through this message, when
-suddenly he ducked his head, and a great stone came in
-and struck the opposite wall.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Il demonio!” groaned the women, as they, too,
-ducked their heads.</p>
-
-<p>Then the fellow, who was drunk, just reeled off in
-search of some easier adventure.</p>
-
-<p>Pedro had hardly finished boasting of his victory when
-the door was again assailed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said Pollonia, “it’s only two officers’ servants;”
-and she shut the window.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what did they want?” asked the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>“They wanted lodgings for their masters, but I told
-them we had no room.”</p>
-
-<p>“And have you room, Donna Pollonia?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; but I didn’t choose to say so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Run, Pedro, run and tell those servants that there
-is plenty of room. Don’t you see, señora, that this is
-the best chance of preserving your house from pillage?”</p>
-
-<p>They returned&mdash;one a Prussian lad who spoke French
-very ill. The Captain’s hope that these fellow-lodgers
-would prove gentlemen lent him a feeling of security.</p>
-
-<p>Little Pedro was watching the motions of the two
-servants like a lynx.</p>
-
-<p>“Signore,” said he, “those two <i>diavoli</i> are prying
-about into every hole and corner.”</p>
-
-<p>On this Aaron was sent to dig up the watch and money
-and bring the wine upstairs.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after in came Pedro, strutting with a most consequential
-air.</p>
-
-<p>“The French Captain, signore,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>There followed him a fine, military-looking figure,
-armed cap-à-pie, and covered with martial dust. He
-advanced to the bedside with a quick step.</p>
-
-<p>“I have had the misfortune, sir, to lose a limb,” said
-Boothby, “and I claim your protection.”</p>
-
-<p>“My protection!” he replied, putting out his hand.
-“Command my devoted services! The name of an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</a></span>
-Englishman in distress is sufficient to call forth our
-tenderest attention.”</p>
-
-<p>The Captain was a good deal affected by the kindness
-of his manner. Kindness can never be thoroughly felt
-unless it be greatly wanted.</p>
-
-<p>He begged he would visit him sometimes, and he
-promised to bring a friend.</p>
-
-<p>Señora Pollonia was charmed with M. de la Platière,
-who, with his young friend Captain Simon, often came
-in for a chat.</p>
-
-<p>Alas! they had to go away after a few days’ stay, but
-de la Platière wrote his name in chalk on the door, in the
-hope that it might discourage any plunderers.</p>
-
-<p>One day Boothby was suddenly aroused by the appearance
-in his room of an officer whom he had seen before,
-but did not much like.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh, Capitaine, comment ça va-t-il? Ça va mieux!
-Ha! bon!”</p>
-
-<p>Then he explained that the blade of his sword was
-broken. “As prisoner of war,” he said, “you will have
-no use for a sword. Give me yours, and, if you will,
-keep mine. Where is yours?”</p>
-
-<p>“It stands,” said Boothby, “in yonder corner. Take
-it by all means.”</p>
-
-<p>“Je vous laisserai la mienne,” he said, and hurried off.</p>
-
-<p>Boothby wished his sword in the Frenchman’s gizzard,
-he was so rough and rude.</p>
-
-<p>One afternoon Pedro rushed in, excited, and said:
-“The General himself is below, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“Bring him up, Pedro.”</p>
-
-<p>Quickly he ushered in an officer of about the age of
-five-and-thirty. He was splendidly dressed, of an
-elegant person, his face beaming with good nature and
-intelligence.</p>
-
-<p>He came up to the bed, and without waiting for the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</a></span>
-form of salutation, seated himself in a chair close to the
-pillow, and laying his hand on Boothby’s arm, he said,
-in a mild and agreeable voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Ne vous dérangez, mon ami! Solely I am here to
-see if I can possibly lighten a little the weight of your
-misfortune. Tell me, can I be useful to you? Have you
-everything you want?”</p>
-
-<p>For all these kind inquiries the Captain expressed his
-gratitude, and added, “I have really nothing to ask for,
-unless you could send me to England.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! if you were able to move, Captain, I could exchange
-you now; but by the time you will have gained
-strength to travel you will be at the disposal of the Major-General
-of the army.”</p>
-
-<p>That visit gave much comfort and hope.</p>
-
-<p>In the evening de la Platière and Simon returned with
-the news that Sir Arthur Wellesley had met with disasters.</p>
-
-<p>“Taisez-vous, mon cher,” said Simon. “It may have
-a bad effect on his spirits.”</p>
-
-<p>But he insisted on hearing all they knew, and while
-they were talking a French soldier walked calmly up
-into the room, and coming up to the foot of the bed,
-stood before his officers, astounded, petrified.</p>
-
-<p>When, after sternly eyeing him a while, they sharply
-demanded his business, his faculties returned, and he
-stammered out:</p>
-
-<p>“Mon Capitaine, I&mdash;I&mdash;I took it for a shop! I beg
-pardon.” And off he went in a hurry. But what would
-he have done if he had found the English officer alone?</p>
-
-<p>On October 1 Captain Boothby was allowed to go out
-on crutches. He says: “The sense of attracting general
-observation hurried me. The French soldiers who met
-me expressed surprise at seeing the success of an amputation
-which in the hands of their field surgeons was nearly
-always fatal. The Spaniards were most sympathizing.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</a></span>
-‘What a pity!’ ‘So young, too!’ ‘Poor young Englishman!’
-were pathetically passed along the street as he
-hobbled by.”</p>
-
-<p>In July, 1810, Captain Boothby was exchanged with
-a French prisoner and returned to his father and mother
-in England.</p>
-
-<p>This gives us the kindlier side of war; but there is
-another side.</p>
-
-<p>In the prison of Toro were some French soldiers kept
-by the Spaniards. Nothing could be worse than the
-cruelty under which these Frenchmen suffered. In
-their prison was a cell, with a window strongly barred,
-and covered by an iron shutter pierced with small holes.
-The dungeon was about 10 feet square and 5 feet high.
-At the furthest end was a block of stone for a seat, with
-an iron collar for the neck, fixed by a short chain in the
-wall. Another chain was passed round the body. The
-poor wretches were chained in one position all day,
-which often hurried them to a miserable death. Their
-food was a little bread and water.</p>
-
-<p>It is easy, however, to bear any amount of suffering
-when you know the time will soon come when you will
-be free.</p>
-
-<p>It is not so easy to bear a whole lifelong penalty for
-having dared to fight for one’s country. One would
-think that a national gratitude would rescue our wounded
-soldiers from a life of beggary or the workhouse. Yet
-after every war how many one-armed and one-legged
-soldiers or sailors are pitifully begging along our streets
-and roads!</p>
-
-<p>There is no animal so cruel as man. <i>Corruptio optimi
-pessima.</i></p>
-
-<p class="source">From a “Prisoner of France,” by Captain Boothby. By kind
-permission of Messrs. A. and C. Black and Miss Boothby.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IV" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE CAPTURE OF CIUDAD RODRIGO (1812)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">A night march&mdash;Waiting for scaling-ladders&mdash;The assault&mdash;Ladders
-break&mdash;Shells and grenades&mdash;A magazine explodes&mdash;Street fighting&mdash;Drink
-brings disorder and plunder&mdash;Great spoil.</p>
-
-<p>After Talavera Sir Arthur Wellesley became Lord Wellington;
-he was opposed by Soult, Marmont, and Masséna.
-On the 1st of January Wellington crossed the
-Agueda, and advanced to the assault of Ciudad Rodrigo,
-which had to be hurried on because Marmont was advancing
-to its relief. Fortunately, we have descriptions
-from more than one eyewitness of the siege. Ciudad
-Rodrigo is built on rising ground, on the right bank of
-the Agueda. The inner wall, 32 feet high, is without
-flanks, and has weak parapets and narrow ramparts.
-Without the town, at the distance of 300 yards, the
-suburbs were enclosed by a weak earthen entrenchment,
-hastily thrown up.</p>
-
-<p>It was six o’clock on the evening of the 19th of January.
-The firing on both sides had slackened, but not ceased.
-The chiefs were all bustle and mystery. They had had
-their instructions. Soon the 5th and 77th were ordered to
-fall in, and halted on the extreme right of the division.
-Whilst the men hammered at their flints the order was
-read to the troops. They were to take twelve axes in
-order to cut down the gate by which the ditch was entered.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</a></span>
-The 5th Regiment were to have twelve scaling-ladders,
-25 feet long, to scale the Fausse Brage, clear it of the
-enemy, throw over any guns, and wait for General
-M’Kinnon’s column in the main attack.</p>
-
-<p>“Whilst waiting in the gloom for the return of the men
-sent for the ladders, we mingled in groups of officers,
-conversing and laughing together with that callous
-thoughtlessness which marks the old campaigner.</p>
-
-<p>“I well remember how poor McDougall of the 5th
-was quizzed about his dandy moustaches. When next
-I saw him, in a few short hours, he was a lifeless and a
-naked corpse.</p>
-
-<p>“Suddenly a horseman galloped heavily towards us.
-It was Picton. He made a brief and inspiriting speech
-to us&mdash;said he knew the 5th were men whom a severe
-fire would not daunt, and that he reposed equal confidence
-in the 77th. A few kind words to our commander
-and he bade us God-speed, pounding the sides of his hog-maned
-cob as he trotted off.”</p>
-
-<p>Major Sturgeon and the ladders having arrived, the
-troops again moved off about half-past six. The night
-was rather dark, the stars lending but little light.</p>
-
-<p>They were enjoined to observe the strictest silence.
-It was a time of thrilling excitement as they wound
-their way by the right, at first keeping a distance of
-1,200 yards from the town, then bending in towards the
-convent of Santa Cruz and the river. The awful stillness
-of the hour was unbroken save by the soft, measured
-tread of the little columns as they passed over the green
-turf, or by the occasional report of a cannon from the
-walls, and the rush and whizz of its ball as it flew past,
-or striking short, bounded from the earth over their
-heads, receiving, perhaps, most respectful, though involuntary,
-salaams. Every two or three minutes a gun
-was fired at some suspicious quarter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>They had approached the convent and pushed on
-nearer the walls, which now loomed high and near. They
-reached the low glacis, through which was discovered a
-pass into the ditch, heavily palisaded with a gate in the
-centre. Through the palisades were visible the dark
-and lofty old Moorish walls, whilst high overhead was
-the great keep or citadel, a massive square tower, which
-looked like a giant frowning on the scene. The English
-still were undiscovered, though they could distinguish
-the arms of the men on the ramparts, as they fired in idle
-bluster over their heads.</p>
-
-<p>Eagerly, though silently, they all pressed towards the
-palisades as the men with hatchets began to cut a way
-through them. The sound of the blows would not have
-been heard by the enemy, who were occupied by their
-own noises, had it not been for the enthusiasm, so characteristic
-of his country, which induced a newly-joined
-ensign, fresh from the wilds of Kerry, to utter a tremendous
-war-whoop as he saw the first paling fall before the
-axes. The cheer was at once taken up by the men, and,
-as they instantly got convincing proofs that they were
-discovered&mdash;the men on the walls began to pepper them
-soundly&mdash;they all rushed through the opening. In the
-ditch the assailants were heavily fired on from rampart
-and tower. The French tossed down lighted shells and
-hand-grenades, which spun about hissing and fizzing
-amongst their feet. Some of these smashed men’s
-heads as they fell, whilst others, exploding on the ground,
-tossed unlucky wretches into the air, tearing them
-asunder. Seldom could any men have passed three or
-four minutes more uncomfortably than the time which
-was consumed in bringing in and fixing the ladders
-against a wall, towards which they all crowded.</p>
-
-<p>Amongst the first to mount was the gallant chieftain
-of the 5th, but the love they bore him caused so many of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</a></span>
-the soldiers to follow on the same ladder that it broke in
-two, and they all fell, many being hurt by the bayonets
-of their own comrades round the foot of the ladder.</p>
-
-<p>“I was not one of the last in ascending,” writes an
-officer of the 77th, “and as I raised my head to the level
-of the top of the wall, I beheld some of our fellows demolishing
-a picket which had been stationed at that
-spot, and had stood on the defensive.</p>
-
-<p>“They had a good fire of wood to cheer themselves by,
-and on revisiting the place in the morning, I saw their
-dead bodies, stripped, strangely mingled with wounded
-English officers and men, who had lain round the fire all
-night, the fortune of war having made them acquainted
-with strange bed-fellows.</p>
-
-<p>“Our ascent of the ladders placed us in the Fausse
-Brage&mdash;a broad, deep ditch&mdash;in which we were for the
-moment free from danger.</p>
-
-<p>“When about 150 men had mounted, we moved
-forward at a rapid pace along this ditch, cowering close
-to the wall, whilst overhead we heard the shouts and
-cries of alarm. Our course was soon arrested by the
-massive fragments and ruins of the main breach made
-by our men, and here we were in extreme danger, for
-instead of falling into the rear of a column supposed to
-have already carried the breach, we stood alone at its
-base, exposed to a tremendous fire of grape and musketry
-from its defences.</p>
-
-<p>“For a minute or two we seemed destined to be sacrificed
-to some mistake as to the hour of attack, but suddenly
-we heard a cheer from a body of men who flung
-down bags of heather to break their fall, and leaped on
-them into the ditch.</p>
-
-<p>“It was the old Scots Brigade, which, like us, having
-been intended as a support, was true to its time, and was
-placed in the same predicament as we were.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_3" src="images/i_059.jpg" width="380" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Night Assault of Ciudad Rodrigo</p>
-
-<p>The enemy, immediately on discovering the presence of the British soldiers, commenced
-firing and throwing lighted shells and hand grenades at them.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the appearance of the 94th the fire of the garrison
-was redoubled, but it was decided by the officers that it
-was better to die like men on the breach than like dogs
-in a ditch, and so, with a wild “Hurrah!” they all sprang
-up, absolutely eating fire. The breach must have been
-70 feet wide, and consisted of a nearly perpendicular
-mass of loose rubbish, in which it was very difficult to
-obtain a footing.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy lost no time. They pointed two guns
-downwards from the flanks and had time to fire several
-rounds of grape, working fearful destruction on the
-British. On the margin of the breach were ranged a
-quantity of shells, which were lighted and rolled down
-on them; but they acted rather as a stimulus to push
-up, and so avoid their explosion. The top of the
-breach was defended by a strong body of the garrison,
-who maintained a heavy fire of musketry, and hurled
-down hand-grenades and fire-balls. However, a night
-attack, with all its defects, has the advantage of concealing
-from the view much of danger and of difficulty
-that, if seen, might shake the nerve.</p>
-
-<p>But there was no time for hesitation, no choice for the
-timid. The front ranks were forced onwards by the
-pressure of those in the rear, and as men fell wounded on
-the breach, there they lay, being trodden into and
-covered by the shifting rubbish displaced by the feet of
-their comrades. Some few, more lucky, when wounded
-fell or rolled down the slope into the ditch, and they
-added by their outcries to the wildness of the scene.
-The enemy’s resistance slackened, and they suddenly
-fled. Some guns they left behind in their panic.</p>
-
-<p>It was now seven o’clock; the breach was carried, and
-the town virtually ours. About that time a wooden
-magazine placed on the rampart blew up, destroying our
-General and many with him, as well as a number of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</a></span>
-garrison. Patterson of the 43rd and Uniacke of the
-95th were of the number.</p>
-
-<p>“I distinctly remember the moment of the explosion
-and the short pause it occasioned in our proceedings&mdash;a
-pause that enabled us to hear the noise of the attack
-still going forward near the little breach. I met Uniacke
-walking between two men. One of his eyes was blown
-out, and the flesh was torn from his arms and legs.</p>
-
-<p>“I asked who it was. He replied, ‘Uniacke,’ and
-walked on.</p>
-
-<p>“He had taken chocolate with our mess an hour before!</p>
-
-<p>“At this time a gigantic young Irish volunteer attached
-to our regiment, observing a gallant artilleryman still
-lingering near his gun, dashed at him with bayonet fixed
-and at the charge.</p>
-
-<p>“The man stepped backwards, facing his foe; but his
-foot slipping, he fell against the gun, and in a moment
-the young Irish fellow’s bayonet was through his heart.
-The yell with which he gave up the ghost so terrified B&mdash;&mdash;
-that he started back, the implement of death in his hands,
-and, apostrophizing it, said, ‘Holy Moses! how aisy you
-went into him!’ This saying became celebrated afterwards
-through the whole division.</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel McLeod caused Lieutenant Madden of the
-43rd to descend the small breach with twenty-five men,
-to prevent soldiers leaving the town with plunder. At
-eleven o’clock I went to see him. He had very judiciously
-made a large fire, which, of course, showed up the plunderers
-to perfection. He told me that no masquerade
-could, in point of costume and grotesque figures, rival
-the characters he stripped that night.”</p>
-
-<p>Well, to go back to the storming party. The men who
-lined the breastwork having fled, our men dropped from
-the wall into the town and advanced in pursuit. At first
-they were among ruins, but gradually made their way<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</a></span>
-into a large street which led nearly in a straight line from
-the principal breach to the <i>plaza</i>, or square. Up this
-street they fought their way, the enemy slowly retiring
-before them. At about half the length of the street was
-a large open space on the left hand, where was deposited
-the immense battering train of “the army of Portugal.”</p>
-
-<p>Amongst this crowd of carriages a number of men
-ensconced themselves, firing on the British as they
-passed, and it required no small exertion on their part to
-dislodge them. In the meantime many of the French
-ahead of them had entered the square, for which place
-our fellows pushed on with as many men as they could
-lay hands on, formed without distinction of regiment,
-into two or three platoons. For the great proportion of
-the men who had started with the column had sneaked
-off into the by-streets for the purpose of plundering&mdash;a
-business which was already going on merrily.</p>
-
-<p>As they reached the head of the street, which entered
-the square at one angle, and wheeled to the left into the
-open space, they received a shattering volley, which
-quickly spoiled their array. The French were drawn up
-in force under the colonnade of the cathedral, and we
-were for the moment checked by their fire.</p>
-
-<p>At length, when they were meditating a dash at the
-fellows, they heard fire opened from another quarter,
-which seemed to strike the French with a panic, for on
-our men giving a cheer and running forward, they to a
-man threw away their arms as if by word of command,
-and vanished in the gloom like magic.</p>
-
-<p>It was the Light Division who entered the square by
-a street leading from the little breach, and their opportune
-arrival had frightened away the game which had
-been brought to bay, leaving the pavement of the square
-littered with arms and accoutrements.</p>
-
-<p>But now begins a part of the story which does not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</a></span>
-reflect much credit on our fellows. When the men had
-sipped the wine and brandy in the stores which they
-plundered, most extreme disorders began, which it was
-impossible to check. A whole division could not have
-restored order.</p>
-
-<p>Three or four large houses were on fire&mdash;two of them
-were in the market-place&mdash;and the streets were illuminated
-by the flames.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers were growing very drunk, and many of
-them for amusement were firing from the windows into
-the streets.</p>
-
-<p>“I was myself talking to the barber Evans in the
-square, when a ball passed through his head. This was
-at one o’clock in the morning. He fell at my feet dead,
-and his brains lay on the pavement. I then sought
-shelter, and found Colonel McLeod with a few officers in
-a large house, where we remained until the morning.</p>
-
-<p>“I did not enter any other house in Ciudad Rodrigo.
-If I had not seen it, I never could have supposed that
-British soldiers would become so wild and furious.</p>
-
-<p>“It was quite alarming to meet groups of them in the
-streets, flushed as they were with drink, and desperate
-in mischief, singing, yelling, dealing blows at man, woman,
-or child like so many mad things loose from Bedlam.</p>
-
-<p>“In the morning the scene was dismal and dreary.
-The fires were just going out; all over street and square
-were lying the corpses of many men who had met their
-death hours after the town had been taken.</p>
-
-<p>“At eleven o’clock I went to look at the great breach.
-The ascent was not so steep as that of the small one, but
-there was a traverse thrown up at each side of it on the
-rampart. I counted ninety-three men of the Third
-Division lying dead on the rampart between the traverses.
-I did not see one dead man on the French side of those
-traverses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I saw General McKinnon lying dead. He was on
-his back just under the rampart. He had, I think,
-rushed forward and fallen down the perpendicular wall,
-probably at the moment of receiving his mortal wound.
-He was stripped of everything except his shirt and blue
-pantaloons; even his boots were taken off.</p>
-
-<p>“There were no others dead near him, and he was not
-on the French side either. It is said that he was blown
-up, but I should say not. There was no appearance
-indicating that such had been his fate. Neither his skin
-nor the posture in which he was lying led me to suppose
-it. When a man is blown up, his hands and face, I
-should think, could not escape. McKinnon’s face was
-pale and free from the marks of fire. How strange! but
-with his exception I did not see a man of the Third
-Division who had been stripped.”</p>
-
-<p>Besides possession of the fortress, the whole of Masséna’s
-battering-train had become prize, as well as an
-immense quantity of light artillery which Marmont
-brought against us on the retreat from El Boden.</p>
-
-<p>The fortress was so well supplied with warlike stores
-that not an article of any kind was wanting, in spite of
-the great expenditure during the siege.</p>
-
-<p>What would not the French and English say now?</p>
-
-<p>Ciudad invested, bombarded, stormed, and taken in
-twelve days! and this it cost Masséna fifty-one days to
-do, sixteen of which he was bombarding the town. Every
-part of the proceeding seems to have astonished the
-garrison, as in erecting works, opening batteries, etc.,
-they were always a day or two out in their calculations.</p>
-
-<p>The George and Dragon had nearly disappeared from
-the King’s colours by a shell passing through it, but “the
-men were splendid” in attack, and followed their leaders
-unto death.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_V" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE STORMING OF BADAJOS (1812)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Rescue of wounded men&mdash;A forlorn hope&mdash;Fire-balls light up the
-scene&mdash;A mine explodes&mdash;Partial failure of the English&mdash;Escalade
-of the castle&mdash;Pat’s humour and heroism&mdash;Saving a General&mdash;Wellington
-hears the news&mdash;The day after the storm.</p>
-
-<p>Badajos is situated on the left bank of the Guadiana,
-which is about 400 yards broad and washes one-fourth of
-the enceinte. The defences along the river are confined
-to a simple and badly flanked rampart, but on the other
-sides there are eight large and well-built fronts with
-covered way. The scarp of the bastions is more than
-30 feet in height. In advance of these fronts are two
-detached works, the Bardeleras and the Picurina, the latter
-being a strong redoubt 400 yards from the town. As the
-bombardment went on for some days, preparing a breach
-for an assault, incidents were few; officers sometimes
-strolled round to explore for themselves.</p>
-
-<p>One writes: “One day I saw two men stretched on the
-ground. One was dead, a round shot having passed
-through his body; the other had lost a leg. His eyes
-were closed; he seemed to be quite dead. An adventurous
-Portuguese&mdash;one of our allies&mdash;was beginning to
-disencumber him of his clothes.</p>
-
-<p>“The poor man opened his eyes and looked in the
-most imploring manner, while the villain had him by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</a></span>
-belt, lifting him up. I ran forward and gave the humane
-Portuguese a sharp blow with my blunt sabre, so that
-with a yell he threw himself down by the side of the
-soldier whom he was stripping, thinking his last hour had
-come.</p>
-
-<p>“Soon after I saw a heavy shot hopping along and
-kicking up the dust. It struck one of our soldiers on the
-hip, and down he went, motionless.</p>
-
-<p>“I felt confident that the wounded man was not dead,
-and I begged that some of his comrades would carry him
-off to the rear. They were retiring under a heavy
-cannonade. Two soldiers, at the risk of their lives,
-rushed back and brought him in, or he would have been
-starved to death between our lines and the ramparts of
-the town. His hip was only grazed and his clothes
-untorn; but, of course, he was unable to walk, and seemed
-to feel much pain, for he groaned heavily.</p>
-
-<p>“Towards the end of the siege the weather became
-beautiful. One day I call to mind the enemy scarcely
-fired a shot. All our troubles were forgotten, and two or
-three of us amused ourselves by reading a novel in the
-trenches.”</p>
-
-<p>The garrison of Badajos fired every morning for a few
-days before the grand assault a certain number of rounds,
-as if for practice and to measure the ground.</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th of April a long order was issued relative to
-the position the troops were to occupy. The day was
-fine, and all the soldiers in good spirits, cleaning themselves
-as if for a review.</p>
-
-<p>“About two o’clock I saw poor Harvest. He was
-sucking an orange and walking on a rising ground, alone
-and very thoughtful. It gave me pain, as I knew he
-was to lead the forlorn hope. He said, ‘My mind is
-made up, old fellow: I am sure to be killed.’”</p>
-
-<p>At half-past eight that night the ranks were formed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</a></span>
-and the roll called in an undertone. The division drew
-up in deep silence behind a large quarry, 300 yards from
-the breaches. They had to wait long for ladders and
-other things.</p>
-
-<p>At ten a very beautiful fire-ball was thrown up from
-the town. This illuminated the ground for many hundred
-yards. Two or three more followed, showed a
-bright light, and remained burning some little time.</p>
-
-<p>The stillness that followed was the prelude to one of
-the strangest scenes that could be seen. Soon after ten
-a little whisper went round that the forlorn hope were
-stealing forward, followed by the storming parties, composed
-of 300 men.</p>
-
-<p>In two minutes the division followed. One musket
-shot (no more) was fired near the breaches by a French
-soldier who was on the look-out. Still our men went
-on, leisurely but silently. There were no obstacles. The
-52nd, 43rd, and 95th closed gradually up to column of
-quarter distance. All was hushed; the town lay buried
-in gloom. The ladders were placed on the edge of the
-ditch, when suddenly an awful explosion took place at
-the foot of the breaches, and a burst of light disclosed
-the whole scene. The very earth seemed to rock and
-sway under their feet. What a sight!</p>
-
-<p>The ramparts stood out clear, crowded with the enemy.
-French soldiers stood on the parapets, while the short-lived
-glare from the barrels of powder and stuff flying
-into the air gave to friends and foes a look as if both bodies
-of troops were laughing! A tremendous fire now opened
-upon the English, and for an instant they were stationary;
-but the troops were no ways daunted. The ladders were
-found exactly opposite the centre breach, and the whole
-division rushed to the assault with amazing resolution.
-The soldiers flew down the ladders into the ditch, and the
-cheering from both sides was loud and full of confidence.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</a></span>
-Fire-balls were rising, lighting up the scene. The ditch
-was very wide, and when they arrived at the foot of the
-centre breach eighty or ninety men were clustered
-together. One called out, “Who will lead?”</p>
-
-<p>Death and the most dreadful sounds and cries encompassed
-all. It was a volcano! Up they went:
-some killed, others impaled on the bayonets of their
-own comrades, or hurled headlong amongst the crowd.</p>
-
-<p>The chevaux-de-frise atop looked like innumerable
-bayonets.</p>
-
-<p>“When I was within a yard of the top I felt half
-strangled, and fell from a blow that deprived me of all
-sensation. I only recollect feeling a soldier pulling me
-out of the water, where so many men were drowned. I
-lost my cap, but still held my sword. On recovering, I
-looked towards the breach. It was shining and empty!
-Fire-balls were in plenty, and the French troops, standing
-upon the walls, were taunting us and inviting our
-men to come up and try it again. What a crisis! what
-a military misery! Some of the finest troops in the
-world prostrate&mdash;humbled to the dust.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel McLeod was killed while trying to force the
-left corner of the large breach. He received his mortal
-wound when within three yards of the enemy. A few
-moments before he fell he had been wounded in the back
-by a bayonet of one of our men who had slipped. It was
-found out afterwards that the woodwork of the cheval-de-frise
-was heavy, bristling with short, stout sword-blades
-and chained together. It was an obstacle not to
-be removed, and the French soldiers stood close to it,
-killing every man who drew near. To get past such
-obstacles by living bodies pushing against it up a steep
-breach, sinking to the knees every step in rubbish, while
-a firm and obstinate enemy stood behind&mdash;it was impossible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Round shot alone could have destroyed these defences,
-which were all chained together and vastly strong. Had
-it not been for this, the divisions would have entered
-like a swarm of bees. It was fortunate that Lord Wellington
-had made arrangements for assaulting the town
-at other points.</p>
-
-<p>“Next morning I was searching for my friend Madden.
-At last I found him lying in a tent, with his trousers on
-and his shirt off, covered with blood, and bandaged
-across the body to support his broken shoulder, laid on
-his back and unable to move. He asked for his brother.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why does he not come to see me?’</p>
-
-<p>“I turned my head away, for his gallant young brother
-was amongst the slain. Captain Merry, of the 52nd, was
-sitting on the ground, sucking an orange.</p>
-
-<p>“He said: ‘How are you? You see that I am dying:
-a mortification has set in.’</p>
-
-<p>“A grape-shot had shattered his knee. He had told
-the doctor that he preferred death rather than permit
-such a good leg to be amputated.”</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Escalade of the Castle.</span></h3>
-
-<p>General Picton with the Third Division was ordered
-to attack the castle by escalade. The castle was an old
-building on the summit of a hill about 100 feet high, on
-the north-east of the town.</p>
-
-<p>At about ten o’clock on the night of the 6th of April,
-1812, the Third Division advanced in that profound silence
-that rendered the coming storm more terrific. Our men
-were not perceived until they arrived at a little river not
-very distant from the works, when they distinctly heard
-the entire line of the French sentries give the alarm, and
-all the guns of the garrison opened at once.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_4" src="images/i_071.jpg" width="379" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Escalade of the Castle</p>
-
-<p>Many of the ladders were too short. In one case a brawny Irish private of herculean
-strength pulled up first his captain, “clever and clane,” as he said, and then five
-others.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Volley after volley of grape-shot was fired upon our<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</a></span>
-troops as they advanced; fire-balls rose, and showed
-the enemy where they were. They quickened pace and
-got so close under the wall that the guns could not bear
-upon them, but the fire-balls burned so vividly that they
-were enabled to direct their musketry upon the assailants,
-and hurl with fatal precision every kind of missile.</p>
-
-<p>The ladders were placed, the troops cheered and
-swarmed up, and nothing was heard but mingled cries of
-despair and shouts of victory. Several ladders broke
-down under the weight, and men were precipitated on
-the heads of their comrades below.</p>
-
-<p>“The ladder I mounted was, like many others, too
-short, and I found that no exertion I could make would
-enable me to reach the embrasure or descend. In this
-desperate state, expecting immediate death from the
-hands of a ferocious Frenchman in the embrasure, I
-heard a voice above call out:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Mr. &mdash;&mdash;, is that you?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Yes!’ I shouted.</p>
-
-<p>“The same voice cried out: ‘Oh, murther! murther!
-What will we do to get you up at all, at all, with that
-scrawdeen of a ladtherr? But here goes! Hould my
-leg, Pat!’ and, throwing himself flat on his face in the
-embrasure, he extended his brawny arm down the wall,
-seized me by the collar with the force of Hercules, and
-landed me, as he said himself, ‘clever and clane,’ on the
-ramparts.</p>
-
-<p>“In the same manner five more were landed. Thus
-did this chivalrous soldier, with noble generosity, prefer
-saving the lives of six of his comrades at the risk of his
-own to the rich plunder which everywhere surrounded
-him. And this was Tully O’Malley, a private in my
-company, one of the ‘ragged rascals.’ Well, I found
-myself standing amongst several French soldiers, who
-were crowding round the gun in the embrasure. One of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</a></span>
-them still held the match lighted in his hand, the blue
-flame of which gave the bronzed and sullen countenances
-of these warriors an expression not easily forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>“A Grenadier leaned on the gun and bled profusely
-from the head; another, who had fallen on his knees
-when wounded, remained fixed in astonishment and
-terror. Others, whose muskets lay scattered on the
-ground, folded their arms in deep despair. The appearance
-of the whole group, with their huge, bushy moustaches
-and mouths all blackened with biting the cartridges,
-presented to the eye of a young soldier a very
-strange and formidable appearance.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Don’t mind them boys, sorr,’ said Tully. ‘They
-were all settled jist afore you came up: and, by my soul,
-good boys they were for a start&mdash;fought like raal divils,
-they did, till Mr. S&mdash;&mdash; and the Grenadiers came powdering
-down on them with the war-whoop. Och, my darlint!
-they were made smiddreens of in a crack, barring that
-big fellow you see there, with the great black whiskers&mdash;see
-yonder&mdash;bleeding in the side, he is, and resting his
-head on the gun-carriage. Ah! he was the bouldest
-of them all. He made bloody battle with Jim Reilly;
-but ’tis short he stood afore our Jim, for he gave him a
-raal Waterford puck that tumbled him like a ninepin in
-a minute; and, by my own sowl, a puck of the butt-end
-of Jim’s piece is no joke, I tell you! He tried it on more
-heads than one on the hill of Busaco.’</p>
-
-<p>“Away then flew Tully to join his company, forming in
-double-quick time to oppose the enemy, who were gathering
-in force at one of the gates of the citadel.”</p>
-
-<p>They had already opened a most galling fire of musketry
-from this dark gateway, which was warmly returned by
-our men, who, under Lieutenant Davern, charged up to
-the massive gate. This, however, the French closed, so
-little impression was made. At last a number of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</a></span>
-light infantry of the 74th and 85th helped each other to
-climb up on the archway over the gate, and thence they
-fired down so unexpectedly that a general panic seized
-the enemy, and they fled in confusion, followed by many
-of our men, who now dashed through the gateway.</p>
-
-<p>Here Captain C&mdash;&mdash; came upon Major Murphy, of the
-88th, quite exhausted and unable to move from loss of
-blood, as he had not been able to bind up his wound.
-This he did for him, and they moved on. One more
-bayonet struggle in the castle, and the French again fled,
-leaving the place literally covered with dead and wounded,
-several of them being officers, whose long narrow-bladed
-sabres with brass scabbards instantly changed masters.</p>
-
-<p>One officer who was wounded made several thrusts at
-the sturdy Ranger who was trying to disarm him, but had
-awkwardly caught the sharp sword-blade in his hand, and
-was so angry at being cut that he was preparing to rush
-upon his antagonist. However, the Frenchman unbuckled
-his waist-belt and threw away his sword.</p>
-
-<p>But Pat was angry, and was not now satisfied with the
-sword only, for, perceiving a handsome silver-mounted
-calabash, or flask, by the officer’s side, he coolly transferred
-it to his own shoulders, after first taking a copious
-swill. Then, gravely addressing the wounded man, said,
-while reloading his piece:</p>
-
-<p>“Now, my tight fellow, ye see what ye lost by your
-contrariness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! monsieur, je suis grievement blessé: rendez-moi
-mon calabash, je vous prie.”</p>
-
-<p>“Grieving for your calabash! Is that what you
-mane?” said Pat. “Why, then, I’ll tell you what, my
-boy: no man shall say that Pat Donovan ever deprived
-either friend or foe of his little dhrop of dhrink&mdash;so there
-’tis for you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Grand merci! grand merci!” murmured the officer.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t bother about axing mercy from me,” said
-Pat; “but take my advice and keep roaring out ‘Mercy!
-mercy!’ to all our fellows as they come up to ye, and, by
-Gor! they’ll not take the least notice of you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! merci! merci! Mais c’est fait de moi! c’est fait
-de moi!” repeated the poor wounded young French
-officer.</p>
-
-<p>Fatal presentiment! One hour afterwards the Irishman
-returned and found him lying on the same spot;
-but the gallant fellow was at rest, “where the wicked cease
-from troubling.”</p>
-
-<p>As we were occupied in disarming and securing the
-prisoners Captain C&mdash;&mdash; happened to capture and save
-the life of the Colonel commanding the artillery in the
-citadel at the very moment our men were pursuing him
-at the point of the bayonet.</p>
-
-<p>He threw himself upon the Captain, and finding he
-understood French, entreated he would save him from
-our infuriated soldiers; but this he found it extremely
-difficult to do, as each successive group, on perceiving
-his large gold epaulettes and orders, evinced a strong
-anxiety to make further acquaintance with him. Upon
-one occasion the Captain was obliged to use his sword to
-protect him from a few of the 60th, who advanced upon
-him in rather a suspicious and business-like manner.</p>
-
-<p>The poor Colonel was in a state of violent agitation, and
-kept a firm hold of his protector’s arm through all the
-changes of the fight, until they met a field-officer of the
-British artillery, to whom he gave him in charge.</p>
-
-<p>The Frenchman wanted to bring C&mdash;&mdash; to the bomb-proof,
-where his baggage was secured, to give him some
-tokens of his gratitude, and overwhelmed him with
-thanks; but duty called, and he left him with the field-officer,
-who, he heard afterwards, reaped a rich reward
-for his small service.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The first rays of a beautiful morning showed the
-incredible strength of Badajos, and how dearly the
-capture of it had cost us. The gallant hearts that beat
-with devoted bravery the night before now lay in the cold
-grasp of death. Silence had succeeded to the dreadful
-din of arms, and rendered more awful the contemplation of
-this fearful scene of death and suffering and desolation.</p>
-
-<p>A vast number of the enemy lay dead in a heap close
-by the spot where our men were forming, and while they
-gazed on these unhappy victims of a fierce and deadly
-fight, they were not a little astonished to observe a very
-young French officer who lay amongst them, and whom
-they thought to be dead also, slowly and cautiously raise
-himself up; then, after looking about him with a wild
-stare, he coolly walked over to the other side where the
-prisoners were standing and delivered himself up!</p>
-
-<p>This wily hero had not been wounded, nor had he received
-the slightest scratch, but, being more frightened
-than hurt, he lay concealed in this manner until all fear
-of danger, as he thought, was over and gone.</p>
-
-<p>It excited a good deal of merriment amongst our men,
-but the French curled their moustaches, gave him a
-hearty “Sacre!” and their deep contempt.</p>
-
-<h3><span class="smcap">Another Account.</span></h3>
-
-<p>“I was on a hill with the medical staff during the night
-of the assault of Badajos. For two hours we watched
-the fire, the bursting of shells and hand-grenades. Then
-the wounded began to arrive, and we were busy.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Wellington rode up with his staff, and soon after
-a staff-officer came up at a gallop, shouting, ‘Where is
-Lord Wellington?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘There, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘My lord, I am come from the breaches. The troops<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</a></span>
-after repeated attempts, have failed to enter them. So
-many officers have fallen that the men, dispersed in the
-ditch, are without leaders. If your lordship does not at
-once send a strong reinforcement they must abandon the
-enterprise. Colonel McLeod, of the 43rd, has been killed
-in the breach.’</p>
-
-<p>“A light was called for and instantly brought, and Lord
-Wellington noted the report with a steady hand. His
-face was pale and expressed great anxiety. In his
-manner and language he preserved perfect coolness and
-self-possession. General Hay’s brigade was ordered to
-advance to the breaches.</p>
-
-<p>“You may think that it was nervous work hearing this.</p>
-
-<p>“Our General had wisely planned two extreme attacks
-by escalade on the castle by the Third Division and on the
-south side of the town by the Fifth Division, and on Fort
-Pardoleros by the Portuguese. It was known that Soult
-was within a few leagues. Marmont had pushed his
-advanced Dragoons as far as the bridge of boats at Villa
-Velha; the river Guadiana was in our rear.</p>
-
-<p>“It was a crisis, and we wondered what thoughts were
-passing through the mind of our gallant chief as he sat
-motionless on his horse.</p>
-
-<p>“Presently another staff-officer galloped up, out of
-breath.</p>
-
-<p>“‘General Picton&mdash;has&mdash;got possession of&mdash;the castle,
-sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Who brings that intelligence?’ exclaimed Lord
-Wellington.</p>
-
-<p>“The officer saluted and gave his name.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Are you certain, sir&mdash;are you positively certain?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘I entered the castle with the troops. I have only
-just left it. General Picton in possession. He sent me.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Picton in possession! With how many men?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘His division.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It is impossible to describe to you the change this
-news produced in the feelings of all around. A great
-sigh of relief could almost be heard.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Return, sir, and desire General Picton to maintain
-his position at all hazards.’</p>
-
-<p>“Having dispatched this messenger, Lord Wellington
-directed a second officer to proceed to the castle to repeat
-his orders to General Picton.</p>
-
-<p>“Next morning at dawn I set out to visit the breaches.
-I was just thinking of two friends, Major Singer and Captain
-Cholwick, of the Royal Fusiliers, both of whom had
-been with me two evenings before. I was wondering
-how they had fared in the assault when I met some
-Fusiliers and asked for Major Singer.</p>
-
-<p>“‘We are throwing the last shovels of earth upon his
-grave, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Is Captain Cholwick safe?’ I inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“‘In the act of climbing over that palisade he was
-wounded, fell into the water, and we have seen nothing of
-him since.’</p>
-
-<p>“That did not make me disposed to be very cheerful.</p>
-
-<p>“I found the great breach covered with dead from its
-base to its summit. Many were stripped. Amongst
-them I recognized the faces of many well known to me.
-In climbing up the breach my feet receded at every step
-in the débris, so as to make my progress slow and difficult.
-Behind the chevaux-de-frise a broad and deep trench had
-been cut, into which our men must have been precipitated
-had they succeeded in surmounting this huge
-barrier. Above was a battery of 12-pounders completely
-enfilading the great and the small breach, near to each
-other. No wonder we failed there to enter.</p>
-
-<p>“I next visited the castle, at the bottom of whose
-walls, nearly 40 feet high, were lying shattered ladders,
-broken muskets, exploded shells, and the dead bodies of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</a></span>
-many of our brave men. Amongst the dead I recognized
-the body of the gallant Major Ridge, of the 5th Regiment,
-lying near the gate that leads to the town, in forcing which
-he had fallen, riddled with balls.</p>
-
-<p>“I met a soldier of the Connaught Rangers, overpowered
-by excitement and brandy. The fellow looked
-at me suspiciously, and appeared disposed to dispute my
-passage. He held his loaded musket at half present, and
-I was prepared to close with him; but fortunately flattery
-succeeded. He allowed me to pass.</p>
-
-<p>“Soon after entering the town a girl about nine years
-of age implored my protection, ‘por el amor de Dios,’ for
-her mother.</p>
-
-<p>“A number of soldiers of a distinguished regiment were
-in the house, armed, and under the influence of every evil
-passion. Alas! I was powerless. I met a man of the
-88th dragging a peasant by the neck, with the intention
-of putting him to death&mdash;so he declared&mdash;in atonement for
-his not having any money in his pockets! I appealed to
-the gallantry of his corps, and saved the life of his victim.”</p>
-
-<p>The town had now become a scene of plunder and
-devastation. Our soldiers and our women, in a state of
-intoxication, had lost all control over themselves. These,
-together with numbers of Spaniards and Portuguese, who
-had come into the city in search of plunder, filled every
-street. Many were dispossessed of their booty by others,
-and these interchanges of plunder in many cases were not
-effected without bloodshed. Our soldiers had taken possession
-of the shops, stationed themselves behind the
-counters, and were selling the goods contained in them.
-These were, again, displaced by more numerous parties,
-who became shopkeepers in their turn, and thus continual
-scuffling and bloodshed was going on.</p>
-
-<p>In addition to the incessant firing through the keyholes
-of the front doors of houses as the readiest way of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</a></span>
-forcing the locks, a desultory and wanton discharge of
-musketry was kept up in the streets, placing all who
-passed literally between cross-fires. Many of our own
-people were thus killed or wounded by their own comrades.</p>
-
-<p>An attempt was made next day to collect our soldiers.
-The troops, however, that were sent into the town for
-that purpose joined in the work of plunder.</p>
-
-<p>We may feel shocked at the excesses which our soldiers
-committed after the storming of such towns as Ciudad
-Rodrigo and Badajos. Folk sitting by their quiet firesides
-may wonder how sane men can be so dead to the
-higher and better feelings of humanity; but when the
-fever of war is followed by the poison of drink, it is no
-wonder if the minds of rude men are thrown off their
-balance. War is a most awful thing to witness, and many
-officers have declared to the writer that, had they known
-what war meant in all its dreadful reality, they would
-not have been so eager in their youth to join the army.
-All the more reason is there that every youth in our
-islands should be compelled by law to learn the use of
-the rifle, that when the time comes&mdash;as come it will&mdash;when
-an invader shall set foot upon our shore, we may
-not be helpless and unarmed. Perhaps it is necessary
-that we should sometimes hear the horrid truth about
-war; we may thus be stimulated to use a little self-denial
-for our country’s security, when we realize that life is
-not made up of games and money-making, and when we
-can see what our fatherland would be to us, devastated
-by a savage enemy, with farms and barns blazing, women
-and children starved to death, towns sacked and plundered,
-and the honour of old England trodden beneath
-the foot of a foreign invader. The story of these sieges
-has many lessons&mdash;military, ethical, and economic. Let
-us at least learn one&mdash;the duty that is incumbent upon all
-of us, men and boys, to defend mother and wife and child.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VI" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">A PRISONER IN ST. SEBASTIAN (1813)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The <i>coup de grâce</i>&mdash;The hospital&mdash;A cruel order&mdash;An attempt at
-escape&mdash;Removed to the castle&mdash;The English at the breach&mdash;Many
-are wounded&mdash;French ladies sleep in the open&mdash;A vertical
-fire&mdash;English gunners shoot too well&mdash;A good sabre lightly won.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Harvey Jones, R.E., has left us an interesting
-account of the siege of St. Sebastian by the British forces.
-The town, situated close to the French frontier, just
-south of the Pyrenees and by the sea, contains 10,000
-inhabitants, and is built on a low peninsula running
-north and south. The defences of the western side are
-washed by the sea, those on the eastern side by the river
-Urumea, which at high-water covers 4 feet of the
-masonry of the scarp. The first assault in July failed.
-Colonel Jones was wounded and taken prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>His diary begins: “After witnessing the unsuccessful
-attempts of Lieutenant Campbell, 9th Regiment, and
-his gallant little band to force their way on to the ramparts,
-and their retreat from the breach, my attention
-was soon aroused by a cry from the soldier who was
-lying disabled next to me:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Oh, they are murdering us all!’</p>
-
-<p>“Looking up, I perceived a number of French Grenadiers,
-under a heavy fire of grape, sword in hand, stepping
-over the dead and stabbing the wounded. My companion<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</a></span>
-was treated in the same manner. The sword, plucked
-from his body and reeking with his blood, was raised to
-give me the <i>coup de grâce</i>, when, fortunately, the uplifted
-arm was arrested by a smart little man&mdash;a sergeant&mdash;who
-cried out:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Oh, mon Colonel, êtes-vous blessé?’ and he ordered
-some men to remove me.”</p>
-
-<p>They raised the Colonel in their arms and carried him
-up the breach on to the ramparts. Here they were
-stopped by a Captain of the Grenadiers, who asked some
-questions, then kissed him, and desired the party to proceed
-to the hospital.</p>
-
-<p>They met the Governor and his staff on the way, who
-asked if the Colonel was badly wounded, and directed
-that proper care should be taken of him.</p>
-
-<p>After descending from the rampart into the town, as
-they were going along the street leading to the hospital,
-they were accosted by an officer who had evidently taken
-his “drop.” He demanded the Englishman’s sword,
-which was still hanging by his side.</p>
-
-<p>The reply came: “You have the power to take it, but
-certainly have no right to do so, as I have not been made
-a prisoner by you.”</p>
-
-<p>This seemed to enrage him, and with great violence of
-manner and gesture he unbuckled the belt and carried
-away the sword.</p>
-
-<p>Upon reaching the hospital, the Surgeon-Major was
-very kind in his manner. After he had enlarged the
-wounds, according to the French system, and then dressed
-them, the Colonel was carried across the street and put
-into a bed in one of the wards of the great hospital,
-which a soldier was ordered to vacate for his use.
-This man returned later in the day for his pipe and
-tobacco, which he had left under the pillow.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of the morning they were visited by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</a></span>
-Governor, who made inquiries as to their wounds, and
-whether they had been plundered of anything; for a
-great number of English soldiers had been taken, and
-were lodged in the town prison. The only persons permitted
-to visit them were some staff-officers, a few
-Spanish ladies, and a Spanish barber. From the former
-the Colonel was made acquainted with all that passed in
-the British lines&mdash;at least, as far as the French could conjecture.
-Although boats arrived nightly from Bayonne,
-the other side of the frontier, bringing shells, medicine,
-charpie, or lint, engineers, etc., the garrison remained
-in great ignorance of the movements of the two armies.
-Soult kept sending word that he would soon come and
-raise the siege; thus, by promises of immediate relief,
-he kept up the spirits of the garrison. He also rewarded
-the gallantry of particular defenders during the assault
-and in the sorties by promotion, or by sending them the
-decoration of the Legion of Honour. In the French Army
-there seemed to have been a system of reward for good
-and gallant conduct by promotion into the Grenadiers
-or Voltigeurs, which had an excellent effect. A French
-soldier was extremely proud of his green, yellow, or
-red epaulettes. They were badges of distinguished
-conduct and only those who had shown great gallantry
-in action were admitted into their ranks. What with
-the success attendant upon the sorties and the
-numerous decorations which had been distributed
-among the officers and privates, such a spirit of daring
-had been created that the idea of a surrender was
-scouted by all.</p>
-
-<p>After the stones had been extracted which had been
-blown into his leg and thighs by the bursting of shells
-and grenades, the Colonel was enabled to move about
-and get into the gallery running round the courtyard of
-the hospital, and into which all the doors and windows<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</a></span>
-of the rooms respectively opened. It was the only place
-where they were allowed to breathe the fresh air.</p>
-
-<p>One day, whilst sitting in the gallery, he observed a
-table placed in the balcony below him, on the other side
-of the courtyard. Soon he saw an unfortunate French
-gunner laid upon the table. They amputated both his
-arms, his hands having been blown off by an accident in
-one of the batteries. In the course of the morning, whilst
-conversing with the surgeon who had performed the
-operation, he told the Colonel that he had acted contrary
-to his instructions, which were never to amputate, but
-to cure if possible. When he was asked for the reason
-of such an inhuman order having been issued, his reply
-was that the Emperor Napoleon did not wish numbers
-of mutilated men to be sent back to France, as it would
-make a bad impression upon the people.</p>
-
-<p>“You must be a bold man to act in opposition to this
-order.”</p>
-
-<p>He replied: “Affairs are beginning to change, and,
-moreover, it is now necessary that the soldiers should
-know they will be taken proper care of in the event of
-being wounded, and not left to die like dogs. We send
-as many as we can at night to Bayonne by the boats;
-thus we clear out the hospitals a little.”</p>
-
-<p>In conversations with many of the officers they detailed
-acts committed by their soldiers in Spain so revolting
-to human nature that one refuses to commit them to
-paper. A <i>chef de bataillon</i> once asked him how the
-English managed with their soldiers when they wanted
-them to advance and attack an enemy.</p>
-
-<p>The reply was simply, “Forward!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! that way will not do with us. We are obliged
-to excite our men with spirits, or to work upon their
-feelings by some animating address; and very often,
-when I have fancied I had brought them up to the fighting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</a></span>
-pitch, some old hand would make a remark which in an
-instant spoilt all I had said, and I had to begin my speech
-all over again.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel asked how they managed to provision
-their men when they went out on expeditions that lasted
-ten or twenty days.</p>
-
-<p>The answer was: “Our biscuits are made with a hole
-in the centre. Each biscuit is the ration for a day.
-Sometimes twenty are delivered to each soldier, who is
-given to understand that he has no further claim on the
-commisariat for those days.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is impossible for the soldier to carry twenty.”</p>
-
-<p>“We know that very well, but he has no claim; and
-how he lives in the meanwhile we do not ask. Perhaps
-he lives on the country.” In other words, he steals!</p>
-
-<p>In the hospital he was attended by a Spanish barber.
-As he could speak Spanish fluently, they had a good deal
-of talk. The barber used to tell all he heard and saw of
-what was passing both inside and outside the fortress.
-When he learnt that the Colonel was an engineer, he
-offered to bring him a plan of all the underground drains
-and of the aqueduct.</p>
-
-<p>The attendant, although a good-natured man, kept a
-sharp eye on the barber; so it was a difficult matter for
-him to give anything without being detected.</p>
-
-<p>At last, one morning when preparing to shave him, he
-succeeded in shoving a plan under the bedclothes. The
-Colonel seized the earliest opportunity of examining it,
-and from the knowledge he had before acquired of the
-place he soon mastered the directions of the drains, etc.
-From that moment his whole attention was fixed on the
-means of making his escape.</p>
-
-<p>He knew that the hospital was situated in the principal
-street, the ends of which terminated upon the fortifications
-bounding the harbour. If once he could gain the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</a></span>
-street he had only to turn to the right or left to gain the
-ramparts, and so make his escape from the town in the
-best manner he could.</p>
-
-<p>One evening just at dusk, when the medical men took
-leave of them for the night, one of them left his cocked
-hat on the bed. As soon as the Colonel noticed this he
-put it on his head, hurried downstairs, and made direct
-for the great door; but he found it so completely blocked
-up by the guard that, unless by pushing them aside, it
-was not possible to pass undiscovered. He therefore
-retreated upstairs in despair, and threw the hat down
-on the bed. Scarcely had he done so when in rushed the
-doctor, asking for his <i>chapeau</i>.</p>
-
-<p>They were more than once visited by the crews of the
-boats which arrived nightly from France. The sight of
-the prisoners seemed to afford the Frenchmen great
-gratification, but there was nothing in their manner
-which could in any way offend.</p>
-
-<p>Very unexpectedly one evening the Governor’s aide-de-camp
-came to the prison and told the officers to prepare
-immediately to go to France.</p>
-
-<p>A Portuguese Captain, one of the party of prisoners,
-was dreadfully in fear of being sent there, and with
-great warmth of manner told the aide-de-camp that Lord
-Wellington would soon be in possession of the place, and
-if the prisoners were not forthcoming he would hold the
-Governor answerable in person.</p>
-
-<p>It is supposed that the aide went and reported this
-conversation to the Governor, as he did not return for
-some time, and then told them it was too late to embark
-that night, as the boats had sailed. They were never
-afterwards threatened to be sent away.</p>
-
-<p>About the middle of August the garrison began to
-flatter themselves that the siege was turned into a regular
-blockade, and that they would be relieved by the suc<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</a></span>cesses
-of Marshal Soult. Their spirits ran high, their
-hopes were elated.</p>
-
-<p>The 15th of August, the birthday of Napoleon, was
-observed as a day of rejoicing among the garrison, and at
-nightfall the letter “N” of a very large size was brilliantly
-lighted up on the face of the donjon.</p>
-
-<p>When the operations of the second siege began a
-Captain who visited the Colonel kept him <i>au fait</i> of all
-that was going on. One day a Spanish Captain who had
-sided with the French came into the hospital&mdash;it was
-on the evening of the assault. He was wringing his
-hands, tearing his hair, and swearing he had heard the
-shrieks of his wife and daughters, and had seen his house
-in flames. The French officers took the poor man’s
-outcries with great merriment, and the Spaniard must
-have bitterly regretted the day when he deserted the
-English. The French officers did not fail to taunt
-him with having done so, and ridiculed his frantic
-actions.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of the next day Colonel Jones was asked
-if he would like to speak with a corporal of sappers who
-had been made prisoner during the sortie.</p>
-
-<p>To his surprise, a fine, tall youngster, a stranger to
-him, walked into the ward, dressed in a red jacket. Now,
-blue was the colour when the Colonel was taken prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>“When did you join the army, corporal?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Yesterday morning, Colonel. I was put on duty in
-the trenches last night, and in a few minutes I was
-brought into the town by the enemy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I could not help laughing, though he wore a rueful
-expression,” says the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>One morning a Captain of artillery, whom he had never
-before seen, came into the ward and commenced conversing
-about the siege. He observed that the whole
-second parallel of the British trenches was one entire<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</a></span>
-battery, and if there were as many guns as there were
-embrasures, he said, “we shall be <i>joliment fouettés</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel’s reply was: “Most assuredly you will.
-Depend upon it, there are as many guns as embrasures.
-It is not our fashion to make batteries and stick logs of
-wood into the embrasures in the hope of frightening the
-enemy.”</p>
-
-<p>He made a grimace, and with a shrug of the shoulders
-left the ward.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning the surgeon came, as usual, to dress the
-wounds. This was about half-past seven. All was still,
-and he joyously exclaimed, as he entered:</p>
-
-<p>“So, gentlemen, we have another day’s reprieve!”</p>
-
-<p>In about half an hour afterwards, whilst Colonel Jones
-was under his hands, the first salvo from the breaching
-batteries was fired. Several shot rattled through the
-hospital and disturbed the tranquillity of the inmates.
-The instrument dropped from the surgeon’s hands, and he
-exclaimed, “Le jeu sera bientôt fini!” Then very composedly
-the good doctor went on with his work.</p>
-
-<p>The opening of the batteries made a great stir amongst
-all hands. A hint was given the prisoners to prepare to
-be removed into the castle. A private hint was given to
-the Colonel to be <i>sage</i> on the way up, as the Captain of
-the escort was <i>méchant</i>, and that it would be better to
-be quiet and orderly.</p>
-
-<p>This, perhaps, was intended to deter any of them from
-attempting to escape. The wounded prisoners were
-moved in one body up the face of the hill to the entrance
-of the castle. Under the Mirador battery they were
-exposed to a sharp musketry fire. Some of the party were
-wounded, the Portuguese Captain severely.</p>
-
-<p>A building on the sea-side, which had been constructed
-for a powder magazine, was now converted into their
-hospital, the interior being fitted up with wooden beds.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</a></span>
-In the area surrounding the building were placed the
-unwounded prisoners. As the number of wounded from
-the ramparts increased, the hospital filled rapidly, and
-to prevent the fire from the English batteries being
-directed upon them some of the prisoners were desired to
-hoist a black flag on the roof. While they were doing so
-the Colonel told the French officer that it was labour in
-vain, as the British had learnt that this building was
-their great depot for powder, and so hoisting a flag would
-be regarded as a ruse to preserve their ammunition.
-Little benefit did they get from the ensign. After the
-capture of the island Santa Clara, hardly could anyone
-move about that part of the castle opposite to the island
-without the risk of being hit. Grape and shrapnel
-swept the whole of the face, and it was only at night
-that fresh water could be fetched from the tank.</p>
-
-<p>The garrison had a fixed idea that the assault would
-take place at night, so each morning they rose with happy
-faces&mdash;another twenty-four hours’ reprieve!</p>
-
-<p>On the 31st of August, when the first rattle of musketry
-was heard in the castle, an inquiring look pervaded each
-countenance; but no one spoke. As the firing continued
-and the rattle grew and grew, little doubt remained
-as to the cause. Every soldier seized his musket
-and hurried with haste to his post. The Colonel was then
-ordered not to speak or hold converse with the unwounded
-prisoners outside. One French officer asked him if he
-thought that the English prisoners would remain quiet
-if an assault of the breach should take place, adding, “If
-they were to make any attempt they would all be shot.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Jones replied: “Do not fancy you have a flock
-of sheep penned within these walls. Happen what may,
-shoot us or not, you will be required to give a satisfactory
-account of us when the castle is taken.”</p>
-
-<p>From the commencement of the assault until the rush<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</a></span>
-into the castle upon the capture of the town, not the
-slightest information could they obtain as to the state
-of affairs at the breach. The period that intervened was
-to the prisoners one of the most anxious and painful suspense.
-At last the tale was told by the awful spectacle
-of the interior of the hospital.</p>
-
-<p>In an instant the ward was crowded with the maimed
-and wounded. The amputation-table was in full play,
-and until nearly daylight the following morning the
-surgeons were unceasingly at work.</p>
-
-<p>To have such a scene passing at the foot of one’s bed
-was painful enough. Added to this the agonizing shrieks
-and groans and the appearance of the sappers and Grenadiers
-who had been blown up by the explosion in the
-breach, their uniforms nearly burnt off, and their skins
-blackened and scorched by gunpowder&mdash;all this was truly
-appalling. The appearance of these men resembled anything
-but human beings. Death soon put an end to their
-sufferings, and relieved all from these most distressing
-sights. Of all wounds, whether of fractured limbs or
-otherwise, those caused by burns from gunpowder seemed
-to produce the most excruciating pain.</p>
-
-<p>In the rear of the donjon was a small building, in which
-was stored much gunpowder. Shells were falling fast
-and thick around it, so a detachment of soldiers was sent
-to withdraw the ammunition. This dangerous service
-they were performing in a most gallant manner, and had
-nearly completed their work, when some shells fell into
-the building, exploded the barrels that remained, and
-blew the building, with some of the soldiers, into the air,
-not leaving a vestige to show that such an edifice had
-stood there.</p>
-
-<p>There were three French ladies in the garrison. They
-were on their way to France when the investment took
-place. These ladies were permitted to enter the hos<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</a></span>pital,
-and were allowed a small space at one end of the
-wooden bedsteads. There they were for several days
-and nights. The only water they could obtain to wash
-in was sea-water. As the number of the wounded increased,
-some of the officers who were lying upon the
-floor were loud in their complaints that madame and her
-daughters were occupying the space which properly
-belonged to them. They succeeded in getting the ladies
-turned out, to find shelter from shot and shell where best
-they could!</p>
-
-<p>The day the castle capitulated Colonel Jones went in
-search of his fair companions, and found them, nearly
-smoke-dried, under a small projecting rock.</p>
-
-<p>One of the young ladies was extremely pretty. Shortly
-after the siege she was married to the English Commissary
-appointed to attend upon the garrison until sent to
-England. The change from the hospital to the naked
-rock relieved them from witnessing many a painful scene,
-as the amputating-table was placed near their end of the
-ward.</p>
-
-<p>After the capture of the town a heavy bombardment
-of the castle took place, by salvos of shells from more than
-sixty pieces of artillery. There were only a few seconds
-between the noise made by the discharge of the mortars
-and the descent of the shells. Those of the mutilated
-who were fortunate enough to snatch a little sleep and so
-forget their sufferings were awakened by the crash of
-ten or a dozen shells falling upon or in the building, whose
-fuses threw a lurid light through the gloom. The silence
-within, unbroken save by the hissing of the burning
-composition, the agonized feelings of the wounded
-during those few moments of suspense, are not to be
-described. Many an unlucky soldier was brought to the
-table to undergo a second operation. The wretched
-surgeons were engaged nearly the entire night. Rest<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</a></span>
-was impossible. You could not choose but hear. The
-legs and arms were thrown out as soon as amputated,
-and fell on the rooks.</p>
-
-<p>It was not an agreeable sight. Those who vote for
-war do not realize these little details in the programme.
-War, they say, breeds heroes.</p>
-
-<p>It is but justice to the French medical officers to state
-that their conduct during the whole period of their
-harassing and laborious duties was marked by the greatest
-feeling and kindness of manner, as well as by skilful
-attention to the relief of all who came under their hands.</p>
-
-<p>The unfortunate prisoners who were not wounded had
-been placed in the area round the hospital, and being
-without cover, suffered at every discharge.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel exerted himself to obtain a few pickaxes
-and shovels to throw up some sort of splinter-proof, but
-it was in vain he pleaded, and in the end fifty were killed
-or wounded out of 150.</p>
-
-<p>From the surgeons and hospital attendants they experienced
-great kindness. Their diet was the same as
-that of the French wounded soldiers. Their greatest
-luxury was three stewed prunes!</p>
-
-<p>The effects of the vertical fire on the interior of the
-castle were so destructive that, had it been continued
-six hours longer, the garrison would have doubtless surrendered
-at discretion. They had lost all hope that
-Soult could relieve them.</p>
-
-<p>Everybody now sought shelter where best he could
-among the rocks. Still, no nook or corner appeared to
-be a protection from the shrapnel shells.</p>
-
-<p>A sergeant of the Royals, standing at the foot of a
-bedstead, was struck by a ball from a shrapnel shell,
-and fell dead while talking. An Italian soldier, while
-trying to prepare some broth for dinner, was blown into
-the air&mdash;soup, bowl, and all!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The excellence of the British artillery is well known.
-Nothing could surpass the precision with which the
-shells were thrown or the accuracy with which the fuses
-were cut. During the siege our men in the British trenches
-little heeded the lazy French shells which were thrown
-into our batteries. From the length of the fuses sufficient
-time was often allowed before they burst to put themselves
-under cover; and when they did burst, the splinters
-flew lazily around. But when the sound of an English
-shell was heard in the castle, or when the men stationed
-in the donjon cried, “Garde la bombe!” everybody was
-on the alert. Touching the ground and bursting were
-almost simultaneous, and the havoc from the splinters
-was terrible. It appeared to be of little avail where a
-man hid himself: no place was secure from them.</p>
-
-<p>A French officer of Engineers, who was very badly
-wounded, kindly lent the Colonel some of the professional
-books which were supplied to him. Many were works
-which he had never been able to procure. Much pleasure
-and instruction did he derive from their perusal. He
-found out that the French Engineers were supplied
-with them by the Government, and their Generals also
-with the best maps of the country.</p>
-
-<p>One day the Colonel was called to the door of the ward
-by a French officer, who exclaimed, as he pointed to a large
-convoy of English transports coming in under full sail:
-“Voilà les fiacres qui viennent nous chercher!” (“There
-are the cabs coming to fetch us.”) It was a most cheering
-and beautiful sight&mdash;the cabs that were sent to fetch
-us home!</p>
-
-<p>When Colonel Jones was told, shortly after, that he
-was no longer a prisoner, he began to look round for the
-best sword in the castle to replace the one which that rude
-French Captain had taken from him.</p>
-
-<p>He discovered a handsome sabre belonging to a wounded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</a></span>
-staff-officer, so he sent and desired that it might be taken
-down from the place where it was hanging, as he wanted
-such a weapon.</p>
-
-<p>“I have it still by me. It was the only sword I wore
-until the end of the war, and often, when at the outposts
-with a flag of truce, have I seen the French officers
-regard the eagles on the belt with anything but a gratified
-look.</p>
-
-<p>“In 1815 I was quartered at Paris, being engineer in
-charge of the fortifications on Mont-Martre. There I
-frequently saw several of the St. Sebastian officers, and
-from my old friend the Chirurgien-Major I received many
-visits.</p>
-
-<p>“We both agreed that, though the tables were turned,
-our present position was far more agreeable than when
-our acquaintance began in St. Sebastian.”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Muswell’s “Peninsular Sketches.” Henry Colburn, publisher.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VII" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">JELLALABAD (1842)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Position of the town&mdash;Sale’s brigade rebuilds the defences&mdash;A sortie&mdash;Bad
-news&mdash;A queer noise&mdash;A ruse that did not succeed&mdash;The
-only survivor comes in&mdash;Story of a massacre&mdash;The earthquake&mdash;The
-walls are down&mdash;Are rebuilt&mdash;English magic&mdash;Pollock comes&mdash;Fight
-outside&mdash;The peril of Lady Sale.</p>
-
-<p>In November, 1841, the English Resident at the Afghan
-Court of Cabul was treacherously assassinated. General
-Elphinstone, who was left in command of the English
-troops, being in feeble health, attempted to leave the
-country with his 4,500 troops and three times that
-number of camp followers. On the 11th of March, 1842,
-Akbar Khan with a large army attacked General Sale
-at Jellalabad.</p>
-
-<p>Jellalabad is a walled town on the right bank of the
-Cabul River. The upper end of the valley is very
-fertile and picturesque, studded with forts and villages,
-but all round the city it is sandy and arid. Snow mountains
-close in the valley on all sides.</p>
-
-<p>South of Jellalabad, at a distance of 1,200 yards, is
-a low range of limestone hills, and on the south-west
-other low hills command the town at 200 yards’ distance.
-All round the walls were houses, mosques, old forts,
-gardens, and trees&mdash;in fact, every species of cover that
-an enemy could desire.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The walls of the town were 2,100 yards in extent, all
-in ruinous condition, and in many places not more than
-9 feet high, and easily scaled. Through breaches in the
-wall laden cattle and droves of asses went in and out
-daily.</p>
-
-<p>Into this town on the evening of the 12th of November,
-1841, wearied, footsore, hungry, short of ammunition,
-Sale’s brigade entered, to undertake the desperate task
-of defending it against the whole power of the country,
-the people of which not only hated us as invaders, but
-regarded us as infidels to be rooted out.</p>
-
-<p>At a distance of 600 miles from our own frontier, with
-the formidable defiles of the Khyber Pass to cross, what
-would be our condition if Runjeet Sing should refuse to
-allow another army to traverse his territories?</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime these ruinous walls were better than
-the open plain; so, after viewing the fortifications, Sale
-marched the brigade in, and the inhabitants fled out at
-the other side as we entered.</p>
-
-<p>It was decided to hold the whole town and try to make
-it defensible. Our supply of provisions was so low that
-the troops had to be put on half, and the camp followers
-on quarter, rations. As to ammunition, we had only
-120 rounds per man. We set to work and collected grain,
-flour, pulse, and food of all sorts which had been left
-behind, and in a few hours supplies for several days had
-been gathered in.</p>
-
-<p>As parts of the walls had no parapets and the sentries
-were quite exposed, hundreds of camel saddles were
-ranged, two deep and two high, for the sentries to kneel
-behind.</p>
-
-<p>The next day many thousands of the enemy came
-swarming round and set fire to the grass huts and sheds
-on the eastern side. Some of them seemed to be bent on
-getting into a small mosque near the town, so a party of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</a></span>
-sappers, under Major Broadfoot, were sent to see what it
-contained.</p>
-
-<p>They discovered a quantity of carbine ammunition,
-which proved to our men a timely and welcome supply.
-From dusk till midnight they kept firing on our sentries
-with wild yells. Then they withdrew, and the troops
-could snatch some rest.</p>
-
-<p>At early dawn Sale determined on a sortie, and all were
-aroused without sound of bugle. Seven hundred infantry
-and two guns, commanded by Colonel Monteath, were
-ordered to sally out at sunrise and attack the Afghans.
-There were some 6,000 Afghans waiting to meet them
-in the rocky hills at the south-west angle of the city, but
-they did not resist long, and the cavalry rolled them over
-and pursued the fugitives, while Abbot’s guns ploughed
-through them wherever they massed together.</p>
-
-<p>By ten o’clock it was all over. The panic was so
-great that they deserted the forts, and we secured all
-the grain and fodder.</p>
-
-<p>Two great results followed this fortunate victory: it
-gave the garrison a little breathing-time, and we had a
-few days of uninterrupted quiet to repair our walls and
-destroy cover.</p>
-
-<p>The people of the valley now adopted the usual Oriental
-policy of trying to keep well with both parties, and sent
-in donkey-loads of flour, wheat, etc.</p>
-
-<p>Working parties were told off to clear away the rubbish,
-to destroy houses outside, and to build parapets on the
-walls; for with the enemy’s marksmen so near, no one
-could look over the walls or show a cap without getting
-a shot through it.</p>
-
-<p>“Jellalabad” means “the abode of splendour,” but
-our men found it squalid and mean. There were two
-main streets, crossing each other at right angles; the rest
-were narrow, filthy lanes. The mountain tribes have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</a></span>
-fair complexions and the Grecian type of face. They
-are believed to be the descendants of the Greeks left by
-Alexander the Great. All their implements and household
-utensils are totally different from those used by the
-Afghans.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the enemy was driven off by our sortie the
-troops set to work on the defences. No one was allowed
-to be idle. Officers and men, with spade, pickaxe, bill-hook,
-or mining tools in hand&mdash;all were at work from
-daybreak to sunset.</p>
-
-<p>Parties of the enemy hovered about, but never dared
-to molest us. Strong detachments of cavalry were sent
-out every day to protect our grass-cutters.</p>
-
-<p>On the 21st of November the garrison received bad
-news. The little fort of Pesh Bolak (half-way between
-Jellalabad and the Khyber) had had to be evacuated,
-and Captain Ferris had been seen going over the mountains
-away to Peshawar in hasty retreat.</p>
-
-<p>Then from Cabul they heard that our troops there
-were shut up by the insurgents in their fortified cantonment,
-that there was a general rising of the whole country,
-and the roads were closed against messengers.</p>
-
-<p>Every night now parties of the enemy used to creep
-round and fire at our sentries. At twelve o’clock on the
-night of the 28th there was a tremendous report, like the
-firing of a heavy gun. The alarm was sounded, and in
-two minutes every man was at his post. Seaton was
-Captain of the day, so he hurried off to learn what all the
-row was about. He found Sale and his staff in the west
-gate, looking earnestly in the direction of the enemy,
-and discussing with the heroic Havelock the probabilities
-of an attack. It was a bright moonlight night; everything
-visible near or far. All at once some one called out:</p>
-
-<p>“Here they come, sir! Don’t you see those two dark
-columns of men 500 yards off?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ah! yes. Every one saw them clearly enough.</p>
-
-<p>“I looked a little, and then laughed right out. The
-General called to me in his short, sharp way:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Seaton, what is it, sir?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘General, where is the back wall of the old fort?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Eh! eh! what! what!’ said he testily.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, General, you sent me out yesterday to destroy
-the back wall of that old fort behind which the
-enemy used to muster. The clay was too hard for us,
-so, as the wall was just over a sunk road, and the bank
-below the wall soft, I threw a dam across the lower part
-of the road and turned in yon little stream. I guess it
-has softened the bank, and the wall has fallen with a slap
-into the water and produced the explosion. The columns
-of men are only the shadows of the north and south
-walls.’ So we all had a hearty laugh.”</p>
-
-<p>Seaton was on guard every third day. Though the
-duty was hard, it was comparatively a day of rest.
-During the night officers visited the guards and sentries
-every two hours, and made the sentries report everything
-they had seen or heard. They patrolled the streets, too,
-every two hours, and the picket in the centre of the town
-sent patrols to each gate every hour during the night.
-Every day, when not on special duty, he went out with
-a large working party to destroy the old walls and houses
-outside the town, to fell and cut up the trees, and to bring
-them in for firewood.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy had some capital marksmen, and several of
-our men were shot through the loopholes. Sale now
-thought it time to put a stop to this, for they cut off our
-supplies and we had only thirty days’ food in store. So
-he quietly waited until noon, when the enemy would be
-thinking more of food than fighting, and a column of
-1,100 infantry was formed in the west street. All the
-cavalry that could be mustered, with two of Abbott’s guns,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</a></span>
-assembled in the south street. They had a tough job at
-first. The Afghans stood bravely and poured in a heavy
-fire; but the moment the cavalry and guns appeared on
-the plain clear of Piper’s Hill the whole body of the enemy
-fled in every direction. Many were drowned in the river.</p>
-
-<p>During the pursuit Captain Oldfield, who commanded
-the cavalry, as he galloped up to a party of the fugitives,
-saw one man suddenly stop, throw off his turban, tear
-off his clothes, wrap his waist-cloth round his loins and
-attempt to personate a Hindoo, calling out, “Shah bash,
-Angrèz!” (“Well done, English!”). But our troopers were
-not to be deceived: the Hindoo gentleman was instantly
-cut down.</p>
-
-<p>Doubtless if the Afghans had possessed the needful
-tools they might have succeeded in their plan of cooping
-us in and starving us out.</p>
-
-<p>It was to Major Broadfoot’s firmness and foresight that
-the brigade was mainly indebted for its honour and
-safety. When they were first sent out, Broadfoot was
-ordered to proceed without his tools. This he respectfully
-but firmly declined to do, and by his manly representations
-he carried his point, and was allowed to take them.</p>
-
-<p>They returned at dusk, very hungry and tired. Our
-loss had been small, our gain great, and a further result
-was that provisions at once began to flow in. People
-flocked to the gates to sell flour, grain, and vegetables.
-But the officers were all so poor that very few of them
-could purchase anything. The soldiers and camp-followers
-were still worse off. The commissariat officer
-had now six weeks’ food in store, but would the treasure-chest
-hold out? Copper coinage had nearly disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>The New Year, 1842, opened ominously, and brought
-more evil tidings. A letter from Cabul, from Pottinger,
-told them of the murder of the Envoy, that Ghusnee was
-besieged, and the whole country in insurrection.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But our garrison was not dismayed. All scouted the
-idea of any great disaster happening to our troops at
-Cabul, and our works were pushed on with increased
-vigour. Provisions kept coming in, and the surplus was
-carefully stored.</p>
-
-<p>On the 9th of January a letter from General Elphinstone
-was brought in by a horseman, ordering Sale to
-retire with his brigade to Peshawar.</p>
-
-<p>It was a crushing, humiliating blow, spreading a gloom
-over every heart; but when Sale’s determination was
-made known&mdash;to hold Jellalabad until the Cabul force
-arrived&mdash;the men’s confidence in their commander was
-greater than ever.</p>
-
-<p>The greatest harmony existed between the European
-and native soldiers, and there was but one mind in the
-garrison&mdash;to defy the Afghans and to redeem as far as
-possible the reverses of the Cabul force. They had no
-money, they were short of ammunition, and had not too
-much food; but there was no thought of giving way.</p>
-
-<p>On the 13th of January Seaton was on guard at the
-south gate when, a little after twelve o’clock, some one
-came rushing along the passage leading to the guardroom.
-The door was burst open, and Lieutenant B&mdash;&mdash;
-threw himself into Seaton’s arms, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“My God, Seaton! the whole of the Cabul army has
-been destroyed!”</p>
-
-<p>“What! man, are you mad? The whole army?”</p>
-
-<p>“All but one&mdash;Dr. Brydon! We saw from the top
-of the gateway a man riding on an old pony. He seemed
-to be wounded; he was bending over the pommel. We
-sent two horsemen out to bring him in&mdash;it was Dr.
-Brydon. He could not speak at first. Then he murmured:
-‘The only survivor of Cabul army!&mdash;all killed.’”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_5" src="images/i_103.jpg" width="392" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Last of an Army</p>
-
-<p>The whole of the Cabul army but one man, Dr. Brydon, was destroyed.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>After thinking this over in silence for a minute or two,
-they went outside and saw Sale and his staff at the Cabul<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</a></span>
-gate hoisting up the colours, a sign to any poor fugitive
-who might have escaped. A hearty cheer went up as
-they looked on their country’s glorious colours. Their
-spirits were still high.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly the cavalry rode out. About four miles
-from Jellalabad they found the bodies of three of Brydon’s
-companions&mdash;Lieutenant Harper, Collyer, and Hopkins&mdash;all
-terribly mangled.</p>
-
-<p>At night lights were hung out over the Cabul gate, and
-two buglers were put on duty in the south-west bastion
-to sound the advance every quarter of an hour, in hope
-that some poor fugitive might hear it and be saved.</p>
-
-<p>“The terrible wailing sound of those bugles I shall
-never forget,” says Seaton. “It was a dirge for our
-slaughtered soldiers, and had a most mournful and depressing
-effect.” Dr. Brydon’s tale struck horror into
-the hearts of all who heard it, but mingled with the
-sorrow and pity came a fierce desire for vengeance.
-Little was said, but the stern looks of the soldiers, the set
-teeth, and the clenched hands, showed how deep was the
-feeling that had been stirred, and how stern the vow
-registered in each man’s heart.</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th a servant of Captain Bazette came in, and
-on the 30th a Goorkah. On the 31st they had the
-pleasure of welcoming another white face&mdash;a sergeant-major.
-From the accounts of the sergeant they gathered
-many particulars of this tragedy&mdash;how, after the murder
-of our Envoy, General Elphinstone agreed to evacuate
-the country and retire with the whole of his force, Akbar,
-on his part, undertaking to escort the Cabul force and
-guarantee it from attack; how the Afghans rushed into
-our cantonments, even before the rear of the British force
-had got outside the walls, and began their plundering;
-how our men were shot down in the Khoord Cabul Pass;
-how Akbar pretended he could not control his men, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</a></span>
-advised the English officers to surrender to him; how the
-native soldiers, chilled to death in the snow, went over
-to the enemy in hundreds.</p>
-
-<p>The sergeant said in their excuse: “I can’t blame the
-natives. I myself was born in a cold climate. I was well
-clad, yet my sufferings from the cold were terrible: my
-fingers were frost-bitten, and all my joints were sore.
-Why, sir, in the next pass the Afghans, after slaughtering
-our men till they were tired, stripped hundreds of poor
-Hindoos stark naked and left them there to die in the cold.”</p>
-
-<p>Stories such as these only spurred on the garrison of
-Jellalabad to greater exertion, for, as they would have
-now to face Akbar Khan and all his warriors, on them
-devolved the task of redeeming our country’s fame.</p>
-
-<p>On the 30th of January our cavalry brought in 175 head
-of cattle that had been grazing at some distance off, and
-on the next day they shepherded in 734 sheep.</p>
-
-<p>Now, work on Sunday was remitted. Men came to
-morning service with sword and pistol, or musket and
-bayonet, and sixty rounds in pouch, ready at a moment’s
-notice to march to battle.</p>
-
-<p>“To me,” says Seaton, “it was always an affecting
-sight to see these great rough fellows with their heads
-bowed, humbly confessing their sins before God, and
-acknowledging their dependence on His goodness and
-mercy; and I am sure that afterwards, when we were
-surrounded by greater perils, there were many who felt
-the comfort there was in having One to whom they could
-appeal in all their troubles.”</p>
-
-<p>In February they knew that Akbar was collecting his
-forces for an attack. On our side the General ordered
-that all able-bodied camp-followers who were willing
-should be armed and receive the pay of native soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Those for whom there were no muskets were armed
-with pikes, which were made for them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 16th rain came down in torrents; on the 18th
-heavy rain again. On the morning of the 19th Seaton
-was at work outside when he felt a smart shock of earthquake,
-with a rumbling noise. At first he did not take
-much notice, but when the rumbling increased and
-swelled to the loudest thunder, as if a thousand heavy
-waggons were being driven at speed over a rough pavement,
-he turned quite sick. An awful fear came over
-him. The ground heaved and set like the sea, and the
-whole plain seemed to be rolling in waves towards them.
-The motion was so violent that some were nearly thrown
-down, and expected every moment to see the whole
-town swallowed up.</p>
-
-<p>The houses, the walls, and the bastions were rocking
-and reeling in a most terrific manner, and falling into
-complete ruin, while all along the south and west faces
-the parapets, which had cost us so much labour to erect,
-were crumbling away like sand. The whole was enveloped
-in one immense cloud of dust, out of which came
-cries of terror from the hundreds within.</p>
-
-<p>When the dreadful noise and quaking ceased, a dead
-silence succeeded, all being so deeply impressed by
-the terror of the scene that they dared not utter a sound.
-The men were absolutely green with fear. Presently a
-gentle breeze sprang up. Officers encouraged the men
-to go on with their work, but, looking round the valley,
-they saw every fort and village wrapped in dense clouds
-of dust. From some the dust was streaming away like
-smoke, from others it rose high in the air in dense
-columns.</p>
-
-<p>When the breeze had cleared away the dust from Jellalabad
-an awful scene of destruction appeared. The
-upper stories of the houses were all gone, and beams,
-posts, doors, windows, bits of wall, ends of roof, earth
-and dust, all were mingled in one confused heap. It<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</a></span>
-was as if some gigantic hand had taken up the houses
-and thrown them down in one rubbish-heap.</p>
-
-<p>The parapets all round had fallen from the walls.
-The walls were split in many places. In the eastern wall
-a breach had been made large enough for two companies
-abreast to walk through.</p>
-
-<p>Sale’s bugle sounded the assembly, and they went in
-at once. On muster being taken, it was found that the
-loss of life was happily only three men crushed in the
-cavalry hospital.</p>
-
-<p>On looking round, it was found that a month’s cannonading
-with a hundred pieces of heavy artillery could not
-have produced the damage that the earthquake had
-effected in a few seconds. “The hand of the Almighty
-had indeed humbled our pride, and taught us the wholesome
-lesson that He alone is a sure defence.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel narrowly escaped with his life. He had
-been standing on the wall, which, he said after he was
-taken up from the ruins, wriggled like a snake.</p>
-
-<p>In one place, as an officer was passing along the ramparts,
-the ground opened beneath him, and he fell in, but
-only to be thrown out again&mdash;an operation which was
-twice repeated. At a spot near the river the wall had
-opened so wide that a man could have slipped through.
-All the barracks and sheds were in ruins; all shelter for
-the men was destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>This, however, was not the time for idle wonder or for
-despair. Without delay every man in garrison was set
-to work, and though there were frequent shocks of earthquake
-during the day, the ruins had been cleared away
-by dusk, and a temporary parapet of clods of earth and
-clay made all round the walls.</p>
-
-<p>Towards sunset a small body of horsemen from Akbar’s
-camp came to reconnoitre. Abbott, who was looking out,
-sent a shot right into the party, making them scamper off,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</a></span>
-probably to report to their chiefs that the fortifications
-were uninjured, and that our “magic” had caused the
-earthquake.</p>
-
-<p>But we were in a critical state, with all defences
-levelled, a huge breach in the works, and the destroyer
-of our Cabul force within a few miles of us, with the
-whole power of the country at his back.</p>
-
-<p>They had now daily fights for their forage. The grass-cutters
-went out at early dawn under a strong escort.
-The grass in India is a creeping grass: the shoots run
-along under ground, or it would perish in the droughts
-of summer.</p>
-
-<p>The grass-cutter, armed with a small hoe, sits down on
-his heels, and with a sweeping motion cuts the grass
-half an inch below the surface of the ground. He then
-collects it, beats off the earth, and brings it home on his
-head. This grass is very sweet and nutritious. As the
-hot weather advanced they had to go further afield for
-grass. On the 2nd of March Akbar sent a large force
-round to the east, and they were invested.</p>
-
-<p>“I find this in my journal for the 2nd of March: ‘All our
-comforts are vanishing. Tea has long been gone; coffee
-goes to-day; sugar on its last legs; butter gone; no grass
-for the cows; candles not to be had. Akbar is trying to
-starve us out.’”</p>
-
-<p>Lead for the rifles was in great request. Some officers
-of the 13th hit upon a very comical method of procuring
-it. They dressed up a figure&mdash;cocked hat, red coat,
-painted face&mdash;and put it on a short pole. Hoisted up
-above the ramparts and managed adroitly, it created no
-end of fun.</p>
-
-<p>Eagerly the Afghans fired at it. Thousands of bullets
-went over their heads or battered against the wall below.
-Whenever they thought the General was hit or saw him
-bob down, they yelled and shouted like madmen.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>How many Generals must they not have killed!
-Generals running short! The figure was hit sometimes.
-In the evening or early morning they used to go outside
-and pick up the bullets, of which immense numbers were
-found. In the course of half an hour one morning Seaton
-picked up 121, but several officers picked up more.</p>
-
-<p>From the 2nd of March, the day on which the enemy
-established a camp east of the city, they all slept at their
-posts on the walls. No one took off his clothes. None
-of them wore uniform, but clothes made of camel-hair
-cloth. Too much digging for fine uniforms! On the
-10th of March, as the Afghans had been thronging the
-ravines for many days, Sale thought it wise to see to
-it, so a sortie with 800 men was ordered. They thoroughly
-examined the ravines at night and destroyed the enemy’s
-shelters. As they were retiring into the town the enemy
-came on, pursuing with loud yells and screams. Their
-horse came boldly down towards the town, offering a
-splendid mark for Abbott, whose guns plied them with
-shot and shell with deadly effect.</p>
-
-<p>Not a single horseman could stand before Abbott’s
-gun within 1,200 yards, his aim was so unerring. Ever
-since the siege of Bhurtpoor he had been celebrated for
-his skill as an artilleryman, and they had daily proof of
-his prowess.</p>
-
-<p>So the month progressed, fighting or working by day,
-watching on the walls by night, and all the time on half
-rations.</p>
-
-<p>They knew that Government was assembling a force
-at Peshawar under Pollock in order to relieve them, for
-they got a stray letter now and then.</p>
-
-<p>Hard work, poor food, anxiety, were making all
-thin and pale; and some of them were angry with Sale
-that he would not go out and fight, for they felt perfectly
-capable of squaring accounts with Akbar and his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</a></span>
-legions; but “Fighting Bob,” as he was called, would
-not come up to his name.</p>
-
-<p>Night after night they were roused from their short
-sleep by earthquakes. A sharper shock, a violent heave,
-a short cracking sound, and all would start up, listen,
-grumble, try to get to sleep again.</p>
-
-<p>Some messengers came in from Peshawar on the 25th.
-They heard the men of the 13th in fits of laughter at
-some absurd game they were playing, and all the native
-soldiers singing in chorus their festival songs. They were
-astounded.</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” they said, “you are besieged, and ought to
-be sad and dispirited; but you are all as merry as possible.”</p>
-
-<p>When they saw the ease with which a party of Akbar’s
-men were beaten in a fight for some grass they were
-utterly confounded. When they returned to Peshawar
-all this went down the road to the Khyber, with wonderful
-additions. It was just the sort of tale that in the
-mouths of such men would not lose in the telling.</p>
-
-<p>All this time the greatest cordiality and good feeling
-prevailed between the European and native soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>“I remember one case of disagreement,” says Seaton.
-“A sepoy of my company met a soldier of the 13th on
-a narrow path in the town. The soldier overbalanced
-himself, and stepped into the mud.</p>
-
-<p>“Being very hot-tempered, he struck the sepoy a
-violent blow. The latter came to me to make his complaint.
-The matter was referred to Sale, who was
-furious, blew up the English soldier fearfully, and ordered
-him to confinement.</p>
-
-<p>“As the Adjutant was marching the soldier off the
-sepoy took the soldier by the hand and said: ‘General
-Sahib, forgive him. There has not been one quarrel
-between any of us ever since the regiments have been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</a></span>
-together. You have scolded with him, so I ask you
-please forgive him.’</p>
-
-<p>“The General granted the sepoy’s request. The
-soldier said he was sorry he had given way to temper
-and struck a man who could behave so generously.</p>
-
-<p>“Many of our soldiers had friends among the sepoys,
-and I have known more than once a soldier, when dying,
-send for his sepoy friend to be with him in his last
-moments.”</p>
-
-<p>Akbar had a new idea: he caused large flocks of sheep
-to be driven over the distant forage grounds. On the
-30th they saw these flocks going within range of the
-guns. They looked at them with hungry eyes.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 1st of April a flock of sheep was
-driven by the enemy’s shepherds close to the old ruined
-fort. Several officers got round Sale and fairly badgered
-him into making an attempt to carry them off. Four
-hundred men, all the cavalry, and some pikemen, were
-ordered out. As they sallied forth Seaton heard a man
-on the walls say to a friend, “I say, Bill, what a lark if
-we can get in all them sheep!”</p>
-
-<p>The cavalry rode out and got round them. The sheep
-were given to the pikemen. The infantry extended in
-skirmishing order to check the enemy, who were running
-up. The sheep were got in, the last one dropping a
-lamb on the very threshold.</p>
-
-<p>They had one man killed and eight wounded, but were
-all in the highest spirits, and when the Afghans, dancing
-with rage, showed themselves on the hills, they were
-saluted with shouts of laughter and a thousand cries of
-“B-a-a! b-a-a!”</p>
-
-<p>The garrison got 481 sheep and a few goats. The
-General gave forty sheep to the men of Seaton’s regiment
-(natives); but they, with great good-feeling, desired that
-the sheep should be given to the English soldiers, for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</a></span>
-whom, they said, such food was necessary, while they
-could do very well on their rations. Bravo, 35th Native
-Infantry! A grateful letter came in return from the
-non-commissioned officers and privates of the 13th L.I.
-to Colonel Dennie, ending with, “Believe me, sir, that
-feeling is more gratifying to us than the value of the gift,
-and we shall ever feel the obligation our old comrades
-and brother campaigners have placed us under.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 3rd a spy came in and told them that when
-Akbar learnt that they had captured his sheep, he burst
-into such a transport of fury that his people were afraid
-to go near him.</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th of April they heard that Pollock had been
-repulsed in the Khyber Pass, and at noon Akbar fired a
-royal salute in honour of his victory.</p>
-
-<p>All the officers now went to Sale and urged on him the
-absolute necessity of going out and fighting Akbar.</p>
-
-<p>Sale saw that the time for action had arrived.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 7th strong guards were posted
-at the gates, a picket in the centre of the town, and all
-pikemen, sick and wounded soldiers, etc., were sent to
-man the walls, and a very respectable show they made.</p>
-
-<p>With the first peep of dawn the gates were quietly
-opened, and the three columns, under Dennie, Monteath,
-and Havelock, sallied out.</p>
-
-<p>The plan was to march direct on Akbar’s camp, burn
-it, drive him into the river, and bring off his guns.</p>
-
-<p>They wasted some time in attacking a ruinous fort,
-and Colonel Dennie was mortally wounded. Then Sale
-called off the troops, and they went straight for Akbar.</p>
-
-<p>The sound of the guns had roused all the enemy’s force,
-and they were turning out in thousands. It was a grand
-sight to see their large masses of horse coming down
-from the hills. They charged boldly on Havelock’s
-column, which, rapidly thrown into square, received<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</a></span>
-them with the greatest coolness, and repulsed them with
-heavy loss.</p>
-
-<p>They then made an attack on Seaton’s regiment, but
-at this moment two guns of Abbott’s battery came up
-and sent shot and shell crashing into the enemy’s ranks,
-making them recoil faster than they had advanced.</p>
-
-<p>The English soon came within sight of the Afghan
-camp, from whence the enemy opened fire on them,
-which caused some loss. But they made a rush and
-carried the camp without a check, while the enemy fled
-through the groves of trees beyond. They tried to carry
-off one of the guns, but a shot by Abbott killed the two
-horses attached to the limber, and the artillerymen fled.
-Numbers of the fugitives threw themselves into the river,
-which, swollen and rapid, destroyed the greatest part of
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The whole of Akbar’s camp fell into our hands. His
-guns, ammunition, standards, plunder&mdash;everything he
-had with him. The bugle soon recalled the skirmishers,
-and Seaton was detached with a party to fire the tents
-and the huts, made of boughs and reeds. The smoke of
-the burning proclaimed our victory to the whole valley.
-Numbers of camels and mounds of grain fell into our hands.</p>
-
-<p>“I secured three noble camels for myself, and right
-good service they did me afterwards.”</p>
-
-<p>Sale was anxious to get back to Jellalabad, so the men
-returned in triumph, each man carrying off what he
-pleased, and were received with loud cheers from the
-walls. A little after dark the news was brought in by
-some Hindoos living in the valley that every fort and
-village within eight miles had been deserted.</p>
-
-<p>This night they slept in bed, perfectly undisturbed.
-After passing the last thirty-six nights on the ramparts,
-armed and accoutred, constantly roused by the enemy,
-by their own rounds, by the relief of sentries, by those<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</a></span>
-terrible earthquakes, many nights drenched by rain
-without shelter, quiet rest in a real bed for the whole
-night was an unspeakable luxury; “but coupled with
-the thought that, unaided, we had broken the toils cast
-round us by Akbar Khan; that we had beaten in fair
-fight the chief who had destroyed our Cabul army; that
-months of toil, watching, anxiety, and peril had been
-crowned with glorious success; that our country’s honour
-was safe in our hands, it was positive bliss, such as few
-have had the happiness to taste.”</p>
-
-<p>On this night even the earthquakes spared them&mdash;no
-sudden roar, no sharp electric shock, no far-off rumbling
-sound, no sharp crack of doom to startle them from their
-well-earned repose. It was bliss!</p>
-
-<p>It was observed that earthquakes usually followed
-much rain, thus raising the question whether steam may
-not often be the origin of the phenomenon.</p>
-
-<p>Next day they found 580 rounds of ammunition for the
-captured guns. Now food began to pour in from the
-country, and they lived on the fat of the land.</p>
-
-<p>News came in that Pollock had forced the Khyber, and
-would arrive about the 15th.</p>
-
-<p>At length, on the morning of the 14th, they could see
-with their glasses Pollock’s force coming near. They
-had not arrived in time to help the garrison in their
-imminent peril. They had lost the grand opportunity of
-joining with them to crush the man whose treachery had
-destroyed their brothers-in-arms, whose bones lay
-scattered in the icy passes of Cabul. A fifth part of
-Pollock’s cavalry would have enabled them to annihilate
-Akbar and all his troops.</p>
-
-<p>So when next morning Pollock’s force did arrive, there
-was a hearty welcome, but a sly bit of sarcasm in the
-tune to which the band of the 13th played them in,
-“Ye’re ower lang o’ comin’.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It was not Pollock’s fault, however. He had to wait
-for the troops to join him at Peshawar.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me relate one incident,” writes Colonel Seaton,
-“that will tend to illustrate the character of my old
-commander, General Sir R. Sale.</p>
-
-<p>“Shortly after Akbar’s camp appeared in sight it was
-whispered about in garrison that Akbar intended to bring
-Lady Sale, then a prisoner in his hands, before the walls,
-and put her to torture within sight, and so compel Sale
-to surrender.</p>
-
-<p>“Every day when the men were at dinner Sale used to
-take a turn on the ramparts, ostensibly to have a quiet
-look round at the progress of our works, but in reality,
-I believe, to ponder on the desperate situation of his
-wife and daughter, and debate with himself the means
-of effecting their rescue.</p>
-
-<p>“We knew that they were well, had hitherto been kindly
-treated, and were in Akbar’s fort, not many miles off.</p>
-
-<p>“One day Sale, in going his rounds, came and stood
-over the south gate, where I was on duty; so, as I had
-enjoyed the privilege of great intimacy with him and
-Lady Sale at Cabul, I went out and joined him. I
-ventured to mention this report, and asked him what
-he would do if it should prove true, and if Akbar should
-put his threat into execution.</p>
-
-<p>“Turning towards me, his face pale and stern, but
-quivering with deep emotion, he replied:</p>
-
-<p>“‘I&mdash;I will have every gun turned on her. My old
-bones shall be buried beneath the ruins of the fort here,
-but I will never surrender!’”</p>
-
-<p>Could Lady Sale have heard it, her heart would have
-bounded with pride, for the heroine was worthy of her hero.</p>
-
-<p>The reception of the garrison by Lord Ellenborough
-at Ferozepoor was a noble and ample return for all
-their toil and suffering. His lordship had taken care<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</a></span>
-that each officer and man of the “illustrious garrison,”
-as he termed them, should have a medal, and they were
-sent out to them before they reached Ferozepoor.</p>
-
-<p>Not an English officer in India at this time had such a
-mark of distinction. They were the first to be so honoured,
-and were highly gratified by it.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning on which they marched in, the bridge
-of boats over the Sutlej was gaily ornamented with
-flags and streamers. His lordship met them at the
-bridge head, and was the first to welcome them as they
-stepped on the soil of our own provinces. All the troops
-in camp were drawn up in line at open order, and received
-them as they passed with presented arms. Lord
-Ellenborough also ordered that at each station they
-marched through on their way to their destination the
-same military honours should be rendered to them. The
-garrison were received with similar marks of distinction
-at Kurnaul, at Delhi, and at Agra.</p>
-
-<p>“We may forget everything else, but we shall never
-forget Lord Ellenborough’s noble and ever-ready kindness
-and the many honours he caused to be shown us.
-One word more: After the Mutiny, it is not to be wondered
-at that the sepoy was written down as a demon
-and a coward; but we had known him as an excellent
-soldier, generally mild and humane and temperate as
-a man, sometimes even generous and forgiving, as the
-best of Christians.”</p>
-
-<p>When will it become the English custom to recite before
-our young of both sexes some of the deeds which have
-saved the Empire, “lest we forget”? If not in church,
-at least in school, we should make this effort to save our
-children from ignorance, which is ingratitude.</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Major-General Sir Thomas Seaton’s record, “From Cadet to
-Colonel.” By kind permission of Messrs. G. Routledge and Sons.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VIII" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">SIEGE OF SEBASTOPOL (1854-1856)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The English land without tents&mdash;Mr. Kinglake shows off before Lord
-Raglan&mdash;The Alma&mdash;Strange escapes&mdash;Looted houses&mdash;Fair
-plunder&mdash;Balaklava Bay&mdash;Horses lost at sea&mdash;A derelict worth
-having&mdash;Jack very helpful&mdash;The Heavy and Light Brigades&mdash;Spies&mdash;Fraternizing.</p>
-
-<p>The Crimean War, fought between Russia on the one
-hand and England, France, Turkey, and Sardinia on the
-other, consisted mainly in the Siege of Sebastopol, a
-strong fortified port in the South of Russia. They
-fought ostensibly about the guardianship of the Holy
-Sepulchre in Jerusalem, but really because Turkey was
-thought to be decaying, and Russia wished to protect the
-Slavonic races in her own interest, and to extend her
-power to the Dardanelles. The war was characterized
-by the great sufferings of the troops during the winter,
-intensified by storms in the Black Sea, where so many
-transports laden with warm clothing went to the bottom
-that our men were left unprotected.</p>
-
-<p>Even at the first landing, on the 14th of September,
-1854, these sufferings commenced. Imagine a bare and
-desolate beach, the home of seagull and wild-fowl, suddenly
-turned into a barrack-yard. From one end to the
-other bayonets glistened, red coats and brass-mounted
-shakos gleamed in solid masses. The transports were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</a></span>
-tossing yonder out in the offing, and as gig or cutter
-grounded on the sand the officers of each company first
-landed, each in full dress, and carried his greatcoat,
-fastened by a strap round his body. After the officers
-came the men, bearing rations for three days in their
-wallets. Before they were all well on shore the rain
-began, and the wind was sending a little surf on the
-beach. The horses were not yet landed, so Generals and
-staff-officers might be seen sitting on powder-barrels
-on the shore, retiring gloomily within the folds of cape
-and mackintosh. Disconsolate doctors were groaning
-after hospital panniers which had not yet arrived; for,
-strange to say, more than one man died on that beach.</p>
-
-<p>The country people, though at first full of fear of the
-invaders, soon brought food to sell, and retired with
-twinkling eyes. They were of Tartar race, with small
-eyes set wide apart and high cheek-bones.</p>
-
-<p>That first night in the Crimea! Twenty thousand
-Englishmen, and not one tent amongst them! The
-wind rose and the rain fell in sheets, piercing through the
-greatcoats and blankets of the soldiers. Their only
-bed was the reeking puddles. They had no fire to cheer
-them, no hot grog. They were just miserable, while the
-French and the Turks were lying snug under canvas.</p>
-
-<p>No wonder that there was a great increase in illness
-among the troops. Next day the surf was so heavy that
-many boats were stove in, and the work of landing horses
-and guns was difficult.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 20th, as Lord Raglan, the Commander-in-Chief,
-was waiting, surrounded by his staff,
-for the troops to get into position, a gentleman joined
-them on a handsome grey pony.</p>
-
-<p>The pony began neighing and screaming so loudly that
-no one could hear a word that was said. Lord Raglan
-turned and asked:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Does anyone know who that gentleman is?”</p>
-
-<p>One of the staff replied: “I think it is one of the
-newspaper reporters, my lord. Shall I ask him to go
-away?”</p>
-
-<p>Lord Raglan laughed, and said: “If you do, he will
-show you up, you may depend upon it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is Mr. Kinglake, the author of ‘Eōthen,’” said
-another.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said my lord, “a most charming man,” and
-was going to speak to him, when the French Marshal
-St. Arnaud rode up and prevented it.</p>
-
-<p>About an hour after, as Lord Raglan was nearing the
-Russian position, a pony dashed past at a furious pace,
-and who should it be but Mr. Kinglake, the future historian
-of the Crimean War? On he went right through
-the skirmishers, with his horse’s head between his legs.
-Fortunately for the rider, the saddle got forward, and
-soon went over the horse’s ears. Of course the author of
-“Eōthen” went with the saddle, which was better than
-riding into the enemy’s lines.</p>
-
-<p>It struck the staff as rather an absurd thing just
-before a battle, and they all laughed; but Lord Raglan
-rode up and offered him another pony. Mr. Kinglake
-has not mentioned this personal adventure in his
-history.</p>
-
-<p>Then came the Battle of the Alma, a river at that time
-of year only knee-deep. It cost us nearly 3,000 men
-killed or wounded. They say the individual escape of
-officers and men was miraculous. Chin-straps were shot
-off, buttons carried away, belts torn, coats ripped&mdash;all
-without further injury to the wearer. Many hundred
-Russians threw away their arms and accoutrements in
-their flight. On the further heights, about a mile and
-a half from the Alma, the British troops ceased their
-pursuit; and then arose such a cheer&mdash;a cheer from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</a></span>
-20,000 victorious men. Even some of the wounded
-fellows joined in it.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never forget that cheer as long as I live,”
-writes an officer. “It was indeed thrilling. I almost
-pitied the fallen enemy; it must have been so galling to
-them. I heard a man of the Guards say to a comrade:
-‘I say, Bill, pleasant for them poor devils’ (pointing
-to some wounded Russians), ‘hearing our chaps cheer
-like that.’</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Raglan rode up and down the line, the men
-cheering him heartily. There was such a shaking of
-hands. One felt very choky about the throat and very
-much inclined to cry as one wrung the hand of a friend.
-‘God bless you, old fellow! So glad to see you all
-right!’ and so on. It was a touching sight to see the
-meeting between Lord Raglan and Sir Colin Campbell.
-The latter was on foot, as his horse had been killed under
-him. He went up to his lordship and, with tears in his
-eyes, shook hands, saying it was not the first battle-field
-they had won together. The battle was over at twenty
-minutes to four p.m.”</p>
-
-<p>Next morning the poor wounded were far more quiet.
-Many had died during the night. Numbers of our men
-were going about among the wounded before it was light,
-giving them drinks of water. All those shot through the
-head died with a smile on their faces. “Some looked so
-happy, poor fellows! that one felt comforted.” On the
-23rd of September order was given to prepare for marching,
-and the army left the heights of the Alma.</p>
-
-<p>But what is that grey mass on the plain, almost lying
-without life or motion? Now and then, indeed, an arm
-may be seen waved aloft, or a man raises himself for a
-moment, looks around, and then lies down again.</p>
-
-<p>Alas! that plain is covered with the wounded Russians
-still.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Nearly sixty long hours have they passed in agony on
-the wet ground, and now the English must leave them as
-they lie. Seven hundred and fifty wounded men are still
-on the ground, and we can do nothing for them. Their
-wounds have been bound and dressed by us, and Lord
-Raglan has told the head-man of a Tartar village to do
-what he can for them.</p>
-
-<p>At first the country was hilly and barren, but on coming
-to the valley of the Katcha there were beautiful verdure,
-shrubs, white villas and snug cottages, vineyards and
-gardens.</p>
-
-<p>A guide-post showed they were ten miles from Sebastopol.
-The road now looked like a byway in Devon or
-Hampshire. Low walls were surmounted by fruit-trees,
-laden with apples, pears, peaches, and apricots, all ripe
-and fit for use.</p>
-
-<p>The first villa they came to was the residence of a
-country surgeon. It had been ruthlessly destroyed by
-the Cossacks. A veranda, laden with clematis, roses,
-and honeysuckle, was filled with broken chairs and tables.
-All the glass of the windows was smashed. There lay
-on the grass outside the hall-door two side-saddles, a
-parasol, and a big whip. The wine-casks were broken
-and spilt; the barley and corn of the granary were tossed
-about; broken china and glass were scattered over the
-floors; and amid all the desolation and ruin of the place
-a cat sat blandly on the threshold, winking her eyes in
-the sunshine at the new-comers. The scene within was
-awful. The beds had been ripped open, and the feathers
-littered the rooms a foot deep; chairs, sofas, bookcases,
-pictures, images of saints, needlework, bottles, physic-jars,
-all smashed or torn, lay in heaps in every room.
-Even the walls and doors were hacked with swords. It
-was as if the very genius of destruction had been at work
-and had revelled in mischief. Every other house and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</a></span>
-villa that they passed was a similar scene to this. Grand
-pianos and handsome pieces of furniture covered with
-silk and velvet, rent to pieces with brutal violence, were
-found in the larger houses.</p>
-
-<p>The houses consist of one story only, size being gained
-by lateral extension. Each house has a large patch of
-vineyard round it. A porch covered with vines protects
-the entrance. They learnt from a deserter that the
-natives were hiding because they expected to be shot;
-also, that the Russians in their retreat had been seized
-with panic in the night, and had rushed off pell-mell;
-indeed, the state of the roads favoured this, for they were
-littered with linstocks, cartridges, and caps all the way.
-Our soldiers now fared on the richest of grapes and the
-choicest pears, but they were not allowed to waste or
-plunder.</p>
-
-<p><i>September 25.</i>&mdash;On the march to Balaklava they got
-near the enemy. They proved to be the baggage-guard
-of a large detachment. A few rounds, a cavalry charge,
-the Rifles in skirmishing order, and they broke, leaving
-baggage of every description strewed over the ground for
-two miles.</p>
-
-<p>This was fair and lawful plunder, and the troops were
-halted and allowed to take what they liked and what they
-could carry. The officers presided over it to see that there
-was no quarrelling. Immense quantities of wearing
-apparel, dressing-cases, valuable ornaments, and jewellery
-were found in the carts.</p>
-
-<p>A Russian artillery officer, found in one of the carriages,
-was in a very jovial mood, beside an empty champagne
-bottle. Fine winter cloaks, lined with fur, were found
-in abundance. This plunder put our soldiers in great
-good-humour, and they marched on the whole day in
-excellent spirits.</p>
-
-<p>As the baggage was some miles behind, Lord Raglan<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</a></span>
-had to put up in a miserable little lodge, while his staff
-slept on the ground in a ditch outside.</p>
-
-<p>Not the smallest attempt was made by the enemy to
-annoy the English during this march to Balaklava; but
-we could have been greatly harassed by the smallest
-activity on their part. The march lay through woods,
-along bad and often precipitous roads, and a few trees
-felled at intervals could have stopped our army for hours.
-We had, it seems, taken the Russians by surprise, and
-they showed themselves quite destitute of resources.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Balaklava, September 24.</i>&mdash;I never was more astonished
-in my life,” writes Sir W. Russell, “than when I
-halted on the top of one of the numerous hills of which
-this part of the Crimea is composed, and looking far down,
-saw under my feet a little pond, closely shut in by the
-sides of high, rocky mountains. On this pond floated
-six or seven English ships, for which exit seemed quite
-hopeless. The bay is like a highland tarn. It is long
-ere the eye admits that it is some half-mile in length from
-the sea, and varies from 250 to 120 yards in breadth.
-The shores are so steep and precipitous that they shut
-out the expanse of the harbour, and make it appear much
-smaller than it really is.</p>
-
-<p>“Towards the sea the cliffs close up and completely
-overlap the narrow channel which leads to the haven,
-so that it is quite invisible.</p>
-
-<p>“On the south-east of the poor village which straggles
-between the base of the rocky hills and the margin of the
-sea there are extensive ruins of a Genoese fort, built
-some 200 feet above the level of the sea, all crumbling
-in decay&mdash;bastion and tower and wall. A narrow defile
-leads to the town. A few resolute men posted here might
-have given great trouble to a large army.”</p>
-
-<p>The staff advanced first on the town, and were proceeding
-to enter it, when, to their surprise, from some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</a></span>
-old forts above came four spirts of smoke, and down
-came four shells close to them. The dose of shell was
-repeated; but by this time the <i>Agamemnon</i> outside the
-rocks was heard busily sending her shot against the fort.
-After a few rounds the fort was summoned, hung out a
-flag of truce, and surrendered. There were only sixty
-men&mdash;all made prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>As Lord Raglan entered at noon the principal street,
-the inhabitants came out to meet him, bearing trays
-laden with fruit and flowers. Others bore loaves of
-bread cut up in pieces and placed on dishes covered with
-salt, in token of goodwill and submission. The fleet
-and army were once more united. Lord Raglan had
-secured his base of operations. Towards evening the
-huge bulk of the <i>Agamemnon</i> glided in between the rocks
-of the entrance, to the joy and delight of all on shore.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>October 3.</i>&mdash;Sebastopol is not yet invested. It is
-only threatened on the south and south-east side by the
-army, while the fleet attacks it from the east. There is
-an enormous boom across the entrance, and many ships
-have been sunk close to shore. The Russians can throw
-shot further from their batteries than we can from our
-decks. Their shot went over us the other day when ours
-were falling 500 yards short.</p>
-
-<p>“Since we landed in the Crimea as many have died of
-cholera as perished at the Alma. The deserters say that
-thirty Russian ladies went out of Sebastopol to see the
-Alma battle, as though they were going to a picnic. They
-were quite assured of the success of the Russian troops, and
-great was their dismay when they had to fly for their lives.</p>
-
-<p>“Bad news to-day about the Dragoons’ horses. Some
-200 horses coming from Varna have perished <i>en route</i>.
-The sea ran high: fittings and horse-boxes gave way, and
-the horses got loose upon the deck, and were killed or
-washed overboard.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“<i>October 9.</i>&mdash;An amusing incident has happened.
-Towards noon a large ship, under Austrian colours, was
-seen standing in towards Sebastopol. The Russian
-Fort Constantine opened fire on her at 2,500 yards, but
-the ship paid no attention to the shot and shell which
-flew over her. The other Russian batteries followed suit;
-still the Austrian cared not. Not a sheet did she slack,
-while the shot struck her hull and rigging. She came
-right past the batteries, and passed them unscathed,
-nearing the shore as she came. The <i>Firebrand</i> went to
-her assistance, and received several shot in her hull while
-doing so, but Captain Stuart persevered and brought her
-off. What do you think? Why, she had been deserted
-by her crew when the wind failed and she was getting too
-near Sebastopol. But she was laden with 600 tons of
-hay for the English army. Her escape is almost miraculous,
-but it is a proof of the bad gunnery of the Russians.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>October 13.</i>&mdash;It is now eighteen days since our army,
-by a brilliant march on Balaklava, obtained its magnificent
-position on the south side of Sebastopol. Up to
-this moment not a British or French gun has replied to
-the fire of the enemy. The Russians have employed the
-interval in throwing up earthworks, trenches, and batteries,
-to cover the south side of the town.</p>
-
-<p>“The delay had been quite unavoidable. We had to
-send all our guns and material round by sea, and land it
-as best we could. All these enormous masses of metal
-were to be dragged by men or a few horses over a steep
-and hilly country a distance of eight miles. You have
-some idea of the severity of the work in the fact that
-on the 10th no less than thirty-three ammunition horses
-were found dead. We had now opened out about
-1,500 yards of trench fit for the reception of heavy
-guns.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Jack’ made himself very useful to us. The only<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</a></span>
-thing against him was that he is too strong. He pulls
-strong carts to pieces as if they were toys; he piles up
-shot-cases in the waggons till the horses fall under the
-weight, for he cannot understand ‘the ship starting
-till the hold is full.’ But it is most cheering to meet a
-lot of these jolly fellows working up a gun to the camp:
-from a distance you can hear a hearty English chorus
-borne on the breeze. The astonishment of the stupid,
-fur-capped Crim Tartars, as they stare at the wondrous
-apparition of our hairy Hercules, is ludicrous to a degree;
-but ‘Jack’ salutes every foreigner who goes by with the
-same cry, ‘Bono, Johnny!’ and still the song proceeds.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>October 22.</i>&mdash;Lord Dunkellin, Captain Coldstream
-Guards, was taken prisoner this morning. He was out
-with a working party of his regiment, which had got a
-little out of their way, when a number of men were
-observed through the dawning light in front of them.
-‘They are the Russians!’ exclaimed one of his men.
-‘Nonsense! they’re our fellows,’ said his lordship, and
-went off towards them, asking in a high tone as he got
-near: ‘Who is in command of this party?’ His men
-saw him no more. The Russians fired no shot, but merely
-closed round and seized him before he could get away.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>October 25.</i>&mdash;At half-past seven this morning an
-orderly came galloping in to the head-quarters camp
-from Balaklava with the news that at dawn a strong
-corps of Russian horse, supported by guns and battalions
-of infantry, had marched into the valley, and had already
-nearly dispersed the Turks of the redoubt No. 1, and
-that they were opening fire on the other redoubts, which
-would soon be in their hands unless the Turks offered a
-stouter resistance. Sir George Cathcart and H.R.H.
-the Duke of Cambridge were ordered to put their divisions,
-the fourth and the first, in motion for the scene of action.
-Sir Colin Campbell, who was in command of Balaklava,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</a></span>
-had drawn up the 93rd Highlanders in front of the road
-to the town. The French artillerymen and Zouaves
-prepared for action along their lines.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Lucan’s little camp was full of excitement. The
-men had not had time to water their horses; they had
-not broken their fast yet, and had barely saddled at the
-first blast of the trumpet, when they were drawn up on
-the slope behind the redoubts. Soon after eight o’clock
-Lord Raglan and his staff cantered up towards our rear;
-a French General, Bosquet, with his staff and an escort of
-Hussars, followed at a gallop.</p>
-
-<p>“Never did the painter’s eye rest on a more beautiful
-scene than I beheld from the ridge. The fleecy vapours
-still hung around the mountain-tops, and mingled with
-the ascending volumes of smoke from the cannonade;
-the patch of sea sparkled freshly in the rays of the morning
-sun, but its light was eclipsed by the flashes which
-gleamed from the masses of armed men below.</p>
-
-<p>“To our disgust, we saw the Turks fly at the approach
-of the Russians; but the horse-hoof of the Cossack was
-too quick for them, and sword and lance were busily
-plied among the retreating herd. The yells of the
-pursuers and pursued were plainly audible. The Turks
-betake themselves to the Highlanders, where they check
-their flight, and form into companies on the Scotsmens’
-flanks.</p>
-
-<p>“The Russian cavalry, seeing the Highlanders, halt
-till they have about 1,500 men along the ridge&mdash;Lancers,
-Dragoons, and Hussars. They drew breath for a moment,
-and then in one grand line dashed at the Highlanders,
-who were drawn up two deep. The ground flies beneath
-their horses’ feet; gathering speed at every stride, they
-dash on towards that thin red streak topped with a line
-of steel.</p>
-
-<p>“The Turks fire a volley at 800 yards and run. As<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</a></span>
-the Russians come within 600 yards, down goes that
-line of steel in front, and out rings a rolling volley of
-minié musketry. The distance is too great; the Russians
-come on. With breathless suspense every one awaits
-the bursting of the wave upon the line of Gaelic rock;
-but ere they come within 150 yards, another deadly
-volley flashes from the levelled rifle, carrying death and
-terror into the Russians. They wheel about, open files
-right and left, and fly back faster than they came.
-‘Bravo, Highlanders! well done!’ shout the excited
-spectators.</p>
-
-<p>“But events thicken. The Russians&mdash;evidently <i>corps
-d’élite</i>&mdash;their light blue jackets embroidered with silver
-lace, were advancing at an easy gallop towards the brow
-of the hill. A forest of lances glistened in their rear,
-and squadrons of grey-coated Dragoons moved up to
-support them.</p>
-
-<p>“The instant they came in sight the trumpets of our
-cavalry gave out the warning blast which told us all
-that in another moment we should see the shock of
-battle beneath our very eyes. Lord Raglan, all his
-staff and escort, groups of officers, Zouaves, French
-Generals and officers, bodies of French infantry on the
-heights, were spectators of the scene, as though they were
-looking on the stage from the boxes of a theatre. Nearly
-every one dismounted and sat down in deep silence.</p>
-
-<p>“The Russians rode down the hill at a slow canter,
-which they changed to a trot, and at last nearly halted.
-Their line was at least double the length of ours,
-and it was three times as deep. Behind them was a
-similar line, equally strong and compact. They evidently
-despised their insignificant-looking enemy, but their
-time was come. The trumpets rang out again through
-the valley: the Scots Greys and the Enniskillens went
-right at the centre of the Russian cavalry.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The space between them was only a few hundred
-yards; it was barely enough to let the horses gather
-way. The Russian line brings forward each wing as
-our horse advance, and threatens to annihilate them as
-they pass.</p>
-
-<p>“Turning a little to the left to meet the Russian right,
-the Greys rush on with a cheer that thrills to every heart;
-the wild shout of the Enniskillens rises at the same
-instant. As lightning flashes through a cloud, the
-Greys and Enniskillens pierce through the dark masses
-of the Russians. The shock was but for a moment.
-There was a clash of steel, a light play of sword-blades
-in the air, and then the Greys and the red-coats vanish
-in the midst of the shaken and quivering columns. In
-another moment we see them emerging and dashing on
-with diminished numbers, in broken order, against the
-second line, which is advancing against them as fast as
-it can to retrieve the fortune of the charge.</p>
-
-<p>“It was a terrible moment. God help them! they are
-lost!</p>
-
-<p>“With unabated fire the noble hearts rode at their
-enemy. It was a fight of heroes. The first line of
-Russians, though broken, had turned, and were coming
-back to swallow up our poor handful of men. By sheer
-steel and sheer courage Enniskillen and Scot were
-winning their desperate way right through the enemy’s
-squadrons, and already grey horses and red coats had
-appeared at the rear of the second mass, when, with
-irresistible force, the 1st Royals, the 4th Dragoon Guards,
-and the 5th, rushed at the remnants of the first line of
-the enemy, went through it as though it were made of
-pasteboard, and dashing on the second body of Russians,
-still disordered by the terrible assault of the Greys and
-Irish, put them to utter rout. A cheer burst from every
-lip. In the enthusiasm officers and men took off their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</a></span>
-caps and shouted with delight, clapping their hands
-again and again.”</p>
-
-<p>Lord Raglan at once despatched Lord Curzon to
-convey his congratulations to General Scarlett, and to
-say “Well done!”</p>
-
-<p>The gallant old officer’s face beamed with pleasure
-when he received the message. Our loss was very slight&mdash;about
-thirty-five killed and wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Presently General Canrobert, attended by his staff,
-rode up to Lord Raglan, and complimented him upon the
-magnificent charge of our cavalry.</p>
-
-<p>It was shortly after this that the historic charge
-of the Light Brigade took place, owing to an order misinterpreted.
-Lord Lucan received a written order from
-Brigadier Airey through Captain Nolan to advance his
-cavalry nearer to the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>“Where are we to advance to?” asked Lord Lucan.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Nolan pointed with his finger to the mass
-of Russian cavalry, the six battalions of infantry, and
-the thirty guns that faced them, and said: “There are
-the enemy, sir, and there are the guns; it is your duty
-to take them.”</p>
-
-<p>Don Quixote in his tilt against the windmill was not
-so rash and reckless as the gallant fellows who prepared
-thus to rush on almost certain death.</p>
-
-<p>It is a maxim of war that “cavalry never act without
-a support,” that infantry should be close at hand. The
-only support our light cavalry had was the reserve of
-heavy cavalry a long way behind them.</p>
-
-<p>As they swept proudly past, officers could scarcely
-believe the evidence of their senses. Surely that handful
-of men are not going to charge an army in position!
-At the distance of 1,200 yards from thirty iron mouths
-there belched forth a flood of smoke and flame. There
-were instant gaps in our ranks&mdash;dead men and horses,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</a></span>
-riderless horses starting aside&mdash;but the remnant rode on
-into the smoke of the batteries. You could see their
-sabres flashing as they cut down the gunners; you saw
-them return, break through a column of infantry, then,
-exposed to a flank fire from the battery on the hill,
-scattered, broken, wounded, dismounted, flying towards
-their base. But at this moment a large body of Lancers
-was hurled on their flank. They were cutting their
-way through this mass when there took place an act of
-atrocity without parallel in modern warfare. The Russian
-gunners had returned to their guns: they saw their own
-cavalry mingled with the troopers who had just ridden
-over them, and, to their eternal disgrace, poured in a
-murderous volley of grape and canister, thus mingling
-friend and foe in one common ruin.</p>
-
-<p>All our operations in the trenches were lost sight of
-in the interest of this melancholy day, in which our
-Light Brigade was annihilated by their own rashness
-and by the brutality of a ferocious enemy.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>November 3.</i>&mdash;There were many spies in our camp&mdash;sometimes
-dressed like French officers&mdash;and we not
-clever enough to detect the bad French. The other
-night the sentinel before the house of the Provost-Marshal
-in Balaklava was astonished to see a horse, with a sack
-of corn on his back, deliberately walking past him in
-the moonlight. He went over to seize the animal, when
-the sack of corn suddenly became changed into a full-grown
-Cossack, who drove the spurs into his horse and
-vanished!</p>
-
-<p>“Our sentries often fraternized with the Russian
-sentries. A few nights ago our men saw some Russian
-soldiers coming towards them without arms, and they
-supposed them to be deserters; but, on coming nearer,
-they made signs that they wanted a light for their pipes,
-and then they stayed a few minutes, talking. First<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</a></span>
-Russian: ‘Englise bono!’ First Englishman: ‘Ruskie
-bono!’ Second Russian: ‘Oslem no bono!’ Second
-Englishman: ‘Ah, Turk no bono!’ pretending to run
-away as if frightened, upon which all the party go into
-roars of laughter, and then, after shaking hands, they
-retire to their respective beats, ready for the bloody
-work of war.”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Sir W. Howard Russell’s “Letters from the Crimea.” By kind
-permission of Messrs. George Routledge and Sons, Ltd.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IX" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">AFTER INKERMANN (1854-55)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Valiant deeds&mdash;Lord Raglan under fire&mdash;Tryon the best shot&mdash;A
-Prince’s button&mdash;A cold Christmas&mdash;Savage horses&mdash;The Mamelon
-redoubt&mdash;Corporal Quin&mdash;Colonel Zea.</p>
-
-<p>The Battle of Inkermann was fought on the 5th of
-November, 1854, in a thick fog. It began very early in
-the morning with a surprise, and developed into a series
-of desperate deeds of daring, of hand-to-hand fights, of
-despairing rallies, of desperate assaults in glen and valley,
-in brushwood glades and remote dells. At six o’clock
-in the morning our men of the Second Division were roused
-by their tents being ripped to pieces by Russian shells.
-In darkness, gloom, and rain the British troops sallied
-forth to meet the foe&mdash;with the bayonet if they could.</p>
-
-<p>Many valiant deeds were done. Some were noted,
-many were unmarked. Lieutenant Crosse was surrounded
-by Russians, who attacked him with the bayonet,
-though he was badly wounded. He shot two with his
-revolver. Then a private, running up to help him, shot
-another, bayonetted the fourth, and carried the Lieutenant
-away in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>MacGrath was captured by two Russians, but while
-they were leading him away he seized the firelock of one
-of them, shot the Russian, and dashed out the brains of
-the other.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Burke was surrounded just as a ball broke his jawbone.
-He rushed amongst his enemies, shot three dead
-with his revolver, and cut two men down with his sword.
-He fell at last with more than thirty wounds in his body.</p>
-
-<p>When Sir George Cathcart was shot and our men were
-retiring, Colonel Seymour, of the Guards, a dear friend
-who had served with him through the campaign in Kaffirland,
-rushed forward to help him, and in so doing was
-shot through the leg.</p>
-
-<p>“Come back, Colonel!” the men shouted as they
-swept past the two officers.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no; my place is here with Sir George,” replied
-Seymour.</p>
-
-<p>“You must leave him,” cried General Torrens; “the
-enemy are close at hand. You will be killed, man!”</p>
-
-<p>But nothing could persuade the Colonel to leave the
-side of his dying chief. There he remained, alone against
-the rushing tide of battle, and met a hero’s death in
-endeavouring to protect his friend from insult and
-mutilation.</p>
-
-<p>When, later in the day, some of the French troops
-were seen to retire before the impetuous onslaught of the
-Russian masses, Lord Raglan despatched an aide-de-camp
-to General Pennefather, who was near the French
-division, to ask how he was getting on.</p>
-
-<p>The General sent word in reply that he could hold his
-own perfectly well, and that he thought the enemy looked
-like retiring.</p>
-
-<p>“If I can be reinforced with fresh troops, I will follow
-the Russians up and lick them to the devil.”</p>
-
-<p>Lord Raglan was so delighted with this spirited answer
-that he galloped over to the French General Canrobert
-and translated General Pennefather’s words literally to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Jusqu’au diable, Général!” That was what he said.</p>
-
-<p>Canrobert, who had just remounted his horse, after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</a></span>
-having his arm bound up, exclaimed: “Ah! quel brave
-garçon! quel brave homme! quel bon Général!”</p>
-
-<p>The day ended with a great artillery duel, in which
-Colonel Dickson won great renown, and mowed down
-great lanes through the massed forces opposed to him,
-until they broke and fled.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Peel, of H.M.S. <i>Diamond</i>, greatly distinguished
-himself for his marvellous sang-froid in action. A shell
-fell close to a gun which he was laying in the trenches.
-Instead of running to take cover, he picked up the shell
-and lifted it over the parapet. The shell exploded just
-after it left his hands, and did no damage, whereas had
-it burst on the spot where it fell, probably many men
-would have been killed and wounded.</p>
-
-<p>A private of the 33rd (Duke of Wellington’s) Regiment
-was surprised and made prisoner by two Russian soldiers
-when an advanced sentry. One of the Russians took
-possession of his musket and the other of his pouch, and
-they marched him between them towards Sebastopol.
-It was not the direction which Tommy wanted to take,
-so he kept wary watch, and when he fancied his captors
-were off their guard, he sprang on the one who carried his
-musket, seized it, knocked the fellow down, and then shot
-dead the Russian who carried his pouch. Meanwhile
-the Ruskie from whom Tommy had taken his own musket
-rose up from his recumbent position, fired and missed his
-aim. Tommy promptly hit him on the head with the butt
-end of his musket. After this the Englishman proceeded
-at leisure to take off his foes’ accoutrements, and he
-returned to his post laden with spoils, being fired at by the
-Russian sentries and cheered loudly by the English pickets.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_6" src="images/i_137.jpg" width="385" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">Getting rid of his Captors</p>
-
-<p>An English private was taken prisoner by two Russians. When he thought they
-were off their guard he snatched his own musket and felled one of them, and then shot
-the other dead. The first tried to shoot the Englishman, but missed, and was then
-promptly hit on the head with the butt end.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But Lord Raglan himself gave several instances of
-great coolness under fire. He was sitting on horseback
-during the Battle of Inkermann, in the midst of a battery
-of artillery, watching our men working the guns. A very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</a></span>
-heavy fire was being directed against this part of the
-field, and one of his staff suggested the propriety of his
-not putting himself in quite so dangerous and conspicuous
-a place, especially as, from the number of bullets that
-came singing by, it was clear he was being made a mark
-for the enemy’s riflemen.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Raglan, however, merely said: “Yes, they seem
-firing at us a little; but I think I get a better view here
-than in most places.”</p>
-
-<p>So there he remained for some time, and then, turning
-his horse, rode along the whole length of the ridge at a
-foot’s pace. Some of the hangers-on about the staff
-found they had business elsewhere, and cantered unobtrusively
-away.</p>
-
-<p>Towards evening of the same day Lord Raglan was
-returning from taking his last leave of General Strangways,
-who had been mortally wounded, and was riding
-up towards the ridge. A sergeant of the 7th Fusiliers
-approached, carrying canteens of water to take up for
-the wounded. As Lord Raglan passed, he drew himself up
-to make the usual salute, when a round shot came bounding
-over the hill and knocked his forage-cap off his head.</p>
-
-<p>The man calmly picked up his cap, dusted it on his
-knee, placed it carefully on his head, and then made the
-military salute, all without moving a muscle of his
-countenance. Lord Raglan was delighted with the
-sergeant’s coolness, and, smiling, said to him: “A near
-thing that, my man!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, my lord,” replied the sergeant, with another
-salute; “but a miss is as good as a mile.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the most painful things during the battle was
-the number of wounded horses. Some of the poor creatures
-went grazing about the fields, limping on three
-legs, one, perhaps, having been broken or carried away
-by a shot. Others were galloping about wildly, scream<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</a></span>ing
-with terror and fright. At times two or three horses
-would attach themselves to the staff, as if desirous of
-company or for human protection. One poor beast, who
-had its nose and mouth shot away, used to edge in
-amongst the staff and rub its gory head against their
-horses’ flanks. He was at last ordered to be put out
-of his pain, being in this more fortunate than many poor
-soldiers, who lay out for several nights in their agony.</p>
-
-<p>It was a day or two after that the best shot in the
-British Army was killed. Lieutenant Tryon, of the Rifle
-Brigade, was shot through the head when in the act of
-firing at the retreating Russians. He was a great loss,
-much beloved by his men. It is stated that he had himself
-killed over a hundred Russians. At the Battle of
-Inkermann he employed himself the whole day in firing
-at the Russian artillerymen. He had two of his men to
-load for him, and they say that he knocked over thirty
-Russians, besides wounding several more.</p>
-
-<p>General Canrobert issued a general order eulogizing
-the conduct of our Rifles, and lamenting in just terms the
-death of Lieutenant Tryon.</p>
-
-<p>This must be the first occasion on record of a French
-General particularizing the bravery of a British officer
-of Tryon’s rank.</p>
-
-<p>There is a story told which proves that Russian
-Generals were not dead to a sense of humour.</p>
-
-<p>A Mr. C&mdash;&mdash;, an officer in an English regiment, was taken
-prisoner in a sortie of the Russians, and was sent on to
-Simferopol. A day or two after his arrival there he received
-some letters from England which had been sent in with a
-flag of truce. One of these letters was from a young lady
-who was engaged to Mr. C&mdash;&mdash;. In this letter she wrote:</p>
-
-<p>“I hope, dearest, that if you take Prince Menchikoff
-prisoner, you will cut a button off his coat and send it to
-me in a letter, as you know how fond I am of relics.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All these letters had been opened and translated at the
-Russian headquarters, as is usual. Prince Menchikoff
-was shown this letter, which amused him not a little; so
-he wrote to Mr. C&mdash;&mdash;, saying how much he regretted he
-was unable to pose as a prisoner, when it was the other
-way about; but he had much pleasure in sending him the
-enclosed button off his best coat, which he trusted
-Mr. C&mdash;&mdash; would forward to the young lady with his
-compliments.</p>
-
-<p>By December the whole army was suffering, worn out
-by night work, by vigil in rain and storm, by hard labour
-in the trenches, by cholera and short allowances. For
-nine days there was no issue of tea, coffee, or sugar to the
-troops. Food, corn, hay were stowed in sailing-vessels
-outside the harbour. A hurricane arose. To the bottom
-went provender and food for twenty days of all the
-horses. You could hardly tell an officer from a corporal.
-They were all hairy and muddy, filthy, worn, mounted
-on draggle-tailed ponies. Yet withal we are told they
-were the noblest, cheeriest, bravest fellows in Europe&mdash;ready
-to defy privation, neglect, storm, and wounds.
-Letters, it is true, sometimes came from the Crimea in
-which the writer showed a righteous indignation against
-those who mismanaged affairs and caused so much unnecessary
-loss and suffering. In one of these we read:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>January 2.</i>&mdash;We have had a rough and dreary
-Christmas. Where are our presents? where are the fat
-bucks, the potted meats, the cakes, the warm clothing,
-the worsted devices made by the fair sympathizers at
-home? They may be on their way, but they will be
-too late. Why are our men still in tents? Where are
-the huts that were sent out? Some of them I have seen
-floating about the beach; others are being converted into
-firewood. There are 3,500 sick men in camp; there are
-8,000 sick and wounded in the hospitals on the Bosphorus.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Snow is on the hills, and the wind blows cold. We
-have no greatcoats. Our friends the Zouaves are
-splendid fellows, always gay, healthy, well fed. They
-carry loads for us, drink for us, eat for us, bake for us,
-forage for us&mdash;and all on the cheapest and most economical
-terms.</p>
-
-<p>“The trenches are two and three feet deep with mud,
-snow, and slush. Many men, when they take off their
-shoes, are unable to get their swollen feet into them
-again. The other day I was riding through the French
-camp, 5th Regiment, when an officer came up and invited
-me to take a glass of the brandy which had been
-sent out by the Emperor as a Christmas gift. He had
-a bright wood fire burning in his snug warm pit. Our
-presents have so far all miscarried.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>January 19.</i>&mdash;After frost and snow milder weather.
-Our warm clothing has come! Many thousands of fine
-coats, lined with fur and skins, have been served out to
-the men, together with long boots, gloves, socks, and mits.</p>
-
-<p>“What a harvest Death has reaped! How many are
-crippled by the cold!</p>
-
-<p>“<i>January 24.</i>&mdash;I have been viewing Sebastopol from
-a hill. The suburbs are in ruins. All the streets I saw
-had their houses broken down. Roofs, doors, and windows
-were all off, but the Russian riflemen shoot from
-them. I saw many walking from the sea with baskets
-of provisions. The harbour is covered with boats.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>May 18.</i>&mdash;The Sardinians are encamped on the slopes
-of pleasant hills. Their tents are upheld by their lances,
-one at each end of the tent. Their encampment, with
-its waving pennons, has a very pretty effect. The Sardinians’
-horses are rather leggy, but not such formidable
-neighbours as the horses of the 10th Hussars, which are
-the terror of the camp, breaking their picket-ropes and
-tearing about madly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yesterday I was riding peaceably along with an
-officer of artillery and of 8th Hussars, when suddenly
-we heard cries of ‘Look out!’ and lo! there came a furious
-steed down upon us, his mane and tail erect. He had
-stepped out of a mob of Hussar horses to offer us battle,
-and rushed at full gallop towards our ponies.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Out swords!’ was the word, as the interesting beast
-circled round us, now menacing us with his heels, now
-with his teeth; but he was repelled by two bright swords
-and one strong whip, and at last, to our relief, he caught
-sight of Colonel Mayo, who was then cantering by in
-ignorance of his danger, till he was warned by the shouts
-of the soldiers. The Colonel defended himself and horse
-with great resolution, and, drawing his sword, gave
-point or cut right and left as the case required, till the
-men of the 10th came up and beat off the creature. It
-is rather too exciting this hot weather to have to run the
-risk of being demolished by the heels of an insane Arab.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>June 7.</i>&mdash;It has leaked out that something of import
-was to take place to-day. Between 5 and 6 p.m. Lord
-Raglan and his staff took up a conspicuous position
-looking straight into the teeth of the Redan. The man
-with the signal rockets was in attendance. About half-past
-six the French attacking column was seen to be
-climbing the arduous road to the Mamelon fort.</p>
-
-<p>“The rocket was fired, and our small force rushed for
-the quarries to divert the Russians. The French went
-up the steep to the Mamelon in beautiful style and in
-loose order. Their figures, like light shadows flitting
-across the dun barrier of earthworks, were seen to mount
-up unfailingly in the evening light&mdash;seen running, climbing,
-scrambling like skirmishers up the slopes amid a
-plunging fire from the guns.</p>
-
-<p>“As an officer who saw Bosquet wave them on
-said at the moment, ‘They went in like a clever pack of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</a></span>
-hounds.’ Then we see the Zouaves standing upon the
-parapets and firing down into the fort from above. Now
-they are in the heart of the Mamelon, and a fierce hand-to-hand
-encounter, with musket and bayonet, is evidently
-taking place. It was only seven minutes and a half from
-the commencement of the enterprise. There is still
-another sharp bayonet fight, and this time the Russians
-run out on the other side, spiking their guns. But the
-roar of guns is heard on the side towards the town: the
-Russians have been reinforced!</p>
-
-<p>“When rocket after rocket went up ominously from
-the French General’s position we began to be nervous.
-It was growing darker, and the noise of the fight seemed
-to be on our side of the fort. At last the swell and babble
-of the fight once more rolled down the face of the hill.
-‘They are well into it this time,’ said a General, handing
-over his glass to his neighbour. All was still. No more
-musket flashes, no more lightning of the heavy guns from
-the embrasures. A shapeless hump upon a hill, the
-Mamelon was an extinct volcano, until such time as
-we should please to call it again into action.</p>
-
-<p>“‘How are our men getting on?’ says one.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Oh, take my word for it they’re all right,’ says
-another.</p>
-
-<p>“They were in the quarries, but had to fight all night
-and repel six successive attacks of the Russians, who
-displayed the most singular pertinacity and recklessness
-of life. Meanwhile the Zouaves, emboldened by success,
-carried their prowess too far, and dreamt of getting
-into the round tower by a <i>coup de main</i>. The fire of
-the musketry from the round tower was like a shelf of
-flame, and the shells of our gunners&mdash;for we were supporting
-the French&mdash;stood out dark against the heavens
-as they rose and swooped to their fall.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>June 9.</i>&mdash;As an illustration of character I note that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</a></span>
-one of our sailor artillerymen, being desired to keep under
-cover and not put his head out to tempt a rifle bullet,
-grumbled at the prohibition, saying to his comrades:
-‘I say, Jack, they won’t let a fellow go and look where
-his own shot is. We ain’t afraid, we ain’t. That’s what
-I call hard lines.’</p>
-
-<p>“Lance-Corporal Quin, of the 47th, has been brought
-to notice for bravery. In one of the attacks made by
-the enemy on the quarries the Russians had some
-difficulty in bringing their men again to the scratch.
-At length one Russian officer succeeded in bringing on
-four men, which Corporal Quin perceiving, he made a
-dash out of the work, and with the butt-end of his
-musket brained one, bayoneted a second, and when the
-other two took to their heels he brought in the officer
-as a prisoner, having administered to him a gentle prick
-by way of quickening his movements.</p>
-
-<p>“After delivering him up he said to his comrades:
-‘There’s plenty more yonder, lads, if so be you’ve a mind
-to fetch in a prisoner or two.’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>June 20.</i>&mdash;A plan of attack was proposed&mdash;that the
-French were to assault the Malakoff and we the Redan;
-but though they got into the Malakoff, they were driven
-out again, with loss. As our 37th Regiment advanced
-they were met by a well-aimed fire of mitraille, which
-threw them into disorder.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor Colonel Zea in vain tried to steady them, exclaiming:
-‘This will never do! Where’s the bugler to
-call them back?’</p>
-
-<p>“But at that moment no bugler was to be found. In
-the gloom of early dawn the gallant old soldier by voice
-and gesture tried to reform his men, but as he ran to the
-head of the column a charge of the deadly missle passed,
-and he fell dead. Next day we had to ask for an armistice
-to bury our dead, which was not granted until<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</a></span>
-4 p.m. It was agonizing to see the wounded men who
-were lying out under a broiling sun, to behold them waving
-their caps or hands faintly towards our lines, over which
-they could see the white flag waving, and not to be able
-to help them. Many of them had lain there for thirty hours.</p>
-
-<p>“As I was riding round I came upon two of our men
-with sad faces.</p>
-
-<p>“‘What are you waiting here for?’ said I.</p>
-
-<p>“‘To go out for the Colonel, sir,’ was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>“‘What Colonel?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, Colonel Zea, to be sure, sir,’ said the good
-fellow, evidently surprised at my thinking there could
-be any other Colonel in the world.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! they liked him well. Under a brusque manner
-he concealed a most kind heart, and a soldier more
-devoted to his men and to his country never fell in battle.
-The Fusiliers were the first who had hospital huts. When
-other regiments were in need of every comfort Zea’s
-regiment had all that exertion and foresight could procure.
-I ride on, and find two Voltigeurs with a young
-English naval officer between them. They are taking
-him off to shoot him as a spy. He has not enough French
-to explain his position to his captors.</p>
-
-<p>“‘He tells us he is an officer of the <i>Viper</i>, that he got
-into the Mamelon by mistake.’ The matter is explained
-to our allies, who let him go with the best grace in the
-world. As to the attack which failed, we are disappointed,
-yet we do not despair; but we learn now that
-we are going to attack the Redan and Malakoff by sap
-and mine&mdash;a tedious process of many weeks.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>September 5.</i>&mdash;The Russians have evacuated the forts
-of Sebastopol and withdrawn to the north side of the
-harbour. The Crimean War is over!”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Sir W. Howard Russell’s “Letters from the Crimea.” By kind
-permission of Messrs. George Routledge and Sons, Ltd.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_X" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE INDIAN MUTINY&mdash;DELHI (1857-1858)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The Mutiny begins&mdash;A warning from a sepoy&mdash;A near thing&mdash;A noble
-act of a native officer&mdash;In camp at Delhi with no kit&mdash;A plan that
-failed&mdash;Our first check&mdash;Wilson in command&mdash;Seaton wounded&mdash;Arrival
-of Nicholson&mdash;Captures guns&mdash;The assault&mdash;The fate of
-the Princes&mdash;Pandy in a box.</p>
-
-<p>A rumour had been going through the bazaars of India
-that the British rule was to be limited to one hundred
-years from the date of the Battle of Plassey (1757). The
-sepoy troops had grown self-confident and arrogant
-through the victories they had won under English officers,
-and fancied that they held the destiny of India in their
-own hands. Then came the story that the cartridges
-of the new Enfield rifles, which were just then being
-introduced among the native troops, were greased with
-fat of beef or pork, and were thus rendered unclean for
-Mohammedan and Hindoo alike. The sepoys, or native
-troops, believed that the new cartridges were being given
-out solely for the purpose of destroying their caste, and
-so of introducing Christianity by force.</p>
-
-<p>Delhi, where the deposed King Bahadur Shah was
-living, was the centre and focus of rebellion; it was to
-Delhi that the first mutineers marched after killing their
-English officers. Sir Thomas Seaton has left us some
-picturesque stories of his part in the Mutiny. He had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</a></span>
-rejoined his native regiment at Rohtuck, forty-five miles
-from Delhi, after some years’ leave in England, and
-found the manners of the sepoy greatly changed for the
-worse. He writes:</p>
-
-<p>“On the 4th of June I was in the mess-tent writing
-to the Adjutant-General about the hopeless state of the
-regiment, when the native Adjutant came in and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Colonel, I wish particularly to speak to you.’</p>
-
-<p>“It was close upon 5 p.m., and, as several officers were
-in the tent, I went outside with the Adjutant.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Well, Shebbeare, what is it?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, Colonel, I have just heard from two of our
-drummers, who have their information from friends
-amongst the men, that the regiment is to mutiny to-night,
-murder the officers, and be off to Delhi.’</p>
-
-<p>“Though I expected this, it was startling enough to
-hear it was so close at hand. And now that the great
-difficulty stared me in the face, how, with this small body
-of officers, was I to meet and grapple with reckless and
-determined mutineers? But as this was not the time
-to flinch or show indecision, I said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Well, Shebbeare, let me see the men. I’ll make
-a few inquiries first. I will go to the hospital. Do you
-lounge out that way too.’</p>
-
-<p>“As I had been used to visit the hospital about this
-hour, my going there would excite no suspicion.</p>
-
-<p>“In a few minutes I had found out that it was too
-true that an outbreak was planned for that night. Meanwhile
-I addressed the Adjutant:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Now, Shebbeare, will you stand by me?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Yes, Colonel,’ replied the gallant fellow, ‘that I
-will.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Very well. Now, I’ll tell you what I propose to
-do. I will go on parade, and, as there is nothing like<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</a></span>
-facing a difficulty, I’ll tax them with their intended
-outbreak, and we will see what they will do. Tell the
-officers to look out.’”</p>
-
-<p>Seaton’s idea was that the men, finding he knew all
-about their plans, would be so disconcerted that they
-would put off the mutiny; we should probably gain a
-day or two of delay, and might hear that Delhi was taken
-or the mutineers defeated. So at sunset he went on
-parade, assembled the native officers in front, at some
-distance from their companies, and taxed them with
-their intended treachery. As he had expected, the sepoys
-were utterly confounded; they flatly denied the intended
-treachery, and swore by all their gods that they would
-be faithful to their salt, and that no harm should happen
-to the officers.</p>
-
-<p>The native officers then begged permission to appoint
-a guard to keep watch in the camp at night, as there
-might be some <i>badmashes</i> in the regiment.</p>
-
-<p>It was a dangerous experiment, but the only chance
-was to take things coolly, still seeming to trust the men,
-keeping at the same time a sharp look-out.</p>
-
-<p>It was Seaton’s duty to keep the regiment together as
-long as possible at any risk. The Commander-in-Chief
-was marching on Delhi with a small force hurriedly got
-together; to have placed at this critical moment a regiment
-of mutineers in his rear would simply have been
-destruction, for they could have fortified some spot on
-the road and so cut off supplies from our camp.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst he was taxing the native officers, the men of
-their companies were looking on&mdash;they were too far off
-to hear; but they took their cue from their officers and
-were quiet and respectful. Seaton left the circle of native
-officers, and went up and addressed each company,
-meeting with the same vows of fidelity.</p>
-
-<p>As he came from parade after this trying scene, some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</a></span>
-officers inquired anxiously: “What is it, Colonel? Is it
-all right?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes. I think our throats will not be cut to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>But his mind was not at ease until he had seen the
-guard for the night.</p>
-
-<p>However, a few days passed quietly enough; but on
-the 8th a curious thing happened. As Seaton was going
-in the evening to visit the hospital, and was crossing a
-ditch, a young sepoy gave him a hand and whispered in
-his ear:</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Sahib, when your highness’ people shall have
-regained the Empire, I will make my petition to your
-highness.”</p>
-
-<p>This was all he said, but Seaton could not help pondering
-on his meaning. Was this a warning to him of the coming
-outbreak of the regiment?</p>
-
-<p>Resistance was out of the question, as he had only
-twelve English officers with him and one English sergeant.
-He was tormented by the ever-recurring thought that not
-only the lives of his officers, but perhaps the safety of
-our little army, might be dependent on himself. “All I
-could do,” he says, “was to trust in God’s mercy and
-goodness.”</p>
-
-<p>The night of the 9th passed off quietly&mdash;all was still.
-In the morning he could detect nothing suspicious in camp.
-The men were civil and respectful to him personally.
-Some were parading for guard, some going to bathe,
-others preparing their food. Five of the young officers
-asked leave to go out shooting. Seaton had no
-objection, and they went. At 4 p.m., when he was in
-the usual camp hot-weather deshabille, all at once he was
-startled by a loud explosion. He ran out to see what
-was the matter, but neither saw nor heard anything
-strange&mdash;no crowd, not a sound, the men mostly sleeping<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</a></span>
-after their day’s meal. He was going on when the
-havildar-major (native sergeant-major) came rushing up
-to him. Catching him in his arms, he said in a very
-agitated voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Sahib, don’t go to the front.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“The Grenadiers are arming themselves. They have
-mutinied!”</p>
-
-<p>The hour for which he had trembled had come at last.
-He tried to collect one or two of the native officers, but
-in vain. The havildar-major entreated him to be off
-whilst there was time. While the grooms were saddling
-the horses they heard musket-shots, and the havildar
-rushed past him. Immediately the whole body of the
-Grenadiers burst out of their tents, firing and shouting,
-in order to rouse the regiment and hurry it into mutiny.</p>
-
-<p>The shouts and cries of terror, the galloping of horses,
-the report of muskets, all tended to confusion. Seaton
-had not time to take his sword, for the mutineers were
-within ten paces of him. He had got a few seconds’
-start, and in a mêlée like this a second makes all the
-difference between life and eternity.</p>
-
-<p>Just outside camp they overtook Major Drought, who
-was walking.</p>
-
-<p>The havildar instantly cried: “Colonel, the poor old
-fellow will be murdered. I’ll put him on my horse
-and run for it.”</p>
-
-<p>It was a noble and heroic act, for Shebbeare had been
-wounded by the mutineers. So they made Shebbeare
-get on the lee side of the Colonel’s horse; he laid hold of
-the stirrup, and off they went at a round canter.</p>
-
-<p>After running 400 yards he got blown, and they pulled
-up to a walk. Soon they found the officers waiting for
-them at a bend in the road; they were all unhurt. After
-a time they saw clouds of smoke ascending, and knew<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</a></span>
-that they were burning the tents. They kept on all
-night at a moderate pace. About 3 a.m. they heard a
-horseman coming along. Who could it be? They drew
-up and challenged.</p>
-
-<p>“Who is there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sowar” (trooper).</p>
-
-<p>“What sowar?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hodson Sahib Ka Sowar” (one of Captain Hodson’s
-troopers). And then, saluting, he continued: “Are you
-the Sahib log? I have a letter for Colonel Cheetun
-Sahib.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, come along; here is the Colonel Seaton.”</p>
-
-<p>Seaton read the note by the light of a cigar vehemently
-smoked by an officer. It was to the effect that we had
-driven the rebels from the ridge into Delhi, and that our
-camp was pitched in the cantonments. So now they
-were all right, and knew where to find their camp. At
-9 a.m. the Colonel dismounted at Sir H. Barnard’s tent.</p>
-
-<p>They were all surprised to see him, as they had been
-informed that he and his officers were all killed: the young
-officers who had gone out shooting had been so informed,
-and had ridden to Delhi before them with the news.</p>
-
-<p>Now all the belongings the Colonel had were his horse
-and the few clothes he stood in. He had to go round
-camp and beg: one gave him a coat, a shirt, and some
-cigars, another a sword and belt. He was made a member
-of the mess of the 1st E. B. Fusiliers, but had neither
-fork, spoon, plate, nor glass&mdash;for the mess merely provides
-food and dishes. However, he soon begged these
-or bought all he needed at a sale of an officer’s effects.</p>
-
-<p>“My first night’s rest was heavenly,” he says. “I
-heard distinctly the firing, but it did not disturb me.
-I was lulled by a feeling of security to which I had been
-a stranger for many nights before the 60th mutinied.
-No wonder my sleep was profound.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Delhi is situated on the right bank of the river Jumna.
-The walls are pear-shaped, on the river or eastern side
-rendered irregular by the excrescence of the old fort of
-Selimgurh. To the south the walls run to a point. Inland
-from Delhi is a ridge of rocks, which at its nearest point
-is about 1,400 yards from the walls. Our camp lay under
-the ridge, on the side away from the city; there were
-canals and swamps to protect us in rainy seasons. It
-was quite evident that a regular siege was out of the
-question, from the vast size of the place and from our
-want of guns, etc. A <i>coup de main</i> was our only resource.
-Accordingly a plan was drawn up by the Engineers and
-Hodson, and approved by the General. It was a
-hazardous step, but one and all were crying out “Take
-Delhi!”</p>
-
-<p>Nor was this cry to be wondered at. Delhi, once the
-capital of the great Mogul Empire in India, strongly
-fortified, and supplied with war material, was now in
-the possession of our own trained sepoys. The King,
-once our puppet, had placed himself at the head of the
-rebellion, and Delhi had become the focus of insurrection.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, there was a vehement desire in camp for
-instant vengeance on the traitors in the city, who had
-cruelly murdered their officers, our brethren in arms,
-with their wives and little ones. One bold stroke now,
-every one said, would make us masters of Delhi. At the
-appointed hour the troops began to move down to their
-allotted posts.</p>
-
-<p>All were waiting impatiently for the pickets from the
-ridge, but the proper time slipped by, and the assault
-was countermanded.</p>
-
-<p>The storm of indignation in camp at the failure of this
-bold design was frightful. But, as Colonel Norman justly
-remarked, “It was one of those happy interpositions in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</a></span>
-our behalf of which we had such numbers to be thankful
-for.”</p>
-
-<p>For, even if the rebels should have been driven out of
-Delhi, what if they rallied and returned in force? Our
-poor 3,000 men would have been swallowed up in the
-immensity of the city. The postponement of the assault
-gave the rebels full scope: it bred anarchy, confusion,
-and disorder, and the native trading population soon
-felt the difference between the violence and robbery of
-the sepoy domination and the peace and security they had
-enjoyed under us. But in camp the abandonment of the
-assault was followed by a period of despondency and gloom.</p>
-
-<p>In a few days cheering news came from the Punjab.
-The Chief Commissioner, John Lawrence, aided by worthy
-officers, had made all safe at the chief points of danger.
-All through the Punjab the Hindoo cavalry and sepoys
-were being disarmed; the magazines had been secured;
-the Sikhs and Punjabees, men who had no sympathy
-with the mutineers, were being enrolled and formed into
-corps and re-armed. With bold and daring hand, that
-“out of this nettle, danger, plucks the flower safety,”
-Lawrence was gathering as volunteers from the warlike
-frontier tribes all the restless, turbulent spirits who might
-have been bitter foes in extremity. He took them into
-pay, and made them eager to march on Delhi, to assist
-in its capture and share in its plunder.</p>
-
-<p>There were several sorties to repulse, and these small
-successes kept up the men’s spirits. In the first six
-weeks of the siege, or until the reinforcements began to
-flow in, night or day no man undressed, except for a
-few minutes for the necessary ablutions and changes of
-clothes, and this was not always possible. They lay down
-and slept in their clothes, with arms and ammunition
-either on or by their sides, ready to slip on the moment
-the alarm should be sounded.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The heat was fearful, yet day after day they had to
-stand for hours in the sun and hot wind, or, worst of all,
-to endure the torture of lying down on the burning rocks
-on the Ridge&mdash;baked by them on one side, whilst the sun
-was “doing” the other. Many an officer and man,
-struck by the sun and unable to rise, was carried off to
-hospital delirious and raving. The flies were in myriads,
-and added to their torments; they clung to hands and
-faces, they covered the food until it was uneatable,
-and they worried all incessantly until dusk. Many men
-had sunstroke twice; some who were wounded suffered
-from it also, and the great heat and fatigue began to tell
-on the soldiers, and sent them into hospital, from whence
-many were never to return.</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, food in camp was both abundant and
-good; the troops got their meals and their dram of grog
-with great regularity.</p>
-
-<p>It was quite amusing to see the cook-boys of companies
-bring up the dinners to their respective squads. Battery
-or advanced picket, it was all the same to them; cannonade
-or no cannonade&mdash;it made no difference, they were sure
-to come.</p>
-
-<p>A large flat shallow basket held twenty or more metal
-plates; on each a piece of beef and some nicely browned
-potatoes, all smoking and frizzling from a few bits of
-live charcoal in a small earthen pan under each.</p>
-
-<p>On the 18th, the 15th and 30th Native Infantry, with
-the famous Jellalabad battery&mdash;Abbott’s battery that was&mdash;marched
-into Delhi, to the great joy of the mutineers
-and the King.</p>
-
-<p>At noon on the 19th the rebels began to pour out of
-Delhi in great numbers. The alarm was sounded, and
-in a few minutes every one was at his post; but as no enemy
-appeared, the troops were allowed to return to their
-tents.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A gun fired in their rear startled the English; then
-galloped up a trooper to say that the Pandies (as they
-called the rebels) were killing the grass-cutters and
-carrying off the cattle. Then troops were sent out, and
-fighting went on long after dusk. The casualty list was
-heavy: a limber of Scott’s battery was blown up, while
-one of Turner’s guns was disabled and left on the field.
-“I well remember the gloomy impression which the
-result of this fight made on our minds. It was our first
-check.”</p>
-
-<p>Next morning a strong party was sent out to the scene
-of action. To their great surprise, there was Turner’s
-gun; there also a gun and two ammunition waggons
-abandoned by the rebels. There were so many evidences
-on the field that the enemy had suffered severely that
-all gloom and despondency were quite relieved.</p>
-
-<p>This was the most trying period of the whole siege.
-If an officer sat down to write a letter or to shave himself
-the alarm was sure to sound, and he was compelled to
-throw down his pen or razor, buckle on his sword, and
-rush out to his post.</p>
-
-<p>The 23rd of June was the centenary of the Battle of
-Plassey, and their spies told the English officers they were
-to be attacked at all points. They began to fight at
-sunrise, and, strange to say, in the very height of the
-mêlée our first reinforcements marched into camp! Three
-times the rebels assaulted our position, each time being
-repulsed with great loss. “We drove them back, and
-then we began a series of attacks on houses, gardens and
-enclosures filled with mutineers, whom we cleared out;
-our heavy guns hastened or retarded their flight into the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>“I look upon this day as the turning-point in the
-siege: our first reinforcements had come in, and we had
-gained an important victory over the rebels.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Soon was seen a great smoke beyond Delhi: they were
-burning their dead!</p>
-
-<p>“Of the many interpositions of a merciful Providence
-in our behalf during this wonderful siege,” says Seaton,
-“I think the most striking was this&mdash;that the rains
-were so abundant and the season so favourable that
-cholera was in a comparatively mild form. The rains
-filled the Jumna on one side and the canal on the other,
-thus forming, as it were, a wall to the right and left of
-our road to the Punjab, guarding it more effectually than
-many thousand men could have done.”</p>
-
-<p>During the night of the 4th it rained in torrents.
-Colonel Seaton was driven into the Flagstaff Tower
-for shelter, but could only get standing room, so he
-went and visited the pickets, and sentries, and returned
-soaked through and through. He then lighted a cigar
-and stood about till daylight, when the picket turned out
-and he turned in and slept till sunrise.</p>
-
-<p>At sunrise he was relieved, after thirty-six hours on
-duty. On getting into camp he found his own tent
-pitched, his servants all waiting, clean clothes, washing
-tackle, a clean breakfast table, and Hodson, with a smiling
-face, waiting for him.</p>
-
-<p>“We felt like men who had just inherited large
-fortunes! My things had been sent on from Alipore.
-Oh! it was a comfort to get my own clothes and uniform,
-to be able to appear in camp once more dressed like a
-gentleman, and to have the attendance of my own
-servant.”</p>
-
-<p>On the night of the 5th of July General Sir H. Barnard
-died of cholera, brought on by fatigue and anxiety of
-mind.</p>
-
-<p>General Wilson began on a new system. They no longer
-attacked the villages, losing men and gaining little. They
-were now to remain on the defensive, and to burn or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</a></span>
-bury all corpses. For it was sickening to see the dogs
-and jackals, disturbed by the burying-parties, slowly
-waddling off, fat and gorged with their horrible feast.</p>
-
-<p>Until buried the rebels were still enemies: their effluvia
-carried death into our ranks. As a sergeant once said:
-“Them Pandies, sir, is wuss when they are killed.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th they received the first intelligence of
-the Cawnpore tragedy&mdash;of Wheeler’s capitulation and
-destruction&mdash;causing great depression in camp and more
-cholera.</p>
-
-<p>They had been clearing the gardens of rebels beyond
-the Metcalfe grounds when Seaton saw two of Coke’s
-men coming along, carrying Captain Law, who had just
-been killed. He stopped to help them, and was stooping
-to take the men’s muskets when he was struck full on
-the left breast by a musket-ball fired at thirty-five paces’
-distance. The blow was so violent that he was nearly
-knocked off his horse, and for some seconds could not
-breathe, the blood rushing from his mouth in foam.
-He naturally thought he was done for, but as soon as
-his breath came again, he opened his clothes and found out
-the course of the ball.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing that no air issued from the wound, he secured his
-sword and pistol, and, dismounting from his horse, led
-him over a broken wall, and was on the point of falling
-headlong in a faint when the two men he had tried to
-help took him under the arms and got him to the Metcalfe
-picket.</p>
-
-<p>The men there ran to meet him: one gave him a drop
-of rum and water, others brought a <i>charpoy</i> (native
-bedstead) and carried him off to the doctor. On the
-way he met Hodson, who galloped off at once to camp,
-so when they reached his tent, he found the doctor waiting
-and everything ready. The ball had struck on a rib,
-fractured it, driven it down on the lung, and then had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</a></span>
-passed out at his back. Hodson cared for him with the
-affection of a brother. He was to lie quite still and not
-speak for a week.</p>
-
-<p>On the 1st of August the doctor took off this embargo&mdash;Seaton
-was recovering rapidly. In Delhi, our spies said,
-the Pandies were all jealous of one another and would
-not act in concert. The rebel sepoy carried in a purse
-round his waist the gold he had made by selling his
-share of our plundered treasures; this gold made him
-unwilling to risk his life in battle and made him suspect
-his comrades.</p>
-
-<p>Their wounded were in a horrible state: there were
-no surgeons to perform any operations, no attendants
-to bring food or water. The limbs of some were rotting
-off with gangrene, others had wounds filled with maggots
-from neglect; all were bitterly contrasting their lot with
-the life of comfort they had enjoyed under British government.
-The old King, too, was in despair, and vented
-it in some poor poetry.</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th of August there was a tremendous explosion
-in the city, and next day they heard that a powder manufactory
-had blown up, killing 400 people.</p>
-
-<p>“About this time”&mdash;to quote the words of one who
-wrote a history of this siege&mdash;“a stranger of very striking
-appearance was remarked visiting all our pickets, examining
-everything, making most searching inquiries about
-their strength and history. His attire gave no clue to
-his rank; it evidently never gave the owner a thought.
-He was a man cast in a giant mould, with massive chest
-and powerful limbs, and an expression ardent and commanding,
-with a dash of roughness, features of stern
-beauty, a long black beard, and deep, sonorous voice.
-There was something of immense strength, talent, and
-resolution in his whole gait and manner, and a power of
-ruling men on high occasions that no one could escape<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</a></span>
-noticing at once. His imperial air, which never left him,
-and which would have been thought arrogant in one of less
-imposing mien, sometimes gave offence to his own countrymen,
-but made him almost worshipped by the pliant
-Asiatics. Such a man would have risen rapidly from the
-ranks of the legions to the throne of the Cæsars; but in
-the service of the British it was thought wonderful that
-he became a Brigadier-General when, by seniority, he
-could only have been a Captain.”</p>
-
-<p>The stranger thus described was Nicholson, the best
-man that Sir John Lawrence possessed in the Punjab.
-He had ridden ahead of his force to consult with General
-Wilson before Delhi. On the following day he returned
-to his force, On the 14th he again rode into the English
-camp at the head of his column&mdash;a splendid addition of
-4,200 men to the besiegers. The small force upon the
-ridge now amounted to 8,000 men of all arms; the siege-train
-was on its way, and despair began to settle down
-on the rebels in the city and on the Princes.</p>
-
-<p>They had heard of the defeat of the Nana, and of
-Havelock’s entry into Cawnpore; they knew that fresh
-troops were coming from Calcutta, and that Nicholson,
-whose name had spread far and wide, had arrived in our
-camp with a large force. They knew, too, that this
-compact force of white men was swayed by one arm and
-governed by one will. Every soul in Delhi knew that
-John Lawrence directed the storm that was gathering
-around them, and the cold, dread shadow of the coming
-event was creeping over the shuddering city. A look
-through our camp would have shaken the courage of the
-boldest rebel. Instead of tents half filled with sick men,
-our camp now was teeming with soldiers of various races,
-all cheerful and confident. Hodson’s men were mostly
-Sikhs, tall and slender, yet wiry and strong; their
-clothes of ash colour, with wrist-band, turban, and sash<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</a></span>
-over the left shoulder, all of bright crimson. In contrast
-with these were Coke’s men, more wild and picturesque,
-with large turbans of dark blue and enormous waist-bands.
-Their lofty stature, long hair, bright black
-eyes, sandalled feet, and bold look, would have made them
-remarkable anywhere.</p>
-
-<p>Our artillery park, too, was filled with guns captured
-from the mutineers. The battery-train was on its way,
-but it was reported by spies that a very strong body of
-rebels was about to leave the city to attempt its capture.
-Nicholson was sent out with 700 cavalry and 1,200
-infantry, and three troops of horse artillery, to head them
-off. He returned in triumph, bringing with him thirteen
-captured guns. In Nicholson’s fight the following
-incident occurred, which shows a little bit of the native
-character:</p>
-
-<p>A rebel native officer was overtaken in his flight
-from the field by a man of Green’s Punjab regiment.
-The officer immediately went down on his knees in the
-midst of a pool of water, and putting up his hands, roared
-out: “I’ve been forty years in the Company’s service,
-and thirteen years a Subadar. Spare&mdash;oh, spare my life!”
-With an execration and a very rude term of abuse the
-Punjabee thrust his bayonet into the traitor.</p>
-
-<p>On the 4th of September the long-expected battery-train
-arrived in camp, with an ample supply of shot,
-shell, and powder for all the guns.</p>
-
-<p>The activity in the Engineers’ camp was now pushed
-to the utmost, and all the material for trenches and batteries
-was accumulated with great rapidity.</p>
-
-<p>To prevent the men plundering, the General promised
-that all the captured property should be prize, and prize
-agents were appointed.</p>
-
-<p>We were about to throw a small force of about 4,500
-men into a city seven miles in circumference, a perfect<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</a></span>
-maze of narrow streets and gullies, abounding in strong
-blocks of houses, where one might expect that the defence
-would be obstinate.</p>
-
-<p>On the night of the 7th 1,300 men in working and
-covering parties were sent down with the Engineers to
-open trenches and erect the first siege-battery against
-Delhi. On the 12th the whole of the batteries were
-completed, and in full play on the parts of the walls
-intended to be breached or shelled. The parapet was
-soon knocked off, each block of masonry rarely requiring
-more than two well-planted shots to demolish it completely.
-There was outside the wall a ditch 25 feet
-wide and 16 feet deep, before crossing which it was
-necessary that all the parapets and bastions should be
-cleared of their defenders. The army inside Delhi
-numbered at least 40,000 men; the besiegers only 11,000,
-after all their reinforcements had come in. Of these
-only 3,300 were Europeans. Our heavy guns were
-54 in number, while those in the city amounted to 300.</p>
-
-<p>There was considerable risk in attempting to storm
-under such conditions. One of the batteries was only
-160 yards from the Water Bastion, and the heavy guns
-had to be dragged up to it, through the open, under a
-heavy fire of musketry. Baird Smith, the Chief Engineer,
-prepared all the plans; Alexander Taylor superintended
-their execution. With the very first shot the masonry
-of the fortifications began to fly. Fifty-four guns and
-mortars belched out havoc on the city. Cheers rang out
-from our men as the smoke cleared away, and they saw
-the dreaded bastions crumbling into ruins, while the
-defenders were forced to seek shelter far away in the city.
-For the next forty-eight hours there was no cessation of
-the roar of artillery. The worn-out gunners would throw
-themselves down to snatch a short sleep beneath their
-very guns, while volunteers filled their place; then, spring<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</a></span>ing
-up again, they would go on with their task with fresh
-ardour.</p>
-
-<p>The sepoys were fighting on with the courage of despair.
-They ran out light guns to enfilade our batteries; they
-manned the gardens in front of the city with sharp-shooters
-to pick off our gunners.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening of the 13th the breaches in the walls
-were to be examined, and so at dusk Lieutenants
-Greathed, Home, Medley, and Lang, of the Engineers,
-were sent to execute their dangerous mission. As
-the hour struck ten the batteries ceased firing, and the
-four young officers, slipping out of the gardens with a
-small covering party of the 60th Rifles, crept forward
-to the edge of the glacis, Greathed and Home going to
-the Water, Medley and Lang to the Cashmere Bastion.
-A ladder was quietly lowered, Medley and Lang descended,
-and found themselves on the edge of the ditch; but the
-enemy heard them, and several ran towards them. The
-Englishmen saw that the breach was practicable, so rose
-and ran back, being followed by a harmless volley.
-Greathed and Home returned safely also, and reported
-that all was favourable.</p>
-
-<p>Then was the thrilling order made known: “The
-assault at 3 a.m.!”</p>
-
-<p>No. 1. column, under Nicholson, were to assault the
-Cashmere Bastion; No. 2, under Colonel James, the Water
-Bastion; No. 3, under Colonel Campbell, to enter by the
-Cashmere Gate; No. 4, under Major Reid, to attack
-Kissengunge.</p>
-
-<p>To Nicholson fell the post of honour. Sir John
-Lawrence had sent him down “to take Delhi,” and the
-whole army was willing that he should have that honour.
-He was to head the first column in person. Our batteries
-redoubled their roar whilst the columns were taking up
-their positions, throwing shells to drive the enemy away<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</a></span>
-from the breaches. The morning was just breaking;
-the thunder of our artillery was at its loudest, when all
-at once it stopped. Every one could hear his heart beat.</p>
-
-<p>The Rifles now ran forward as skirmishers to cover
-the advance of the assaulting columns, and the men,
-who had been lying on the ground, now sprang up, and,
-with a cheer, made for the walls. They crossed the
-glacis, and left it behind them dotted with wounded
-men; they went down into the ditch&mdash;many to stay
-there; but the ladders were planted against the scarp,
-and very soon the dangers of the escalade were over.
-Soon the whole line of ramparts which faced the ridge
-was ours; the British flag was once more run up upon the
-Cabul Gate.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile at the Cashmere Gate there had been some
-delay. Lieutenants Home and Salkeld, with some sergeants
-and native sappers, had at sunrise crossed the
-beams of the bridge, from which the rebels had removed
-the planking, and in broad daylight, without a particle
-of cover, had laid their powder-bags. The enemy were
-so daunted by this daring act that, when they saw Home
-coming, they hastily shut the wicket, and he and his
-men laid the bags and jumped down into the ditch
-unhurt.</p>
-
-<p>Salkeld was not so fortunate. The rebels fired on him
-from the top of the gateway, and he fell. Sergeant
-Burgess caught up the portfire, but was shot dead.
-Carmichael fired the fuse, and fell mortally wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Sergeant Smith, finding the fuse was alight, threw
-himself into the ditch, and instantly the gate was burst
-open with a tremendous crash.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_7" src="images/i_165.jpg" width="376" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">A Daring Deed: Blowing-up the Cashmere Gate, Delhi</p>
-
-<p>In broad daylight, and without a particle of cover, Lieuts. Home and Salkeld, with
-a few sappers, laid their powder bags and fired them. Salkeld and some of the others
-were shot before they could escape.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The bugler sounded the advance, and with a cheer
-our men rushed through the gateway, and met the other
-columns, who had carried their respective breaches.
-The Lahore Gate alone defied our attempts, and Nicholson<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</a></span>
-called for volunteers to follow him through the narrow
-street towards the Lahore Gate.</p>
-
-<p>As he strode forward, sword in hand, though there
-was death in every window and on every house-top,
-his great stature marked him out as a target for the
-enemy, and he fell, mortally wounded, the one man
-England wanted most.</p>
-
-<p>The long autumn day was over, and we were in Delhi,
-but had not taken it. Sixty-six officers and 1,100 men
-had fallen, while not a sixth part of the city was ours.
-Many of our men were lying drunk in the shops. Had
-the sepoys possessed a General, they might have recovered
-the ridge, and taken our whole camp, defended
-as it was mainly by the sick and wounded.</p>
-
-<p>On the next day, by order of General Wilson, vast
-quantities of beer, wine, and brandy were destroyed.
-On the 16th active operations were resumed. By
-sapping gradually from house to house we managed to
-avoid street fighting and slowly pressed the rebels back
-into the ever-narrowing part of the city from which, like
-rats, they streamed.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst Seaton was in the Cashmere Gateway, he saw
-some artillerymen who were on duty there rummaging
-about. One of them was looking into a long arm-chest,
-when all at once he slammed down the lid, sat upon it
-sharp, and roared out: “Hi! Bill, run! be quick! Here’s
-a devil of a Pandy in the box!”</p>
-
-<p>Bill lost no time in attending to his comrade’s request,
-and others running up to see what it was, they pulled out
-of the box a fine powerful sepoy, who was taken at once
-to the ditch and disposed of without more ceremony.</p>
-
-<p>On the 18th, between 9 and 10 a.m., there was an
-eclipse of the sun. There is little doubt that this had a
-great effect on the minds of the superstitious natives,
-for they now began to leave the city in streams.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 20th, as the city in the direction
-of the palace seemed to be deserted, Colonel Jones came
-down with a column; a powder-bag was applied to the
-palace gates, a few defenders were slain, and the British
-flag was hoisted.</p>
-
-<p>That night the mess dinner was laid in the celebrated
-Dewan Khas, the marble building that Moore describes
-in “Lalla Rookh.”</p>
-
-<p>The inner room is the King’s throne-room, and round
-the walls, inlaid with black marble, are the famous
-words: “If there be an elysium on earth, it is this.”</p>
-
-<p>The habits of the late King and family rendered that
-elysium a very dirty one, though the white marble was
-inlaid with coloured stones in flowers and arabesques.
-The houses and huts in which the Princes of the royal
-blood lived with their wives and children were a perfect
-rabbit-warren, so closely packed were they. The exterior
-walls enclosing the palace are 60 feet high, and built
-of red sandstone, loopholed and crenellated, and make a
-noble appearance.</p>
-
-<p>But the squalor and filth in the whole place were
-inconceivable. As none of the Princes could engage in
-any business, the pittance they had to live on barely
-supplied the necessaries of life. Seaton saw some of the
-Princes. He says: “There was no trace of nobility, either
-of birth or of mind, in their faces. They were stamped
-with everything vile, gross, ignoble, sensual. Noble
-blood is a fine thing, but a noble heart is better, and
-will shine through the most forbidding features; but
-these wretches, with the cold, calm hand of death on them,
-showed nothing of kingly descent or nobility of heart,
-their countenances being as forbidding as the despicable
-passions in which they had indulged could make them.”</p>
-
-<p>It was laughable to see what rubbish was found in
-the palace. In one room were found at least 200 pair<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</a></span>
-of those trousers which Mohammedan ladies wear instead
-of petticoats. Some of these were so stiff with brocaded
-silk that they must have needed a hearty kick with each
-foot at every step.</p>
-
-<p>The quantities of pots and pans which they had amassed
-would have furnished a whole street of dealers; then, there
-were telescopes and guns and other valuables.</p>
-
-<p>Much blame has been cast on Hodson for his severity
-to the royal family. He fetched out the King and three
-Princes from the tomb where they had taken refuge.
-The Princes were in a native carriage, and as they drew
-near to Delhi an immense crowd surged round them,
-which was increasing every moment, pressing on Hodson’s
-few men. They could hardly proceed. Hodson, perhaps
-fearing a rescue, ordered the three prisoners to get out.
-The poor wretches, seeing that something was about
-to happen, put up their hands and fell at his feet, begging
-that their lives might be spared.</p>
-
-<p>Hodson merely said, “Choop ruho” (be silent); “take
-off your upper garments.” They did so. Then, “Get into
-the cart.” They obeyed.</p>
-
-<p>Hodson then took a carbine from one of his men,
-and shot them all three. Then, turning to his men, he
-said: “These three men whom I have just shot are the
-three Princes who contrived and commenced the slaughter
-of our innocent women and children, and thus retributive
-vengeance has fallen on them.”</p>
-
-<p>The crowd, overawed, parted, and the carriage passed
-on. The bodies were exposed on the very spot where
-our unfortunate countrymen had been exposed. It
-seems cruel and vindictive, but we are judging in security.
-Hodson had an angry people to daunt, and their sense of
-justice to satisfy.</p>
-
-<p>One must do our soldiers the justice to say that, though
-infuriated by the slaughter of their officers and country<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</a></span>men,
-with their wives and children, inflamed by the
-news of the Cawnpore massacre, not an old man, not a
-woman or child, was wilfully hurt by them. As Seaton
-was waiting on the 20th by the Palace Gate, some soldiers
-were bringing along an old man, whom they held by the
-arms. He went up and said to them: “Remember you
-are Christian men, and he is very old.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, sir!” was the reply, “we doesn’t forget that. We
-don’t mean him no harm. We only wants a bit of
-baccy.”</p>
-
-<p>So he let them go on, and in a few minutes saw them
-stuffing their pipes, and the old fellow genially bringing
-a coal to light them.</p>
-
-<p>“I have seen hundreds of instances where the greatest
-humanity and kindness were shown, both to young and
-old, as well as to females, by our noble-hearted fellows,
-even in their wildest moments.”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Major-General Sir Thomas Seaton’s “From Cadet to Colonel.”
-By kind permission of Messrs. G. Routledge and Sons.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XI" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE DEFENCE OF LUCKNOW (<span class="smcap">31st of May to 25th of
-September, 1857</span>)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Firing at close quarters&mdash;Adventures of fugitives&mdash;Death of Sir H.
-Lawrence&mdash;His character&mdash;Difficulty of sending letters&mdash;Mines
-and counter-mines&mdash;Fulton killed&mdash;Signs of the relief coming&mdash;A
-great welcome&mdash;Story of the escape from Cawnpore.</p>
-
-<p>For about ten days previous to the outbreak at Lucknow
-daily reports were made that an <i>émeute</i> was intended,
-and Sir Henry Lawrence, the brother of Sir John Lawrence,
-had ordered all kinds of stores to be bought and
-stored. The ladies and children had been removed from
-the cantonments to the Residency in the city, which was
-already occupied by a party of the 32nd foot and two
-guns.</p>
-
-<p>The 9 p.m. gun on the 30th of May was evidently the
-signal for the mutiny to begin, as a few minutes after
-it had been fired, whilst Sir Henry and his staff were at
-dinner at the Residency, a sepoy came running in, and
-reported a disturbance in the lines.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Henry took two guns and a company of the 32nd,
-and took post on the road leading to the town. Meanwhile
-bands of insurgents began to plunder and burn our
-officers’ bungalows. Many officers had wonderful escapes
-from death; some were killed by the rebels. Muchee
-Bhawun, the residence of the late King, had been selected<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</a></span>
-as a fitting place of security and retreat: it was being
-strengthened and supplied with stores.</p>
-
-<p>On <i>June 10</i> houses and buildings around began to be
-demolished; tents were set apart for the European
-refugees who arrived daily from the districts.</p>
-
-<p>On <i>June 12</i> the military police mutinied in a body,
-and went off to Cawnpore; they were pursued for eight
-miles and about twenty were killed.</p>
-
-<p>On <i>June 15</i> a hundred barrels of gunpowder were
-brought from the Muchee Bhawun and buried in the
-Residency enclosure; twenty-three lacs of rupees were
-also buried in front of the Residency to save the use of
-sentries. Cash payments were now suspended, the men
-being paid by promissory notes.</p>
-
-<p>On <i>June 20</i> large stacks of firewood, covered with
-earth, were placed to protect the front of the Residency:
-they formed an embankment 6 feet high, and embrasures
-were cut through them for the guns, of which there
-were four 9-pounders on that side.</p>
-
-<p>A letter arrived from Cawnpore giving very bad
-news. The enemy had shelled them for the last eight
-days with fearful effect within their crowded trenches,
-and one-third of their number had been killed. More
-guns are brought in. They hear that eight or ten
-regiments of rebels are within twenty miles of Lucknow.</p>
-
-<p>On <i>June 28</i> Mrs. Dorin, wife of Lieutenant Dorin,
-arrived at evening in a country cart, disguised as a native
-and accompanied by some clerks. The enemy are nine
-miles off. Though a force was sent out to meet them,
-we had to retire before overwhelming numbers, with the
-loss of the 8-inch howitzer and three 9-pounders.</p>
-
-<p>The rebels came boldly on, investing the English on
-all sides, and firing from all the houses round, which
-they rapidly loopholed.</p>
-
-<p><i>July 1.</i>&mdash;We managed to send message to blow up<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</a></span>
-the Muchee Bhawun fort and come to the Residency
-at 12 p.m., bringing the treasure and guns. We opened
-fire from our batteries in order to distract the attention
-of the enemy from them.</p>
-
-<p>At 12.15 they were at the Lower Water Gate. Here
-there was some delay, as the gates had not yet been
-opened. A very serious accident had nearly happened,
-for the leading men, finding the gate closed, shouted out,
-“Open the gates!” but the artillerymen at the guns
-above, which covered the entrance, mistook the words
-for “Open with grape,” and were on the point to fire
-when an officer ran up and put them right. The whole
-force came in safely, not a shot being fired. The explosion
-which had been ordered had not yet taken place,
-but soon a tremor of the earth, a volume of fire, a terrific
-report, and a mass of black smoke shooting up into the
-air announced to Lucknow that 240 barrels of gunpowder
-and 594,000 rounds of ball and gun ammunition
-had completed the destruction of Muchee Bhawun, which
-we had fortified with so much labour.</p>
-
-<p>Strange stories were told by some of the refugees
-from outlying districts. Here is one told by the wife
-of a surgeon: “I heard a number of shots fired in our
-station, and looking out, I saw my husband driving furiously
-from the mess-house. I ran to him, and, catching
-up my child, got into the buggy. At the mess-house
-we found all the officers assembled, with sixty sepoys
-who had remained faithful.</p>
-
-<p>“As we went our homes were seen to be on fire. Next
-morning our sepoy escort deserted us. We were fired on
-by matchlock men and lost one officer. We had no food.
-An officer kindly lent us a horse. We were very faint.
-Our party now was only nine gentlemen, two children,
-the sergeant, and his wife. On the 20th Captain Scott
-took my little two-year-old Lottie on to his horse. Soon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</a></span>
-after sunrise we were followed by villagers armed with
-clubs and spears. One of them struck Captain Scott’s
-horse on the leg. He galloped off with Lottie, and my
-poor husband never saw his child again.</p>
-
-<p>“We rode on several miles, keeping away from villages,
-and then crossed the river. Our thirst was extreme.
-Soon I saw water in a ravine. I climbed down the steep
-descent. Our only drinking-vessel was M.’s cap (which
-had once been a sepoy’s). Our horse got water and I
-bathed my neck. I had no stockings and my feet were
-torn and blistered. My husband was very weak, and,
-I thought, dying. He wished me good-bye as he lay on
-the ground. My brain seemed burnt up: no tears came.
-Our horse cantered away, so that escape was cut off.
-We sat down on the ground waiting for death. Poor
-fellow! he was very weak; his thirst was frightful, and I
-went to get him water. Some villagers came and took
-my rupees and watch. I took off my wedding-ring,
-twisted it in my hair and replaced the guard. I tore off
-the skirt of my dress to bring water in; but it was no use,
-for when I returned, my beloved’s eyes were fixed, and,
-though I called and tried to restore him and poured water
-into his mouth, it only rattled in his throat. He never
-spoke to me again, and he gradually sank down and
-died. I was alone. In an hour or so about thirty
-villagers came. They dragged me out of the ravine and
-took off my jacket; then they dragged me to a village,
-mocking me all the way. The whole village came to
-look at me. I lay down outside the door of a hut. They
-had dozens of cows, and yet refused me milk. When
-night came and the village was quiet, some old woman
-brought me a leafful of rice. The next morning a
-neighbouring Rajah sent a palanquin and a horseman to
-fetch me, who told me that a little child and three sahibs
-had come to his master’s house. That little child was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</a></span>
-my Lottie! She was sorely blistered, but, thank God!
-alive and well.”</p>
-
-<p>That is the sort of experience some ladies went through&mdash;ladies
-that had never before known what thirst or privation
-or insult was like.</p>
-
-<p><i>July 2.</i>&mdash;About 8 a.m. Sir Henry returned to the
-Residency and lay down on his bed. Soon after an
-8-inch shell from the enemy’s howitzer entered the room
-at the window and exploded. A fragment struck the
-Brigadier-General on the upper part of the right thigh
-near the hip, inflicting a fearful wound.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Wilson, who was standing alongside the bed
-with one knee on it, reading a memorandum to Sir Henry,
-was knocked down by falling bricks. Mr. Lawrence,
-Sir Henry’s nephew, had an equally narrow escape,
-but was not hurt. The fourth person in the room, a
-native servant, lost one of his feet by a fragment of the
-shell. The ceiling and the punkah all came down, and
-the dust and smoke prevented anyone seeing what had
-happened.</p>
-
-<p>Neither Sir Henry nor his nephew uttered a sound,
-and Captain Wilson, as soon as he recovered from the
-concussion, called out in alarm: “Sir Henry, are you
-hurt?”</p>
-
-<p>Twice he thus called out and got no reply. After
-the third time Sir Henry said in a low tone: “I am
-killed.”</p>
-
-<p>His bed was being soaked with blood. Some soldiers
-of the 32nd soon came in and placed Sir Henry in a chair.
-When the surgeon came he saw that human aid was
-useless. Lucknow and England had lost what could
-never be replaced. For all who ever came in contact
-with Sir Henry Lawrence recognized in him a man of
-unstained honour, a lover of justice, pure, unselfish and
-noble. His successor, Brigadier Inglis, wrote of him:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</a></span>
-“Few men have ever possessed to the same extent the
-power which he enjoyed of winning the hearts of all those
-with whom he came in contact.” He gained also by his
-frankness the trust of the natives, who said of him:
-“When Sir Henry looks twice up to heaven and once
-down to earth, and then strokes his beard, he knows
-what to do.” His dying wish was that, if any epitaph
-were placed on his tomb, it should be this: “Here lies
-Henry Lawrence, who tried to do his duty.” He had
-indeed tried to do his duty towards the defence of
-Lucknow. Three weeks before anyone else thought of a
-siege he began to collect supplies, and even paid for them
-much over their market value. He collected and buried
-much treasure in the grounds of the Residency; he
-stored up in underground cellars guns and mortars,
-shot and shell and grain; strengthened the outworks,
-and cleared the ground of small buildings around. Even
-then the assailants and the besieged were quite close
-to each other, and no man on either side dared expose
-himself to fire his musket: they fired through loopholes
-in the walls. This placed a never-ending strain on the
-besieged, for they never knew when to expect an assault.
-On the one side of a narrow lane were myriads of swarthy
-foemen, on the other side a few hundreds, who were
-bound always to be ready, day and night, to meet a storming
-party. All through the siege officers and men alike
-stood sentry; all bore an equal burden of toil and fighting.</p>
-
-<p>The stench, too, from dead animals was dreadful:
-they had so few servants, and the fighting men were so
-harassed, that they were helpless to bury them.</p>
-
-<p>Heavy showers night and day kept the garrison
-drenched to the skin, and they had no change of clothes.
-The sick and wounded were much crowded, as they could
-not use the upper story of the hospital because it was
-under fire of round shot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><i>August 12.</i>&mdash;A letter to General Havelock, rolled up
-and put inside a quill, was despatched by the hands of
-an old woman. She left the position about 9 p.m.,
-and it was hoped she would be permitted to pass the
-enemy’s sentries. During the past forty-five days they
-had sent by different hands, in a similar manner, some
-twenty letters. To only one of these was any reply
-received.</p>
-
-<p><i>August 18.</i>&mdash;At daylight the enemy exploded a large
-mine under one of the principal posts. The three officers
-and three sentries on the top of the house were blown up
-into the air; the guard below were all buried in the ruins.
-The officers, though much stunned, recovered and escaped.
-A clear breach had been made in our defences to the
-extent of 30 feet in breadth. One of the enemy’s leaders
-sprung on the top of the breach and called on his comrades
-to follow; but when he and another had been shot
-the rest hung back. Boxes, doors, planks, etc., were
-rapidly carried down to make cover to protect the men.</p>
-
-<p><i>August 23.</i>&mdash;There was work nightly for at least 300
-men, as they had the defences to repair daily, mines
-to countermine, guns to remove, corpses to bury, rations
-to serve out. The Europeans were not capable of much
-exertion, as from want of sleep, hard work, and
-constant exposure, their bodily strength was greatly
-diminished. The ladies had to be removed, as the upper
-story of Mr. Gubbins’ house was no longer safe, owing
-to the number of round shot through it. It was difficult
-to find quarters for them, every place being so crowded,
-and the ladies were already four and five together in small,
-badly ventilated native dwellings. Dreadful smells pervaded
-the whole place, from the half-buried bodies of
-men, horses, and bullocks, and also from the drains.</p>
-
-<p><i>September 9.</i>&mdash;During the night a shell exploded in a
-room occupied by a lady and some children, and, though<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</a></span>
-almost every article in the room was destroyed, they all
-escaped unhurt. Finding that the enemy were rapidly
-mining towards the Cawnpore battery, they sprung a
-mine containing 200 pounds of powder. The effect was
-tremendous, and it evidently astonished the enemy to
-see their miners going up skywards in fragments.</p>
-
-<p>As the uniforms wore out they clothed themselves as
-they could. One officer had a coat made out of an old
-billiard cloth; another wore a shirt made out of a floor-cloth.
-They had no tobacco, and had to smoke dried tea-leaves.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>September 14.</i>&mdash;A grievous loss to-day: Captain Fulton,
-of the Engineers, while reconnoitring from a battery, was
-killed by a round shot which struck him on the head.
-He had conducted all the engineering operations of the
-siege for a long time. He was a highly gifted, brave and
-chivalrous officer, and a great favourite.”</p>
-
-<p><i>September 22.</i>&mdash;About 11 p.m. Ungud, pensioner, returned
-to Lucknow, bringing a letter containing the glad
-tidings that the relieving force, under General Outram,
-had crossed the Ganges, and would arrive in a few days.</p>
-
-<p>His arrival and the cheering news he brought of speedy
-aid was well timed, for daily desertions of servants were
-becoming the rule. All the garrison were greatly elated
-at the news, and on many of the sick and wounded the
-speedy prospect of a change of air and security exercised
-a most beneficial effect.</p>
-
-<p><i>September 25.</i>&mdash;About 11 a.m. increasing agitation was
-visible among the people in the town. An hour later they
-heard guns and saw the smoke. All the garrison was on
-the alert; the excitement amongst many of the officers
-and men was quite painful to witness. At 1.30 p.m.
-many were leaving the city with bundles of clothes on
-their heads. The rebels’ bridge of boats had evidently
-been destroyed, for they could see many swimming across<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</a></span>
-the river, most of them cavalry, with their horses’ bridles
-in their hands. During all this apparent panic the guns
-of the enemy in position all round were keeping up a
-heavy cannonade, and the riflemen never ceased firing
-from their loopholes.</p>
-
-<p>At 4 p.m. report was made that some officers dressed
-in shooting-coats and caps, a regiment of Europeans in
-blue pantaloons and shirts, could be seen near Mr. Martin’s
-house. At 5 p.m. volleys of musketry, rapidly growing
-louder, were heard in the city. But soon the firing of a
-minie-ball over their heads gave notice of the still nearer
-approach of their friends. It was very exciting, but
-they as yet could see little of them, though they could
-hear the rebels firing on them from the roofs of the houses.</p>
-
-<p>Will they again be repulsed? The heart sickens at
-the thought. No. Five minutes later, and our troops
-are seen fighting their way through one of the principal
-streets, and though men are falling at almost every step,
-yet on they come. Nothing can withstand the headlong
-gallantry of our reinforcements. Once fairly seen and
-all doubts and fears are ended. And now the garrison’s
-long pent-up feelings of anxiety and suspense burst
-forth in a succession of deafening cheers. From every
-pit, trench and battery, from behind the sand-bags piled
-up on shattered houses, from every post still held by a
-few gallant spirits, rose cheer on cheer&mdash;aye, even from
-the hospital.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the wounded were crawling forth to join in
-that glad shout of welcome to those who had so bravely
-come to their assistance. The ladies were in tears&mdash;tears
-of joy; some were on their knees, already thanking God
-for a deliverance from unspeakable horrors. It was a
-moment never to be forgotten. Soon all the rearguard
-and heavy guns were inside our position, and then ensued
-a scene which baffles description. For eighty-seven days<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</a></span>
-the Lucknow garrison had lived in utter ignorance of all
-that had taken place outside. Wives who had mourned
-their husbands as dead were again restored to them;
-others, fondly looking forward to glad meetings with
-those near and dear to them, now for the first time
-learnt that they were alone in the world. On all sides
-eager inquiries were made for relations and friends.
-Oh, what a hubbub of voices, what exclamations of delight,
-what sad silences!</p>
-
-<p>The force under the command of Sir James Outram
-and Havelock had suffered heavily. Out of 2,600 who
-had left Cawnpore nearly one-third had been either killed
-or wounded in forcing their way through the city.
-Indeed, their losses were so heavy that they could effect
-little towards the relief, for the rebels were in overpowering
-force, so that the garrison remained on three-quarter
-rations, as closely besieged as before, looking for a day
-when they might be more effectually relieved by a larger
-and stronger force.</p>
-
-<p>Then, after the personal inquiries had died down, with
-bated breath they asked for news of Cawnpore. What
-a tale of horror, of pride, of shame! On the 5th of June,
-so they were told, the Cawnpore regiments mutinied and
-set off for Delhi. On the 6th they were brought back
-by Nana Sahib, a man who had once been well received
-in London drawing-rooms, now the arch-traitor and
-murderer.</p>
-
-<p>Not less than 1,000 persons took refuge in the Residency,
-which Nana proceeded to invest. It was a poor,
-weak place to defend, yet they kept the flag flying till
-the 24th of June, when their ammunition and provisions
-were all gone. Time after time the gallant little garrison
-repulsed all the Nana’s attacks. At length he approached
-them with treacherous smiles, and offered to transmit
-them safely to Allahabad on conditions of surrender.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</a></span>
-General Sir Hugh Wheeler undertook to deliver up the
-fortifications, the treasure, and the artillery on condition
-that our force should march out under arms, with sixty
-rounds of ammunition to every man; that carriages
-should be provided for the conveyance of the wounded,
-the women, and the children; that boats provided with
-flour should be in readiness at the landing-place.</p>
-
-<p>What happened was described by one who had been on
-the spot. He said:</p>
-
-<p>“The whole of Cawnpore was astir at an early hour to
-see the English depart. They poured down to the
-landing-place in thousands. Meanwhile a crowd of
-carriages and beasts of burden had been collected outside
-the entrenchments. The bullock-carts were soon
-filled with women and children. A fine elephant had
-been sent for the General, but he put his wife and
-daughters in the state howdah, and contented himself
-with a simple palanquin. The wounded were placed in
-litters with such care as soldiers could employ. Many
-sepoys mingling with the crowd expressed admiration
-for the British defence; some even wept over the sufferings
-of their late masters. Eleven dying Europeans were
-left behind, too ill to be moved.</p>
-
-<p>“They set off, with the men of the 32nd Regiment at
-their head; then came a throng of naked bearers,
-carrying the palanquins full of sick and wounded; then
-came the bullock-carts crowded with ladies and children;
-and next, musket on shoulder, came all who could still
-walk and fight. Major Vibart of the Second Cavalry
-came last. Colonel and Mrs. Ewart started late, she on
-foot, walking beside her husband, who was borne by four
-native porters. As they dropped astern some natives
-belonging to the Colonel’s own battalion approached him.
-They began to mock him, and then cut him in pieces with
-their swords. They did the same to his wife.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The road to the landing-place, which is about a mile
-from the entrenchments, runs down a ravine, which in
-summer is dry, and is enclosed on either side by high
-banks and crumbling fences. As the van turned down
-this ravine a great mob of natives watched them go in a
-strange silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Rather disorderly, with swaying howdahs and grunting
-beasts, the unwieldy caravan wound along the sandy
-lane. When they were all entangled in the little defile
-some sepoys quietly formed a double line across the
-mouth of the gorge, shutting, as it were, the top of the
-trap.</p>
-
-<p>“Meanwhile the head of the caravan had reached the
-landing-place, being a little surprised at the want of a
-pier or planks to serve as gangway.</p>
-
-<p>“But the English officers went in knee-deep and
-hoisted the wounded and the women into the covered
-barges, which had been hauled into the shallows, and were
-in many cases grounded on the sandy bottom. The
-boats were 30 feet from stem to stern and 12 feet in beam,
-roofed with straw, having a space at each end for the
-rowers and the steersman. They looked very old and
-dilapidated, but beggars may not choose. Hindoo boatmen
-were waiting sullenly and silently, not deigning to
-return a smile to the little English children, who already
-began to scent fun and enjoyment in a long river excursion.</p>
-
-<p>“All at once a bugle rang out from the top of the
-defile. Away splashed the native rowers, jumping from
-their boats into the water.</p>
-
-<p>“The rebels put up their muskets and fired point-blank
-into the laden boats; but the English had their
-rifles, and returned the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet another surprise! Suddenly the straw roofs of
-the native boats burst into flame, and from either shore<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</a></span>
-of the river grape and musket shot were poured in relentlessly.
-The wounded lay still and were burnt to
-death. Ladies and children sought the protection of the
-water, and crouched in the shallows under the sterns of
-the barges. The men tried to push off, but the keels
-stuck fast. Out of two dozen boats only three drifted
-slowly down from the stage. Of these three two went
-across to the Oude bank, where stood two cannon,
-guarded by a battalion of infantry and some cavalry.
-The third boat, containing Vibart and Whiting and Ushe,
-Delafosse and Bolton, Burney and Glanville and Moore,
-the bravest of the brave, got clear away, and drifted
-down the main channel.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bradshaw thus describes what she saw: “In
-the boat where I was to have gone were the school-mistress
-and twenty-two missies. General Wheeler came
-last in a palkee. They carried him into the water near
-a boat. I was standing close by. He said, ‘Carry me
-a little further near the boat.’ But a trooper said, ‘No;
-get out here.’ As the General got out of the palkee,
-head foremost, the trooper gave him a cut with his sword
-into the neck, and he fell into the water. My son was
-killed near him. I saw it&mdash;alas! alas! Some were
-stabbed with bayonets; others were cut down with
-swords and knives. Little infants were torn in pieces.
-We saw it, we did, and tell you only what we saw. Other
-children were stabbed and thrown into the river. The
-school-girls were burnt to death. I saw their clothes and
-hair catch fire. In the water, a few paces off, by the
-next boat, we saw the youngest daughter of Colonel
-Williams. A sepoy was going to kill her with his bayonet,
-when she said, ‘My father was always kind to sepoys.’
-He turned away, and just then a villager struck her on
-the head with his club, and she fell into the water.”</p>
-
-<p>After a time the women and children who had not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</a></span>
-been shot, stabbed, or burnt were collected and brought
-to shore, some of them being rudely handled by the
-sowars, who tore from ear or finger such jewels as caught
-their fancy.</p>
-
-<p>About 120 sat or lay on the shore or on logs of timber,
-full of misery, fear, and despair. There they waited in
-the blinding sun on the Ganges shore all that morning.
-Then they were herded back along the narrow lane by
-which they had come with hope in their bosoms, while
-the sepoys who guarded them grinned with fiendish
-delight, and showed gleefully all their spoils. Past the
-bazaar and the chapel and the racquet-court and the
-entrenchments they limped along, until they were paraded
-before the pavilion of the Maharajah, who looked
-them well over, and ordered them to be confined in the
-Savada House. Two good-sized rooms, which had been
-used by native soldiers for a month, were given them to
-live in, and a guard was placed over them.</p>
-
-<p>One witness says: “I saw that many of the ladies were
-wounded. Their clothes had blood on them. Some
-were wet, covered with mud and blood, and some had
-their dresses badly torn, but all had clothes. I saw one
-or two children without clothes. There were no men in
-the party, but only some boys of twelve or thirteen years
-of age. Some of the ladies were barefoot and lame.
-Two I saw were wounded in the leg.”</p>
-
-<p>And what of the third boat which floated down-stream?</p>
-
-<p>More than 100 persons had taken refuge in it. Some
-officers and men, seeing how hopeless was the fight
-on the bank, had swum out to Vibart and his crew.
-Now they stranded on a mud-bank, now they drifted
-towards the guns on the other shore, ever under a hot
-fire of canister and shell, and continually losing brave
-men who were shot at point-blank range. Down in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</a></span>
-bottom of the great barge lay dying and dead, till at
-last the survivors were compelled to throw the bodies
-overboard.</p>
-
-<p>At night a fire-ship was sent down to set them alight,
-and fire-tipped arrows were shot into the thatched roof,
-forcing our people to cut them away. Then they came
-under a fierce fire from the militia of Ram Bux. Pelting
-rains came down, and they drifted up a backwater, and
-soon after a host of rebels surrounded the poor, stricken
-fugitives and took them back to Cawnpore.</p>
-
-<p>The doomed boat-load were seen to be drawing near
-the landing-place early on the morning of the 30th. This
-is what a native spy said of them:</p>
-
-<p>“There were brought back sixty sahibs, twenty-five
-mem sahibs, and four children. The Nana ordered the
-sahibs to be separated from the mem sahibs, and shot
-by the 1st Bengal Native Infantry. But they said, ‘We
-will not kill the sahibs; put them in prison.’ Then said
-the Nadiree Regiment: ‘What word is this&mdash;put them
-in prison? We will kill the males ourselves.’</p>
-
-<p>“So the sahibs were seated on the ground. Two companies
-stood with their muskets, ready to fire. Then
-said one of the mem sahibs, the doctor’s wife: ‘I
-will not leave my husband. If he must die, I will die
-with him.’ So she ran and sat down behind her husband,
-clasping him round the waist.</p>
-
-<p>“When she said this the other mem sahibs said: ‘We
-also will die with our husbands;’ and they all sat down,
-each by her husband.</p>
-
-<p>“Then their husbands said: ‘Go back;’ but they
-would not do so.</p>
-
-<p>“So then the Nana gave order, and his soldiers went in
-and pulled them away by force. But they could not pull
-away the doctor’s wife, who stayed there. Then the
-padre asked leave to read prayers before they died. He<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</a></span>
-did so, and then shut the book. Then all the sahibs
-shook hands and bid good-bye. Then the sepoys fired.
-One sahib rolled one way, one another, but they were
-not quite dead; so the sepoys went at them and finished
-them off with their swords.”</p>
-
-<p>Can you imagine the breathless horror with which the
-garrison of Lucknow listened to these details of a most
-cruel and treacherous onslaught upon wounded men,
-upon refined ladies, and innocent children? How they
-sighed for a force strong enough to take an adequate
-revenge upon these miscreants! But for the present
-they were besieged themselves, though reinforced; and
-who of them could count upon a day’s security? Perhaps,
-if the bullet spared them at Lucknow their would-be
-rescuers might be unable to fight their way through the
-city, and these poor ladies and children of the Lucknow
-garrison might be reserved for a lot even worse than
-death. “Will they come?&mdash;will they come to help us
-here at Lucknow? That is our anxious thought night
-and day.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XII" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE RELIEF OF LUCKNOW (1857)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The scene at Cawnpore&mdash;Fights before Lucknow&mdash;Nearly blown up&mdash;A
-hideous nightmare&mdash;Cheering a runaway&mdash;All safe out of the
-Residency&mdash;A quick march back&mdash;Who stole the biscuits?&mdash;Sir
-Colin’s own regiment.</p>
-
-<p>“I had enlisted in the 93rd Sutherland Highlanders to
-go to India to put down the Mutiny,” writes Mr. Forbes-Mitchell,
-an old friend of the author. “We reached
-Cawnpore on the 27th of October, having marched the
-last forty-six miles in two days. We were over 1,000
-strong, and many of us had just been through the
-Crimean War. After a few hours’ rest we were allowed
-to go out in parties of ten or twelve to visit the scene of
-the late treachery and massacre.”</p>
-
-<p>Wheeler’s entrenchments at the highest place did not
-exceed 4 feet, and could not have been bullet-proof at
-the top. The wonder was how the small force could
-have held out so long. In the rooms were still lying
-about broken toys, pictures, books, and bits of clothing.
-They then went to see the slaughter-house in which our
-women and children had been barbarously murdered
-and the well into which their mangled bodies were flung.
-On the date of this visit a great part of the house had
-not been cleaned out. The floors of the rooms were
-still covered with congealed blood, and littered with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</a></span>
-trampled, torn dresses, shoes, locks of long hair, many
-of which evidently had been severed by sword-cuts. But
-the most horrible sight they saw was an iron hook fixed
-into the wall. This was covered with dried blood, and
-from the marks on the whitewashed wall it was evident
-that a little child had been hung on to it by the neck,
-with its face to the wall. There the poor thing must have
-struggled for long, because the wall all round the hook
-was covered with the hand-prints, and below the hook
-with the footprints, of a little child&mdash;in blood.</p>
-
-<p>The number of victims killed at Cawnpore, counted
-and buried in the well by Havelock’s force, was 118
-women and 92 children. This sight was enough, they
-said, to make the words “mercy” and “pardon” appear
-a mockery.</p>
-
-<p>The troops crossed into Oude on the 2nd of November,
-and on the 3rd a salute fired from the mud fort on the
-Cawnpore side told them that, to their great delight, Sir
-Colin Campbell had come up from Calcutta. They were
-all burning to start for Lucknow. Every man in the
-regiment was determined to risk his life to save the
-women and children from the fate of Cawnpore.</p>
-
-<p>On their march they saw they were at once in an
-enemy’s country. None of the villages were inhabited.
-There was no chance of buying chupatties (girdle-cakes)
-or goat’s milk. It was the custom to serve out three
-days’ biscuits at one time, running four to the pound.
-Most men usually had finished their biscuits before they
-reached the first halting-ground.</p>
-
-<p>Before they made their first halt they could hear the
-guns of the rebels bombarding the Residency. Footsore
-and tired as they were, the report of each salvo
-made the men step out with a firmer tread and a more
-determined resolve to relieve those helpless women and
-children.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 10th of November they were encamped on the
-plain about five miles in front of the Alumbâgh, about
-5,000 of them, the only really complete regiment being
-the 93rd Highlanders, of whom some 700 wore the
-Crimean medal. They were in full Highland costume,
-feather bonnets and dark waving plumes&mdash;a solid mass
-of brawny-limbed men.</p>
-
-<p>The old chief rode along the line, saying a few words
-to each corps as he passed. The regiment remarked that
-none of the other corps had given him a single cheer, but
-had taken what he said in solemn silence. At last he
-came to the 93rd, who were formed close column, so that
-every man might hear. When Sir Colin rode up he
-seemed to have a worn and haggard expression on his
-face, but he was received with such a cheer, or rather
-shout of welcome, as made the echoes ring. His wrinkled
-brow at once became smooth, and his weary features
-broke into a smile as he acknowledged the cheer by a
-hearty salute. He ended his speech thus: “Ninety-third,
-you are my own lads. I rely on you to do the
-work.” A voice from the ranks called out: “Ay, ay, Sir
-Colin! ye ken us, and we ken you. We’ll bring the women
-and children out of Lucknow or die in the attempt;” and
-the whole regiment burst into another ringing cheer.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 14th of November they began
-the advance on the Dilkoosha Park and Palace. The
-Fourth Brigade, composed of the 53rd, 93rd, and 4th
-Punjab Regiments, with a strong force of artillery,
-reached the walls at sunrise. Here they halted till a
-breach was made in the walls. The park swarmed with
-deer&mdash;black buck and spotted. There were no signs of
-the enemy, and a staff-officer of the artillery galloped to
-the front to reconnoitre. This was none other than the
-present Lord Roberts, known to the men then as “Plucky
-Wee Bobs.” About half of the regiment had passed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</a></span>
-through the breach, when a masked battery of six guns
-opened fire on them from behind the palace. The first
-shot passed through the column, the second cut in two
-a trooper’s horse close to Roberts, who dismounted and
-helped the trooper to his feet. They all cheered the
-young Lieutenant for his coolness under a point-blank
-fire of 9-pounders. They kept on pegging away until
-the sepoys bolted down the hill for shelter in the Martinière.
-About two o’clock they drove the rebels out,
-occupied the Martinière and erected a semaphore on the
-roof to communicate with the Residency.</p>
-
-<p>They next fought their way to a village on the east
-side of the Secundrabâgh. Here they saw a naked
-wretch with shaven head and body painted and smeared
-with ashes. He was sitting on a leopard-skin, counting
-a rosary of beads. James Wilson said:</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to try my bayonet on that fellow’s hide;”
-but Captain Mayne replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t touch him. These fellows are harmless
-Hindoo <i>jogees</i>” (mendicants).</p>
-
-<p>The words had scarcely been uttered when the painted
-scoundrel stopped counting his beads, slipped his hand
-under his leopard-skin, brought out a short brass blunderbuss,
-and fired it into Captain Mayne’s chest, a few feet off.
-The fellow was instantly bayoneted, but poor Mayne died.</p>
-
-<p>From the Secundrabâgh came a murderous fire, and
-they had to wait for the guns to make a breach.</p>
-
-<p>“Lie down, 93rd, lie down!” shouted Sir Colin. “Every
-man of you is worth his weight in gold to England to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>When the breach was large enough the 4th Punjabis
-led the assault, but seeing their officers shot down, they
-wavered. Sir Colin turned to Colonel Ewart and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Bring on the tartan. Let my own lads at them.”</p>
-
-<p>Before the buglers had time to sound the advance the
-whole seven companies, like one man, leaped the wall<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</a></span>
-with such a yell of pent-up rage as never was heard before
-nor since. The bayonet did the work effectually. Many
-of the Highlanders were wounded in the leg because the
-native tulwârs were as sharp as razors, and when the
-rebels had fired their muskets they hurled them like
-javelins, bayonets first, and then drawing their tulwârs,
-slashed in blind fury, shouting, “Deen! Deen!” (“The
-faith!”), and some threw themselves down and slashed
-at the legs of the Highlanders.</p>
-
-<p>In the centre of the inner court of the Secundrabâgh
-there was a large peepul-tree (Indian fig), with a very
-bushy top, and round the foot of it were set some jars
-full of cool water. Captain Dawson noticed that many
-of our men lay dead under this tree, and he called out
-to Wallace, a good shot, to look up and try if he could see
-anyone in the top, as the dead seemed to be shot from
-above.</p>
-
-<p>Wallace stepped back and scanned the tree. “I see
-him, sir,” he shouted, and cocking his rifle, he fired.
-Down fell a body dressed in a tight-fitting red jacket and
-rose-coloured silk trousers. The breast of the jacket bursting
-open with the fall showed that the wearer was a woman.</p>
-
-<p>She was armed with a pair of heavy old-pattern cavalry
-pistols. From her perch in the tree, which had been
-carefully prepared before the attack, she had killed more
-than half a dozen men. Poor Wallace burst into tears,
-saying: “If I had known it was a woman I would never
-have harmed her.”</p>
-
-<p>When the roll was called it was found that we had lost
-nine officers and ninety-nine men. Sir Colin rode up and
-said: “Fifty-third and Ninety-third, you have bravely
-done your share of this morning’s work, and Cawnpore is
-avenged.”</p>
-
-<p>“On revisiting Lucknow many years after this I saw
-no tablet or grave to mark the spot where so many of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</a></span>
-93rd are buried. It is the old, old story which was said
-to have been first written on the walls of Badajos:</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“When war is rife and danger nigh,</div>
-<div class="i0">God and the soldier is all the cry;</div>
-<div class="i0">When war is over and wrongs are righted,</div>
-<div class="i0">God is forgot and the soldier slighted.”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>“After the Secundrabâgh we had to advance on the
-Shâh Nujeef. As the 24-pounders were being dragged
-along by our men and Peel’s sailors a poor sailor lad just
-in front had his leg carried clean off above the knee by
-a round shot, and although knocked head over heels by
-the force of the ball, he sat bolt upright on the grass,
-with the blood spouting from the stump of his limb like
-water from the hose of a fire-engine, and shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Here goes a shilling a day&mdash;a shilling a day! Pitch
-into them, boys! Remember Cawnpore, 93rd&mdash;remember
-Cawnpore! Go at them, my hearties!’ and
-then he fell back in a dead faint. He was dead before a
-doctor could reach him.”</p>
-
-<p>Sir Colin himself was wounded by a bullet after it had
-passed through the head of a 93rd Grenadier.</p>
-
-<p>Amongst the force defending the Shâh Nujeef there was
-a large body of archers on the walls armed with bows
-and arrows, which they discharged with great force and
-precision, and on Sergeant White raising his head above
-the wall an arrow was shot right into his feather bonnet.
-Inside the wire cage of his bonnet he had placed his
-forage-cap, folded up, and instead of passing right
-through, the arrow stuck in the folds of his cap. White,
-drawing out the arrow, cried: “My conscience! Bows
-and arrows! Have we got Robin Hood and Little John
-back again? Well, well, Jack Pandy, since bows and
-arrows are the word, here’s at you!” and with that he
-raised his bonnet on the point of his bayonet above the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</a></span>
-top of the wall, and at once another arrow pierced it
-through, while a dozen more whizzed past a little wide of
-the mark.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_8" src="images/i_193.jpg" width="378" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Lighter Side of War at Lucknow</p>
-
-<p>A body of archers were amongst the defenders of the Shâh Nujeef. A Highland
-sergeant put his bonnet on his bayonet and held it up, and it was at once pierced by
-an arrow.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Just then Penny, of No. 2 Company, looking over the
-wall, got an arrow right through his brain, the shaft projecting
-more than a foot at the back of his head.</p>
-
-<p>Then they all loaded and capped, and, pushing up their
-bonnets again, a whole shower of arrows went past or
-through them. Up they sprang and returned a well-aimed
-volley from their rifles at point-blank distance,
-and more than half a dozen of the rebels went down.
-But Montgomery exposed himself a little too long to
-watch the effects of the volley, and before he could get
-down into shelter an arrow was sent through his heart,
-passing clean through his body, and falling on the ground
-a few yards behind him. He leaped about 6 feet
-straight up in the air and fell stone dead.</p>
-
-<p>But as yet we had made little impression on the solid
-masonry walls, and one of our ammunition waggons
-exploded, killing several men, and our storming party
-was repulsed. Just then Sergeant Paton came running
-up out of breath to say he had found a wide breach on
-the other side. It seems our shot and shell had gone over
-the first wall and had blown out the wall on the other
-side. Paton had climbed up easily and seen right inside
-the place. So Captain Dawson and his company were
-sent with Paton, and when the enemy saw them come
-in behind them they fled like sheep.</p>
-
-<p>Thus ended the terrible 16th of November, 1857.</p>
-
-<p>“An adventure happened to me in the Shâh Nujeef,”
-says Forbes-Mitchell, “which I still sometimes dream
-of with horror. This place was the tomb of the first
-King of Oude, and a place of Mohammedan pilgrimage.
-It had a number of small rooms round the enclosure for
-the pilgrims. These the enemy had used for quarters,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</a></span>
-and in their hurry to escape many had left their lamps
-burning. As I had lost my greatcoat in the fight, and
-felt very cold at night, so that I could not sleep, it struck
-me that some of the sepoys might have left blankets
-behind them. With this hope I went into one of the
-rooms where a lamp was burning, took it off its shelf, and
-walked to the door of the great domed tomb, which was
-only 20 yards or so away from the spot where the arms
-were piled and the men lying round the still burning fire.
-I peered into the dark vault, but could see nothing, so
-I advanced slowly, holding above my head the clay
-saucer of oil containing a loose cotton wick. I was
-looking cautiously round, for fear of surprise from a concealed
-foe, till I came near the centre of the great vault,
-where my progress was obstructed by a big black heap
-about 4 feet high, which felt to my feet as if I were
-walking in loose sand. I lowered the lamp to see what
-it was, and discovered that I was standing up to the
-ankles in loose gunpowder!</p>
-
-<p>“About 40 hundredweight of it lay in a great heap in
-front of my nose, while a glance to my left showed me a
-range of some thirty barrels also full of powder, and on
-the right lots of 8-inch shells, all loaded, with the fuses
-fixed.</p>
-
-<p>“By this time my eyes had become accustomed to
-the darkness of the mosque, and I took in my position at
-a glance. Here I was up to my knees almost in powder&mdash;in
-the very bowels of a magazine&mdash;with a naked light!</p>
-
-<p>“My hair literally stood on end. I felt the skin of my
-head lifting my feather bonnet off my scalp. My knees
-knocked together, and, despite the chilly night air, the
-cold perspiration burst out all over me and ran down my
-face and legs.</p>
-
-<p>“I had neither cloth nor handkerchief in my pocket,
-and there was not a moment to be lost, as already the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</a></span>
-overhanging wick was threatening to shed its smouldering
-red tip into the live magazine at my feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Quick as thought I put my left hand under the down-dropping
-flame and clasped it firmly. Holding it so, I
-slowly turned to the door and walked out with my knees
-knocking one against the other. I never felt the least
-pain from the wick, fear had so overcome me; but when
-I opened my hand on gaining the open air, I felt the
-smart acutely enough. I poured the oil out of the saucer
-into the burnt hand, then kneeling down, I thanked God
-for having saved me and all our men around from horrible
-destruction. I then got up and staggered rather than
-walked to the place where Captain Dawson was sleeping.
-I shook him by the shoulder till he awoke, and told him
-of my discovery and fright.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Bah, Corporal Mitchell!’ was all his answer. ‘You
-have woke up out of your sleep and have got frightened
-at a shadow’&mdash;for he saw me all trembling.</p>
-
-<p>“I turned my smarting hand to the light of the fire
-and showed the Captain how it was scorched; and then,
-feeling my pride hurt, I said: ‘Sir, you’re not a Highlander,
-or you would know the Gaelic proverb, “The
-heart of one who can look death in the face will not start
-at a shadow,” and you, sir, can bear witness that I have
-not shirked to look death in the face more than once since
-morning.’</p>
-
-<p>“He replied: ‘Pardon me. I did not mean that. But
-calm yourself and explain.’</p>
-
-<p>“I then told him that I had gone into the mosque with
-a naked lamp, and had found it half full of loose gunpowder.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Are you sure you’re not dreaming from the excitement
-of this awful day?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“With that I looked down to my feet and my gaiters,
-which were still covered with blood from the slaughter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</a></span>
-in the Secundrabâgh. The wet grass had softened it again,
-and on this the powder was sticking nearly an inch thick.
-I scraped some of it off, throwing it into the fire, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘There is positive proof for you that I’m not dreaming,
-nor my vision a shadow.’</p>
-
-<p>“On that the Captain became almost as alarmed as I
-was, and a sentry was posted near the door of the mosque
-to prevent anyone entering it.</p>
-
-<p>“The sleeping men were aroused, and the fire smothered
-out by jars of water. Then Captain Dawson and I, with
-an escort of four men, went round the rooms. As Wilson,
-one of the escort, was peering into a room, a concealed
-sepoy struck him over the head with his tulwâr; but his
-bonnet saved him, and Captain Dawson put a pistol
-bullet through the sepoy to save further trouble.</p>
-
-<p>“After all was quiet the men rolled off to sleep again,
-and I too lay down and tried to sleep. My nerves were,
-however, too much shaken, and the burnt hand kept me
-awake, so I lay and listened to the men sleeping round
-me. And what a night that was! The horrible scenes
-through which the men had passed during the day had told
-with terrible effect upon their nerves, and the struggles
-with death in the Secundrabâgh were fought over again
-by some of the men in their sleep, oaths and shouts of
-defiance being often strangely intermingled with prayers.</p>
-
-<p>“One man would be lying calmly asleep and then suddenly
-break out into a fierce battle-cry of ‘Cawnpore!
-you bloody murderer!’ Another would shout, ‘Charge!
-give them the bayonet!’ and a third, ‘Keep together,
-boys; don’t fire yet. Forward! forward! If we are to
-die, let us die like men!’</p>
-
-<p>“Then I would hear one muttering, ‘Oh, mother, forgive
-me, and I’ll never leave you again.’ So it was
-through all that memorable night, and I have no doubt
-it was the same at the other posts. At last I dozed off<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</a></span>
-and dreamed of blood and battle, and anon of Dee or
-Don side and the Braemar gathering; then the scene
-would change, and I was a little boy again, kneeling
-beside my mother, saying my evening hymn. Verily
-Campbell’s ‘Soldier’s Dream’ is no fiction.”</p>
-
-<p>Next morning they found plenty of pumpkins and piles
-of flat cakes already cooked, but no salt; but Mitchell
-had an old matchbox full of salt in his haversack. An
-old veteran who used to tell stories of Waterloo had said
-to him at home: “Always carry a box of salt in your
-haversack when on active service: it will be useful.” So
-it was very often. After breakfast they sponged out
-their rifles, which had become so foul that the men’s
-shoulders were black with bruises from the recoil.</p>
-
-<p>They had to assault the mess-house next, and after
-they had driven the rebels into the River Goomtee they
-peppered every head that showed above water.</p>
-
-<p>One tall fellow acted as cunningly as a jackal. Whether
-struck or not, he fell just as he got into shallow water on
-the opposite side, and lay without moving, with his legs
-in the water and his head on the land. He appeared to
-be stone dead, and every rifle was turned on those that
-were running across the plain, while many that were
-wounded were fired on, as the fellows said, in mercy to
-put them out of pain. For this war of the Mutiny was a
-demoralizing war for civilized men to be engaged in.
-The cold-blooded cruelty of the rebels branded them as
-traitors to humanity and cowardly assassins of helpless
-women and children.</p>
-
-<p>But to return to our Pandy. He was ever after spoken
-of as “the Jackal,” because jackals often behave as he
-did. After he had lain apparently dead for about an
-hour, some one noticed that he had gradually dragged
-himself out of the water. Then all at once he sprang to
-his feet and ran like a deer. He was still within easy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</a></span>
-range, and several rifles were levelled at him; but Sergeant
-Findlay, who was on the rampart, called out: “Don’t
-fire, men; give the poor devil a chance.” So instead of
-a volley of bullets the men’s better feelings gained the
-day, and Jack Pandy was reprieved, with a cheer to speed
-him on his way. As soon as he heard it he realized his
-position, and like the Samaritan leper of old, he halted,
-turned round, and putting up both his hands with the
-palms together in front of his face, he salaamed profoundly,
-prostrating himself three times on the ground by way of
-thanks, while the men on the ramparts waved their
-bonnets and clapped their hands to him in token of goodwill.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this time was heard a great sound of cheering
-near the Residency, the cause of which they shortly
-learned. It was because General Sir Colin Campbell had
-met Havelock and Outram. So then they knew the
-Residency was relieved, and the women and children were
-saved, though not yet out of danger. Every man in the
-force slept with a lighter heart that night.</p>
-
-<p>A girl in the Residency&mdash;Jessie Brown&mdash;had stated
-that she heard the skirl of the bagpipes hours before the
-relieving force could be seen or heard by the rest of the
-garrison, “and I believe it was quite true. I know we
-heard their bagpipes a long way off. Well, we had relieved
-Lucknow, but at what a cost! No less than
-forty-five officers and 496 men had been killed&mdash;more
-than a tenth of our whole number.”</p>
-
-<p>The Residency was relieved on the afternoon of the
-17th of November, and the following day preparations
-were made for the evacuation of the position and the
-withdrawal of the women and children. To do this in
-safety, however, was no easy task, for the rebels showed
-but small regard for the laws of chivalry. There was a
-long stretch of plain, exposed to the fire of the enemy’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</a></span>
-artillery and sharp-shooters from the opposite side of the
-Goomtee. To protect this part of the route all the best
-shots were placed on the north-west corner of the ramparts
-next to the Goomtee. They were under the command
-of Sergeant Findlay. One very good shot that
-excellent marksman made. A rebel officer rode out with
-a force of infantry from the east gate of the Bâdshâh-hibâgh.
-They had a couple of guns, too, to open fire on
-the line of retreat. They might have played havoc with
-the retiring garrison, but Findlay managed to unhorse
-the officer at long distance, and as soon as he was knocked
-over the enemy retreated into the bâgh, and did not show
-themselves any more that day.</p>
-
-<p>By midnight of the 22nd of November the Residency
-was entirely evacuated, and the enemy completely
-deceived as to the movements. The women and children
-had passed the exposed part of their route without
-a single casualty.</p>
-
-<p>The roll was called on reaching the Martinière, and two
-were found to be missing. They had been left asleep in
-the barracks, and came in later, saying that the rebels
-had not yet discovered that the English had gone and were
-still firing into the Residency. Shortly after the roll-call
-a most unfortunate accident took place. Corporal
-Cooper and four or five men went into one of the rooms
-of the Martinière in which there was a quantity of loose
-powder which had been left by the enemy, and somehow
-the powder got ignited and they were all blown up, their
-bodies completely charred and their eyes scorched out.
-The poor fellows all died in the greatest agony within
-an hour or so of the accident, and none of them could tell
-how it happened.</p>
-
-<p>“This sad accident made me very mindful of and
-thankful for my own narrow escape and that of my comrades
-in the Shâh Nujeef.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“An amusing thing occurred on the march to Cawnpore.
-As all the subaltern officers in my company were
-wounded I was told off, with a guard of twenty men, to
-see all the baggage-carts across Bunnee Bridge. A commissariat
-cart, loaded with biscuits, got upset, and its
-wheel broke just as we were moving it on to the road.</p>
-
-<p>“The only person in charge of the cart was a young
-bâboo, a boy of eighteen years of age, who defended his
-charge as long as he could; but he was soon put on one
-side, the biscuit bags were ripped open, and the men
-commenced filling their haversacks.</p>
-
-<p>“Just at this moment an escort of the 9th Lancers,
-with some staff-officers, rode up from the rear. It was
-the Commander-in-Chief and his staff.</p>
-
-<p>“The boy bâboo seeing him, rushed up and called out
-aloud:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Oh, my lord, you are my father and my mother.
-What shall I tell you? These wild Highlanders will not
-hear me, but are stealing commissariat biscuits like fine fun!’</p>
-
-<p>“Sir Colin pulled up, and tried not to smile. ‘Is there
-no officer here?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“The bâboo replied: ‘No officer, sir&mdash;my lord&mdash;only
-one very big corporal, and he tell me grandly “Shut up,
-you! or I’ll shoot you, same like rebel mutineer.”’</p>
-
-<p>“Hearing this, I stepped out of the crowd, and, saluting
-Sir Colin, told him that this cart had broken down, and
-as there were no other means of carrying the biscuits, the
-men had filled their haversacks with them rather than
-leave them on the ground.</p>
-
-<p>“Then the bâboo again came to the front with clasped
-hands, saying: ‘Oh, my lord if one cart of biscuits
-short, Major Fitzgerald not listen to me; rather order
-thirty lashes with Provost Marshal’s cat. Oh, what can
-a poor bâboo do with such supreme and wild Highlanders?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Sir Colin replied: ‘Yes, bâboo, I know these Highlanders
-are very wild fellows when they are hungry.
-Let them have the biscuits,’ and turning to one of the
-staff, he directed him to give a voucher to the bâboo that
-a cart loaded with biscuits had broken down, and the
-contents had been divided amongst the rearguard by
-order of the Commander-in-Chief. Sir Colin then turned
-to us and said: ‘Men, I give you the biscuits. Divide
-them with your comrades in front; but you must promise
-me should a cart loaded with rum break down, you
-will not interfere with it.’</p>
-
-<p>“We all replied: ‘No, no, Sir Colin; if rum breaks
-down, we’ll not touch it.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘All right,’ said Sir Colin, ‘remember! I trust you,
-and I know every one of you.’</p>
-
-<p>“We honestly shared those biscuits, and it was well
-we had them, for about five miles further on a general
-halt was made for a short rest and for all stragglers to
-come up. Sir Colin ordered the 93rd to form up, and
-calling the officers to the front, he announced to the
-regiment that General Wyndham had been attacked by
-the Nana Sahib and by the Gwalior contingent in Cawnpore;
-that his force had been obliged to retire within the
-fort at the bridge of boats; and that we must reach Cawnpore
-that night, because if the bridge of boats should be
-captured before we got there, we should be cut off in Oude,
-with 50,000 of our enemies in our rear, a well-equipped
-army of 40,000 men in our front, together with a powerful
-train of artillery numbering over forty siege-guns to
-face, and with all the women and children, sick and
-wounded, to guard. ‘So, 93rd,’ said the old chief, ‘I
-don’t ask you to undertake this forced march in your
-present tired condition without good reason. You must
-reach Cawnpore to-night at all costs.’</p>
-
-<p>“As usual, when he took the men into his confidence,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</a></span>
-he was answered from the ranks: ‘All right, Sir Colin,
-we’ll do it.’ And we did.”</p>
-
-<p>By this time they could hear the guns of the Gwalior
-contingent bombarding General Wyndham’s position in
-Cawnpore. Although terribly footsore and tired, not
-having had their clothes off for eighteen days, they
-trudged on their weary march, every mile hearing the guns
-more clearly. There is nothing to rouse tired soldiers
-like a good cannonade in front. It is the best tonic out.</p>
-
-<p>But they will never forget the misery of that march.
-They reached the sands on the banks of the Ganges, on
-the Oude side of the river opposite Cawnpore, just as the
-sun was setting, having covered the forty-seven miles
-under thirty hours. And when they got in sight of
-Cawnpore the first thing they saw was the enemy on the
-other side of the river making bonfires of their spare kit
-and baggage, which had been left at Cawnpore when they
-advanced for the relief of Lucknow.</p>
-
-<p>How on the 29th of November they crossed the bridge
-of boats; how by the 3rd of December all the women
-and children and wounded were on their way to Allahabad;
-how they smashed up the famous Gwalior contingent
-and sent the Nana flying into the desert&mdash;all this
-belongs to another story. Sir Colin thanked his old
-regiment for their great toil and prowess. “But we
-old soldiers should like our deeds and the deeds of those
-who gave their lives for England to be remembered by
-our children’s children, and to be studied with a grateful
-sympathy.”</p>
-
-<div class="source"><p>From “Reminiscences of the Great Mutiny,” by William Forbes-Mitchell.
-By kind permission of Messrs. Macmillan and Co.</p>
-
-<p>This is one of the most interesting books that has been written by a
-soldier who took part in the Mutiny War.</p></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIII" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">RUNNING THE BLOCKADE (1861)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">North <i>v.</i> South&mdash;A new President hates slavery&mdash;Fort Sumter is
-bombarded&mdash;Ladies on the house-top&mdash;Niggers don’t mind shells&mdash;A
-blockade-runner comes to Oxford&mdash;The <i>Banshee</i> strips for the
-race&mdash;Wilmington&mdash;High pay&mdash;Lights out&mdash;Cast the lead&mdash;A stern
-chase&mdash;The run home&mdash;Lying <i>perdu</i>&mdash;The <i>Night-hawk</i> saved by
-Irish humour&mdash;Southern need at the end of the war&mdash;Negro
-dignity waxes big.</p>
-
-<p>In November, 1860, Abraham Lincoln was elected President
-of the United States. As the new President was in
-sympathy with those who wished to abolish slavery,
-and as the Southern States were mostly inhabited by
-large landholders possessing thousands of slaves, this
-election was felt to doom their ascendancy unless they
-could resist the will of the North. Therefore, on the
-17th of December a convention of the State of South
-Carolina was held at Charleston, which formally repealed
-their acceptance of the United States Constitution.</p>
-
-<p>Neither side at first foresaw the results of secession.
-Each thought the other would offer little resistance. The
-North were totally unprepared for war; the South were
-weakened by internal dissensions, but they fought as
-long as they had any soldiers left, and at last “robbed the
-cradle and the grave.” The South were in the end quite
-exhausted, while the North seemed to gather new strength
-every month. As the war went on the soldiers of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</a></span>
-South, or Confederates, wore out their clothes, and could
-not replace them. Things were so scarce and dear that
-it became a proverb, “In going to market, you take your
-money in your basket and bring your purchases home in
-your pocket.” Planters in the South had to borrow
-money to support their hordes of negroes in idleness while
-they themselves were away at the front.</p>
-
-<p>On the 4th of March Lincoln formally entered on office.
-Secession, he said, meant rebellion. The Constitution
-must be preserved, if necessary, even by force.</p>
-
-<p>Major Anderson, who held a small fort in Charleston
-Harbour for the North, spiked his guns and moved into
-Fort Sumter, also in the harbour. This was considered
-an act of war, and Fort Sumter was bombarded and
-taken. The little town was full of excited soldiers,
-singing and shouting. We have a peep of what was
-going on and what it felt like in Mrs. Chestnut’s diary
-for the 12th of April:</p>
-
-<p>“I do not pretend to go to sleep. How can I? If
-Anderson does not accept terms at four the orders are
-he shall be fired upon. I count four. St. Michael’s
-bells chime out, and I begin to hope. At half-past four
-the heavy booming of a cannon! I sprang out of bed,
-and on my knees prostrate I prayed as I never prayed
-before. There was a sound of stir all over the house,
-pattering of feet in the corridors. All seemed hurrying
-one way. I put on my double gown and went on the
-house-top. The shells were bursting. The roar of the
-cannon had begun. The women were wild there on the
-house-top. Prayers came from the women and imprecations
-from the men. Then a shell would light up the
-scene, and we all wondered why Fort Sumter did not
-reply.”</p>
-
-<p>On the next day Fort Sumter was on fire. The warships
-of the North were outside the bar, and could not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</a></span>
-enter for want of depth of water. On the 15th Anderson
-had to give the fort up to the South.</p>
-
-<p>The slaves were taking it all very quietly, seemed not
-much moved by the thought of being free&mdash;rather
-preferred to be slaves and be well fed.</p>
-
-<p>A negro was rowing in the bay towards Charleston
-during the bombardment with some supplies from a plantation.
-He was met and asked: “Are you not afraid
-of Colonel Anderson’s cannon?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sar. Mars Anderson ain’t daresn’t hit me. He
-knows marster wouldn’t ’low it.”</p>
-
-<p>The next step taken by the President was to declare
-all the Southern ports in a state of blockade, in order that
-the seceding States might be starved out. The coast-line
-was some 3,000 miles in length, and the whole fleet
-of the United States did not reach 150 ships, of which
-many were unseaworthy. But the energy of the North
-increased this fleet to nearly 700 vessels. Thus any
-attempt to run in through the blockading squadron was
-very dangerous.</p>
-
-<p>A royal proclamation in England admonished all loyal
-subjects to respect the Federal blockade; but the high
-profits to be made tempted many Liverpool firms to
-adventure their argosies. A ship taken while running
-the blockade is treated as an enemy, and if she resists
-she is treated as a pirate.</p>
-
-<p>During the first year of the war many captures were
-made, and stories came to England of hairbreadth escapes
-which set many young men longing to join in the exciting
-game.</p>
-
-<p>I remember a man coming to Oxford when I was an
-undergraduate with a letter of introduction from a friend.
-He was running into Charleston, and had brought from
-that port a store of watches and jewellery, which he persuaded
-us to take in exchange for a quantity of discarded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</a></span>
-clothing. The lady’s gold watch which I got is, I hear,
-still going strong, and belies the suspicion with which I
-took it. At this time there were no mills, and almost no
-manufactories in the Southern States, so that they soon
-began to feel the want of clothes, buttons, boots, socks,
-medicines, and chemicals. Nassau, a little island in
-the Bahamas, was the chief base for the steamers that
-were running the blockade. It is about 560 miles from
-Charleston and 640 from Wilmington.</p>
-
-<p>The Bahama group afforded neutral water to within
-fifty miles of the American coast, but it required a very
-fast vessel to succeed in evading the chain of cruisers
-which soon patrolled the coast. These fast vessels were
-being built in England and elsewhere. Let us follow the
-fortunes of one of them&mdash;the <i>Banshee</i>.</p>
-
-<p>She arrived safely across the Atlantic and put into
-Nassau. There she was stripped for the work that lay
-before her. Everything aloft was taken down, and
-nothing was left standing but the two lower masts, with
-cross-trees for a look-out man. The ship was painted a
-dull white, and the crew wore a grey uniform. As the
-success of a blockade-runner depends much on her speed,
-the qualities of the engineer are important.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Banshee</i> possessed a model chief engineer in Mr.
-Erskine, a man cool in danger and full of resource. In
-her pilot, Tom Burroughs, she had a man who knew the
-waters thoroughly, and was a genius in smelling out a
-blockader on the darkest night. A good pilot received
-about £800 for the trip there and back, for there was
-some risk in the service, and if they were captured they
-went to prison. The pay of the seamen was from £50
-to £60 for the trip. So the <i>Banshee</i> stole out of Nassau
-Harbour on a dark night, laden with arms, gunpowder,
-boots, and clothing, on her way to Wilmington.</p>
-
-<p>Wilmington lies to the north of Charleston, some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</a></span>
-sixteen miles up the Cape Fear River. Off the mouth of
-this river lies Smith’s Island, which divides the approach
-to the port into two widely different channels.</p>
-
-<p>Fort Fisher, placed at the northern point, obliged
-the blockaders to lie far out, beyond the range of the
-guns. Further out still was a cordon of cruisers, and outside
-these were gunboats always on the move; so that it
-required speed and a good look-out to elude the three
-lines of blockaders. They crept as noiselessly as possible
-along the shores of the Bahamas, and ran on safely
-for the first two days out, though as often as they saw
-a sail on the horizon they had to turn the <i>Banshee’s</i> stern
-to it till it vanished. The look-out man had a dollar for
-every sail he sighted, and was fined five dollars if it were
-seen first from the deck. On the third day they found
-they had only just time to run under cover of Fort Fisher
-before dawn, and they tried to do it.</p>
-
-<p>“Now the real excitement began,” says Mr. Taylor,
-who was in charge of the cargo, “and nothing I have
-ever experienced can compare with it. Hunting, pig-sticking,
-big-game shooting, polo&mdash;all have their thrilling
-moments, but none can approach ‘running a blockade.’
-Consider the dangers to be encountered, after three days
-of constant anxiety and little sleep, in threading our way
-through a swarm of blockaders, and the accuracy required
-to hit in the nick of time the mouth of a river only half
-a mile wide, without lights, and with a coast-line so low
-that as a rule the first intimation we had of its nearness
-was the dim white line of the surf.”</p>
-
-<p>They steamed along cautiously until nightfall. Though
-the night was dark it was dangerously clear. No lights,
-not even a cigar. The hatchways of the engine-room
-were covered with tarpaulins, and the poor stokers had
-to breathe as best they could.</p>
-
-<p>All hands were on deck, crouching down behind the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</a></span>
-bulwarks. On the bridge were Taylor, the captain,
-Mr. Steele, and the pilot, all straining their eyes into the
-“vasty deep.”</p>
-
-<p>Presently the pilot muttered: “Better cast the lead,
-captain.”</p>
-
-<p>Steele murmured down the tube that led to the engine-room,
-and the vessel slowed down and then stopped. A
-weird figure crept into the fore-chains and dropped the
-leaded line, while the crew listened to see if the engines
-would seize the opportunity to blow off steam and so
-advertise their presence for miles around. In two minutes
-came the seaman, saying: “Sixteen fathoms, sir. Sandy
-bottom, with black specks.”</p>
-
-<p>“We are not so far in as I thought,” said the pilot.
-“Port two points and go a little faster.”</p>
-
-<p>He knew by the speckled bottom where they were.
-They had to be north of that before it was safe to head
-for the shore.</p>
-
-<p>In an hour or less the pilot asked for another sounding.
-No more specks this time. “Starboard and go ahead
-easy” was the order now.</p>
-
-<p>The paddle-floats were flapping the water softly, but
-to the crew the noise they made was terrifying. They
-could be heard a long way.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the pilot said: “There’s one of them, Mr.
-Taylor, on the starboard bow.”</p>
-
-<p>Presently straining eyes could see a long, low, black
-object lying quite still. Would she see the <i>Banshee</i>?</p>
-
-<p>They passed within a hundred yards of her and were
-not heard.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after Burroughs whispered: “Steamer on the
-port bow.”</p>
-
-<p>A second cruiser was made out close to them.</p>
-
-<p>“Hard a port,” said the captain, and the steamer
-swung round, bringing the enemy upon her beam. No<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</a></span>
-sound! The enemy slept! Then suddenly a third
-cruiser came out of the gloom and steamed slowly across
-the <i>Banshee’s</i> bows.</p>
-
-<p>“Stop her,” said Captain Steele down the tube, and
-the blockade-runner gurgled to a standstill, while the
-cruiser moved across and was lost in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>Then “Slow ahead” was the order, until the low-lying
-coast and the grey surf came dim to the eye. But it was
-getting near dawn, and there was no trace of the river
-mouth.</p>
-
-<p>They knew not quite where they were, and thoughts
-of prison and prison fare would come uppermost.</p>
-
-<p>At length the pilot said: “All right, boys. I can see
-the big hill yonder.”</p>
-
-<p>The only hill on the coast was near Fort Fisher. Now
-they knew where they were; so did six or seven gunboats,
-which, in the silver light of early dawn, catching
-sight of their prey, steamed hard and fast towards the
-<i>Banshee</i>, with angry shots from the bow gun. The balls
-were dropping all around and churning up the sea. It
-was mighty unpleasant to men who knew they had several
-tons of gunpowder in the hold; and just then they were
-obliged to steer out to avoid the North Breaker shoal,
-so that the gunboats crept ever nearer and nearer, barking
-like disappointed puppies.</p>
-
-<p>The pilot looked at the captain and the captain at the
-supercargo. Their lips tightened and their breath came
-faster as they eyed the gunboats askance.</p>
-
-<p>“One good shot into the paddle will end this trip,”
-thought Mr. Taylor; “and it is my first run in, too!”</p>
-
-<p>Then came a welcome sound overhead. A shell from
-the fort whirred its way towards the gunboats and
-warned them off.</p>
-
-<p>With a parting broadside they sheered off out of range,
-and after half an hour’s run the <i>Banshee</i> was over the bar<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</a></span>
-and in quiet waters. They soon sped up the sixteen
-miles to Wilmington, and found a large posse of willing
-slaves ready to discharge their cargo.</p>
-
-<p>The poor folk at Wilmington were then very much
-pinched for want of good food and drink, and the advent
-of the <i>Banshee</i> restored smiles all round. Living on corn-bread,
-bacon, and water grows monotonous, and invitations
-to lunch on board the <i>Banshee</i> were never declined&mdash;in
-fact, many friends did not even wait for an invitation.</p>
-
-<p>Within a very few days the <i>Banshee</i> was again ready
-for sea, ballasted with tobacco and laden with cotton&mdash;three
-tiers even on deck! High profit tempted them to
-pile up their vessels like hay-waggons, and put to sea in
-a condition quite unfit to meet a boisterous wind.</p>
-
-<p>It was fortunately more easy to run out than to run in,
-as there was no harbour mouth to find in the dark, and
-the open sea lay before them. They learnt that the
-Admiral’s ship remained at anchor during the night, while
-the other vessels moved slowly to and fro across the
-mouth of the river; so they formed a bold plan, thinking
-that security lay in a startling impudence. They hid
-the <i>Banshee</i> behind Fort Fisher till nightfall, rowing
-ashore to get the latest news from Colonel Lamb, who
-commanded the fort.</p>
-
-<p>“Which, sir, is the Admiral’s flag-ship?”</p>
-
-<p>“The <i>Minnesota</i>, a sixty-gun frigate. Don’t go too
-near her.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is just what we mean to do, Colonel; but first
-we will take her bearings exactly. We don’t want to
-bump into her.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel was very kind and helpful, and they often
-enjoyed his society and that of his wife, who lived in a
-cottage not far off.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as night fell over the sea the <i>Banshee</i> slipped
-quietly from her secret anchorage, crossed the river bar,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</a></span>
-and following the observations they had taken, ran close
-by the flagship, and so out to sea, clear of the first cordon.
-But in trying to pass the second they ran across a gunboat,
-which at once opened fire. The men lay down on
-the deck, and the engines throbbed and thumped.
-Luckily the gunboat was very slow, and they soon lost
-one another; but as they could hear her pounding along
-behind, they attempted a ruse. The helm was put hard
-over, so that they steamed in a direction at right angles
-to their former course, and in a few minutes their engines
-were stopped. The <i>Banshee</i> lay perfectly still. The
-crew rose on their elbows and peeped over the bulwarks,
-following the course of the gunboat by the flashes of her
-guns and by the rockets she was sending up madly to
-attract or warn her consorts. So they saw her go plunging
-past them and firing madly into the dark abyss of
-the night.</p>
-
-<p>After resting five minutes on the heaving wave, the
-<i>Banshee</i> started again as noiselessly as she could. One
-danger remained&mdash;the third cordon. You may be sure
-they stared wide-eyed round the horizon as morning
-broke. With the <i>Banshee</i> so heavily laden it would be
-fatal to meet a cruiser in the daylight.</p>
-
-<p>No smoke visible&mdash;no sail! All that day and for
-two days more they steamed on with fear beside them.
-On the evening of the third day they steamed proudly
-into Nassau, though a heavy list to starboard made them
-present a rather drunken appearance.</p>
-
-<p>The profits of blockade-running may be estimated by
-the fact that though the <i>Banshee</i> afterwards became a
-total loss by capture, she earned enough on her eight successful
-trips to pay the shareholders 700 per cent. on their
-investment. The Northerners turned her into a gunboat,
-but she asserted her sympathies for the South by running
-foul of the jetty in the naval yard at Washington.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On another run in the <i>Night Hawk</i>, after getting safely
-through the blockading fleet, they grounded on the
-bar, and two launches speedily boarded them. The
-Northerners were very excited, and evidently expected
-to meet with desperate resistance, for firing of revolvers
-and wild cutlass blows surprised the crew of the <i>Night
-Hawk</i>, who stood quietly on the poop waiting to be taken
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>“This roused my wrath,” says Taylor, “and I expostulated
-with the Lieutenant upon his firing on unarmed
-men.”</p>
-
-<p>They then cooled down and began a search for portable
-valuables; but, perhaps because they feared Colonel
-Lamb might come to the rescue, they made haste about
-this, and then set fire to the ship fore and aft.</p>
-
-<p>They were quickened in their departure by the humour
-of an Irish fireman, who sang out lustily:</p>
-
-<p>“Begorra! begorra! but we shall all be in the air in a
-minute, with this ship full of gunpowder!”</p>
-
-<p>The men who were holding Taylor dropped him “like
-a hot potato,” and away they rowed, taking some of the
-crew as prisoners. The gunpowder existed only in the
-fancy of the Irishman.</p>
-
-<p>The blockaders opened fire on the <i>Night Hawk</i>, which
-was blazing merrily, and Colonel Lamb shelled the
-blockading fleet; then through the boiling surf the rest
-of the crew rowed safely, wet through and exhausted.</p>
-
-<p>With the rising tide she bumped herself over the sandbank,
-still burning. They telegraphed to Wilmington
-for help, and some 300 negroes came down the river to
-assist in baling and pumping. So they managed to save
-the <i>Night Hawk</i> and make her fit to undertake other
-voyages, though to look at she was no beauty, for her
-sides were all corrugated with the heat, and her stern
-twisted, and not a bit of woodwork on her was left un<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</a></span>consumed
-by the fire. Yet she managed to stagger
-across the Atlantic through some very bad weather.</p>
-
-<p>Such were some of the adventures of the blockade-runners
-in the Civil War of the United States. To those
-who bought the ships it was a matter of pecuniary profit
-merely; to the Southerners in Richmond, Wilmington,
-and Charleston, and even on the plantations inland, the
-arrival of these vessels staved off famine and cold and
-nakedness. To the Northerners they meant a prolongation
-of the unequal struggle, and it was no wonder that
-they dealt rather harshly with those whom they caught.</p>
-
-<p>A rich lady of South Carolina wrote during this war:
-“I have had an excellent pair of shoes given me. For
-more than a year I have had none but some dreadful
-things made by our carpenter, and they do hurt my feet
-so. Uncle William says the men who went into the war
-to save their negroes are abjectly wretched. Neither
-side now cares a fig for these beloved negroes, and would
-send them all to heaven in a hand-basket to win the
-fight.”</p>
-
-<p>The negroes on the whole were very faithful to their
-old masters, for many of them had been treated with all
-justice and kindness. Of course, some of them gave
-themselves airs on becoming free and independent voters.
-One old negro said to his master: “When you all had de
-power you was good to me, and I’ll protect you now,
-massa. No niggers nor nobody shall tech you. If you
-want anything, call for Sambo. Ahem! I mean call for
-Mr. Samuel: dat my name now.”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From “Running the Blockade,” by T. E. Taylor. By kind permission
-of Mr. John Murray.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIV" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE FIRST IRONCLADS (1862)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Will they sink or swim?&mdash;Captain Ericsson, the Swede&mdash;The <i>Merrimac</i>
-raised and armoured&mdash;The <i>Monitor</i> built by private venture&mdash;<i>Merrimac</i>
-surprises Fort Monroe&mdash;The <i>Cumberland</i> attacked&mdash;The
-silent monster comes on&mdash;Her ram makes an impression&mdash;Morris
-refuses to strike his flag&mdash;The <i>Cumberland</i> goes down&mdash;The
-<i>Congress</i> is next for attention&mdash;On fire and forced to surrender&mdash;Blows
-up at midnight&mdash;The <i>Minnesota</i> aground shows she can
-bite&mdash;General panic&mdash;Was it Providence?&mdash;A light at sea&mdash;Only
-a cheese-box on a raft&mdash;Sunday’s fight between two monsters&mdash;The
-<i>Merrimac</i> finds she is deeply hurt, wounded to death&mdash;The
-four long hours&mdash;Worden and Buchanan both do their best&mdash;Signals
-for help&mdash;The fiery end of the <i>Whitehall</i> gunboat.</p>
-
-<p>The War of Secession between the Federals and Confederate
-States gave rise to a new kind of warship&mdash;the
-ironclad. The <i>Merrimac</i> was converted into such a
-vessel by the South, and the <i>Monitor</i> was built by the
-North, or Federals, in the space of 100 days.</p>
-
-<p>Most people, experts and others, predicted a watery
-grave for a ship cased in iron. Very few ventured on
-board at the launching of the <i>Monitor</i>, and even the
-builders provided a steam-tug to save the passengers
-in case she went to the bottom. But the <i>Monitor</i>, after
-the first graceful dip, sat like a wild duck on a mere, being
-flat-bottomed, having a turret 9 feet high, capable of
-revolving, with two circular portholes to fire from.
-Captain Ericsson, a Swede, was her architect.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The South had seized all the forts and dockyards below
-Chesapeake Bay, and had struck great consternation into
-the Federal hearts. When the Federals burnt and
-evacuated the Norfolk Navy Yard they scuttled the
-steam frigate <i>Merrimac</i>; but the Confederates raised her,
-plated her with railroad iron, and fitted her with a slanting
-roof to serve as a shield. The <i>Merrimac</i>, when
-finished, did not take the water so gracefully as the
-<i>Monitor</i>, for her weight was so enormous that she nearly
-broke her back in launching. It was known that both
-sides were at work upon some monster of the deep, but
-which would be ready first no one could predict.</p>
-
-<p>However, on the 8th of March the <i>Merrimac</i> left Norfolk,
-accompanied by two other war vessels&mdash;the <i>Jamestown</i>
-and <i>Yorktown</i>&mdash;and followed by a little fleet of
-armed tugs. She was heading for Newport News,
-where there was a Federal garrison, guarded by the
-sailing frigates the <i>Cumberland</i> and the <i>Congress</i>, which
-rode at anchor within half a mile of the shore battery.
-Their boats were hanging at the booms, and the week’s
-washing fluttered in the rigging&mdash;as peaceful a scene as
-could be imagined.</p>
-
-<p>But the look-out on Fortress Monroe caught sight of a
-monster vessel ploughing the waves, and signalled to
-the war-ships to get under way. The <i>Minnesota</i> had
-her steam up and soon went off towards Newport News,
-where the <i>Cumberland</i> and <i>Congress</i> lay on blockading
-duty. The crew of the <i>Cumberland</i>, seeing a strange ship
-come round Craney Island, recognized her as the expected
-ironclad. All hands were beat to quarters, and
-the <i>Cumberland</i> swung across the channel in order to
-bring her broadside to bear. The slanting roof of the
-<i>Merrimac</i> puzzled them, and the long iron ram churned
-up the water as she advanced relentlessly and in silence.
-At the distance of a mile the <i>Cumberland</i> began to use<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</a></span>
-her pivot guns, but the <i>Merrimac</i> made no reply, only
-steamed majestically on, though broadside after broadside
-was poured upon her like hail; but the heavy shot
-glanced off harmlessly, and ever the <i>Merrimac</i> came
-closer and closer.</p>
-
-<p>As she passed the <i>Congress</i> the <i>Merrimac</i> fired one broadside,
-and then, leaving her to the tender mercies of the
-<i>Jamestown</i> and the <i>Yorktown</i>, made straight for the
-<i>Cumberland</i>. Both the Federal ships discharged their
-broadsides against the armoured monster. She just
-quivered under the blow and came on in silence. The
-National battery at Newport News opened upon her at
-point-blank range, and every man on board the <i>Cumberland</i>
-drew a breath of relief. “Now,” they thought, “our
-massive guns will teach her a lesson.” But it seemed as
-if the <i>Merrimac</i> had received no damage. Not a soul
-could be seen on her decks, not a splinter on her sides;
-but she was coming towards them&mdash;coming madly, as it
-seemed, to destruction.</p>
-
-<p>What did the <i>Merrimac</i> mean? Why did she not fire
-her guns? The crew on the <i>Cumberland</i> soon found out,
-when the great ram struck their frigate amidships with
-a shock that threw every man down on the deck, crushed
-in the ribs, and heeled the ship over till her topsail yards
-almost splashed the water. The <i>Merrimac</i> reversed her
-engines and backed away under a murderous broadside,
-replying as she too turned her broadside with a deadly
-volley of shot and shell, which swept her enemy’s decks
-of guns and men. Meanwhile the water was pouring into
-the terrible gaping wound in the side of the <i>Cumberland</i>;
-but Lieutenant Morris, who was in command, fought her
-to the last with unflinching courage. Yet once again the
-<i>Merrimac</i> turned her prow and crushed in close upon the
-old wound, and the great oak ribs snapped like twigs
-under the weight of iron. The <i>Cumberland</i> began to ride<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</a></span>
-lower in the water, but still aimed with calm accuracy at
-the <i>Merrimac</i>, riddling her smoke-stack and bending her
-anchor. But the <i>Merrimac</i> lay off a little and poured a
-storm of shot into the sinking frigate, dealing death and
-mutilation. Yet Morris refused to yield, and the whole
-crew in their desperate plight thought of nothing but
-saving the honour of the flag. One sailor, with both his
-legs shot off, hobbled up to his gun on bleeding stumps
-and pulled the lanyard, then fell in a swoon by the gun.</p>
-
-<p>“She is sinking!” was the cry; but they still fought on,
-though the frigate was settling deeper every minute.
-Then the water came gurgling into the portholes, and
-choked the guns and drowned the gunners. The last
-gunner was knee-deep in water when he fired the last
-shot, and then the <i>Cumberland</i> careened over on her side.
-Down she sank amid a whirl of circling waters, a caldron
-of wave and air&mdash;caught in one, and vomiting steam all
-around and over the dying vessel, and in a moment
-400 men were on the verge of death, some being carried
-down into the revolving vortex, some being cast up on
-the outside, some swimming frantically towards the
-shore, or reaching desperately for fragments of wreck.
-About 100 went down with the ship. The chaplain went
-down with the wounded who were below deck.</p>
-
-<p>It took forty-five minutes for the <i>Merrimac</i> to finish
-off the <i>Cumberland</i>, and she now turned her ram towards
-the <i>Congress</i>, which spread all sail and endeavoured to get
-clear away.</p>
-
-<p>But at this moment the <i>Congress</i> grounded and became
-helpless. The gunboats of the Confederates were still
-firing heavily at her from a respectful distance, but as
-they saw the <i>Merrimac</i> approaching they too drew near
-under her protection.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Merrimac</i> chose her position at about 100 yards’
-range, despising the guns of the <i>Congress</i>, and raked her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</a></span>
-fore and aft, dismounting guns and covering her deck
-with mangled limbs. In three places the <i>Congress</i> burst
-into flames, and the dry timber crackled and blazed and
-smoked like a volcano. The men could not stand by the
-guns for the fervent heat. The wounded were slowly
-burned alive. The officers could not bear this sight, and
-hauled down the flag.</p>
-
-<p>A tug was sent by the Confederates to take off the
-prisoners from the burning wreck, but, unfortunately,
-some sharpshooters from the shore still kept up a hot fire
-upon the Southern vessels. In consequence of this the
-<i>Merrimac</i> fired another broadside into the sinking <i>Congress</i>,
-and killed many more of her crew. The <i>Congress</i>,
-being deserted, still burned on till darkness fell, and the
-ruddy glare lit up the moving waters as if they had been
-a sea of blood. At midnight the fire reached her magazine,
-and with a thunder of explosion the <i>Congress</i> blew
-up into a myriad fragments. The Northern warship
-<i>Minnesota</i> had also grounded, so had the frigate <i>St. Lawrence</i>,
-and the <i>Merrimac</i>, while it was still light enough to
-aim a gun, steamed towards them to see what little
-attention she could bestow upon them. The <i>Merrimac</i>
-was, perhaps, a little overconfident in her coat of mail.
-Anyhow, she risked receiving a broadside at very short
-range from the heavy guns of the <i>Minnesota</i>.</p>
-
-<p>A shot seems to have entered her porthole and damaged
-her machinery, for she hesitated, put about, and returned
-to safe anchorage behind Craney Island.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, a very natural terror was gnawing at the
-hearts of the Federal crews and garrison in Hampton
-Roads.</p>
-
-<p>They had listened to the sounds of the conflict and seen
-the dire results in wonder, almost in despair. The
-<i>Merrimac</i>, they said, was invulnerable. Not a shot could
-pierce her. On Sunday morning she would return and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</a></span>
-destroy the whole Federal fleet at her leisure. She would
-shell Newport News Point and Fortress Monroe, at the
-entrance of Hampton Roads, set everything on fire, and
-drive the garrisons from their guns. Nay, as the telegraph
-wires flashed the news to Washington, it was
-foreseen with an agony of horror that the <i>Merrimac</i> might
-ascend the Potomac and lay the capital in ashes. Baltimore,
-Philadelphia, New York, Boston, were in a state of
-panic. No one knew what might not follow. It was a
-blind horror of a new and unknown danger. For the
-experience of one hour had rendered the shipbuilding of
-the past a scorn and a laughing-stock. Wooden frigates
-might go to the scrap-heap now. With the <i>Cumberland</i>
-had gone down morally all the great navies of Europe. A
-new order had to be found for ship and battery, and steel
-must take the place of planks of oak.</p>
-
-<p>Such a night of anxiety and alarm the Northern States
-had never experienced. It was ten o’clock at night when
-the look-out in the garrison thought he saw lights out at
-sea in Chesapeake Bay. He called his mate. By-and-by
-they made them out to be two small steamers heading
-for Old Point Comfort. An eye-witness from Fort
-Monroe thus describes what happened:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what a night that was! I can never forget it.
-There was no fear during the long hours&mdash;danger, I find,
-does not bring that&mdash;but there was a longing for some
-interposition of God and waiting upon Him, from whom
-we felt our help must come, in earnest, fervent prayer,
-while not neglecting all the means of martial defence.
-Fugitives from Newport News kept arriving. Ladies
-and children had walked the long ten miles from Newport
-News, feeling that their presence only embarrassed their
-brave husbands. Sailors from the <i>Congress</i> and <i>Cumberland</i>
-came, one of them with his ship’s flag bound about
-his waist, as he had swum with it ashore. Dusky fugitives<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</a></span>
-came mournfully fleeing from a fate worse than death&mdash;slavery.
-These entered my cabin hungry and weary.
-The heavens were aflame with the burning <i>Congress</i>. But
-there were no soldiers among the flying host. The
-sailors came only to seek another chance at the enemy,
-since the <i>Cumberland</i> had gone down in deep waters, and
-the <i>Congress</i> had gone upward, as if a chariot of fire, to
-convey the manly souls whose bodies had perished in that
-conflict upward to heaven.</p>
-
-<div class="center"><div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<div class="i0">“The heavy night hung dark the hills and waters o’er,”</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>but the night was not half so heavy as our hearts, nor so
-dark as our prospects. All at once a speck of light
-gleamed on the distant wave. It moved; it came nearer
-and nearer, and at ten o’clock at night the <i>Monitor</i>
-appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“‘When the tale of bricks is doubled, Moses comes!’</p>
-
-<p>“I never more firmly believed in special Providence
-than at that hour. Even sceptics for the moment were
-converted, and said: ‘God has sent her!’ But how
-insignificant she looked! She was but a speck on the
-dark blue sea at night, almost a laughable object by
-day. The enemy call her ‘a cheese-box on a raft,’ and
-the comparison is a good one. Could she meet the
-<i>Merrimac</i>? The morrow must determine, for, under
-God, the <i>Monitor</i> is our only hope now.”</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant Worden, the Commander of the <i>Monitor</i>, on
-arriving at Fort Monroe was instructed to lie alongside
-the <i>Minnesota</i>, to guard her in case of a night attack.
-At eleven o’clock she set out, and her arrival was hailed
-with delight by the men on board the frigate, though
-some shook their heads at the strange unshapely toy
-which a private individual had constructed to save the
-Federal fleet. But few slept that night. The odds
-against the <i>Monitor</i> seemed too great. She mounted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</a></span>
-but two guns, while the <i>Merrimac</i> carried ten. Sunday
-morning broke sunny and beautiful, and the sea was
-peaceful and calm. Near Sewell’s Point, opposite Hampton
-Roads, three vessels were at anchor, one of them the
-<i>Merrimac</i>.</p>
-
-<p>About nine o’clock glasses showed a stir amongst them,
-and instantly the <i>Monitor</i> awoke to life and action,
-closing her iron hatches and putting on the dead-light
-covers. The <i>Monitor</i>, like a great girdle-cake, only stood
-2 feet out of the water; her smooth surface was broken
-only by the turret and pilot-house.</p>
-
-<p>Then they saw the <i>Merrimac</i> coming, looking like a
-submerged house, with roof only out of the water. After
-her came the <i>Jamestown</i> and <i>Yorktown</i>, and a fleet of tug-boats
-crowded with ladies and gentlemen from Norfolk
-eager to see the fun.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Merrimac</i>, entirely unconscious of the new enemy
-she had to encounter, steamed slowly along and fired
-upon the <i>Minnesota</i>, which was still aground. The
-<i>Minnesota</i> replied with a broadside and the usual result;
-but the <i>Monitor</i> steamed out from behind and boldly
-advanced to meet her antagonist, and when at a distance
-of half a mile Lieutenant Worden from the pilot-house
-gave the order to fire. The ball, weighing 170 pounds,
-rattled against the mailed side of the <i>Merrimac</i>. She
-staggered under the force of the concussion, and at once
-seemed to realize that in this floating turret she had no
-mean antagonist. At the range of only a few yards she
-poured in a terrible broadside. To her disgust, the shots
-seemed to have glided off and done no harm. Then the
-two vessels closed and poured a hail of heavy metal
-upon each other. The <i>Monitor</i> being the quicker, would
-circle round the <i>Merrimac</i>, while the turret, turning with
-ease, always presented the guns to the foe.</p>
-
-<p>Worden in his pilot-house could speak through tubes to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</a></span>
-Lieutenant Green, who commanded the gunners in the
-tower. Once Green trained his guns on the <i>Merrimac’s</i>
-water-line, and the shot penetrated.</p>
-
-<p>“Splendid, sir! splendid!” roared Worden. “You
-have made the iron fly.”</p>
-
-<p>But the spectators who lined the ramparts of Fort
-Monroe could not see what was happening for the clouds
-of smoke, and they stood, silent and wretched, almost
-afraid to look.</p>
-
-<p>But at last the veil parted, and they saw the little
-<i>Monitor</i> lying alongside the <i>Merrimac</i>, trim and spiteful,
-with the Stars and Stripes flying proudly from her stern,
-and a great cheer arose from every throat. Then they
-saw the <i>Merrimac</i> bear down upon the little flat cheese, as
-if to sink her. She struck fair and square, but the iron
-ram glided up on her low-sheathed deck and simply
-careened her over; but in so doing the <i>Merrimac</i> showed
-her unarmed hull below the iron coat of mail, and the
-<i>Monitor</i> planted one of her shots in a vital place.</p>
-
-<p>For four long hours had this strange duel lasted, the
-<i>Merrimac</i> firing heavily, the <i>Monitor</i> steaming round and
-choosing her place and time, with careful aim at rudder,
-screw, and water-line. At last Buchanan, the Commander
-of the <i>Merrimac</i>, was severely wounded, and as
-his ship began to take in water through three gaping
-wounds, the helm was put over and the conqueror of
-yesterday limped away. But her last shot struck point-blank
-upon the iron grating of the pilot-house just where
-Lieutenant Worden was looking out. The concussion
-threw him down senseless, and minute pieces of iron and
-powder were driven into his eyes, so that he was blinded.
-When after a time he recovered his consciousness he asked:</p>
-
-<p>“Have I saved the <i>Minnesota</i>?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir, and whipped the <i>Merrimac</i>,” was the
-reply.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Then I care not what becomes of me,” murmured the
-Lieutenant.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Merrimac</i> slowly made her way to a safe anchorage
-under the batteries at Sewell’s Point. Here she signalled
-for help, and tugs came up, took her in tow, and escorted
-her to Norfolk. Her injuries were so severe that after
-months of work upon her she never ventured to quit
-her retreat, whereas the <i>Monitor</i> seemed but slightly
-damaged. She had been hit twenty-two times, and only
-showed slight indentations, but a ball striking full on
-the pilot-house had bent a huge iron beam. The ram of
-the <i>Merrimac</i> had torn off some of the plating from the
-side of the <i>Monitor</i>. The latter drew only 10 feet of
-water, and could go where the <i>Merrimac</i> could not
-venture.</p>
-
-<p>But though the <i>Merrimac</i> had fired her last shot, she
-gave the North a great fright in the night which followed
-the battle. At midnight thousands of people along the
-coast were roused from their sleep by cries that came over
-the water: “Fire! fire! For God’s sake, save us!”</p>
-
-<p>The shore was soon lined by spectators, who stood
-unable to get a boat to put out or help in any way. There
-was the gunboat <i>Whitehall</i> roaring with flames, and the
-dark figures of the crew were plainly visible on her deck,
-either wrapped in red fire or jumping into the deep water
-beneath.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Whitehall’s</i> shotted guns were going off here and
-there through the thick crowds or clustering houses, and
-one shell struck the hospital, making the inmates believe
-that the <i>Merrimac</i> had returned. It transpired that a
-red-hot shot had been thrown from the <i>Merrimac</i> during
-the day and had lodged between the <i>Whitehall’s</i> timbers,
-where the fire smouldered until late at night.</p>
-
-<p>The general conclusion from this momentous fight
-between the first ironclads was that “England’s naval<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</a></span>
-supremacy is gone for ever.” But men are more potent
-than masses of metal. America and England have navies
-now in comparison with which the <i>Merrimac</i> and <i>Monitor</i>
-are but tin kettles. Yet we must remember that Russia,
-too, a few months ago possessed a strong navy as far as
-metal goes. But once again the Japanese proved to the
-world that it is in the hearts of brave men, the science of
-clever men, and the enduring patience of patriotic men,
-that the issues of victory or defeat are mainly determined.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XV" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">CAPTURE OF NEW ORLEANS (1862)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">New Orleans and its forts&mdash;Farragut despises craven counsel&mdash;The
-mortar-fleet in disguise&mdash;Fire-rafts rush down&mdash;A week of hot
-gun-fire&mdash;A dash through the defences&mdash;The <i>Varuna’s</i> last shot&mdash;Oscar,
-aged thirteen&mdash;Ranged before the city&mdash;Anger of mob&mdash;Summary
-justice&mdash;Soldiers insulted in the streets&mdash;General Butler
-in command&mdash;Porter nearly blown up in council&mdash;Fort Jackson
-in ruins&mdash;“The fuse is out.”</p>
-
-<p>New Orleans, on the Mississippi River, was the great
-market of the South, a rich and powerful city of 200,000
-inhabitants. Everything possible had been done to defend
-it from the Northern arms. Sixty miles below New
-Orleans the river makes a sharp bend, and here, fronting
-each other on either side, stood the forts of Jackson and
-St. Philip. These strong forts the Confederates had
-seized, and the Federal fleet had to pass them on its way
-to New Orleans. They were heavily armoured with 180
-pieces of ordinance, but besides the forts the warships
-would have to cut through an iron cable stretched across
-the river and supported by seven hulks and rafts. Above
-these were eighteen gunboats and floating batteries, with
-fire-rafts and rams; so that the city felt itself tolerably
-secure behind these obstructions, and laughed to scorn
-any thought of being besieged. Besides, had not English
-and French officers examined the forts and pronounced
-the attempt to pass them madness? But Commodore<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</a></span>
-Farragut, who was in command of the National fleet,
-answered them in these words:</p>
-
-<p>“You may be right, gentlemen, but I was sent here to
-make the attempt. I came here to reduce or pass the
-forts and to take New Orleans, and I shall try it on.”</p>
-
-<p>The Federal mortar-fleet was getting ready for action.
-Topmasts were lowered, all spars and booms unshipped,
-the main-decks cleared, and armour of chain cables was
-improvised to protect the gunners. The ships were
-painted with mud to make them invisible. On the
-17th of April the order was given to advance up-stream.
-There was a thick forest on the western bank, a low bank
-and marshy ground on the east. In order to confuse
-the enemy, the masts and rigging of the Northerners were
-festooned with leafy branches; others were sheathed
-with reeds to blend with the background of the river-bank.
-Five sloops of war waited behind the mortar-boats,
-carrying 104 guns; 150 boats supplied with grapnel-ropes,
-axes, and buckets, were ready to deal with the fire-ships.
-And they soon had the work to do, for one dark
-night a blazing raft came down upon them, lighting up
-water and bank, trees and rushes; but the <i>Westfield</i>
-dashed into the burning pile and turned her hose upon
-it; and the boats leapt forth to hack and grapple and
-plunge the burning timbers into the river. Then cheers
-broke forth when the peril had been subdued.</p>
-
-<p>At 9 a.m. of the 16th of April Fort Jackson threw a
-shell into the Northern flotilla a mile off, and at once the
-mortar-boats replied, sending their big shells with great
-accuracy into the very ramparts. New Orleans, seventy-two
-miles away, distinctly heard the thunder of the bombardment,
-kept up for more than a week. The citadel
-was set on fire, the walls cracked and shattered, and the
-forts were flooded. The men on deck would fall down
-and sleep in the midst of the great thunder, so exhausted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</a></span>
-were they by toil night and day. On the second day the
-<i>Carleton</i> received a shell into her magazine, which exploded,
-and she sank. At the end of a week, after all
-this terrible storm of flying metal, only one man had been
-killed and six wounded in the Federal fleet. But the
-forts had not been silenced.</p>
-
-<p>On the 24th of April, at 2 a.m., two red lights were run
-up on the flag-ship, and very soon the fleet was under
-way for the passage between the forts. As each ship
-passed it delivered its broadside and swept on towards the
-gunboats beyond. Fire-rafts kept floating down, and
-the roar of 500 cannon shook the air.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Ithaca</i> was riddled by shot and fell behind. The
-ram <i>Manasses</i> came down on the flag-ship, and Admiral
-Farragut got aground while trying to avoid her. His
-ship took fire from a fire-raft, but it was extinguished.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Boggs in the <i>Varuna</i> sunk five gunboats one
-after another, then his vessel’s sides were stove in by a
-ram; but with his last broadside before he sank he disabled
-her. A boy named Oscar was on board the <i>Varuna</i>,
-only thirteen years old, and during the fight was very
-busy passing ammunition to the gunners. All covered
-with dirt and powder-begrimed, he was met by Captain
-Boggs, who asked where he was running in such a hurry.</p>
-
-<p>“To get a passing-box, sir. My other was smashed
-by a ball.”</p>
-
-<p>When the <i>Varuna</i> went down with her crew Boggs
-missed the boy, and feared he was among the drowned.
-But presently he saw the lad gallantly swimming towards
-the <i>Oneida</i>, a neighbour ship. Oscar clambered on board,
-dripping and grinning from ear to ear, as if he had just
-enjoyed the finest fun in life. Seeing his Captain, he put
-his hand to his forehead in the usual salute, and saying,
-“All right, sir; I report myself on board,” shook off the
-water and was ready for the next duty to hand.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 25th the Federal ships ranged up
-near the city batteries and silenced their fire in a few
-minutes. Soon the whole fleet was moored opposite New
-Orleans, with the Stars and Stripes proudly flying from
-every masthead, and the bands playing their national airs.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens of New Orleans had rested in full persuasion
-that they were absolutely safe behind their forts
-and gunboats, and now that they saw the enemy actually
-threatening their city, they were transported by a passion
-of panic, mortification, and rage.</p>
-
-<p>When they first heard that the forts had been passed
-and that the Yankee ships were coming up the river, the
-mob of the city became so desperate in their fury that
-martial law had to be proclaimed. At least, they said,
-these hated Yankees should not get the wealth of the
-city, and they put the torch to everything that would
-burn. Offices, banks, ships, cotton, piers, warehouses,
-coal, and sugar&mdash;all were fired and consumed in one vast
-conflagration. The river was dotted with floating
-islands of flame, as richly freighted merchantmen were
-fired and cut adrift.</p>
-
-<p>The Confederate General Lovell and his troops were
-withdrawn, as no reasonable promise of a successful
-defence remained.</p>
-
-<p>Two iron rams of immense power which had been in
-building were destroyed before Admiral Farragut arrived.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the fleet appeared before the city some of
-the citizens who favoured the Union foolishly expressed
-their delight by cheers. Civil war is always conducted
-with greater bitterness than war with a foreign Power.
-These unfortunates were promptly shot down in the
-street or on the quay.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_9" src="images/i_231.jpg" width="399" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">Shot down by their Fellow-Citizens</p>
-
-<p>During the siege of New Orleans, some of those who favoured the North were
-foolish enough to cheer when the Northern fleet arrived.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the 26th of April the city was formally surrendered,
-and a body of troops was landed to raise the Stars and
-Stripes over the public buildings. Crowds of angry men<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</a></span>
-followed the marines with hoot and yell, and were only
-prevented from inflicting actual outrage by the fear of
-being shelled from the ships. It is said that Captain
-Bailey and his men on landing at the crowded pier were
-jostled and jeered at by angry bands of rowdies. We
-have to remember this when we pass judgment on
-General Butler’s order to treat all ladies who insulted the
-troops as disorderly women. We may wonder how the
-Germans would have treated the French in Paris had the
-Parisians dared to conduct themselves so outrageously.</p>
-
-<p>General Butler writes thus to a friend: “We were
-2,500 men in a city seven miles long by two to four wide,
-of 150,000 inhabitants, all hostile, bitter, defiant, explosive&mdash;standing
-literally on a magazine. The devil
-had entered the hearts of the women to stir up strife in
-every way. Every opprobrious epithet, every insulting
-gesture, was made by these bejewelled, becrinolined and
-laced creatures, calling themselves ladies, towards my
-soldiers and officers from the windows of houses and in
-the streets. How long do you think our flesh and blood
-could have stood this?...”</p>
-
-<p>It is clear that General Butler was as angry as the
-ladies. The <i>Albany Journal</i> adds this fact: “Women
-who have been regarded as the pattern of refinement and
-good breeding not only assail our men with the tongue,
-but with more material weapons. Buckets of slops are
-emptied upon them as they pass, decayed oranges and
-rotten eggs are hurled at them. The forbearance of our
-troops is wonderful.”</p>
-
-<p>Commander Porter had been left behind to receive the
-capitulation of the forts Jackson and St. Philip, when
-the Federal fleet steamed up to New Orleans. He pitched
-a few shells into Fort Jackson, but there “was no response;
-the fight had all been taken out of them.” On
-the 28th a flag of truce from Fort Jackson came on board<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</a></span>
-the <i>Harriet Lane</i> with offer to surrender. When officers
-of both sides were assembled in the cabin of the <i>Harriet
-Lane</i> discussing the details of surrender, an officer came
-below and informed Commander Porter that the Southern
-battery <i>Louisiana</i> had been set on fire and was drifting
-down upon them. She was a steam floating battery of
-4,000 tons, mounting sixteen heavy guns. The battery
-had been fired so quietly that no one suspected any such
-thing until it blazed up, for flags of truce were flying upon
-both forts and ships.</p>
-
-<p>Porter proceeded with the conference as if nothing were
-the matter. Soon another officer came down, reporting
-that the battery, on fire from stem to stern, was drifting
-down upon them.</p>
-
-<p>Turning to the Confederate officers, Porter asked:
-“Has she powder and loaded guns on board, gentlemen?”</p>
-
-<p>“We presume so, but we know nothing of naval
-matters here.”</p>
-
-<p>Just at this moment the hot guns began to go off and
-throw shot and shell at random amongst friends and foes.</p>
-
-<p>Commander Porter, with severe coolness of manner,
-only said: “Then we will go on with our business, gentlemen.
-If you don’t mind the effect of the explosion which
-is soon to come, we can stand it.”</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, the <i>Louisiana</i> drifted across towards
-St. Philip, and exploded her magazine when just abreast
-of it. The sound of the explosion was heard for miles
-up and down the river. When the smoke cleared away
-the battery had gone into fragments and sunk in the
-Mississippi. If it had drifted upon the <i>Harriet Lane</i>, as
-had been intended, and blown into smithereens the consulting
-officers of both North and South, that would
-have been a consequence of treachery almost worse than
-the insults of the New Orleans ladies or the indiscreet
-edict of General Butler.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Fort Jackson had crumbled into powder under the
-impact of the huge shells from the mortars. On the first
-night of the bombardment the magazine was in such
-danger that only wet blankets saved it from blowing up.
-One bomb came leaping into the officers’ mess-room
-when they were dining. With a thud and a rumble it
-rolled under the very table. All rose and clustered in a
-corner in some consternation, expecting to go skywards
-with the crockery. They waited one minute, two
-minutes. Not yet had death come! Then a young
-officer crawled under the table and burst into a hearty
-laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Jimmy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you can go on with that Irish stew now. The
-fuse is out.”</p>
-
-<p>They returned to their dinners with such appetite as
-they could. Fortunately, men who are living at high
-pressure and strain, meeting death at every turn, are
-easily moved to see the funny side of things.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVI" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF RICHMOND (1862 <span class="smaller">AND</span> 1865)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Fair Oaks a drawn battle&mdash;Robert Lee succeeds Johnston&mdash;Reforms
-in the army&mdash;Humours of the sentinels&mdash;Chaffing the niggers&mdash;Their
-idea of liberty&mdash;The pickets chum together&mdash;Stuart’s raid&mdash;A
-duel between a Texan and a German&mdash;Effect of music on
-soldiers&mdash;A terrible retreat to James River&mdash;Malvern Hill battle-scenes&mdash;Three
-years after&mdash;General Grant before Richmond&mdash;Coloured
-troops enter the Southern capital in triumph&mdash;Lee
-surrenders&mdash;Friends once more.</p>
-
-<p>The battle of Fair Oaks had been fought, and General
-McClellan began to entrench himself in view of the siege
-of Richmond. It had been a drawn battle: the South
-had taken some guns, but the Federal forces were too
-strong for them, and swamps, rough ground, and woods
-all helped to throw the South into confusion. Upon a
-field hardly a mile square were lying some 7,000 or 8,000
-dead and wounded, many of them having been there for
-twenty-four hours. Some had gone deep into the muddy
-swamps and stuck fast there, dying or laying the foundation
-of some terrible disease. Acres of forest had been
-slashed, or cut about 5 feet from the ground, to prevent
-the passage of troops and artillery.</p>
-
-<p>The Southern Commander-in-Chief, General Johnston,
-had been killed by a shell in this battle, but the substitution
-of General Robert E. Lee as Commander led to great
-reforms in the Confederate Army. Lee at once removed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</a></span>
-the camps from malarious swamps; he provided supplies
-of wholesome provisions, and reclothed the hungry,
-starving and mutinous men, so that in a few weeks they
-looked stronger, fought better, and behaved as men under
-discipline.</p>
-
-<p>Every evening the countersign was given out, and
-sentinels were posted to prevent spies crossing the
-Chickahominy. In the Federal Army were men of many
-nations&mdash;Scotch, Irish, German, Norsemen, and others.
-It was told of an Irish sentinel that he stopped a
-stranger.</p>
-
-<p>“Halt! Who comes there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Me&mdash;a friend of the chaplain.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have ye the countersign?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Faith! an’ if ye were a friend of the divil and had
-no counthersign ye couldn’t pass this way&mdash;not on no
-account, sor.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I tell you I am a friend of your chaplain, and I
-forgot to ask him for the countersign. Don’t you see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is that it, sor? Then, be jabers! what’s to prevint
-me giving to ye the counthersign, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing, I suppose, if you will be so kind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come closer, and, be jabers! I’ll just whisper it in
-your ear. There! Now stand and answer. Who comes
-here?”</p>
-
-<p>“A friend.”</p>
-
-<p>“A friend! Right! and maybe ye have the counthersign?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have; it is ‘Good-night, mother.’”</p>
-
-<p>“Quite correct, sor. Pass on, and good luck to ye!”</p>
-
-<p>A long siege is such dull work that the Northerners
-used to amuse themselves by chaffing the young negroes
-when they caught them in the lines. Perhaps they would
-give the nigger-boy a bit of food, then suddenly say:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Sambo, what relation are you to Jeff Davis’s coachman?”</p>
-
-<p>The black eyes would roll and the whites enlarge as the
-grinning nigger replied:</p>
-
-<p>“I ain’t no sort o’ connexion with that ere, sah.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a Secesh, I reckon.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sah; I’m Union boy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, then we shall have to flog you, Sambo. Don’t
-you know that in this part of McClellan’s army we are all
-at heart good rebels?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lord ha’ mercy! I never thought o’ that; and now
-I do think on it, I do agree dat I am a bit of a rebel,
-anyhow.”</p>
-
-<p>Then all the listeners would burst out laughing at
-poor Sambo, and he left the camp befogged and bewildered.</p>
-
-<p>Once an old grey-headed negro came into camp, and
-some young officers began to tackle him.</p>
-
-<p>“Think we can take Richmond, boy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Dar be right smart o’ men round here, but I dunno
-’bout dar being able for to take Richmond, sah.”</p>
-
-<p>“‘Right smart o’ men!’” said a Captain. “Why,
-this is only a flea-bite to what’s coming to eat up the
-rebel army. You’ll see them coming up like locusts.
-Here’s McClellan with half a million around here, and
-there’s Burnside down there, coming from Carolina with
-a hundred thousand more, and General Banks with two
-hundred thousand more, and General Fremont&mdash;why, he
-can’t count his men he has so many!”</p>
-
-<p>The old fellow opened his eyes wider and wider as the
-list of imaginary armies was run over. Then, gazing up
-intently in the officer’s face:</p>
-
-<p>“Got all dem men?” he asked in a subdued voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and more.”</p>
-
-<p>The negro threw out his arms and ejaculated:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh! dear Mesopotamia! Whatever will become of
-massa, I wonder?”</p>
-
-<p>The negroes wanted to be free, but they did not want
-to work. Many of them who had run away from their
-masters were employed by the Federals in unloading
-stores. They worked from daylight until dark, singing
-over it, talking, shouting, arguing, making such a shindy.
-A Virginian negro never did a quarter of a day’s work on
-his master’s plantations, and they soon found out the
-difference when they became free niggers and earned
-wages. They did not much relish their rise. A party of
-niggers would come up to the Colonel’s tent.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, boys, what made you leave your master?
-Wasn’t he kind to you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, massa berry kind&mdash;berry kind indeed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, didn’t he give you enough to eat?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, plenty of dat, plenty of dat&mdash;’nuff to eat.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, boys, what made you leave him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, de trufe am dat he made us work ’mong sugar-canes,”
-said one.</p>
-
-<p>“And we heerd ’bout de Norf am such a nice place, so
-we tort dat we would go to um,” said another.</p>
-
-<p>“Nice place? Why, how do you mean a nice place?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sah, we was told dat nobody did no work up
-dar.”</p>
-
-<p>Even the white peasants in Virginia seemed to be lazy
-and indolent. They lived in little cabins, and only the
-very young or old were left, as every able-bodied man was
-in the army. They were dressed in homespun and spoke
-with a drawl. They did not wish to be richer, content
-with one acre and a single cow&mdash;Tories of a most old-fashioned
-kind; and the women, like the Boers, were
-far more dangerous rebels than the men, and tried to
-entrap unwary Federals when they got them drinking in
-their houses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All round by the river four miles from Richmond was
-a succession of dark swamp, yellow field, and brown
-hill-side. Batteries were placed on all the ridges, guarded
-on either side by woods and in front by earthworks.
-The Confederates on the other side of the river had fewer
-trees but stronger earthworks. On the 1st of June there
-was an artillery duel, begun by the Richmond batteries,
-but they had to beat a retreat into the woods before the
-precision of some German gunners. Sometimes the
-pickets of both armies were so close to each other that
-they made an agreement not to fire at one another.
-Then they got to exchanging newspapers and tobacco,
-telling the news, and altogether behaving as if they were
-rational human beings, and not machines sent to kill
-one another for political ideals far beyond their ken.
-Once when a New Jersey regiment was upon picket
-Federal scouts were being served with their allowance of
-coffee, and one of these latter observing a Southerner
-gazing wistfully at his smoking cup, beckoned to him to
-come over and have a drink. He came, drank, smacked
-his lips, and walked slowly back. Then he looked round
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>“I say, friend, how many times a month do you fellows
-get this good coffee?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, just three times a day,” said the Jersey man.</p>
-
-<p>“Three times a day! Why, if that’s true I’ll not stay
-a day longer in the Confederate Army. Here, lad, I give
-myself up.” And the fellow actually let his friend take
-him prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>On the 20th of June General McClellan reported that
-he had 156,839 men, but he could get no reinforcements,
-and the armies of the South were increasing. The rains
-were making quagmires all around, and disease was rife
-among the troops. About this time the Confederate
-General Stuart led a successful raid with 1,200 horse and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</a></span>
-two pieces of artillery round the rear of the Federals,
-driving in their cavalry pickets till he came to Garlick’s
-Landing, where he destroyed two schooners and many
-waggons and captured many prisoners. One Federal&mdash;a
-German Dragoon&mdash;scorned to fly with his comrades,
-and fought a duel with a Texan trooper. The German
-was a veteran in the wars of Europe, and attacked the
-Texan, who was a little in advance of his troop. Both
-were skilled swordsmen, and while they fought the rest
-pulled rein and looked on. The German sat his horse as
-if he were a part of the animal and wielded his sword
-with parry, cut, and thrust like lightning flash. The
-Texan, on his fleet barb, wheeled swiftly round and
-round, seeking in vain for an opening. At last the
-Texan slashed the German’s shoulder, and as blood
-spirted from the wound the Texans, looking on, raised a
-cheer. But as quick as thought, with a back-stroke the
-German cut through the sleeve and flesh of the Texan’s
-left arm, and his blood began to flow. Then the Texan
-backed his horse and spurred again upon his opponent,
-making a lunge at his breast. This the Dragoon parried
-with great dexterity, and brought down his sharp blade
-upon the other’s shoulder. Thereat the Texan wheeled
-his horse once more, drew a pistol and shot the Dragoon
-through the heart.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_10" src="images/i_241.jpg" width="400" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">A Duel between a Texan and a German</p>
-
-<p>After a successful raid by the Southerners, the Federals had almost all fled, but one&mdash;a
-German dragoon&mdash;scorned to do so, and instead attacked a Texan. The other
-Southerners let them fight a duel, and the German was having the best of it, when the
-Texan drew a pistol and shot him dead.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Colonel Estran, a Prussian officer in the service of the
-South, who witnessed this scene, but disapproved of the
-Texan having recourse to his pistol, writes thus: “Much
-moved by his fate, I ordered a grave to receive the remains
-of the brave German trooper. We buried him in
-his regimentals, with his trusty sword on his breast and
-his pistols by his side. I then sent for the Texan, and,
-after reprimanding him severely for his cowardly conduct,
-I ordered him to seek service in some other corps, telling
-him that I could not think of allowing a fellow of his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</a></span>
-stamp to remain in my regiment. The Texan scowled
-at me with his cat-like eyes, and, muttering a curse,
-mounted his horse and rode away.”</p>
-
-<p>I think some of us may deem that the Texan was
-hardly treated by this Prussian officer who felt so indignant
-at the shooting of the German trooper. The
-Texan had received two severe wounds. He was not
-bound to fight only with the sword. He carried pistols;
-so did the German. Why? if they were not to be used,
-why carry them? It was the Texan’s duty to kill the
-German, and he did so. No wonder the poor fellow
-muttered a curse.</p>
-
-<p>Days of disaster were coming for the Northern Army.
-They were spread along the river and through the swamps
-for more than twenty miles. The South could sally out
-of Richmond and strike any one point before support
-could be sent up. Part of the army was north of the
-river, part south. They dared not march on Richmond,
-now so strongly fortified, and to retreat was fatal. General
-Jackson had joined General Lee, and every day there was
-fierce fighting. In the battle of Gaine’s Mill, where the
-North lost twenty-two guns, the Federal General Butterfield
-at a critical moment came coolly down the knoll in
-the thick of a hot fire, and sword in hand, seized the
-colours, waved them aloft, and so encouraged the valour
-of his regiment, shouting:</p>
-
-<p>“Your ammunition is never exhausted while you have
-your bayonets; and use them to the socket, my boys!”</p>
-
-<p>Seventy thousand men were hurling grape, canister,
-and bullet against 30,000. It was one loud and continuous
-roar. It was only gradually that it was forced
-upon the Federal troops that they were beaten and were
-in full retreat to the James River.</p>
-
-<p>Battles are like games of chess. The great thing is
-to bring as many pieces into play as you can and mass<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</a></span>
-them on one or two points. The Federals had over
-100,000 fighting men, but only 30,000 were engaged in
-the battle of Gaine’s Mill.</p>
-
-<p>On the 28th McClellan wrote to the Secretary for War:
-“I have lost the battle because my force was too small.
-If I save this army now I tell you plainly that I owe no
-thanks to you or to any other person in Washington.
-You have done your best to sacrifice this army.”</p>
-
-<p>The Federal rearguard did their best to cover the retreat.
-They blew up the ammunition which had to be
-deserted, emptied the barrels of whisky and molasses, bent
-the muskets, and dismantled the forsaken waggons.
-But the roads were thronged with the sick and wounded,
-and hundreds lay down to die in the awful sun.</p>
-
-<p>Ever the victorious South were riding in upon them
-and making havoc. On one of these charges General
-Butterfield, seeing the utter misery and downheartedness
-of the men, gathered together all the regimental
-bands and placed them at the head of a brigade. In one
-great burst of sound, which rose above the clamour of
-the battle, they started “The Star-spangled Banner.”
-With the first few notes the men’s spirits rose and a new
-energy came to them. They stepped out and sang
-lustily, and other regiments caught the brave infection
-and cheered in chorus.</p>
-
-<p>Such are the uses of music in war. In our own regiments
-in the Boer War, when the men got weary with
-the long march, a Colonel would shout to his sergeants:
-“Have you any men who can sing? Put them in front.”
-Then the regiment would step out and forget their
-weariness.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Richmond Dispatch</i> describes the battle-field thus:
-“Money was found abundantly among the slain. One
-man found not less than 150 dollars in gold. One lucky
-finder had no less than six chronometers ticking in his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</a></span>
-pocket at the same time. Our men seemed to take great
-delight in assuming Federal officers’ uniforms, and
-strutted about serio-comically, much to the amusement
-of powder-begrimed youths who sat lolling and smoking
-in the shade. The cannon and arms captured in this
-battle were numerous and of very superior workmanship.
-The twenty-six pieces were the most beautiful we have
-ever seen, while immense piles of guns could be seen on
-every hand, many even hardly tarnished.”</p>
-
-<p>The road to James River was strewn with stragglers,
-tired to death. Hospitals were filled to overflowing.
-When they came to White Oak Swamp Bridge there was
-a block of waggons, cannon, ambulances, etc. Twenty
-rows of waggons stood side by side; teamsters swore, and
-horses gibbed, and officers shouted.</p>
-
-<p>A Confederate officer, writing of the battle of Malvern
-Hill, describes how the gunboats on the James River
-helped the Federal retreat, how shot from rifled guns
-came hurtling through the woods, tearing down the
-largest trees. “We passed over four lines of our own
-men who lay close to the ground and dare not rise to face
-the grape and canister. Our men trampled them into
-the mud like logs. One man in his haste to get out of
-danger shoved me on one side, and just at that instant
-a canister-shot tore his head off. As you may suppose,
-I was not much vexed at his want of politeness. Early
-next morning I rode over the battle-ground. I came upon
-numbers of dead and dying horses&mdash;and the wounded!
-One, a fair-haired Yankee boy of sixteen, was lying with
-both legs broken, half of his body submerged in water, his
-teeth clenched, his finger-nails buried in the flesh, his
-whole body quivering with agony and benumbed with
-cold. In this case my pity got the better of my resentment,
-and I dismounted, pulled him out of the water
-and wrapped him in my blanket, for which he seemed very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</a></span>
-grateful. One of the most touching things I saw was a
-couple of brothers, both wounded, who had crawled
-together, and one of them, in the act of arranging a pillow
-for the other with a blanket, had fallen. They had died
-with their arms around one another, and their cheeks
-together. But your heart will sicken at these details,
-as mine did at seeing them, and I will cease.”</p>
-
-<p>The word “resentment” in this letter reveals the bitter
-feeling that springs up when men of the same nation are
-at war. The battle of Malvern Hill was the fiercest of
-the seven days’ battles, and the loss on both sides was
-terrible. When the troops came in sight of James River,
-muddy current and low banks, they rushed down with
-mad impetuosity. Many plunged into the stream in a
-very frenzy of delight. Those who for hours had suffered
-agonies from thirst now stood knee-deep in the water
-and drank like fish. The horses were as delighted as the
-men, and neighed to their friends. Here the troops
-rested and enjoyed the supplies sent up from White
-House. But a storm came on the 2nd of July and
-changed all to mud and sticky surfaces; but the sound
-gave up their tents to the wounded, and soon many
-steamers took the poor victims of the fight to a more
-comfortable abode.</p>
-
-<p>McClellan had lost 15,000 men in the awful struggle
-of the last seven days, but the South had suffered more
-heavily, and Richmond was crowded with the wounded
-and dying. The President thanked the General in a
-letter, saying: “I am satisfied that yourself, officers, and
-men have done the best you could.”</p>
-
-<p>It was not until three years after this&mdash;in April, 1865&mdash;that
-Richmond was evacuated by General Lee before
-Generals Grant and Sheridan. President Davis was in
-church when an orderly, splashed with mud, walked up
-the aisle and handed him a paper. In the first glance he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</a></span>
-saw that all was over, and a few hours after he was in
-full flight. On Monday morning Weitzel with his army,
-composed partly of coloured troops, marched into Richmond
-with bands playing. The city had been fired and
-the stores plundered. Main Street was in ruins, and the
-bridges over the river were broken. A thousand prisoners
-were taken and 500 pieces of artillery.</p>
-
-<p>It is said that the coloured troops entered Richmond
-with proud gait and shouts of ecstasy, welcomed enthusiastically
-by their dusky brethren who thronged the
-streets. They laughed and shouted, prayed and wept,
-and kissed one another in a delirium of happiness. They
-thought that now at last the white races would acknowledge
-their equality; but the world has not yet got
-rid of its old prejudices, and their sun of happiness was
-doomed to suffer an eclipse. In a few days Lee surrendered.
-The Federals first heard the news from the
-cheers of the poor famished army of the South. Twenty-two
-thousand&mdash;all that was left of them&mdash;stacked their
-arms and filed past in a great and solemn silence. The
-cruel, devastating war was over. Now was seen the
-strange spectacle of the enemy sharing their rations with
-a conquered foe. They were no longer North and South
-now: they were all Americans&mdash;citizens once more of
-the United States, destined, perhaps, in a not distant
-future to teach Europe that peace is better than war, love
-is stronger than hate, God’s kingdom supreme over the
-transient empires of this little world.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVII" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF PARIS (1870-1871)</span><br />
-<span class="smaller">WITH THE GERMANS OUTSIDE</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The Germans invest Paris&mdash;Trochu’s sortie fails&mdash;The English ambulance
-welcomed&mdash;A Prince’s visit to the wounded&mdash;In the snow&mdash;Madame
-Simon&mdash;A brave Lieutenant&mdash;Piano and jam&mdash;The big
-guns begin&mdash;St. Denis&mdash;Old Jacob writes to the Crown Prince&mdash;A
-dramatic telegram&mdash;Spy fever&mdash;Journalists mobbed.</p>
-
-<p>After the French Emperor was defeated and taken
-prisoner at Sedan a revolution broke out in Paris, and
-the terms of peace which had been agreed upon were
-refused by the Parisians. So the Germans marched on
-Paris, arriving on the 18th of September. By the end of
-October 240,000 men began to encircle the ring of fifteen
-outer forts which guarded Paris.</p>
-
-<p>Trochu was the Governor of Paris. On the 30th of
-September he made a vigorous sortie across the Marne,
-to the south-east, where he hoped to join the French army
-of the Loire, and also at the same time to relieve Paris
-of some hungry mouths.</p>
-
-<p>But the grip of the Germans was too strong. They had
-been allowed time to strengthen their positions, and the
-sortie failed, though the great guns of the forts had
-boomed and crashed until they were glowing hot.</p>
-
-<p>An English ambulance under Mr. Young and Captain<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</a></span>
-Furley was received by the German doctor with great
-enthusiasm, for medical comforts were growing scarce in
-the field hospital.</p>
-
-<p>The stores were carried into the doctor’s own room,
-and as the box of sundries was unpacked it was splendid
-to see the delight of the good man.</p>
-
-<p>“Porter,” he cried&mdash;“ganz gut! Ale&mdash;ganz gut!
-Chloroform&mdash;ach Gott! Twelve hundred cigars&mdash;du
-lieber Gott!” and his hands and eyes went up in delight
-and gratitude.</p>
-
-<p>The woollen clothing alone must have saved many
-lives. After supper that evening the German doctor got
-up and made a little speech.</p>
-
-<p>“Gentlemen, some people go about and make large
-promises which are never fulfilled. What an example of
-the contrary we have now before us! Mr. Young and
-Captain Furley heard of our state; they let no red tape
-stand in their way, and now this afternoon there comes
-jogging up our avenue a waggon bringing what is health&mdash;nay,
-what is life&mdash;to our poor sick and wounded. Here
-is the Englander all over, gentlemen&mdash;the bulldog that
-has no wind to spare in superfluous barking.”</p>
-
-<p>The officers present raised their glasses and shouted
-“Hochs!” for the English ambulance. It is pleasant
-to hear of such comradeship between men of different
-nations.</p>
-
-<p>The next day we are told that, after desperate fighting,
-the Head-quarters Staff of the German 12th Army Corps
-sat down to a very sombre dinner-table and spoke to
-one another in hushed voices, for many chairs were
-empty this dinner-time that had been occupied at breakfast.
-Not a man in the room but had lost dear friends,
-and many had lost kinsmen, and some had brothers
-lying out on the snow. On the forenoon of the fourth
-day there were found eight poor wretches who had sur<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</a></span>vived
-the inclemency of two nights’ hard frost. Frostbitten,
-they lived two days after they were found.</p>
-
-<p>The Germans, after two days’ hard fighting, drove the
-French back into Paris, with the loss of 6,000 men; but
-they themselves were very disheartened.</p>
-
-<p>Their loss in officers was very large. The 108th Regiment
-lost thirty-six officers out of forty-five. In the
-knapsacks of the French soldiers were found provisions
-for six days, showing that they had hoped to co-operate
-with the Southern Army of the Loire.</p>
-
-<p>One day the Prince of Saxe-Weimar went to visit the
-wounded Würtembergers, a big man and a kindly heart.
-He went round with a box of cigars under his arm, asking
-each patient, “Can you smoke?” It was pitiful to see
-how they all tried to smoke, though some were too weak
-to enjoy their weed. Now the Prince comes upon a
-stalwart under officer.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you married?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, Highness; but my mother&mdash;she has three sons
-down, all wounded, and it might be bad for her.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince took out a gold piece.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, my man, send that to the mother, and let her
-know it comes from your Queen.”</p>
-
-<p>It seems that the Germans had quite mistaken the
-amount of provisions existing in Paris. According to
-their calculations by the middle of December Paris ought
-to be feeling very hungry, on salt rations at the very best.
-They had not yet prepared for a bombardment with
-siege guns, hoping that Lady Famine would drive the
-Parisians to surrender. But they made no sign.</p>
-
-<p>Down at Argenteuil, on the north-west of Paris, there
-was the crackling of the chasse-pot from over the river,
-and yet most of the population had come back to their
-shops. They gossiped in the streets with French gaiety
-and unconcern, while the bullets sang overhead pretty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</a></span>
-freely. The steeple of their beautiful church made a
-good observatory, though its sides were riddled with holes
-made by shells. The French peasants drove their carts
-into the market-place below the church and sold eggs and
-butter full merrily; yet somehow, if a German stood at
-a window to gaze out, the French sharpshooters would
-aim at him. At Lagny there were generally 1,000
-prisoners a day passing through to Germany. Some were
-so ravenous with hunger that they stooped to pick up
-turnip-tops and bones from the gutter, until the British
-Society organized a relief with stores of preserved meat
-and bread. And there was no hospital for the wounded!
-the poor creatures were dumped down in sheds, vans, the
-station-rooms, the church, the <i>mairie</i>. In one day there
-arrived 1,800 wounded. They were bestowed&mdash;frozen,
-hungry, hopeless&mdash;in the cold comfort of the church.
-Madame Simon, the lady superintendent of the Saxon
-ambulance, did noble things day and night&mdash;a most
-devoted woman. There were feats of quiet bravery done
-every day. There was a colporteur of the English Bible
-Society who used to drive his waggon on a road between
-Gonesse and Aulnay, a road exposed to shell-fire more
-than most.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said, “it is a good time for the men to read
-good words when they are standing with the shadow of
-death hanging over them.”</p>
-
-<p>There is a story of a boy Lieutenant, von Schramm,
-who found himself suddenly in a crowd of Frenchmen.
-He leapt from his horse and hid in a house, in the hope
-of escaping by the back-door; but his pursuers caught him,
-and were taking him towards St. Denis, which lies to the
-north of Paris. In going through the park of Le Bourget
-the officer who carried von Schramm’s sword was shot and
-fell. The boy made a dash for his own sword, grasped the
-hilt and cut down the man on his other side, rushed for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</a></span>
-the small lake, dived to avoid pursuing bullets, and swam
-safely across to rejoin his regiment. The strange thing
-was that he had been on the sick-list before his winter
-ducking, but now he was blessed with a boy’s appetite.</p>
-
-<p>It spoke well for the German besiegers that they got
-on so cordially with the villagers round Paris. These were
-mostly of the humbler sort; or servants left behind to
-take care of their master’s house. There were lovely
-country houses inhabited by a few German officers, and,
-were it not for the rents made by shot and shell, the owners
-would not have grumbled much at their condition when
-they returned to them, though, of course, there were cases
-where the boisterous fun of German Lieutenants played
-havoc with ormolu and gilding. I remember hearing<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[A]</a>
-of a grand piano which gave forth reluctant sounds
-when the notes were pressed down. It was discovered
-that the strings had been plentifully smeared with jams
-and sweetmeats! But these jests were the exception.</p>
-
-<p>The bombardment by the big guns had begun late in
-December with much excited wonder on the part of the
-Germans. Surely in a few days the Parisians will have
-had enough of exploding shells! Now here was almost
-the middle of January, and no effect visible. But the
-forts round Paris had no living population: no houses
-to be burnt, no women and children to mutilate. They
-had to be battered to bits, if possible; and Paris was
-behaving very heroically now. By the middle of January
-she was living very poorly indeed, but she endured yet
-another fifteen days longer.</p>
-
-<p>As for the German soldiers, they began now to feel
-bored to death, as so often happens in a long siege. The
-first excitement evaporates; each day’s unlovely duties
-recur with abominable sameness&mdash;and the Germans could
-find no beer to drink. A German is used to drink plenty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</a></span>
-of beer, and can carry it without ill effects; but when
-Fritz took to drinking rum, schnapps, or arrack, he began
-to reel about the village streets and look rather disreputable.</p>
-
-<p>It was a strange sight to mount some hill and get a view
-of Paris surrounded by its fifteen forts, and in a yet wider
-circle by the German lines. The foam of white smoke
-surged up all round; the thundering roar of cannon, the
-dull echo of distant guns made dismal music to the ear.
-The air of Paris is so clear compared to our English cities
-that all was quite visible; and now that wood was scarce
-and fires few, it was easy to mark the outlines of the larger
-buildings, though above them hung a brown pall of smoke,
-caused by exploding shells or houses that had caught fire.</p>
-
-<p>Day after day there were rumours of this or that fort
-having been silenced. Now it was St. Denis, on the north
-side; now Valérien, on the west; now Vincennes, on the
-east; but the respite was only given to cool the guns or
-renew the emplacements, and all was as it had been.
-Besides this there was the daily fear of a new sortie, as
-Issy or Ivry broke out into fierce clamour on the south-west
-and south-east. Then troops would be hurriedly
-transferred along frozen or sometimes muddy roads,
-while splinters of shell were whizzing about rather too
-familiarly.</p>
-
-<p>It was calculated that on a fierce day of firing the
-Germans shot away 10 tons of powder, and nearly
-200 tons of heavy matter&mdash;iron and steel&mdash;were hurled
-upon the forts and city in twenty-four hours.</p>
-
-<p>There is a story of the Crown Prince of Prussia which
-illustrates his kindness of heart. In the 3rd Würtemberg
-Dragoons was a certain Jacob, who had an aged and
-anxious father. This father had not heard from his son
-Jacob for so long a time that the old man, in his rustic
-simplicity, sat down and laboriously wrote a letter to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</a></span>
-Crown Prince, asking, “Can Your Highness find out anything
-about my son?” The old man knew his son had
-fought at Wörth and at Sedan, but nothing later than
-Sedan. The Crown Prince did not throw this letter into
-the waste-paper basket, but sent it to the officer commanding
-the 3rd Würtembergers, requesting that the old
-man’s mind should be set at ease. Jacob was sent for
-by his commanding officer and asked why he had not
-written home.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know that His Royal Highness the Crown
-Prince wants to know why you have not written home
-for many weeks?”</p>
-
-<p>The man saluted. His purple face was a study.</p>
-
-<p>“Go and write instantly, and bring the envelope to
-me, sirrah.”</p>
-
-<p>How that story got about among the men! How often
-has the same experience come to house-masters, when
-some loving mother appeals for help: “Please make
-Harry write home.” Both Harry and Fritz need a
-touch of the spur at times, but how promptly the letter
-is written when they feel that touch!</p>
-
-<p>The town of St. Denis suffered terribly. The front of
-the theatre was in ruins. The cathedral, being banked
-up high with sand-bags, had not suffered so much. The
-tombs of the kings had all been thus protected, so had
-the statues, and not even a nose had been knocked off.
-But the bombardment had shattered many houses and
-churches, and the shells had ploughed up the streets, or
-rather hoed them into holes. It was only in the cold and
-dark cellars that safety could be found. Even there
-people were not always safe, and when they were pressed
-to take refuge in Paris they peeped forth shuddering, and
-swore they would rather die in their own cellars than
-sally forth through a tempest of shell-fire.</p>
-
-<p>“At nine o’clock on the evening of the 28th of January,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</a></span>
-1871, while the Head-quarters Staff of the Maes Army
-were assembled in the drawing-rooms of the Crown
-Prince’s château after dinner, an orderly brought in a
-telegram to the Crown Prince. His Royal Highness,
-having read it, handed it to General von Schlottheim,
-the Chief of the Staff. That officer perused it in his
-turn, and then rising, walked to the door communicating
-between the billiard-room and the saloon, and there read
-the telegram aloud. It was from the Emperor, and it
-announced that, two hours before, Count Bismarck and
-M. Jules Favre had set their hands to a convention, in
-terms of which an armistice to last for twenty-one days
-had already come into effect.”</p>
-
-<p>This startling news meant that Paris was ready to surrender.
-How many hearts were lighter in both camps
-next day! War is not all glory and heroic achievement.
-Those who know what war is pray to God that statesmen
-and nations may think twice before they rush into so
-terrible a calamity. In this war of 180 days the Germans
-had won fifteen great victories, captured twenty-six
-fortresses, and made 363,000 prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>“Paris is utterly cowed, fairly beaten”&mdash;so they said
-who came from Paris to the German lines, and a few non-combatants,
-journalists, and philanthropists, ventured
-to enter the city before the German troops passed in on
-the 1st of March. They found the streets crowded with
-men in uniform. The food shops had nothing to sell.
-There were a few sickly preserves, nothing solid worth
-eating&mdash;some horses’ fat for a delicacy to help down the
-stuff they called bread. A fowl was priced at forty-five
-francs; stickleback were fourteen francs a pound; butter,
-forty francs a pound. Outside the bakers’ shops stood a
-shivering line of ladies and women, waiting their turn for
-loaves that tasted like putty, and pulled to pieces like
-chopped straw.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But there were in side streets many of the roughest,
-the most cowardly and cruel ruffians of the worst parts
-of Paris. They were on the prowl, waiting for their
-prey; so no wonder that Mr. Archibald Forbes, journalist,
-and several others in divers parts of the city had unpleasant
-experiences.</p>
-
-<p>Forbes tells us he was walking down the Champs
-Elysées when he met the Crown Prince of Saxony with
-his staff riding by. Forbes raised his hat; the Prince returned
-the salute and passed on. But the dirty <i>gamins</i>
-of Paris had been looking on. They hustled the
-Englishman, called him <i>mouchard</i> (spy), <i>sacré Prussien</i>,
-<i>cochon</i>, tripped him up, hit him on the back of the head
-with a stick; then, when he was down, they jumped on
-his stomach with their sabots or wooden shoes. He
-struggled, as a Scotsman can, got up, hit out right and
-left; but numbers prevailed, and he was dragged by the
-legs on his back, with many bumps and bruises, to the
-police-station. There he showed his papers, and the
-Prefect released him in a humour that said, “I am mighty
-glad you Parisians have had a good thrashing.”</p>
-
-<p>Another journalist&mdash;so he told me in London a few weeks
-later&mdash;also had ventured to stray away from the German
-sentries in order to see what Paris thought of a siege.
-He soon found himself the centre of an angry throng.</p>
-
-<p>Some cried: “He is a <i>sacré Prussien</i>! See his yellow
-hair!”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I am an English artist,” shouted my friend, still
-smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“He is a confounded spy! Take him to the Seine!
-duck him in the river!”</p>
-
-<p>They dragged him towards the river-bank. Out of his
-eye corners my friend saw several boys pick up stones to
-help him to sink. He thought his last hour was come.
-They were close to the river: the water looked very cold.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</a></span>
-Then there came to his ears the “tuck” of a drum. A
-company of French soldiers was marching by; a Colonel
-on horseback rode beside them.</p>
-
-<p>The artist recognized him, for they had once chummed
-together near Metz. He called to him by name, and the
-Colonel cried “Halt!”</p>
-
-<p>He spurred his horse through the evil-smelling crowd,
-and seeing who it was whom the rascals were going to
-plunge into the Seine, held up his hand and cried:</p>
-
-<p>“Let that English gentleman go. He is no Prussian,
-but an artist who has drawn my portrait&mdash;mine, I tell
-you&mdash;for the London journals. He is my friend&mdash;an
-English friend, like Mr. Wallace.”</p>
-
-<p>This testimony was enough for them. The excitable
-crowd flew to the opposite extreme. Those who had
-made ready to stone him like a water-rat now dropped
-those stones, and rushing up with remorse and even
-affection in their changed looks, threw fusty arms round
-his neck, kissed him on both cheeks, sobbed and cried
-for forgiveness for their little mistake.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed it is not safe to enter too soon into a conquered
-city.</p>
-
-<p class="source">From “My Experiences of the War,” by Archibald Forbes. With
-the kind permission of Messrs. Hurst and Blackett.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[A]</span></a> My informant was an English artist.</p></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVIII" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF PARIS&mdash;<i>Continued</i></span><br />
-<span class="smaller">WITH THE BESIEGED (1870-1871)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Moods in Paris&mdash;The Empress escapes&mdash;Taking down Imperial flags&mdash;Playing
-dominoes under fire&mdash;Cowards branded&mdash;Balloon post&mdash;Return
-of the wounded&mdash;French numbed by cold&mdash;The lady and
-the dogs&mdash;The nurse who was mighty particular&mdash;Castor and
-Pollux pronounced tough&mdash;Stories of suffering.</p>
-
-<p>One who was in Paris on the 3rd of September, 1870,
-might have heard strange things said in the cafés as
-evening came on. The French had suffered a great disaster;
-they had surrendered to the Germans at Sedan!
-MacMahon was wounded and taken prisoner; the Emperor
-had given himself up, and was going to Germany as a
-first-class prisoner; 80,000 men captured, and 200 guns.
-Was not that news enough to sell every paper in the
-street?</p>
-
-<p>Shouts were heard of “Déchéance! Vive la République!”</p>
-
-<p>Where was the poor Empress all this time? “Never
-mind her; it was she who had stirred up the Emperor
-Napoleon III. to make this horrible war.” So the papers
-print cruel caricatures of her. On Sunday, the 4th, very
-early in the morning, a huge crowd thronged the Place de
-la Concorde; men were pulling down Imperial eagles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</a></span>
-while the mob cheered. The regular soldiers met the
-National Guard and made friends.</p>
-
-<p>Men said to one another: “What will become of the
-Empress?” “Will she fall a victim to the new patriots?”
-And whilst some wondered, a few friends were even then
-helping her to escape to England.</p>
-
-<p>Everywhere on walls of houses were bills fixed announcing
-the Republic, and inviting all men to rally to the
-rescue of “La patrie en danger.”</p>
-
-<p>But the railway-stations were very full of men, women,
-and children, who were trying to get a little country air.
-Could it be possible that they feared Paris might before
-long be besieged?</p>
-
-<p>Drums and bugles incessant, uniforms always, rifles
-and side-arms very often. Men stood before the black-draped
-statue of Strasbourg, and waved arms wildly,
-shouting and screaming, “Revenge!” “Liberty!” and
-the like.</p>
-
-<p>By the 10th of the month the Prussian forces, 300,000
-strong, were about twenty-five miles from the capital.
-People began to look grave, and the more thoughtful
-went to the stores, and made secret purchases of coffee,
-rice, sugar, and other portable provisions. Still, the
-Parisians have not lost their gaiety yet; comic songs and
-punchinello evoke hilarious laughter.</p>
-
-<p>Then came the news, “Versailles has honourably capitulated.”</p>
-
-<p>What! so near as that! People are becoming nervous,
-so that the new authorities proclaim by billposters that
-the fifteen strong forts beyond the line of ramparts
-are fully armed and manned by the sailors from the
-fleet.</p>
-
-<p>A captive balloon goes up from Montmartre to watch
-the enemy. Then it occurs that obstacles outside the
-city must be cleared away, so that the chassepot may<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</a></span>
-have space to reach the Prussians; and many houses and
-bridges go down.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if there is a siege, have we not got a goodly
-store of food&mdash;enough for two months? Are there not
-plenty of cattle and sheep, fodder and grain collected
-within the walls? Who cares for the Prussians?”</p>
-
-<p>Yet when they see notices posted on the walls instructing
-the newly enrolled how to load their muskets,
-some have a twinge of doubt and anxiety. A few days
-more, and Paris begins to feel she is being encircled by
-the enemy. Great movement of troops towards Vincennes.
-Official notices now state that all men liable to
-military service must report themselves within twenty-four
-hours, under penalty of being treated as deserters&mdash;and
-shot.</p>
-
-<p>Yet still many are placidly playing dominoes, or
-calmly fishing from the bridges in the Seine, quite content
-if they catch a gudgeon two inches long.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, if some are betraying levity and selfishness, others
-are filled with a desire to do something for their country.
-The doctors offer their services in a body, and hospitals
-for the wounded are being established at various points.</p>
-
-<p>Ladies wearing a <i>brassard</i> on the arm (the Red Cross
-badge) were almost too numerous; and some of these had
-more zeal than strength, and failed lamentably when
-brought face to face with horrible sights.</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th of September some French forces, who
-occupied the heights of Chatillon, were attacked in force
-by the Germans, and driven away, and they ran through
-Paris crying, “We are betrayed!” but the people gloomily
-replied, “Cowards!”</p>
-
-<p>The next day many of these fugitives were marched
-along the boulevards, their hands tied behind their backs,
-and the word <i>Lâche</i> (coward) printed in large letters between
-their shoulders. Yet still crowds of men in uniform<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</a></span>
-and ladies fashionably dressed crowded the cafés, laughing
-and full of mirth.</p>
-
-<p>As the bombardment grew, it became the fashion to
-gather at the Trocadero, and watch the Prussian shells
-exploding in mid-air.</p>
-
-<p>The village folk who had lived within the lines of investment
-were brought inside the ramparts, and formed a class
-of <i>bouches inutiles</i>, though some of the men were employed
-to cut down trees and build barricades.</p>
-
-<p>The Palace of St. Cloud was burnt down about this
-time&mdash;some said by the French themselves, either by
-accident or design.</p>
-
-<p>A post by balloon and by carrier-pigeons had been introduced&mdash;<i>par
-ballon monté</i>&mdash;by which letters were sent
-away, but could not be received.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_11" src="images/i_263.jpg" width="404" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Balloon Post used during the Siege of Paris</p>
-
-<p>Letters could be sent away by this method, but not received.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>In the middle of October Colonel Lloyd Lindsay arrived
-from England, bringing with him £20,000 as a gift from
-England to the sick and wounded. He came into Paris
-in the uniform of his rank. This did not prevent his being
-captured as a spy, and suffering some indignities at the
-hands of the great unwashed of Belleville. Some with
-questionable taste said, “The English send us money&mdash;all
-right!&mdash;but why do they not help us with men and
-guns?”</p>
-
-<p>Trochu, the Governor of Paris, was thought to be rather
-infirm of purpose; his sympathies were given more to
-Napoleon than to the Republic, and he evidently distrusted
-the fighting men within Paris. Indeed, there
-were many officers quite unfit for work, who used to lounge
-about the cafés, their hands buried in a warm muff and
-their noses red with the little glasses they had emptied.
-Many battalions of Federals elected their own officers,
-and some men were seen to be soliciting votes, bottle in
-hand. The National Guard, which was somewhat like
-our militia, was distinct from the French army, and con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</a></span>tained
-many bad characters; they were apt to desert in
-time of danger.</p>
-
-<p>On the 21st of October there was a sortie against the
-Prussians on the west of Paris. They started at noon,
-as Mont Valérien fired three guns in quick succession.
-They took with them some new guns, called mitrailleuses,
-from which great things were expected. In the evening
-there came back a long procession of sixty-four carriages,
-all filled with wounded. Crowds of anxious mothers
-came clustering round, inquiring for friends. The people
-in the street formed two lines for the carriages to pass
-between; the men respectfully uncovered their heads.</p>
-
-<p>November came, with snow and bitter frost. Strange
-skins of animals began to be worn; fuel was scarce, gas
-was forbidden, and epidemics arose. The very poor received
-free meals from the <i>mairies</i>, while the more respectable
-poor stayed at home, making no sign, but starving in
-dumb agony.</p>
-
-<p>On the 30th of November another sortie was attempted.
-Some villages were taken by the French, Champigny and
-Brie, the mitrailleuses being found very useful in sweeping
-the streets; but towards evening the French were repulsed,
-and the commander of the 4th Zouaves was left by his
-own men on the ground wounded, a shell having dropped
-near them. Fortunately, the English ambulance was
-close by, and rendered such help as was possible. Then
-they drove the helpless officer in a private brougham
-back to Paris. What was their indignation when they
-found great crowds of people of both sexes indulging in
-noisy games, as if it was a holiday! The poor Chef de
-Bataillon only lived a few hours after being taken to the
-hospital.</p>
-
-<p>Next day ambulances were sent out to search for the
-wounded, but they came upon many stragglers bent on
-loot. The wounded were in sore plight after spending a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</a></span>
-night on the frozen ground. Some had been able to make
-a little fire out of bits of broken wheels, and to roast horse-flesh
-cut from horses which the shells had killed. The
-French troops had remained in bivouac all that night,
-their strength impaired by fatigue and cold; the German
-troops, on the contrary, were withdrawn from the field of
-battle, their places being taken by others who had not
-seen the carnage of the previous day, who were well fed
-and sheltered, and thus far better fitted to renew the
-fight. No wonder that the poor benumbed French failed
-to make a stout resistance. Hundreds of wounded returned
-to Paris all the following day, and it became evident that
-no effort to break the circle of besiegers could succeed.
-Paris awoke at last to the humiliating truth. The day
-was cold and foggy; the transport of wounded was the
-only sound heard in the streets; in the evening the
-streets were dimly lit by oil-lamps, shops all closed at sundown,
-and the boom of heavy guns seemed to ring the
-knell of doom. All hope was now fixed on the provinces,
-but a pigeon-post came in, telling them of a defeat near
-Orleans.</p>
-
-<p>“The Army of the Loire has been cut in two! Tant
-mieux! (So much the better!) Now we have two Armies
-of the Loire.” So the dandy of the pavement dismissed
-the disaster with an epigram.</p>
-
-<p>The scarcity of meat was felt in various ways; even the
-rich found it difficult to smuggle a joint into their houses,
-for it was liable to arrest on its way: some patriots would
-take it from a cart or the shoulder of the butcher’s boy,
-saying, “Ciel! this aristocrat is going to have more than
-his share.” One day a fashionable lady was returning
-home carrying a parasol and a neat parcel under her
-shawl. After her came six hungry dogs, who could not
-be persuaded to go home, though she hissed and scolded
-and poked them with her gay parasol. On meeting a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</a></span>
-friend, she first asked him to drive them away, and then
-confided to him that she had two pounds of mutton in her
-parcel. And so the poor dogs got none!</p>
-
-<p>Amongst the hungry folk we must not forget that there
-were nearly 4,000 English in Paris, about 800 of whom
-were destitute, and would have starved had it not been for
-the kindness of Dr. Herbert and Mr. Wallace. The
-wounded were well looked after, for there were 243 ambulances,
-of which the largest, the International, had its
-headquarters at the Grand Hotel. In one of the Paris
-journals it was stated that a lady went to the Mayor’s
-house of her district to ask to be given a wounded soldier,
-that she might nurse him back to life. They offered her
-a Zouave, small and swarthy.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no,” she exclaimed; “I wish for a blonde patient,
-being a brunette myself.”</p>
-
-<p>It was hardly worth while going to pay a visit to the
-Zoological Gardens, for most of the animals had been
-eaten.</p>
-
-<p>Castor and Pollux were amongst the last to render up
-their bodies for this service. Castor and Pollux were two
-very popular elephants, on whose backs half the boys and
-girls in Paris had taken afternoon excursions. Poor
-fellows! they were pronounced later on by the critical to
-be tough and oily&mdash;to such lengths can human ingratitude
-go when mutton is abundant.</p>
-
-<p>They were twins and inseparables in life. Their trunks
-were sold for 45 francs a pound, the residue for about
-10 francs a pound. Besides the loss of the animals, all
-the glass of the conservatories in the Jardin des Plantes
-was shattered by the concussion of the big guns, and
-many valuable tropical plants were dying.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens, usually so gay and hopeful, presented a
-woebegone appearance whenever they saw their soldiers
-return from unsuccessful sorties. They began to look<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[Pg 248]</a></span>
-about for traitors. “Nous sommes trahis!” was their
-cry. There was one private of the 119th Battalion who
-refused to advance with the others. His Captain remonstrated
-with him; the private shot his Captain rather
-than face the Germans. A General who was near ordered
-the private to be shot at once. A file was drawn up, and
-fired on him; he fell, and was left for dead. Presently an
-ambulance stretcher came by, and picked him up, as a
-wounded man; he was still alive, and had to be dealt with
-further by other of his comrades. Let us hope that this
-man’s relations never learnt how Jacques came to be so
-riddled by bullets.</p>
-
-<p>The houses on the left bank of the Seine were so
-damaged that the citizens had to be transferred to the right
-bank. In a few days the terrible battery of Meudon opened
-fire upon the city. The shells now fell near to the centre
-of Paris; day and night without rest or stay the pitiless
-hail fell, and this went on for twelve days and nights.
-Meanwhile the cold increased and the fuel failed; diseases
-spread, and discontent with the Government arose.
-Women waiting in the streets for their rations would fall
-from exhaustion; others were mangled by shells. The
-daily ration for which the poor creatures struggled consisted
-now of 10 ounces of bread, 1 ounce of horse-flesh,
-and a quarter litre of bad wine.</p>
-
-<p>One more effort the starving Parisians made to break
-through on the 19th of January. Early that morning
-people were reading the latest proclamation on the walls:
-“Citizens, the enemy kills our wives and children, bombards
-us night and day, covers with shells our hospitals.
-Those who can shed their life’s blood on the field of battle
-will march against the enemy&mdash;suffer and die, if necessary,
-but conquer!”</p>
-
-<p>Three <i>corps d’armée</i>, more than 100,000 men, were
-taking up their positions under cover of Mont Valérien;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</a></span>
-but a dense fog prevailed, and several hours were lost in
-wandering aimlessly about, so that the French became
-worn out with fatigue, whereas the Germans had passed
-a quiet night, with good food to sustain their strength.
-Yet for many hours the French obstinately held their
-ground; then stragglers began to fall away, and officers
-tried in vain to rally their companies. Night fell on a
-beaten army hurrying back through the city gates.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the bombardment went on with increasing
-violence, until early on the night of the 26th there was
-a sudden lull; just before midnight a volley of fire came
-from all points of the circle round Paris, then a weird
-silence. Then it was known that the terms of surrender
-had been signed&mdash;not too soon, for all were at starvation
-point, and only six days’ rations remained. Paris had
-been very patient under great sufferings through the cold
-winter. It is pleasant to remember that supplies of food
-sent from England were then waiting admission outside
-the northern gates.</p>
-
-<p>An English doctor residing in Paris during the siege
-writes thus:</p>
-
-<p>“One lady to whom I carried a fowl was prostrate in
-bed, her physical powers reduced by starvation to an
-extremely low ebb. When I told her that she was simply
-dying from want of food, her reply was that she really
-had no appetite; she could not eat anything. Yet when I
-gave her some savoury morsel to be taken at once, and
-then the fowl to be cooked later on, her face brightened;
-she half raised herself in bed, and pressed the little articles
-I had brought to her as a child presses a doll. I was told
-also that the nurses in an ambulance which I had aided
-with the British supplies danced round the tables, and
-invoked blessings on our heads. As regards myself, what
-I most craved for was fried fat, bacon, and fruit, and,
-above all, apples.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Besides the wild animals of the French Zoological
-Gardens, most of the domestic pets had been eaten. A
-story is told of one French lady who carefully guarded her
-little dog Fido, feeding him from her own plate with great
-self-sacrifice. One day the family had the rare treat of a
-hot joint, and in the middle of dinner the lady took up a
-small bone to carry to Fido in the next room. She
-returned in trouble, saying:</p>
-
-<p>“Fido is not in the house; he would so have enjoyed
-this bone. I hope he has not got out. They will kill him&mdash;the
-brutes!&mdash;and eat him.”</p>
-
-<p>The members of that starving family exchanged uneasy
-glances; they were even now engaged upon a salmi,
-or hash, formed from a portion of the lady’s pet!</p>
-
-<p class="source">“From Memoirs of Dr. Gordon.” By kind permission of Messrs.
-Swan Sonnenschein and Co.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIX" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">METZ (1870)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Metz surrounded&mdash;Taken for a spy&mdash;Work with an ambulance&mdash;Fierce
-Prussians rob an old woman&mdash;Attempt to leave Metz&mdash;Refusing
-an honour&mdash;The <i>cantinière’s</i> horse&mdash;The grey pet of the regiment&mdash;Deserters
-abound&mdash;A village fired for punishment&mdash;Sad scenes
-at the end.</p>
-
-<p>One Englishman, the Special Correspondent of the
-<i>Manchester Guardian</i>, contrived to enter Metz shortly
-before it was besieged. But he had not been there long
-before a disagreeable experience befell him. He was
-riding quietly outside the city towards the French camps
-which were pitched all round it, when suddenly a soldier
-stepped across the road, and cried, “Halt!”</p>
-
-<p>Two men seized his reins, asking, “Have you any
-papers?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; here is my passport,” he replied confidently.</p>
-
-<p>The passport puzzled them; it was taken to a
-superior officer, who knew that it was English, but looked
-suspiciously at the German visé which it bears.</p>
-
-<p>The Englishman was taken to a General across the road,
-who shook his head and remanded him to another
-officer of the staff, a mile back towards Metz. It begins
-to look serious; this man may be shot as a spy.</p>
-
-<p>Two gendarmes were called up to guard him; soldiers
-came up to stare with savage scowls&mdash;he was a spy un<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</a></span>doubtedly;
-but cigarettes were offered by the spy, and
-things began to look less cloudy. Then up came General
-Bourbaki, and fresh questions were put and answered;
-then a mounted messenger was sent to Metz to find out if
-the prisoner’s statements were correct. On his return
-with a satisfactory account, the prisoner was told to mount
-and ride with escort to the head-quarters of the Commander-in-Chief,
-Marshal Bazaine. As he rode soldiers
-jeered and prophesied a speedy death in a ditch, which
-made him feel ill at ease.</p>
-
-<p>A ride of a mile brought him to a pretty château,
-where he was received with courtesy and kindness. At
-a long common deal table in a wooden pavilion in the
-garden sat the Marshal and some twenty officers of the
-staff. Dispatches were being written, signed, and sent
-off by mounted messengers. In the corner was an electric
-telegraph, ticking off reports from distant points.</p>
-
-<p>When the conference broke up, Marshal Bazaine
-motioned the suspect to a seat, and questioned him, made
-him show on a map where he had been riding, found he
-understood no German and was a fool at maps (perhaps a
-little stupidity was put on), then he left him to his secretary.</p>
-
-<p>The latter said, with a sly glance: “We have so many
-spies that we are bound to be careful, but the arrest in
-this case is a stupid thing (<i>une bêtise</i>). I will give you a
-<i>laissez-passer</i> for the day, monsieur.”</p>
-
-<p>So he went off, relieved at not being shot for a spy, but
-somewhat mortified.</p>
-
-<p>There was hard fighting going on in the country round
-Metz. Our countryman managed to get attached to an
-ambulance, and went on to a battle-field at night.</p>
-
-<p>“We lit our lanterns,” he says, “and went cautiously
-into the valley. There were Prussian sharpshooters in
-the wood beyond, and I confess I was very nervous at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[Pg 253]</a></span>
-first: the still night, the errand we were on, all awed one.
-But so soon as we reached the outskirts of the battle-field
-all personal feelings gave way to others. Here at
-every turn we found our aid was wanted. Thousands of
-dead and wounded were around us, and we, a few strangers
-sent by the International Society of London, were all that
-were present to help them. Plugging and bandaging
-such wounds as were hopeful of cure, giving a life-saving
-drink here and there, moving a broken limb into a more
-easy position, and speaking a word of encouragement
-where the heart was failing&mdash;this was all we could do.
-But all that night each worked his utmost, and when our
-water failed two of us walked back four miles to Gravelotte
-and brought a bucketful. We can dress, but not
-remove, the wounded now. Often have I been tempted to
-put a poor fellow out of his pain; it seems kinder, wiser,
-and more Christian to blow out the flickering lamp than
-let it smoulder away in hours of anguish. Daylight begins
-to dawn, and we seek carriages&mdash;that is, jolting unhung
-carts&mdash;to convey some of the wounded. Now, as we raise
-them up and torture their poor wounds by moving them,
-for the first time we hear a cry. The groans of the dying,
-the shrieks of the wounded, are absent from the battle-field,
-but far more dreadful and awe-inspiring is the awful
-stillness of that battle-field at night. There is a low,
-quivering moan floats over it&mdash;nothing more; it is a
-sound almost too deep for utterance, and it thrills through
-one with a strange horror. Hardly a word is uttered,
-save only a half-wailed-out cry of ‘Ohé! ma pauvre
-mère!’ Nothing is more touching, nothing fills one’s
-eyes with tears more, than this plaintive refrain chanted
-out as a death-chant by so many sons who never more on
-this side the grave will see again that longed-for mother&mdash;‘Ohé!
-ma mère, ma pauvre mère!’</p>
-
-<p>“We select sixty or seventy of those whose wounds will<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[Pg 254]</a></span>
-bear removal, and turn our faces towards Metz. Slowly
-and sadly we creep out of the death-valley. The quaint
-hooded forms of the sentinels who challenge us cut out
-strangely against the green and gold of the morning sky.
-Not a walking-stick, not a pipe is left us: they were cut
-up into tourniquet-keys. I am ashamed to say I regretted
-my pipe; but it came back to me after many weeks, being
-brought to me by the man whose life it had saved. Very
-grateful he was. As we toil upwards, musing on life and
-death, bang! right in our very faces spits out a cannon.
-Good heavens! they surely are not going to begin this
-devil’s work again! Yes; there goes a battery to the
-crest of the hill. We must take care of ourselves and
-those we have so far rescued from slaughter. On we
-tramp, but there is no food, not a crust of bread, not a
-drop of water for our wounded. It is nine miles more
-back to Metz, and tired as we are, we must walk it. Very
-tired and hungry and cross we enter Metz, and there see
-the French ambulances waiting with waggon-loads of appliances
-and well-groomed horses. They had stopped to
-breakfast, and many hundreds have died because they
-did so. Well, we have earned ours, at any rate.”</p>
-
-<p>It was now the 28th of August. Metz was blockaded. No
-letters could be sent, for the German hosts were holding
-the heights all round. Ruthless rough-riders were riding
-into every French village. In one of these, the story
-goes, a poor old woman was washing her little store of
-linen. She was very old, and her grey hair sprouted in
-silver tufts from her yellow skin. All the rest had fled
-in panic; she alone was left busy at her tub, when up
-rode some score of huge Dragoons. They pulled up in
-front of her, speaking their barbarous tongue. One
-Dragoon dismounts and draws his sword. Poor old
-woman! she falls upon her knees and lifts up wrinkled
-hands and cries feebly for mercy. It is in vain! Neither<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[Pg 255]</a></span>
-age nor ugliness protects her. Raising his sword with one
-hand, he stretches out the other towards her&mdash;the Prussian
-monster!&mdash;and grasps her soap. He quietly cuts it in
-two, pockets the one half and replaces the other on the
-well wall, growling out, “Madame, pardon!”</p>
-
-<p>The reaction was too great. When they rode away
-laughing, the old woman forgot to be thankful that they
-had not hurt her, and swore at them for hairy thieves.</p>
-
-<p>On the 15th of September there were around Metz
-138,000 men fit to take the field, 6,000 cavalry and
-artillery. The Prussians had not anything like that
-number. They were dying fast of dysentery and fever,
-and yet Bazaine did nothing. Yet, though Metz was not
-strongly held, it was very difficult to get through the
-lines, and many a man, tempted by the bribe of 1,000
-francs, lost his life in the attempt.</p>
-
-<p>The English journalist tried to be his own courier and
-carry his own letters. He presented himself at the
-Prussian outposts in daylight, showed his passport, and
-demanded permission to “pass freely without let or
-hindrance.” In vain. The German soldiers treated him
-to beer and cigars, and suggested he should return to
-Metz. Next time he dressed himself up as a peasant,
-with blouse, and sabots on his feet, and when it was
-growing dusk tried to slip through the posts. “Halte
-là!” rang out, and a sound of a rifle’s click brought him
-up sharp. He was a prisoner, taken to the guard-house,
-and questioned severely. He pretended to be very weak-headed,
-almost an idiot.</p>
-
-<p>“How many soldiers be there in Metz, master? I
-dunno. Maybe 300. There’s a power of men walking
-about the streets, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>They smiled a superior smile, and offered the poor idiot
-some dark rye-bread, cheese, and beer, and some clean
-straw to lie down upon. Officers came to stare at him,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[Pg 256]</a></span>
-asked him what village he was bound for. One of them
-knew the village he named, and recognized his description
-of it, for luckily he had got up this local knowledge
-from a native in Metz. However, he was not permitted
-to go to it, for before dawn next morning they led him,
-shuffling in his wooden sabots, to a distant outpost, turned
-his face towards Metz, with the curt remark: “Go
-straight on to Metz, friend, or you will feel a bullet go
-through your back.”</p>
-
-<p>Grumbling to himself, he drew near the French outposts,
-who fired at him. He lay down for some time,
-then, finding he was in a potato-field, he set to work and
-grubbed up a few potatoes to sell for a sou a piece. So
-at last he found his way back to Metz, and got well
-laughed at for his pains.</p>
-
-<p>He then tried his hand at making small balloons to
-carry his letters away; but the Germans used to fire at
-them, wing them, and read the contents.</p>
-
-<p>Many spies were shot in Metz, and some who were not
-spies, but only suspected. It was the only excitement
-in the city to go out to the fosse and see a spy shot.</p>
-
-<p>There was one man whom all raised their hats to salute
-when he passed. He was a short, thick-set man, wore a
-light canvas jacket and leather gaiters. Under one arm
-hung a large game-bag, and over the other sloped a
-chassepot rifle. His name was Hitter, and he had made
-a great name by going out in front of the <i>avant-poste</i>
-and shooting the Prussian sentinels. One night he encountered
-some waggons, shot down the escort from his
-hiding-place, and brought four waggons full of corn into
-Metz, riding on the box by the driver, pistol in hand.
-This man organized a body of sharp-shooters for night
-work, and many a poor sentinel met his death at their
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>One favourite dodge was to take out with them a tin<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[Pg 257]</a></span>
-can fastened to a long string. When they got near the
-Prussian outposts they made this go tingle tangle along
-the ground. Then cautious heads would peep out; more
-tangle tingle from the tin can, until the sentinels jump
-up and blaze away at the weird thing that startles them
-in the dark. Their fire has been drawn, and Hitter’s
-men have the outpost at their mercy. They either shoot
-them or bring them into Metz as prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>At length Marshal Bazaine heard of Hitter’s prowess,
-and sent for him, wanting to decorate him; but Hitter
-was sensitive, and thought he ought to have been decorated
-weeks ago. He came reluctantly.</p>
-
-<p>“My man, I have heard of your doings&mdash;your clever
-work at night&mdash;and in the name of France I give you
-this decoration to wear.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want it, Marshal. Pray excuse me, if you
-please.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense, my fine fellow. I insist on your acceptance
-of the honour.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! very well,” said Hitter, “if you insist, I suppose
-I must; but, by your leave, I shall wear it on my
-back&mdash;and very low down, too.”</p>
-
-<p>The Marshal glared at Hitter, turned red, and ordered
-him out.</p>
-
-<p>As the siege went on the poor horses got thinner and
-thinner. Their coats stood out in the wet weather rough
-and bristly; often they staggered and fell dead in the
-streets. They were soon set upon, and in a short time
-flesh, bones, and hide had vanished, and only a little pool
-of blood remained behind to tell where some hungry
-citizens had snatched a good dinner.</p>
-
-<p>One day a <i>cantinière</i> had left her cart full of drinkables
-just outside the gate while she went to the fort to ask
-what was wanted. She tarried, and her poor horse felt
-faint, knelt down, and tried to die. No sooner was the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[Pg 258]</a></span>
-poor beast on his knees than half a score of soldiers rushed
-out to save his life by cutting his throat&mdash;at least, it
-made him eat better. They quickly slipped off his skin
-and cut him up in all haste. So many knives were “e’en
-at him,” they soon carried off his “meat.” Then, in a
-merry mood, seeing the gay <i>cantinière</i> was too busy
-flirting to attend to her cart, they carefully set to work
-and built him up again. They put the bones together
-neatly, dragged the hide over the carcass, and arranged
-the harness to look as if the animal had lain down between
-the shafts. Then they retired to watch the comedy that
-sprang out of a tragedy. Madame comes bustling out of
-the fort. Eh! what’s that? Poor Adolfe is down on
-the ground! The fat woman waddles faster to him, calls
-him by name, taunts him with want of pluck, scolds, gets
-out her whip; then is dumb for some seconds, touches
-him, cries, weeps, wrings her hands in despair. Sounds
-of laughter come to her ears; then she rises majestically
-to the occasion, pours out a volley of oaths&mdash;oaths of
-many syllables, oaths that tax a genius in arithmetic:
-<i>diable! cent diables, mille diables, cent mille diables!</i> and
-so on, until she loses her breath, puts her fat hand to her
-heart, and again falls into a pathetic mood, passing later
-on into hysteria, and being led away between two gendarmes.
-Poor madame! She had loved Adolfe, and
-would have eaten him in her own home circle rather than
-that those <i>sacrés</i> soldiers should filch him away.</p>
-
-<p>Well, they ate horses, when they could get them; but
-donkeys were even more delicious, though very rare, for
-they seldom died, and refused to get fat. Food was
-growing so scarce in October that when you went out to
-dinner you were expected to take your own bread with
-you. Potatoes were sold at fifteen pence a pound; a
-scraggy fowl might be bought for thirty shillings. The
-Prussians had spread nets across the river, above and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[Pg 259]</a></span>
-below, to prevent the French from catching too many
-fish. As for sugar, it rose to seven shillings a pound.
-Salt was almost beyond price. The poor horses looked
-most woebegone. Many of them were Arabs, their bones
-nearly through their skin, and they looked at their friends
-with such a pitiful, appealing eye that it was most touching.
-You might have gone into a trooper’s tent and wondered
-to see the big tear rolling slowly down the bronzed cheek
-of a brave soldier.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, m’sieur? I have just lost my best friend&mdash;my
-best friend. He was with me in Algeria. Never
-tumbled, never went lame. And he understood me better
-than any Christian. He would have done anything for
-me&mdash;in reason! Now he has had to go to the slaughter-house.
-Oh, it is cruel, m’sieur! I shall never be the
-same man again, for he loved me and understood me&mdash;and
-I loved him.”</p>
-
-<p>At last there was only one horse left in that camp, and
-this was how he survived: He had laid himself down to
-die; his eyes were fogging over, he felt so weak; but one
-of the sick soldiers happened to pass that way, and being
-full of pity from his own recent sufferings, he bethought
-him of a disused mattress which he had seen in the
-hospital close by. He returned and took out a handful
-of straws, with which he fed the poor beast, a straw at
-a time. The flaccid lips mumbled them awhile. At last
-he managed to moisten the straw and eat a little. Another
-handful was fetched, and the horse pricked his ears, and
-tried to lift his head. That was the turning-point; life
-became almost worth living again. The story rapidly
-spread, and it became the charitable custom to spare a
-bit of bread from dinner for the white horse of the Ile
-Cambière. In time that spoilt child would neigh and
-trot to meet any trooper who approached, confidently
-looking for his perquisite of crust.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[Pg 260]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There were 20,000 horses in Metz at the beginning of
-the siege; at the time of the surrender a little over 2,000.</p>
-
-<p>We are told by an Englishman who was with the
-German Army outside Metz that in October a good many
-Frenchmen deserted from Metz. On the 11th a poor
-wretch was brought into the German lines. He said
-that his desertion was a matter of arrangement with his
-comrades. The man was an Alsatian, and spoke German
-well. His regiment was supposed to be living under
-canvas, but the stench in the tents was so strong, by
-reason of skin diseases, that nearly all slept in the open
-air. The skin disease was caused by the want of vegetables
-and salt, and by living wholly on horse-flesh. The
-deserter reported that the troops had refused to make
-any more sorties, and they were all suffering from scurvy.</p>
-
-<p>There was one village, Nouilly, which contained secret
-stores, to which the French used to resort, and which the
-Germans could not find; so the order was given to burn
-it. Most of its inhabitants had gone to live in Metz.</p>
-
-<p>“I was sitting at supper with Lieutenant von Hosius
-and Fischer when an orderly entered with a note. It
-was read aloud:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Lieutenant von Hosius will parade at nine o’clock
-with fifteen volunteers of his company, and will proceed
-to burn the village of Nouilly.’</p>
-
-<p>“Von Hosius was fond of herrings, so he stayed at table
-to finish them, while Fischer went out for volunteers.
-In a few minutes von Hosius was putting on his long
-boots, taking his little dagger, which every officer wore
-to ward off the vultures of the battle-field in case of being
-wounded; then, taking his revolver, he sallied out to meet
-his little band. The service was full of danger, for the
-French lay very near, and had strong temptations for
-entering it by night. If he did encounter a French force
-inside the village, where would his fifteen volunteers be?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[Pg 261]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“A little group of us watched by the watch-fire as they
-marched down at the German quick step. For a while
-we could hear the crashing through the vines, then the
-hoarse challenge of the German rear sentry; then all
-became quiet. For a few minutes the officer in command
-of the outpost and myself were the only persons who
-enjoyed the genial warmth of the fire; then through the
-gloom came stalking the Major, who squatted down
-silently by our side. Presently another form appeared&mdash;the
-Colonel himself&mdash;and in half an hour nearly all the
-officers of the battalion were round that bright wood fire.
-They all tried to look unconcerned, but everybody was
-very fidgety.</p>
-
-<p>“Von Hosius was a long time. An hour had gone, and
-Nouilly was but ten minutes or so distant, and the
-Colonel’s nervousness was undisguised as he hacked at
-the burning log with his naked sword. Suddenly the
-vigilant Lieutenant gave a smothered shout, and we all
-sprang to our feet. Flame-coloured smoke at last, and
-plenty of it. But, bah! it was too far away&mdash;a false
-alarm.</p>
-
-<p>“The Colonel sat down moodily, and the Major muttered
-something like a swear. One thing was good: there was
-no sound of musketry firing.</p>
-
-<p>“Another half-hour of suspense, and then a loud “Ha!”
-from both Lieutenant and sentry. This time it was
-Nouilly, and no mistake. Not from one isolated house,
-but in six places at once, belched out the long streaks of
-flame against the black darkness, and the separate fires
-made haste to connect themselves. In ten minutes the
-whole place was in one grand blaze, the church steeple
-standing up in the midst of the sea of flame until a firework
-of sparks burst from its top and it reeled to its
-fall.</p>
-
-<p>“Presently they came back, von Hosius panting with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[Pg 262]</a></span>
-the exertion (he was of a portly figure). The duty had
-been done without firing a single shot, and they brought
-with them a respectable old horse which they had found
-in a village stable.”</p>
-
-<p>One evening, when the German officers were discussing
-the causes of the French defeats, a First Lieutenant told
-this story to illustrate it:</p>
-
-<p>The Chief Rabbi of the Dantzic Jews had taken a new
-house, and his flock determined to stock his wine-butt
-for him. On a stated evening his friends went down one
-after another into the Rabbi’s cellar, and emptied each
-his bottle into the big vat. When the Rabbi came next
-day to draw off his dinner wine he found the cask was
-full of pure water. Each Jew had said to himself that
-one bottle of water could never be noticed in so great a
-quantity of wine, and so the poor Rabbi had not got a
-drop of wine in his butt.</p>
-
-<p>Now, it was just the same with the French army. One
-soldier said to himself that it would not matter a copper
-if he sneaked away; but the bother was that one and all
-took the same line of reasoning, and the result was that
-nobody was left to look the enemy in the face.</p>
-
-<p>In order to bring about the fall of Metz a little sooner,
-the Prussians drove out all the peasants from the neighbouring
-villages, and forced them down to Metz. The
-Mayor of Metz ordered them back; then the Prussians
-fired over their heads, and tried to frighten them down
-again. Meanwhile, the women and children were worn
-out and hungry, and sat down to cry and wish for death.
-These are some of the glories of war. Sometimes, when
-they returned to their village home after a week’s absence,
-they found a remarkable change. They had left a pretty
-villa, trim gardens, and tiny pond and summer-house.
-This is what an Englishman saw one day:</p>
-
-<p>“I came on a little group, the extreme pathos of which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[Pg 263]</a></span>
-made my heart swell. It was a family, and they sat in
-front of what had once been their home. That home was
-now roofless. The stones of the walls were all that was
-left. The garden was a wreck, and the whole scene was
-concentrated desolation. The husband leaned against
-the wall, his arms folded, his head on his chest. The
-wife sat on the wet ground, weeping over the babe at her
-breast. Two elder children stared around them with
-wonder and unconcern&mdash;too young to realize their misfortune.
-No home, no food, a waggon and a field with
-four graves in it&mdash;a sight enough to melt the hardest
-heart.”</p>
-
-<p>But there were so many similar scenes, and some much
-more terrible to witness.</p>
-
-<p>On the 29th of October, in torrents of rain, the French
-soldiers went out of Metz, casting down their rifles and
-swords in heaps at the gate, many glad enough to become
-prisoners of war and have a full stomach. The Germans
-came in very cautiously, examining fort and bastion and
-bridge, to prevent any mine explosions, and in a few
-hours “Metz la Pucelle” had become a German city.
-Marshal Bazaine, who had done so little to help them,
-was the object of every citizen’s curses. The women
-pelted him with mud and called him “Coward!” as he
-set off for the Prussian headquarters.</p>
-
-<p class="source">From “The Siege of Metz,” by Mr. G. T. Robinson, by kind permission
-of Messrs. Bradbury and Evans.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[Pg 264]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XX" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">PLEVNA (1877)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">An English boy as Turkish Lieutenant&mdash;A mêlée&mdash;Wounded by a
-horseman&mdash;Takes letter to Russian camp&mdash;The Czar watches the
-guns&mdash;Skobeleff’s charge&mdash;The great Todleben arrives&mdash;Skobeleff
-deals with cowards&mdash;Pasting labels&mdash;The last sortie&mdash;Osman
-surrenders&mdash;Prisoners in the snow&mdash;Bukarest ladies very kind.</p>
-
-<p>After Turkey had put down the insurrection in Bulgaria
-(1876) and had beaten Servia (October, 1876), Russia
-made her tenth attempt to seize Constantinople. The
-Czar, Alexander II., declared war against the Sultan,
-Abdul Hamid II., and the result was a war which in
-cruelty and horrors has had no equal since the first
-Napoleon retired to St. Helena.</p>
-
-<p>There were a few young Englishmen fighting on the
-side of the Turks, one of whom, Lieutenant Herbert, has
-left us a full account of the siege of Plevna. He says in
-his preface:</p>
-
-<p>“I have witnessed much that was heroic, much that
-was grand, soul-stirring, sublime, but infinitely more of
-what was hideous and terrible. If you have too firm a
-belief in the glories of soldiering, try a war.”</p>
-
-<p>Herbert was soon made Mulazim, or Lieutenant, and
-his friend Jack Seymour was in the same company. The
-first successes of the Russians were checked when Osman
-Pasha stood at bay at Plevna, and the Turks literally<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[Pg 265]</a></span>
-dug themselves into the hills around the city, while the
-Russians lost thousands of men in vain assaults upon the
-earthworks.</p>
-
-<p>It was in the second battle of Plevna that a Bimbashi,
-or Major, came up to Herbert and said:</p>
-
-<p>“The General has sent for reinforcements. Take your
-company; an orderly will show the way. Do your best,
-Mulazim. You are but a boy, in a position which might
-unnerve a man twice your age. Rise to the occasion, as
-Englishmen are wont to do. The soldiers love you. You
-and your compatriot have but to lead, and they will
-follow. Remember the Czar Nicholas’ furious cry in the
-Crimean War: ‘We have been beaten by a handful of
-savages led by British boys!’”</p>
-
-<p>As they climbed to a distant hill they suddenly overlooked
-a battle-field of twenty square miles in area&mdash;terrible
-to see, terrible to hear. The thunder of 240 guns
-seemed like the crash of so many volcanoes; the earth
-trembled like a living thing. It was like standing in the
-centre of a raging fire. Presently the Russian troops drew
-near. The Turks began a quick fire of three minutes’
-duration. Deep gaps showed in their lines, but they
-were soon filled up, and still they drew nearer. The
-Russian “Hurrah!” and the wild Turkish cry of “Allah!”
-mingled together. Now there were only 100 paces
-between the charging lines, the Russians coming up hill,
-the Turks rushing down. Then came a chaos of stabbing,
-clubbing, hacking, shouting, cursing men: knots of two
-or three on the ground, clinging to each other in a deadlier
-Rugby football; butt-ends of rifles rising and falling like
-the cranks of many engines; horses charging into solid
-bodies of men; frantic faces streaming with blood. All
-the mad-houses of the world might be discharging their
-contents into this seething caldron of human passion.</p>
-
-<p>“I remember nothing; all I know is that I discharged<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[Pg 266]</a></span>
-the six chambers of my revolver, but at whom I have no
-notion; that my sabre was stained with blood, but with
-whose I cannot tell; that suddenly we looked at one
-another in blank surprise, for the Russians had gone,
-save those left on the ground, and we were among friends,
-all frantic, breathless, perspiring, many bleeding, the
-lines broken, all of us jabbering, laughing, dancing about
-like maniacs. Fifteen minutes after the first charge the
-Russians returned. Of this charge I remember one item
-too well. A giant on a big horse&mdash;a Colonel, I think&mdash;galloped
-up to me and dealt me a terrific blow from above.
-I parried as well as I could, but his sword cut across my
-upturned face, across nose and chin, where the mark is
-visible to this day. I felt the hot blood trickle down my
-throat. He passed on. Sergeant Bakal, my friend and
-counsellor, spoke to me, pointing to my face. Jack said
-something in a compassionate voice. I fainted. When
-I came to myself, my head had been bandaged, the nose
-plastered all over. Water was given me. How grateful I
-was for that delicious drink! Then I was supported by
-friends to the outskirts of Plevna. As we went along I
-noticed a Russian Lieutenant who, after creeping along
-for a space, had sat down by the side of the track, leaning
-against the belly of a dead horse. He was calmly awaiting
-death in awful forsakenness. He counted barely
-twenty summers, poor boy! He looked at me, oh! so
-wistfully and sadly, with the sweet, divine light of
-deliverance shining in his tearful eyes. He said faintly:
-‘De l’eau, monsieur?’</p>
-
-<p>“I had some cold coffee left in my flask, which I got
-my companion to pour down his throat. He bowed his
-poor bruised head gratefully, and we left him to die.
-The ground was strewn with haversacks, rifles, swords,
-wounded men; riderless horses, neighing vehemently,
-trotted about in search of food. These sights were revealed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[Pg 267]</a></span>
-to me by the peaceful, dying golden light of a summer
-sunset. Even war, that hell-born product of the iniquity
-of monarchs and statesmen, receives its quota of sunshine.”</p>
-
-<p>A few weeks later Herbert was summoned to the Ferik,
-or General of Division, and asked if he could speak French
-well enough to take a letter into the Russian camp. He
-said “Yes,” made himself smart in new tunic and boots,
-and flattered himself that his tanned, smooth, youthful
-face looked well below the bright red fez with its jaunty
-tassel, in spite of his chin being still under repair. A
-corporal carrying a white flag and a bugler well mounted
-rode with him. They were handsome, strapping fellows,
-in the highest of spirits. After a ride of six miles they
-came in sight of a detachment of Cossacks. A young
-Russian Lieutenant rode to meet them, waving his handkerchief.
-Herbert stated his business in French, was
-asked to dismount while awaiting instructions. The
-Russians crowded round out of curiosity; the horses were
-fed and watered, cigarettes were exchanged, and friendly
-talk ensued. In half an hour a horseman rode up, and
-Herbert was bidden to mount. His eyes were bandaged,
-his horse was led. After a sharp trot of twenty minutes
-they halted, the handkerchief was taken off, and he found
-himself in a battery. An officer came up and took the
-letter, then handed Herbert over to an infantry Colonel,
-who took him into a small tent. Here, with some other
-officers, they had a cosy meal&mdash;wine, bread, and soup&mdash;a
-pleasant chat and smiles all round. It was a fortnight
-since the last battle, and the Russians were still lost in
-admiration of the bravery with which the Turks had
-defended their positions.</p>
-
-<p>“Vos hommes, mon camarade, sont des diables.
-Jamais je n’ai vu pareille chose.”</p>
-
-<p>That was just a glimpse of the enemy, and proved that,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[Pg 268]</a></span>
-though men may fight by order, they may yet be friends
-at heart.</p>
-
-<p>The Czar Alexander had been present, watching the
-varied issues of every fight and assault. The sappers had
-built for him a kind of outlook on a little hill beyond the
-line of fire, where he could see far away on all sides. A
-large tent was standing behind, supplied with food and
-wine, where his suite made merry; but the poor, worn,
-anxious Czar could not eat, could not bide in his safe
-tower, but would go wandering round among the gunners
-and the guns. It was his fête-day when the great September
-battle was being fought. There he stood alone
-on his little balcony, under the lowering sky of an autumn
-day, gazing through his glass at the efforts of his soldiers
-to storm the Gravitza redoubt. All the afternoon assault
-had followed assault in vain, and now the last desperate
-effort, the forlorn hope, was being pushed to the front.
-The pale, drawn face on the balcony was now quivering
-with agonized sorrow; the tall figure was bent and bowed,
-and seemed to wince under the lash of some destroying
-angel. With awful losses the Russian battalions staggered
-and struggled up the slopes slippery with their
-comrades’ blood.</p>
-
-<p>“See, sire, they have entered the redoubt; it is carried
-at last!”</p>
-
-<p>Hardly has the Czar time to smile and breathe a prayer
-of gratitude when from a second redoubt higher up a
-terrible fire is turned on the Russians, and they are swept
-out of the place they had so hardly won.</p>
-
-<p>There was one Russian officer who seemed to have a
-charmed life. He was the bravest of the brave, was
-beloved by his men, and did marvels of heroic feats&mdash;Skobeleff.
-On a day of battle Skobeleff always wore a
-white frock-coat, with all his decorations. Seeing the
-battalions coming back from the Gravitza in disorderly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[Pg 269]</a></span>
-route, the tall white figure on the white horse dashed at
-full speed down the slope, passed the linesmen, who gave
-their loved chief a great cheer as he galloped by, caught
-up the riflemen who were advancing in support, and
-swept them on at the double. Men sprang to their feet
-and rapturously cheered the white-clad leader. He
-reached the wavering beaten mass, pointed upwards with
-his sword, and imparted to daunted hearts some of his
-own courage and enthusiasm. They turned with him
-and tried yet once more. Then the white horse went
-down. The glass trembled in the hands of Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>“He is down!”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sire; he rises&mdash;he mounts again! See, they are
-over and into the Turkish entrenchments!”</p>
-
-<p>What a medley of sights and sounds&mdash;flame and smoke
-and shouts and screams! But the Russians were for the
-present masters of the redoubt.</p>
-
-<p>In the evening Skobeleff rode back without a scratch
-on him, though his white coat was covered with blood
-and froth and mud. His horse&mdash;his last white charger&mdash;was
-shot dead on the edge of the ditch; his blade was
-broken off short by the hilt. Every man of his staff was
-killed or wounded, except Kuropatkin.</p>
-
-<p>“General Skobeleff,” wrote MacGahan to the <i>Daily
-News</i>, “was in a fearful state of excitement and fury.
-His cross of St. George twisted over his shoulder, his face
-black with powder and smoke, his eyes haggard and
-bloodshot, his voice quite gone. I never saw such a
-picture of battle as he presented.”</p>
-
-<p>But a few hours later the General was calm and collected.
-He said in a low, quiet voice:</p>
-
-<p>“I have done my best; I could do no more. My detachment
-is half destroyed; my regiments no longer exist;
-I have no officers left. They sent me no reinforcements.
-I have lost three guns!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[Pg 270]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Why did they send you no help? Who was to
-blame?”</p>
-
-<p>“I blame nobody,” said Skobeleff; then solemnly
-crossing himself, he added: “It was the will of God&mdash;the
-will of God!”</p>
-
-<p>Skobeleff’s heroism was magnificent, and did much to
-nerve the common soldier to face the Turkish batteries;
-but success came not that way. Men and officers began
-to ask one another why the Czar did not send them the
-help of the great Todleben, who had defended Sebastopol
-so brilliantly. It seems that the Grand Duke Nicholas
-had nourished a grudge against Russia’s most eminent
-engineer, and had kept him out of all honourable employment.
-But Alexander had sent for Todleben, and this
-was the turn of the tide. Todleben came in such haste
-from Russia that he had brought no horses with him.
-Now he was at last in the Russian camp&mdash;a handsome,
-tall, dignified man of sixty, straight and active, and very
-affable to all. The attack was to be changed. No more
-deadly assaults in front, but a complete investment, and
-wait till famine steps in to make Osman submit.</p>
-
-<p>But Skobeleff had not yet finished with daring assaults.
-One day the “Green Hill,” which the Russians had taken
-under his command, was being endangered by Turkish
-sharp-shooters. Russian recruits who were posted near
-had fallen back in a scare, thrown down their rifles, and
-simply run like hares. Skobeleff met them in full flight,
-and in grim humour shouted: “Good health, my fine
-fellows&mdash;my fine, brave fellows!”</p>
-
-<p>The men halted and gave the customary salute, being
-very shamefaced withal.</p>
-
-<p>“You are all noble fellows; perfect heroes you are. I
-am proud to command you!”</p>
-
-<p>Silent and confounded, they shambled from one leg to
-another.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[Pg 271]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“By the way,” said Skobeleff, still blandly smiling,
-“I do not see your rifles!”</p>
-
-<p>The men cast their eyes down and said not a word.</p>
-
-<p>“Where are your rifles, I ask you?” in a sterner tone.</p>
-
-<p>There was a painful silence, which Skobeleff broke with
-a voice of thunder. His face changed to an awful frown,
-his glance made the men cower.</p>
-
-<p>“So you have thrown away your weapons! You are
-cowards! You run away from Turks! You are a disgrace
-to your country! My God! Right about face!
-My children, follow me!”</p>
-
-<p>The General marched them up to the spot where they
-had left their rifles, and ordered them to take them up
-and follow him. Then he led them out into the space in
-front of the trench, right in the line of the Turkish fire,
-and there he put them through their exercises, standing
-with his back to the Turks, while the bullets could be
-heard whistling over and around them. Only two of
-them were hit during this strange drill. Then he let
-them go back to their trenches, saying: “The next time
-any one of you runs away, he will be shot!”</p>
-
-<p>The investment of Plevna went on relentlessly through
-October, November, and part of December. By the 9th
-almost all their food was exhausted, and Osman determined
-to try one last sortie before surrendering. Herbert
-had charge of a train of a battalion outside the town. He
-made up a fire, saw his men installed for the night, and
-then walked to the town. A snowfall was coming down
-lazily; bivouac fires lit up the gaunt figures of men and
-beasts. The men, talking of to-morrow’s fight in a subdued
-tone, were yet excited and eager. Many Turkish
-residents, with their carts and vehicles, were spending the
-night on the snow-covered plain, the men brooding and
-gloomy, the veiled women sobbing, the children playing
-hide-and-seek around the fires and among the carts. It<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[Pg 272]</a></span>
-was a weird sight&mdash;all these thousands eager to go out
-after the army when the last struggle should have
-carved them an open road through the surrounding
-foe.</p>
-
-<p>At head-quarters an officer met Herbert, and asked him
-to post some labels at the ambulance doors of a certain
-street. He says:</p>
-
-<p>“Armed with a brush and paste-pot, I turned bill-sticker,
-and affixed a notice on some twenty house doors
-which were showing the ambulance flag. Anything more
-dismal than that deserted town, abandoned by all but
-dying and helpless men and some 400 starving Bulgarian
-families, cannot be imagined. Desolate, dead, God-forsaken
-Plevna during the night of the 9th and 10th of
-December was no more like the thriving and pretty Plevna
-of July than the decaying corpse of an old hag is like the
-living body of a blooming girl. The streets, unlighted and
-empty, save for a slouching outcast here and there bent
-on rapine, echoed to the metallic ring of my solitary steps;
-while occasional groans or curses proceeding from the
-interior of the ambulances haunted me long afterwards
-as sounding unearthly in the dark. Twice I stumbled
-over corpses which had been thrust into the gutter as the
-quickest way of getting rid of them.</p>
-
-<p>“As I walked I had to shake myself and pinch my flesh,
-so much like the phantasy of an ugly dream was the
-scene to my mind. As I plied my brush on the door-panels,
-I felt like one alive in a gigantic graveyard.</p>
-
-<p>“At one of the ambulances I was bidden to enter, and
-found, by the feeble light of a reeking oil-lamp, some
-invalids fighting for a remnant of half-rotten food
-which they had just discovered in a forgotten cupboard.
-Men without legs, hands, or feet were clutching, scratching,
-kicking, struggling for morsels that no respectable
-dog or cat would look at twice. I pacified them, and dis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[Pg 273]</a></span>tributed
-the unsavoury bits of meat. As I turned to go
-a man without legs caught hold of me from his mattress,
-begging me to carry him to the train bivouac, that he
-might follow the army. Happily an attendant turned up,
-and I wrenched myself away.”</p>
-
-<p>Herbert was returning by a narrow dark lane when
-someone sprang upon him and tore the paste-pot away
-from him. He had doubtless seen it by the light of the
-Lieutenant’s lantern, and thought the vessel contained
-food.</p>
-
-<p>He belaboured the fellow’s face with his brush, making
-it ghastly white, and setting him off to splutter and croak
-and swear, and finally he rammed the bristles hard down
-his throat. At this moment two other Bulgarians came
-up; but, taking time by the forelock, Herbert pasted
-their mouths and eyes before they could speak, then
-shouted out, “Good-night, gentlemen, and I wish you a
-very hearty appetite.” He then turned and ran for all
-he was worth to the officers’ mess-room. It was about
-ten o’clock p.m. when Osman Pasha and his staff rode up,
-preceded by a mounted torch-bearer, and escorted by
-a body of Saloniki cavalry.</p>
-
-<p>When he came out again, the light from the torch fell
-full upon his face. His features were drawn and care-worn,
-the cheeks hollow; there were deep lines on the
-forehead, and blue rings under his eyes. Their expression
-was one of angry determination. He responded to the
-salute with that peculiar nod which was more a frown
-than a greeting. They all rose and went after him into
-the street to see him mount his fine Arab horse. He and
-his staff spent that last night in one of the farm-houses
-on the western outskirts of Plevna.</p>
-
-<p>After a supper of gruel and bread, Herbert and the others
-walked in a body to the train bivouac. The night was
-intensely dark; a few snowflakes were flying about; it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[Pg 274]</a></span>
-was freezing a little. They did not talk, for each was
-saying to himself, “It is all over with us now.” Hardly
-any expected to see the next nightfall.</p>
-
-<p>Herbert and two other Lieutenants slept in a hut by the
-river’s brink; they could hear the water murmuring, and
-every now and then a lump of ice made music against
-the piles. A little after five in the morning he moved on,
-crossed with the first division the shaky pontoon bridge,
-and rejoined his company. Twenty-four crack battalions
-of the First Division were marching on to face the ring of
-Russian guns; the dark hoods of the great-coats drawn
-over the fez and pointing upwards gave an element of
-grotesqueness to the men. They were marching to certain
-death, with hope in their hearts.</p>
-
-<p>In front the Russian entrenchments rose out of the
-vapours and fog in threatening silence; once beyond them,
-and they were free! The country and military honour
-called for this supreme sacrifice, and they offered it full
-willingly.</p>
-
-<p>At 9.30 a.m. the bugles sounded “Advance,” and the
-whole line, two miles long, began to move in one grand
-column. The Turks went at the quick, hurling a hail of
-lead before them. The troops kept repeating the Arabic
-phrase, “Bismillah rahmin!” (In the name of the merciful
-God!), but the fire became so deadly that they came to a
-dead-stop. The men in the front line lay down on their
-stomachs. After an interval of ten minutes, the bugles
-of the First Division sounded “Storm.”</p>
-
-<p>The men jumped to their feet and rushed at the nearest
-trench. A murderous discharge of rifle fire greeted them;
-many bit the dust.</p>
-
-<p>But very soon the Turks had the first trench in their
-possession, then a second and third; and before they knew
-what they were about, they were in the midst of the
-Russian guns, hacking, clubbing, stabbing, shooting,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[Pg 275]</a></span>
-whilst overhead flew countless shells, hissing and leaving
-a white trail in their track.</p>
-
-<p>Then they waited for the support of the second line,
-which never came; but at noon the Russians came down
-upon them in force. Herbert was ordered to ride and
-report that they could not hold out longer without reinforcements.
-He says:</p>
-
-<p>“As I rode towards the centre, I was drawn into the
-vortex of a most awful panic&mdash;a wild flight for safety to
-the right bank of the river.</p>
-
-<p>“I had never been in a general retreat. It is far more
-terrible than the most desperate encounter. I was simply
-drawn along in a mad stream of men, horses, and carts.
-Officers, their faces streaming with perspiration in spite
-of the cold, were trying to restore order; the train got
-mixed with the infantry and the batteries, and the confusion
-baffles description. My horse slipped into a ditch,
-and I continued on foot. I heard that Osman had been
-wounded and carted across the river; the pitiless shells
-followed us even to the other side of the river. The
-screams of the women in the carts unnerved many a sturdy
-man. I came to a sort of barn, where two Saloniki
-horsemen stood sentry. Being dead-beat and hungry to
-starving-point, I sat down on a stone. Whilst I crunched
-a biscuit a cart drove up, and a man badly wounded in
-the leg was assisted into the building. So sallow and
-pain-drawn was his face that at first I failed to recognize
-Osman. There were tears in his eyes&mdash;tears of grief and
-rage rather than of physical pain&mdash;and in their expression
-lay that awful thought, ‘The game is up, the end is
-come,’ which we see in Meissonier’s picture of Napoleon
-in the retreat from Waterloo.”</p>
-
-<p>The last sortie from Plevna was witnessed by Skobeleff
-from the heights above. The Turkish infantry were
-deploying with great smartness, taking advantage of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[Pg 276]</a></span>
-cover afforded by the ground. The skirmishers were
-already out in the open, driving before them the Russian
-outposts.</p>
-
-<p>Skobeleff was very excited.</p>
-
-<p>“Were there ever more skilful tactics?” he said.
-“They are born soldiers, those Turks&mdash;already half-way
-to Ganetzky’s front, hidden first by the darkness and now
-by the long bank under which they are forming in perfect
-safety. Beautiful indeed! Never was a sortie more
-skilfully prepared. How I should like to be in command
-of it!”</p>
-
-<p>Skobeleff then turned his glass on the Russian defence
-line. He seldom swore, but now a torrent of oaths burst
-from his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that ass&mdash;that consummate ass&mdash;Ganetzky!” he
-shouted, striking his thigh with his clenched fist. “What
-fool’s work! He had his orders; he was warned of the
-intended sortie; he might have had any number of reinforcements.
-And what preparation has he made? None.
-He is confronting Osman’s army with six battalions when
-he might have had twenty-four. Mark my words: the
-Turks will carry our first line with a rush. We shall
-retrieve it, but to have lost it for ever so short a time will
-be our disgrace for ever.” Then Skobeleff spat angrily
-and rode off at a gallop. How true those words were we
-have seen already.</p>
-
-<p>At 2 p.m. Osman had been obliged to surrender, and
-shortly after he met the Russian Grand Duke Nicholas&mdash;Osman
-in a carriage, Nicholas on horseback. They
-looked one another long in the face, then Nicholas offered
-his hand heartily, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“General, I honour you for your noble defence of
-Plevna. It has been among the most splendid examples
-of skill and heroism in modern history!”</p>
-
-<p>Osman’s face winced a little&mdash;perhaps a twitch of pain<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[Pg 277]</a></span>
-crossed it&mdash;as, in spite of his wound, he struggled to his
-feet and uttered a few broken words in a low tone. The
-Russian officers saluted with great demonstration of respect,
-and shouts of “Bravo!” rang out again and
-again.</p>
-
-<p>Poor victorious Osman! conquered at last by King
-Famine. He had lived in a common green tent during
-the whole period of the investment; his last night at
-Plevna was the first he spent under a roof.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant Herbert says concerning the surrender:
-“As the Roumanian soldiers seized our weapons I became
-possessed of an uncontrollable fury. I broke my sword,
-thrust carbine, revolvers, and ammunition into the
-waggon. A private with Semitic features perceived my
-Circassian dagger, but I managed to spoil it by breaking
-the point before handing it over. Another man annexed
-my field-glass. I never saw my valise again, which had
-been stored on one of the battalion’s carts. I had saved
-a portion of my notes and manuscripts by carrying them
-like a breast cuirass between uniform and vest. Having
-given vent to rage, I fell into the opposite mood, and, sitting
-down on a stone, I hid my face in my hands, and abandoned
-myself to the bitterest half-hour of reflection I
-have ever endured.”</p>
-
-<p>Luckily Herbert fell in with a Roumanian Lieutenant
-whom he knew, who took him to the Russian camp, and
-gave him hot grog, bread, and cold meat. “How we
-devoured the food!” he says. “We actually licked the
-mugs out.”</p>
-
-<p>As they walked away in the dark to their night quarters,
-they happened to pass the spot where Herbert’s battalion
-was encamped, without fires or tents, in an open, snow-covered
-field, exposed to the north wind. Cries of distress
-and rage greeted them, and they found that the
-drunken Russian soldiers were robbing their Turkish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[Pg 278]</a></span>
-prisoners, not only of watches, money, etc., but also of
-their biscuits&mdash;their only food.</p>
-
-<p>Herbert stopped for a minute, and gave away all he
-had left; but some Russians jumped upon him and rifled
-his pockets, before he could recall his companions to his
-aid. Everybody in camp seemed to be drunk. Herbert
-went to sleep in a mud hut, and slept for twelve hours
-without awaking, being very kindly treated by a Russian
-Major.</p>
-
-<p>But the Turks suffered terribly. They spent the night of
-the 10th on the same cold spot. Their arms had been
-taken from them, also their money, biscuits, and even their
-great-coats. It froze and snowed, and they were allowed
-no fires.</p>
-
-<p>It was a fortnight before all the prisoners had left the
-neighbourhood; during this time from 3,000 to 4,000
-men had succumbed to their privations. The defence of
-Plevna had lasted 143 days. As the Grand Duke Nicholas
-told Osman, it was one of the finest things done in military
-history. But it cost the Russians 55,000 men, the Roumanians
-10,000, and the Turks 30,000.</p>
-
-<p>There is a Turkish proverb, “Though your enemy be
-as small as an ant, yet act as if he were as big as an elephant.”
-Had the Russians been guided by this, they
-might have saved many losses.</p>
-
-<p>“One bitterly cold morning, with two feet of snow on
-the ground, I joined a detachment of prisoners, escorted
-by Roumanians. We travelled viâ Sistoon to Bukarest,
-crossing the Danube by the Russian pontoon bridge.
-This journey, which lasted eight days, was the most
-dreadful part of my experience, lying as it did through
-snow-clad country, with storms and bitter winds. I and
-fifty others had seats on carts; the bulk of the prisoners
-had to tramp. I saw at least 400 men drop, to be taken
-as little notice of as if they were so much offal, to die of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[Pg 279]</a></span>
-starvation, or be devoured by the wolves which prowled
-around our column.</p>
-
-<p>“Over each man who fell a hideous crowd of crows,
-ravens, vultures, hovered until he was exhausted enough
-to be attacked with impunity.</p>
-
-<p>“Some of the soldiers of the escort were extremely
-brutal; others displayed a touching kindness; most were as
-stolid and apathetic as their captives. Of Osman’s army
-of 48,000 men, only 15,000 reached Russian soil; only
-12,000 returned to their homes.</p>
-
-<p>“In Bukarest our sufferings were at an end. In the
-streets ladies distributed coffee, broth, bread, tobacco,
-cigarettes, spirit. Our quarters in the barracks appeared
-to us like Paradise.”</p>
-
-<p>Then by train to Kharkoff, where Herbert got a cheque
-from his father, and was allowed much freedom on parole;
-he made many friends, was lionized and feasted and fattened
-“like a show beast.” “I was treated,” he says,
-“with all the chivalrous kindness and open-handed hospitality
-which are the characteristics of the educated
-Russians. The effects of the brutal propensities developed
-in warfare wore off speedily, and I am now a
-mild and inoffensive being, whose conscience does not
-allow the killing of a flea or the plucking of a flower!”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From “The Defence of Plevna,” by W. V. Herbert, 1895, by
-kind permission of Messrs. Longmans, Green and Co.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[Pg 280]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXI" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">SIEGE OF KHARTOUM (1884)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Gordon invited to the Soudan&mdash;The Mahdi&mdash;Chinese Gordon&mdash;His
-religious feeling&mdash;Not supported by England&mdash;Arabs attack&mdash;Blacks
-as cowards&mdash;Pashas shot&mdash;The <i>Abbas</i> sent down with
-Stewart&mdash;Her fate&mdash;Relief coming&mdash;Provisions fail&mdash;A sick
-steamer&mdash;<i>Bordein</i> sent down to Shendy&mdash;Alone on the house-top&mdash;Sir
-Charles Wilson and Beresford steam up&mdash;The rapids and
-sand-bank&mdash;“Do you see the flag?”&mdash;“Turn and fly”&mdash;Gordon’s
-fate.</p>
-
-<p>In January, 1884, Charles Gordon was asked by the
-British Government to go to Egypt and withdraw from
-the Soudan the garrisons, the civil officials, and any of
-the inhabitants who might wish to be taken away. It
-was a dangerous duty he had to perform, as the Mahdi,
-a religious pretender in whom many believed, had just
-annihilated an Egyptian army led by an Englishman,
-Hicks Pasha, and, supported by the Arab slave-dealers,
-had revolted against Egyptian rule.</p>
-
-<p>Gordon had some years before been Governor-General
-of the Soudan for the Khedive Ismail. He had been
-then offered £10,000 a year, but would not take more
-than £2,000, for he knew it would be “blood money
-wrung from the wretches under his rule.” When previously
-“Chinese Gordon,” as he was called, had put
-down the Taiping rebels for the Chinese Government, he
-refused the enormous treasure which was offered him, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[Pg 281]</a></span>
-order to mark his resentment at the treachery of the
-Emperor for having executed the rebel chiefs after Gordon
-had promised them their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Gordon was a man of simple piety. “God dwells in
-us”&mdash;this was the doctrine he most valued. After the
-Bible, the “Imitation of Christ,” the writings of Epictetus
-and Marcus Aurelius, seem to have been his
-favourites. He once wrote: “Amongst troubles and
-worries no one can have peace till he stays his soul upon
-his God. It gives a man superhuman strength....
-The quiet, peaceful life of our Lord was solely due to His
-submission to God’s will.”</p>
-
-<p>Such was the man whom England sent out too late to
-face the rising storm of Arab rebellion. Gordon reached
-Khartoum on the 18th of February, taking up his quarters
-in the palace which had been his home in years before.
-He had come, he said, without troops, nor would he fight
-with any weapons but justice. The chains were struck
-off from the limbs of the prisoners in the dungeons.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall make them love me,” he said; and the black
-people came in their thousands to kiss his feet, calling
-him “the Sultan of the Soudan.”</p>
-
-<p>But time went by, and Gordon could not get the
-Government at home to second his schemes, so that the
-natives began to lose confidence in him, and sided with
-the Mahdi.</p>
-
-<p>The Arabs began to attack Khartoum on the 12th of
-March, and from that date until his death Gordon was
-engaged in defending the city. Khartoum is situated on
-the western bank of the Blue Nile, on a spit of sand
-between the junction of that river with the White Nile.
-Nearly all the records of this period have been lost, but
-it is proved that wire entanglements were stretched in
-front of the earthworks, mines were laid down, the
-Yarrow-built steamers were made bullet-proof and fur<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[Pg 282]</a></span>nished
-with towers, guns were mounted on the public
-buildings, and expeditions in search of food were sent
-out.</p>
-
-<p>It was Gordon’s habit to go up on the roof at sunrise
-and scan the country around.</p>
-
-<p>“I am not alone,” he would say, “for He is ever with
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 16th of March he had to look upon his native
-troops retiring before the rebel horsemen. He writes:</p>
-
-<p>“Our gun with the regulars opened fire. Very soon a
-body of about sixty rebel horsemen charged down upon
-my Bashi-Bazouks, who fired a volley, then turned and
-fled. The horsemen galloped towards my square of
-regulars, which they immediately broke. The whole
-force then retreated slowly towards the fort with their
-rifles shouldered. The men made no effort to stand, and
-the gun was abandoned. Pursuit ceased about a mile
-from stockade, and there the men rallied. We brought
-in the wounded. Nothing could be more dismal than
-seeing these horsemen, and some men even on camels,
-pursuing close to troops, who with arms shouldered
-plodded their way back.”</p>
-
-<p>But Gordon was no weak humanitarian. Two Pashas
-were tried, and found guilty of cowardice, and were
-promptly shot&mdash;<i>pour encourager les autres</i>. After that he
-tried to train his men to face the enemy by little skirmishes,
-and he made frequent sallies with his river
-steamers.</p>
-
-<p>“You see,” he wrote, “when you have steam on the
-men can’t run away.”</p>
-
-<p>Then began a long and weary waiting for the relief
-which came not until it was too late. The Arabs kept
-on making attacks, which they never pressed home,
-expecting to effect a surrender from scarcity of food.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_12" src="images/i_303.jpg" width="396" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">A Strange Weapon of Offence</p>
-
-<p>Lieut. Herbert was ordered to paste some labels at the ambulance doors in Plevna.
-In passing a dark lane someone sprang at him and seized his paste-pot, no doubt taking
-it for food. To defend himself he belaboured and plastered his opponents’ face with
-the paste-brush, and later on those of two others. He then turned and ran.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>In September only three months’ food remained. No<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[Pg 283]</a></span>
-news came from England; they knew not if England even
-thought of them. The population of Khartoum was at
-first about 60,000 souls; nearly 20,000 of these were sent
-away as the siege went on as being friends of the Mahdi.</p>
-
-<p>On the 9th of September Gordon sent down the Nile,
-in a small paddle-boat named the <i>Abbas</i>, Colonel Stewart,
-Mr. Power, M. Herbin, the French Consul, some Greeks,
-and about fifty soldiers. They took with them letters,
-journals, dispatches which were to be sent from Dongola.
-The <i>Abbas</i> drew little water, the river was in full flood,
-and they seemed likely to be able to get over the rapids
-with safety. Henceforth Gordon was alone with his
-black and Egyptian troops. One might have thought
-that his heart would have sunk within him at the loneliness
-of his situation, at the feeling of desertion by England,
-and of treachery in his own garrison. He had no
-friend to speak to, no sympathetic companion left at
-Khartoum. Yes, he had one Friend left, and in his
-journal he tells us that he was happier and more peaceful
-now than in the earlier months of the siege.</p>
-
-<p>“He is always with me. May our Lord not visit us
-as a nation for our sins, but may His wrath fall on me,
-hid in Christ. This is my frequent prayer, and may He
-spare these people and bring them to peace.”</p>
-
-<p>The ill-fated <i>Abbas</i> was wrecked, her passengers and
-crew were murdered, her papers were taken to the Mahdi,
-who now knew exactly how long Khartoum could hold
-out against famine.</p>
-
-<p>On the 21st of September Gordon first heard the news
-of a relief expedition being sent from England, and three
-days later he resolved to dispatch armed steamers to
-Metemma down the Nile to await the arrival of our troops.
-They started on the 30th, taking with them many of
-Gordon’s best men; but Gordon went on, drilling, feeding
-the hungry, visiting the sick, writing hopefully, and some<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[Pg 284]</a></span>times
-merrily, in his journals. For instance, writing of an
-official who had telegraphed, “I should like to be informed
-exactly when Gordon expects to be in difficulties
-as to provisions and ammunition,” Gordon remarks:</p>
-
-<p>“This man must be preparing a great statistical work.
-If he will only turn to his archives he will see we have
-been in difficulties for provisions for some months. It is
-as if a man on the bank, having seen his friend in a river
-already bobbed down two or three times, hails, ‘I say,
-old fellow, let us know when we are to throw you the
-life-buoy. I know you have bobbed down two or three
-times, but it is a pity to throw you the life-buoy until
-you are <i>in extremis</i>, and I want to know exactly.’”</p>
-
-<p>On the 21st of October the Mahdi arrived before Khartoum,
-and Gordon was informed of the loss of the <i>Abbas</i>
-and the death of his friends. To this Gordon replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Tell the Mahdi that it is all one to me whether he has
-captured 20,000 steamers like the <i>Abbas</i>&mdash;I am here like
-iron.”</p>
-
-<p>On the 2nd of November there were left provisions for
-six weeks, and he could not put the troops on half rations,
-lest they should desert.</p>
-
-<p>On the 12th an attack was made upon Omdurman, a
-little way down the river, and on Gordon’s steamers
-<i>Ismailia</i> and <i>Hussineyeh</i>. The latter was struck by shells,
-and had to be run aground. In the journal we read:</p>
-
-<p>“From the roof of the palace I saw that poor little beast
-<i>Hussineyeh</i> fall back, stern foremost, under a terrific fire
-of breechloaders. I saw a shell strike the water at her
-bows; I saw her stop and puff off steam, and then I gave
-the glass to my boy, <i>sickened unto death</i>. My boy (he is
-thirty) said, ‘<i>Hussineyeh</i> is sick.’ I knew it, but said
-quietly, ‘Go down and telegraph to Mogrim, “Is <i>Hussineyeh</i>
-sick?”’”</p>
-
-<p>On the 22nd of November Gordon summed up his losses.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[Pg 285]</a></span>
-He had lost nearly 1,900 men, and 242 had been wounded.
-And where were the English boats that were to hurry up
-the Nile to his rescue?</p>
-
-<p>On the 30th of November only one boat had passed the
-third cataract, the remaining 600 were creaking and
-groaning under the huge strain that was hauling them
-painfully through the “Womb of Rocks.”</p>
-
-<p>In December the desertions from the garrison increased,
-as the food-supply decreased. There was not fifteen days’
-food left now in Khartoum. So the steamer <i>Bordein</i> was
-sent down to Shendy with letters and his journal. In a
-letter to his sister he writes:</p>
-
-<p>“I am quite happy, thank God! and, like Lawrence, I
-have <i>tried</i> to do my duty.”</p>
-
-<p>The last entry in his journal runs as follows:</p>
-
-<p>“I have done the best for the honour of our country.
-Good-bye. You send me no information, though you
-have lots of money.”</p>
-
-<p>Evidently this high-souled man was cut to the heart
-by what he thought was the ingratitude and neglect of
-England. He could not know that thousands of Englishmen
-and Canadians were toiling up the Nile flood to save
-him, if it were possible. But alas! they all started too
-late, since valuable time had been wasted in long arguments
-held in London as to which might be the best
-route to Khartoum.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, starvation was beginning: strange things
-were eaten by those who still remained faithful to the
-last. Only 14,000 now were left in the city. But
-Omdurman had been taken, the Arabs were pressing
-closer and fiercer, and Egyptian officers came to Gordon
-clamouring for surrender. Then he would go up upon
-the roof, his face set, his teeth clenched. He would strain
-his eyes in looking to the north for some sign, some tiny
-sign of help coming. He cared not for his own life&mdash;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[Pg 286]</a></span>“The
-Almighty God will help me,” he wrote&mdash;but he did
-care for the honour of England, and that honour seemed
-to him to be sullied by our leaving him here at bay&mdash;and
-all alone!</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the English had fought their way to Gubat,
-where they found the steamers which Gordon had sent
-to meet them. So tired were the men that, after a drink
-of river-water, they fell down like logs. Four of Gordon’s
-steamers, with Sir Charles Wilson and Captain C. Beresford,
-started from Gubat on the 24th of January with
-twenty English soldiers and some undisciplined blacks.
-They were like the London penny steamers, that one shell
-would have sent to the bottom. They were heavily laden
-with Indian corn, fuel, and dura for the Khartoum garrison.
-Each steamer flew two Egyptian flags, one at the
-foremast and one at the stern. Every day they had to
-stop for wood to supply the engines, when the men would
-be off after loot or fresh meat.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached the cataract and rapids the <i>Bordein</i>
-struck on a rock, and could not be moved for many hours,
-the Nile water running like a mill-race under her keel.
-Arabs on the bank were taking pot-shots at her, and the
-blacks on board grinned good-humouredly, and replied
-with a wasteful fusillade. After shifting the guns and
-stores, the crew got the <i>Bordein</i> to move on the 26th of
-January, but only to get fast upon a sand-bank. Precious
-time was thus lost, and on the 27th of January a camel
-man shouted from the bank that Khartoum was taken
-and Gordon killed. No one believed this news.</p>
-
-<p>Near Halfiyeh a heavy fire was opened upon them at
-600 yards from four guns and many rifles. The gunners
-on the steamers were naked, and looked like demons in
-the smoke.</p>
-
-<p>“One huge giant was the very incarnation of savagery
-drunk with war,” writes Sir Charles Wilson.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[Pg 287]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>When the steamers had passed the batteries the
-Soudanese crews screamed with delight, lifting up their
-rifles and shaking them above their heads.</p>
-
-<p>Soon they saw the Government House at Khartoum
-above the trees, and excitement stirred every heart.
-The Soudanese commander, Khashm el Mus, kept on
-saying, “Do you see the flag?”</p>
-
-<p>No one could see the flag.</p>
-
-<p>“Then something has happened!” he muttered.</p>
-
-<p>However, there was no help for it; they had to go on
-past Tuti Island and Omdurman, spattered and flogged
-with thousands of bullets.</p>
-
-<p>“It is all over&mdash;all over!” groaned Khashm, as to the
-sound of the Nordenfeldt was added the deeper note of
-the Krupp guns from Khartoum itself.</p>
-
-<p>As they reached the “Elephant’s Trunk”&mdash;so the
-sand-spit was called below Khartoum&mdash;they saw hundreds
-of Dervishes ranged under their banners in order to resist
-a landing; so the order was given with a heavy heart:
-“Turn her, and run full speed down.” Then the Soudanese
-on board, who till now had been fighting enthusiastically,
-collapsed and sank wearily on the deck. The poor fellows
-had lost their all&mdash;wives, families, houses!</p>
-
-<p>“What is the use of firing? I have lost all,” said
-Khashm, burying his face in his mantle.</p>
-
-<p>But they got him upon his legs, and the moment of
-sorrowful despair changed again to desperate revenge.
-After all the steamers got safely back.</p>
-
-<p>And General Gordon&mdash;we left him alone in command
-of a hungry garrison&mdash;what of him? From examinations
-of Gordon’s officers taken later it seems that before daylight
-on the 26th of January the Arabs attacked one of
-the gates, and met with little or no resistance. There
-was reason to fear treachery. For some three hours the
-Arabs went through the city killing every one they met.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[Pg 288]</a></span>
-Some of them went to the palace, and there met Gordon
-walking in front of a small party of men. He was probably
-going to the church, where the ammunition was
-stored, to make his last stand. The rebels fired a volley,
-and Gordon fell dead. It is reported that his head was
-cut off and exposed above the gate at Omdurman. We
-may be glad that it was a sudden death&mdash;called away by
-the God in whom he trusted so simply. Thus died one
-of England’s greatest heroes, one of the world’s most
-holy men.</p>
-
-<p>The siege had lasted 317 days, nine days less than the
-siege of Sebastopol, and the Mahdi ascribed the result to
-his God. In a letter sent to the British officers on the
-steamers he says:</p>
-
-<p>“God has destroyed Khartoum and other places by
-our hands. Nothing can withstand His power and might,
-and by the bounty of God all has come into our hands.
-There is no God but God.</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Muhammed, the Son of Abdullah.</span>”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[Pg 289]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXII" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">KUMASSI (1900)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The Governor’s visit&mdash;Pageant of Kings&mdash;Evil omens&mdash;The Fetish Grove&mdash;The
-fort&mdash;Loyal natives locked out&mdash;A fight&mdash;King Aguna’s
-triumph&mdash;Relief at last&mdash;Their perils&mdash;Saved by a dog&mdash;Second
-relief&mdash;Governor retires&mdash;Wait for Colonel Willcocks&mdash;The flag still
-flying&mdash;Lady Hodgson’s adventures.</p>
-
-<p>In 1874 Sir Garnet Wolseley captured Kumassi, the
-capital of the Ashantis, whose country lies in the interior
-of the Gold Coast, in West Africa. In March, 1900, Sir
-Frederick Hodgson, Governor of the Gold Coast, set out
-with Lady Hodgson and a large party of carriers and
-attendants to visit Ashantiland. They had no anticipation
-of any trouble arising, and on their march held several
-palavers with friendly Kings and chiefs.</p>
-
-<p>On Sunday, the 25th of March, they entered Kumassi
-in state. At the brow of a steep hill the European officials
-met the Governor’s party, and escorted them into the
-town. At the base of the hill they had to cross a swamp
-on a high causeway, and then ascend a shorter hill to
-the fort. Some children under the Basel missionaries sang
-“God Save the Queen!” at a spot where only a few years
-before human sacrifices and every species of horrible torture
-used to be enacted.</p>
-
-<p>Soon they passed under a triumphal arch, decorated
-with palms, having “Welcome” worked upon it in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[Pg 290]</a></span>
-flowers. Near the fort were assembled in a gorgeous
-pageant native Kings and chiefs, with their followers, who
-all rose up to salute the Governor, while the royal umbrellas
-of state were rapidly whirled round and round to
-signify the general applause. Everything seemed to
-promise order and contentment. But that night Lady
-Hodgson was informed by her native servants that very
-bad fetishes, or portents, had been passed on the road
-through the forest. One of these was a fowl split open
-while still alive, and laid upon a fetish stone; another
-was a string of eggs twined about a fetish house; a third
-was the presence of little mounds of earth to represent
-graves&mdash;a token that the white man would find burial
-in Ashanti.</p>
-
-<p>The next day Lady Hodgson went to see the once
-famous Fetish Grove&mdash;the place into which the bodies of
-those slain for human sacrifices were thrown. Most of
-its trees had been blown up with dynamite in 1896, when
-our troops had marched in to restore order, and the bones
-and skulls had been buried. The executioners&mdash;a
-hereditary office&mdash;used to have a busy time in the old
-days, for every offence was punished by mutilation or
-death; for, as the King of the Quia country once told the
-boys at Harrow School, “We have no prisons, and we
-have to chop off ear or nose or hand, and let the rascal go.”</p>
-
-<p>But the Ashanti victim had the right of appealing to
-the King against his sentence. This right had become a
-dead-letter, because, as soon as the sentence of execution
-had been pronounced, the victim was surrounded by a
-clamorous crowd, and a sharp knife was run through one
-cheek, through the tongue, and so out through the other
-cheek, which somewhat impeded his power of appeal.
-One would have thought that English rule and white
-justice would have been a pleasant change after the
-severity of the native law.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[Pg 291]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The fort is a good square building, with rounded
-bastions at the four corners. On each of these bastions is
-a platform on which can be worked a Maxim gun, each
-gun being protected by a roof above and by iron shutters
-at the sides. The only entrance to the fort lies on the
-south, where are heavy iron bullet-proof gates, which
-can be secured by heavy beams resting in slots in the wall.
-The walls of the fort are loopholed, and inside are platforms
-for those who are defending to shoot from. There
-is a well of good water in one corner of the square. The
-ground all round the fort was cleared, and it would be
-very difficult for an enemy to cross the open in any
-assault.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the Governor of the Gold Coast knew that
-the Ashanti Kings were bent on war, he telegraphed for
-help from the coast and from the north, where most of
-the Hausa troops were employed. They were 150 miles
-away from help, with a climate hot and unhealthy, the
-rainy season being near at hand; and they were surrounded
-by warlike and savage tribes. Fortunately,
-some of the native Kings, with their followers, were loyal
-to the English Queen; these tried to persuade the rebels
-to desist from revolt, and lay their grievances before the
-Governor in palaver. But the more they tried to pacify
-them, the more insolent were their demands. The first
-detachment of Hausa troops arrived on the 18th of April,
-to the great joy of the little garrison; but soon after their
-arrival the market began to fail: the natives dare not come
-with food-stuffs, and the roads were now closed. On
-the 25th a Maxim gun was run out of the fort to check
-the advance of the Ashantis; but they possessed themselves
-of the town, and loopholed the huts near the fort.
-The loyal inhabitants of Kumassi had left their homes,
-and were crowded outside the walls of the fort, bringing
-with them their portable goods, being upwards of 3,000<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[Pg 292]</a></span>
-men, women, and children. The gates of the fort had
-hitherto remained open, but it was evident that the small
-English force would be compelled to concentrate in the
-fort; and as the refugees seemed to be bent on rushing
-the gates for safer shelter, the order was given to close
-the gates.</p>
-
-<p>“Gradually the gate guard was removed one by one, and
-then came the work of shutting the gates and barricading
-them. Never shall I forget the sight. My heart stood still,
-for I knew that were this panic-stricken crowd to get in, the
-fort would fall an easy prey to the rebels, and we should
-be lost. It was an anxious moment. Could the guards
-close the gates in face of that rushing multitude? A
-moment later, and the suspense was over. There was a
-desperate struggle, a cry, a bang, and the refugees fell
-back.” Then they tried to climb up by the posts of the
-veranda. So sentries had to be posted on the veranda
-to force them down again. “I felt very much for these
-poor folk,” writes Lady Hodgson; “but, besides the fact
-that the fort would not have accommodated a third of
-them, the whole space was wanted for our troops.”</p>
-
-<p>The hours of that day went on, with sniping from all
-sides. Sometimes the rebels would come out into the
-open to challenge a fight, but the machine guns made
-them aware that boldness was not the best policy.</p>
-
-<p>At night, when our men flung themselves down to rest,
-the whole sky was lit up with the fire of the Hausa cantonments
-and of the town. Tongues of fire were leaping up
-to the skies on all sides, lighting up the horrors of the
-scene around, affrighting the women and children, and
-adding to the anxiety of all.</p>
-
-<p>Night at Kumassi was not a time of quiet repose; the
-incessant chatter of the men and women just outside the
-walls, the yelling and squealing of children, all made
-sleep difficult. And there was ever the thought under<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[Pg 293]</a></span>lying
-all that to-morrow might be the end, that the fort
-might be rushed by numbers.</p>
-
-<p>But, as it turned out, the 26th dawned quietly. So,
-later in the day, a strong escort of Hausas was sent to the
-hospital to recover, if possible, the drugs and medical
-stores which had been abandoned through lack of carriers
-when the sick were brought into the fort. Fortunately,
-the rebels had left the drugs and stores untouched, and
-they were brought in with thankful alacrity.</p>
-
-<p>The next night there was a hurricane of wind rushing
-through the forest trees and drenching the poor refugees,
-who tried to light fires to keep themselves warm.</p>
-
-<p>“There was a dear old Hausa sentry on the veranda
-near my bedroom, who regarded me as his special charge.
-On this occasion, and on others, when my curiosity
-prompted me to go on the veranda to see what was
-happening, this old man would push me back, saying in
-very broken English, ‘Go to room&mdash;Ashanti man come&mdash;very
-bad. You no come out, miss.’”</p>
-
-<p>It had been hoped that by the 29th of April the Lagos
-Hausas would have arrived to rescue them, but they did
-not come, and the rebels fired the hospital. Not liking
-our shells bursting amongst them, the Ashantis, instead of
-retiring, swarmed out into the open, and advanced upon
-the fort. The refugees were cowering down close to the
-walls, and around them were the Hausa outposts ready
-with their rifles. In the fort were the gunners standing
-to their guns. As the rebels came on, jumping and shouting,
-and dancing and firing, the Maxims opened upon
-them; still they came on, and now the Hausa outposts
-took up the fire. At last the fight became a hand-to-hand
-struggle, and the guns in the fort had to cease firing, lest
-they should hit friend and foe alike. Then some 200
-loyal natives, led by Captain Armitage, sallied out to
-the fight. “At their head were their chiefs, promi<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[Pg 294]</a></span>nent
-amongst whom was the young King of Aguna,
-dressed in his fetish war-coat, in the form of a ‘jumper,’
-and hung back and front with fetish charms made from
-snake and other skins. He also wore a pair of thick
-leather boots, and where these ended his black legs began,
-and continued until they met well above the knee a short
-trouser of coloured cotton. He also wore a fierce-looking
-head-dress, and carried war charms made of elephant
-tails. Proudly and well did he bear himself; and at
-last, to our joy, a great cheer rose in the distance, and
-proclaimed that the enemy were retiring. Soon King
-Aguna came back, triumphantly carried on the shoulders
-of two of his warriors to the gate of the fort, where he met
-with a great ovation from his ‘ladies,’ who flocked round
-him, pressing forward to shake his hand and congratulate
-him upon the victory.” So the day was won, and with
-the loss of only one man killed and three wounded, as the
-rebels fired over our heads.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Middlemist had been too ill to take the command,
-and it devolved upon Captain G. Marshall, Royal
-West Kent Regiment, who, after his severe exertions,
-suddenly succumbed, and was brought into quarters half
-delirious. The heat of the sun, the excitement, and the
-work had been too much for him; fortunately, he was well
-again the next day.</p>
-
-<p>By this victory the rebels had been driven out of
-Kumassi and across the swamps; they had left behind
-large supplies of food and war stores, which the garrison
-secured; even the refugees outside the walls began to
-smile and sing. It is astonishing how these children of
-Nature suddenly change from the depth of woe to an
-ecstasy and delirium of delight.</p>
-
-<p>But where were the Lagos Hausas all this time?</p>
-
-<p>Four o’clock came, five o’clock came, and still no sign
-of their arriving. Anxious faces scanned the Cape Coast<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[Pg 295]</a></span>
-road. Something must have happened to them; they
-had been met, checked, repulsed.</p>
-
-<p>But at half-past five firing was heard in the forest.
-“There they are,” said each to his neighbour, and a
-feverish excitement made numbers run to the veranda
-posts, and climb up to get a better view. A force also
-was sent down the road to meet them. How slow the
-time went with the watchers in the fort!</p>
-
-<p>Just before six o’clock there was a yell from the loyal
-natives, and shouts announced that the Hausas were
-coming round the bend of the road. The relief came in
-through two long lines of natives, who wanted to see the
-brave fellows who had fought their way up to Kumassi
-from the coast. But, poor fellows! they had had a
-terrible time: their officers were all wounded; they had
-had nothing to eat or drink since early morning, and they
-were fearfully exhausted.</p>
-
-<p>However, after they had slept a few hours and drunk
-some tea, they were able to tell their tale. Captain Aplin,
-who led them, said:</p>
-
-<p>“We got on all right till we came to a village called
-Esiago, when we were attacked on both sides by a large
-force concealed among the trees. I formed the men up
-two deep, kneeling, and facing the bush on either side.
-By Jove! it was a perfect hail of slugs; and we could not
-see a soul, as the black chaps slid down the trunks of the
-trees into the jungle. Captain Cochrane, who was with
-the Maxim, was hit in the shoulder, but would not leave
-his post, and Dr. Macfarlane was wounded while tending
-him. Then the machine-guns became overheated and
-jammed, and had to cease firing. Four times the enemy
-returned to the attack. I got this graze on my cheek
-from a bullet which passed through my orderly’s leg.</p>
-
-<p>“Next day, after crossing the Ordah River, we were
-attacked at eleven a.m., and the fight lasted till five in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[Pg 296]</a></span>
-evening. A sudden turn in the track, and we saw a
-strongly-built stockade, horseshoe shape. Some Ashantis
-were looking over the top and peering between the logs.
-The track was so narrow that we had no front for firing,
-and the whole path was swept by their guns. I told off
-Captain Cochrane to outflank the stockade. He, with
-thirty Hausas, crept away into the bush to do so. Meanwhile,
-we ran short of ammunition, and had to load with
-gravel and stones. When I told the men to fix bayonets
-ready for a charge, I found they were so done up they
-could hardly stand. Our hour seemed to have struck,
-and the guns had again jammed. Just then three volleys
-sounded near the stockade. Cochrane was enfilading them.
-Hurrah! Instantly the Ashanti fire began to slacken.
-One charge, and it was ours.”</p>
-
-<p>Amongst those who had come in with the Hausas was
-Mr. Branch, an officer in the telegraph department. In
-reply to Lady Hodgson as to how he was so lame, he
-replied:</p>
-
-<p>“I and my men were busy putting the line right to
-Kumassi. We were peacefully going through the forest
-when&mdash;bang! one of my hammock-men went down, shot,
-and the rest, carriers and all, threw down their loads,
-and bolted into the tangle of trees and undergrowth. By
-good luck, I had taken off my helmet and placed it at the
-foot of my hammock. The rebels thought it was my head,
-and every gun was blazing away at my poor helmet. It
-was fairly riddled, I can tell you. I jumped out of the
-hammock, and made for the bush; but it was so thick and
-thorny, the brutes caught me and beat me with sticks
-about the legs and feet, so that I can scarcely walk, as
-you see. Well, it was my poor terrier dog that saved me;
-for he came nosing after me, but somehow took a wrong
-turn, was fired on and wounded, and went off whimpering
-into the bush in a different direction. The Ashantis<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[Pg 297]</a></span>
-followed my doggie, thinking he was with me; so I got
-away from them that night. I wandered about, trying
-to find the village, where a Kokofu chief was friendly to
-me. As daylight came I heard natives talking, and threw
-myself down under some leaves, thinking it would be
-rather unpleasant to be taken and tortured. Well, they
-came up, saw the grass had been disturbed, stopped,
-examined, found me! I was done for! No, I was not.
-I saw by their grinning and other signs that they were
-friendly. In fact, my carriers had told the friendly chief
-about me, and he had sent these men to bring me back;
-they had been looking for me all night. They carried me
-back to Esumeja, where I stayed until the Lagos Hausas
-came up on the 27th of April.”</p>
-
-<p>Next day the garrison of Kumassi found that their
-rescuers had been compelled to abandon their rice, and
-to fire away most of their ammunition on the road. Now
-there were 250 more mouths to feed, and food was running
-short. Rations were served out every morning, and it
-was a very delicate operation, for the loyal natives
-thought it a clever thing to steal a tin of beef or biscuits.
-The biscuits and tinned meat had been stored four years
-in a tropical climate; the meat-tins were covered inside
-by a coating of green mould, and the biscuits were either
-too hard to bite or were half-eaten already by weevils.
-Captain Middleton died on the 6th of May, and when he
-was buried, his “boy” Mounchi lay down on his master’s
-grave like a faithful dog and sobbed bitterly. That boy
-became a famous nurse; they called him the “Rough
-Diamond.” The poor refugees had now left the walls
-of the fort and had gone to their huts; they looked so
-wan and piteous.</p>
-
-<p>Night after night there came a fearful noise of drumming
-from the rebel camps. The loyal chiefs said the
-drums were beating out defiance and challenge to fight.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[Pg 298]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Why not send for more white men?” Ah! why did
-they not come?</p>
-
-<p>Every day news came of a rescue column; every night
-the rumour was proved false.</p>
-
-<p>On the 15th of May, about 3.30 p.m., there was a terrific
-hubbub all round the fort. Officers rushed on to the
-veranda to see what was the matter. Hundreds of
-friendly natives were streaming along the north road.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, chief?”</p>
-
-<p>“Heavy loads of food coming in. Much eat! much eat&mdash;very
-good for belly!”</p>
-
-<p>In a few minutes the garrison saw a joyful sight:
-Major Morris leading in his troops from the northern territories&mdash;such
-a fine body of men, all wearing the picturesque
-many-coloured straw hats of the north. Some of
-the officers were on ponies. Oh, what shaking of hands!
-what delightful chatter! But they, too, had had to fight
-their way through several stockades, and some were
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p>“The arrival of Major Morris,” writes Lady Hodgson,
-“seemed to take a load off our minds. He was so cheery,
-confident, and resourceful, and seemed always able to raise
-the spirits of the faint-hearted.... But the large
-loads of food did not in reality exist: they had only
-brought enough to last a week; they had, however,
-brought plenty of ammunition.”</p>
-
-<p>Major Morris was now in command of 750 of all ranks,
-and he resolved to make a reconnaissance in force. They
-went after the rebels far from the fort, and whilst they
-were away fighting, the wives of the refugees were doing
-a slow funeral dance up and down the road, chanting a
-mournful dirge, their faces and bodies daubed with white
-paint. In spite of this appeal to their gods, many
-wounded were carried back to the fort.</p>
-
-<p>Many a weary day came and went; no strong relief<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[Pg 299]</a></span>
-came&mdash;no news. The natives were dying of starvation:
-some went mad and shrieked; others sat still and picked
-their cloth to pieces. It was bad enough for all. A rat
-cost ten shillings; all pets had been eaten long ago.</p>
-
-<p>Then it was determined that the Governor and Lady
-Hodgson and most of the garrison should try to force
-their way to the coast, as there were only three days’
-supply of rations left. The 23rd of June was to be the day
-of departure.</p>
-
-<p>The Governor’s last words to the men left behind in
-the fort were: “Well, you have a supply of food for
-twenty-three days, and are safe for that period; but we
-are going to die to-day.” Captain Bishop was left in
-command of the fort, with a small force.</p>
-
-<p>From Captain Bishop’s report we learn that Major
-Morris had scarcely left Kumassi when he saw a band of
-Ashantis coming towards the fort from their stockade.
-They thought, no doubt, that the fort had been deserted,
-but the fire from two Maxims soon convinced them to
-the contrary. The refugees, who had built shelters round
-the walls, had all, with the exception of 150, gone away
-with the Governor’s column; but their empty shelters
-formed a pestilential area: over them hovered vultures&mdash;a
-sure proof of what some of them contained&mdash;and one
-of the first duties of the little garrison was to burn them
-up, after examining their contents.</p>
-
-<p>The day after the column left three men died of starvation,
-and almost daily one or more succumbed. When
-no relief came, as promised&mdash;though they had been told
-it was only sixteen miles off&mdash;their hopes fell, and after
-ten days they gave up all hope of surviving.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” he says, “we kept up an appearance of cheerfulness
-for the sake of our men. I regard the conduct of
-the native troops as marvellous; they maintained perfect
-discipline, and never complained. Some were too weak<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[Pg 300]</a></span>
-even to stand at the table to receive their rations, and
-lay about on the ground. All were worn to skin and bone,
-but there were a few who, to relieve their hunger, had
-been eating poisonous herbs, which caused great swellings
-of the body. Sometimes native women would come
-outside the fort and offer to sell food. A penny piece of
-cocoa realized fifteen shillings; bananas were eighteen-pence
-each; half a biscuit could be bought for three
-shillings. This may give some idea of the scarcity of
-food.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 14th of July we heard terrific firing at 4.30 p.m.
-Hopes jumped up again, but most of the men were too weak
-to care for anything. It was very pathetic that now, when
-relief was at hand, some of the men were just at the point
-of death.</p>
-
-<p>“At 4.45, amid the din of the ever-approaching firing,
-we heard ringing British cheers, and a shell passed over
-the top of the fort. We soon saw shells bursting in all
-directions about 400 yards off, and we fired a Maxim to
-show that we were alive. Then, to our intense relief,
-we heard a distant bugle sound the ‘Halt!’ and at six
-o’clock on this Sunday evening, the 15th of July, we saw
-the heads of the advance guard emerge from the bush,
-with a fox-terrier trotting gaily in front.</p>
-
-<p>“Instantly the two buglers on the veranda sounded the
-‘Welcome,’ blowing it over and over again in their
-excitement. A few minutes later a group of white helmets
-told us of the arrival of the staff, and we rushed out of the
-fort, cheering to the best of our ability. The meeting
-with our rescuers was of a most affecting character.</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Willcocks and his officers plainly showed what
-they had gone through. The whole of the force was
-halted in front of the fort, and three cheers for the Queen
-and the waving of caps and helmets formed an evening
-scene that none of us will ever forget.” So they won<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[Pg 301]</a></span>
-through by pluck and patience&mdash;33 Europeans and some
-720 Hausas opposing many thousands of savage and cruel
-natives.</p>
-
-<p>And what about the Governor’s party?</p>
-
-<p>They stole away on the morning of the 23rd of June in
-a blue-white mist, through the swamp and the clinging
-bush, till they came to a stockade. Then they were seen
-by the Ashantis, who began to beat their tom-toms and
-drums, signalling for help from other camps. But they
-took the stockade, and found beyond it a nice little camp;
-before every hut a fire was burning and food cooking, and
-no one to look after it. Many a square meal was hurriedly
-snatched and eaten, but some who were too greedy and
-stayed behind to eat fell victims to the returning foe.</p>
-
-<p>Then came a terrible wrestling with bad roads and
-sniping blacks and a deluge of rain, and most of their
-boxes were thrown away or lost.</p>
-
-<p>Of course there were many cases of theft. On the third
-night two men were brought into the village in a dying
-state. One of them was clasping in his hand a label
-taken from a bottle of Scrubb’s ammonia. They had
-broken open a box, and finished the two bottles which
-they found there: one was whisky, the other ammonia!</p>
-
-<p>Lady Hodgson writes: “One stream I remember well;
-it was some 30 feet wide, and flowing swiftly. Across
-it was a tree-trunk, very slippery. How was I to get over?
-The difficulty was solved by my cook carrying me over in
-his arms. He was a tall man, and managed to take me
-over safely; but more than once he stumbled, and I
-thought I should be dropped into the torrent. Often the
-road led through high reeds and long grass, and many a
-time I thought we had lost our way, and might suddenly
-emerge into some unfriendly village, to be taken prisoners
-or cut down.</p>
-
-<p>“At last N’kwanta came in sight, perched on a hill.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[Pg 302]</a></span>
-We could see the Union Jack flying on a flagstaff in the
-centre of the town, and the King’s people drawn up to
-receive the Governor. We were at last among friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Fires were burning everywhere, and the cooking of
-food was the sole pursuit. Our poor starved Hausas had
-now before them the diet in which their hearts delighted.
-It was a pleasant sight to see the joy with which they
-welcomed their altered prospects, and the dispersal of
-the gloom which had so long rested upon all of us like a
-pall.”</p>
-
-<p class="source">From Lady Hodgson’s “Kumassi,” by kind permission of Messrs.
-C. Arthur Pearson, Ltd.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[Pg 303]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXIII" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">MAFEKING (1899-1900)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Snyman begins to fire&mdash;A flag of truce&mdash;Midnight sortie&mdash;The dynamite
-trolley&mdash;Kaffirs careless&mdash;A cattle raid&mdash;Eloff nearly takes
-Mafeking&mdash;Is taken himself instead&mdash;The relief dribble in&mdash;At
-2 a.m. come cannon with Mahon and Plumer.</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th of October, 1899, Colonel Baden-Powell issued
-a notice to the people of Mafeking, in which he told them
-that “forces of armed Boers are now massed upon the
-Natal and Bechuanaland borders. Their orders are not
-to cross the border until the British fire a shot. As this
-is not likely to occur, at least for some time, no immediate
-danger is to be apprehended.... It is possible they
-might attempt to shell the town, and although every
-endeavour will be made to provide shelter for the women
-and children, yet arrangements could be made to move
-them to a place of safety if they desire to go away from
-Mafeking....”</p>
-
-<p>Mafeking is situated upon a rise about 300 yards north of
-the Matopo River. The railway, which runs north to Buluwayo,
-is to the west of the town, and crosses the river by
-an iron bridge. To the west of the railway is the native
-stadt, which consists of Kaffir huts, being called in
-Kaffir language “The Place Among the Rocks.”</p>
-
-<p>The centre of the town is the market-square, from which
-bungalows built of mud-bricks, with roofs of corrugated
-iron, extend regularly into the veldt. The streets were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[Pg 304]</a></span>
-barricaded, and the houses protected by sand-bags. An
-armour-plated train, fitted with quick-firing guns,
-patrolled the railway at times. The population during the
-siege included 1,500 whites and 8,000 natives. The town
-was garrisoned by the Cape Police and by the Protectorate
-Regiment, under Colonel Hore, by the Town Guard, and
-volunteers.</p>
-
-<p>Great was the excitement of the inhabitants as the day
-of bombardment drew near. They had been very busy
-constructing earthworks and gun-emplacements, piling
-up tiers of sand-bags and banks of earth to face them;
-some had dug deep pits to sit in, but at first such makeshifts
-were derided by the inexperienced.</p>
-
-<p>It had been notified that a red flag would fly from headquarters
-if an attack were threatening, together with an
-alarm bell rung in the centre of the town. Mines had
-been placed outside the town, and a telephone attached.</p>
-
-<p>Commandant Snyman had prophesied that when he did
-begin to bombard Mafeking English heads would roll on
-the veldt like marbles. Mafeking had no artillery to speak
-of, so no wonder that many hearts felt uneasy tremors
-as the fatal Monday drew near. Yet curiosity ofttimes
-overcame fear, and many coigns of vantage were chosen
-by those who wished to climb up and see the gory sport.
-The bombardment began at 9.15 a.m., and the first shell
-sank in a sand-heap, and forgot to explode. The second
-and third fell short, but not very short. Then came shell
-after shell, falling into street or backyard, and exploding
-with a bang. Numbers rushed to find out what damage
-had been done. Then grins stole across surprised faces:
-the area of damage was about 3 square feet. Three
-shells fell into the hospital, luckily doing no harm to anyone.
-After some hours of terrible, thundering cannon-fire,
-it suddenly ceased. The garrison counted up their
-casualties. Three buildings had been struck&mdash;the hos<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[Pg 305]</a></span>pital,
-the monastery, and Riesle’s Hotel; one life had been
-taken&mdash;it was a pullet that had never yet laid an egg!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_13" src="images/i_327.jpg" width="600" height="399" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">The Boers, taken by surprise, were unsteady and panic-struck</p>
-
-<p>An incident during the siege of Mafeking, when the British had sapped their way to within eighty yards of the Boer position.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Shortly after this bill of butchery had been presented
-the Boer General sent an emissary to Colonel Baden-Powell.</p>
-
-<p>“Commandant Snyman presents his compliments, and
-desires to know if, to save further bloodshed, the English
-would now surrender.”</p>
-
-<p>Baden-Powell is a great actor; he never smiled as he
-replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Tell the Commandant, with my compliments, that we
-have not yet begun.”</p>
-
-<p>But a few days later the Boers were seen to be very
-active on the veldt about three miles from the town, and
-the rumour spread that they had sent to Pretoria for siege
-guns. The townsfolk stood in groups and discussed the
-new peril.</p>
-
-<p>About noon next day the red flag flew from head-quarters.
-Presently a great cloud of smoke rose on the
-skyline; then came a rush of air, a roar as of some great
-bird flying, a terrific concussion, and then flying fragments
-of steel buried themselves in distant buildings, creating
-a sense of terror throughout the town.</p>
-
-<p>“Mafeking is doomed!” was the general cry that afternoon;
-those alone who had dug themselves deep pits were
-fairly comfortable in their minds. The second shot of
-the big Creusot gun wrecked the rear of the Mafeking
-Hotel, and the force of the explosion hurled the war
-correspondent of the <i>Chronicle</i> upon a pile of wood.
-Next day more than 200 shells were thrown into Mafeking,
-which was saved by its mud walls; where bricks
-would have been shattered and shaken, these walls only
-threw out a cloud of dust.</p>
-
-<p>As the Boers began to construct trenches round the city,
-Captain Fitzclarence was ordered to make a midnight<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[Pg 306]</a></span>
-sortie. Shortly after eleven o’clock the little party started
-on their perilous expedition; they crept on over the
-veldt in extended order, noiseless as possible, nearer
-and nearer to the Boer entrenchments. Those who
-watched them felt the weirdness of the scene&mdash;the deep
-silence, the mysterious noises of the veldt, the shadows
-caused by the bush. Now they were within a few yards;
-as they fixed bayonets they rushed forward with a cheer.
-Then figures showed in the Boer position; shots rang out,
-horses neighed and stampeded in fright. The Boers,
-taken by surprise, were unsteady and panic-struck; not
-many in the first trenches resisted long and stubbornly.
-Captain Fitzclarence, a splendid swordsman, laid four
-Boers who faced him on the ground; his men pursued with
-the bayonet.</p>
-
-<p>Botha said next day that they thought a thousand men
-had been hurled against them, and the Boers in the other
-trenches fired as fast as they could at anything they could
-see or not see, many of the bullets going as far as the town.</p>
-
-<p>This useless firing went on for a long time. When the
-attacking party arrived at the town again, they found
-they had lost only six men, eleven wounded, and two
-taken prisoners. Next day the Boers fired no gun until
-evening, and had plenty to do in collecting their wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Several such night attacks were made in order to check
-the Boers’ advance. After six weeks of siege, Colonel
-Baden-Powell said in a published order: “Provisions are
-not yet scarce, danger is purely incidental, and everything
-in the garden is lovely.” He was always trying to cheer
-up his little garrison with humorous speeches and funny
-doings, with concerts and dances and theatrical entertainments.
-It was the knowledge of what he had done
-to keep up the spirits of his men and the spirits of Englishmen
-at home which caused such a frenzy of delight when
-Mafeking was finally relieved. What seemed a madness<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[Pg 307]</a></span>
-of joy was a sure instinct in the nation. It is true that
-Mafeking, through the foresight of Julius Weil, the contractor,
-possessed immense stocks of food; but as to its
-defences, dummy camps and dummy earthworks built to
-affright the Boers would not have availed unless the
-loyalty and bravery of the colonists had been equal to
-the severest strain. There was a wild desire to spike “Big
-Ben,” but the Creusot was hedged round by barbed wire,
-guarded by mines, and flanked by Nordenfeldt guns. It
-seemed wearisome work, week after week, to find the
-Boers standing away four or five miles, while from their
-places of safety they launched their shells. Sometimes
-in the night Baden-Powell would go forth alone, and creep
-or stand and examine and ferret out the plans of the
-enemy. Often, as he returned, he would startle some
-dozing sentry, even as the great Napoleon, who once
-found a sentry asleep, and shouldered his musket until
-the fellow awoke with a start. “I will not tell, but don’t
-do it again!”</p>
-
-<p>Seven weary weeks have passed, and Mafeking still
-endures the straits of a siege and the terrors of a bombardment.
-The Boers have summoned to their aid the
-finest guns from their arsenal in Pretoria to breach and
-pound the earthworks; they pour shot and shell into the
-little town: but everybody is living below ground now.</p>
-
-<p>But they have bethought them of a new engine of terror
-and death. All was dark outside, the good folk in Mafeking
-were going to bed in peace, when a deafening roar
-shook the town to its foundation of rock; a lurid glow of
-blood-red fire lit up square and street and veldt, while
-pattering down on roofs of corrugated iron dropped a
-hailstorm of sand and stones, and twigs broken from
-many trees. The frightened folk ran out to see what had
-happened, and they saw a huge column of fire and smoke
-rising from the ground to the north of Mafeking. After<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[Pg 308]</a></span>
-the great roar of explosion came a weird silence and then
-the rattle of falling fragments on roof after roof; and
-then the cry of terror, the shriek of those who had been
-aroused from sleep to face the great trumpet-call of the
-Day of Judgment: for this they imagined that awful
-phenomenon to portend.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until the morning that they knew what had
-caused the alarm. About half a mile up the line the
-ground was rent and torn; the rails were bent and scattered
-and flung about as by an earthquake.</p>
-
-<p>On inquiry, they found that the Boers had filled a trolley
-with dynamite, and were to impel it forwards towards
-Mafeking. They lit the time-fuse, and proceeded to push
-the trolley up a slight incline. A few yards further, and
-it would reach the down incline, and would run merrily
-into town without need of further aid from muscle of man.</p>
-
-<p>But they gave over pushing a little too soon; the trolley
-began to run back, and it was so dark they did not realize
-it until it had gathered way; then they called to one
-another, and some pushed, but others remembered the
-time-fuse, and stood aloof with their mouths open.</p>
-
-<p>Very soon the time-fuse met the charge, and the dynamite
-hastened to work all the evil it could, regardless of
-friend or foe.</p>
-
-<p>Piet Cronje was in command of the Boers now; he was
-vexed by this unlucky accident, but threatened to send
-to Pretoria for dynamite guns, just to make this absurd
-veldt-city jump and squeal. Cronje was willing to ride up
-and storm Mafeking, but the idle braggarts who formed
-the greater part of his army dared not face the steel;
-yet there was more than one lady in the trenches able
-and ready to use her rifle. The natives had suffered
-more from shell-fire than the whites. It is not easy to
-impress the Kaffir mind with the peril of a bursting shell;
-though the Kaffir may have helped to build bomb-proof<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[Pg 309]</a></span>
-shelters for Europeans, yet for himself and his family he
-thinks a dug-out pit too costly, and will lie about under a
-tarpaulin or behind a wooden box, until the inevitable
-explosion some day sends him and his family into the air
-in fragments.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_14" src="images/i_333.jpg" width="439" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">An Amazon at Mafeking</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Davies, the lady sharpshooter, in the British trenches.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>One such victim was heard to murmur feebly as they put
-him on the stretcher, “Boss, boss, me hurt very.” They
-bear pain very stoically, and turn their brown pathetic
-eyes on those who come to help them, much as a faithful
-hound will look in his master’s face for sympathy when
-in the agony of death. There were so many shells that
-missed human life that the people grew careless and
-ventured out too often.</p>
-
-<p>Late in November a local wheelwright thought he would
-extract the charge from a Boer shell which had not exploded.
-The good man used a steel drill. For a time all
-went well, and his two companions bent over to watch
-the operation; then came a hideous row, a smell, a
-smoke, and the wheelwright, with both his comrades, was
-hurled into space.</p>
-
-<p>The Boers had not spared the hospital or the convent.
-The poor Sisters had had a fearful time; the children’s
-dormitory was in ruins, and their home riddled with holes.
-Still the brave Sisters stuck to their post, comforted the
-dying, nursed the sick, and set an example of holy heroism.
-Here is an extract from a letter describing a scene with the
-Kaffirs:</p>
-
-<p>“It is amusing to take a walk into the stadt, the place
-of rocks, and watch the humours of the Kaffirs, some
-8,000 in number. Now and then they hold a meeting,
-when their attire is a funny mixture of savagery and semi-civilization.
-You come upon a man wearing a fine pair
-of check trousers, and nothing else, but mighty proud of
-his check; another will wear nothing but a coat, with the
-sleeves tied round his neck; some wear hats adorned with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[Pg 310]</a></span>
-an ostrich feather, and a small loin-cloth. My black
-friend was such a swell among them that he wore one of
-my waistcoats, a loin-cloth, and a pair of tennis shoes.
-He wore the waistcoat in order to disport a silver chain,
-to which was attached an old watch that refused to go.
-But it was a very valuable ornament to Setsedi, and won
-him great influence in the kraal. Yet when my friend
-Setsedi wanted to know the time of day, if he was alone,
-he just glanced at the shadow of a tree; or if in company,
-he lugged out his non-ticker, and made believe to consult
-it in conjunction with the sun. The sun might be wrong&mdash;that
-was the impression he wished to create&mdash;and it was
-perhaps more prudent to correct solar time by this relic
-of Ludgate Circus. Thus Setsedi, like other prominent
-politicians, did not disdain to play upon the credulity of
-his compatriots.</p>
-
-<p>“Sometimes on a Sunday afternoon, when the Boers
-were keeping the Sabbath and no shells were flying
-around, the children of the veldt would begin a dance.
-They formed into groups of forty or fifty, and began with
-hand-clapping, jumping, and stamping of bare feet. The
-old crones came capering round, grinning and shrieking
-delight in high voices apt to crack for age. From stamping
-the young girls passed on to swaying bodies, every
-limb vibrating with rising emotion, as they flung out
-sinewy arms with languorous movement; then more wild
-grew the dance, more loud the cries of the dancers, as they
-threw themselves into striking postures, glided, shifted,
-retreated, laughed, or cried.</p>
-
-<p>“I had been watching them for some time when Setsedi
-came up to me and said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Baas, I go now to mark some cows for to-night;
-will you come?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘What! has the big white chief given you leave to
-make a raid?’ I asked.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[Pg 311]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“‘Yes, Marenna&mdash;yes; we are to go out to-night, and
-bring in a herd from beyond the brickfields yonder&mdash;if
-we can.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘And you go now, this afternoon, to mark them down,
-and spy out the ground?’</p>
-
-<p>“He smiled, showing a set of splendid teeth, pulled out
-his watch, hit it back and front with his knuckles till it
-rattled to the very centre of the works, spat carefully,
-and replied with some pride:</p>
-
-<p>“‘We brought in twenty oxen last week; the chief
-very pleased with us, and gave us a nice share, Marenna.’</p>
-
-<p>“Setsedi addressed me thus when he was pleased with
-himself and the universe: Marenna means sir.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Well, Setsedi,’ said I, ‘if I can get leave, I would
-like to go out with you to-night. May I bring my boy,
-Malasata?’</p>
-
-<p>“The idea of my asking his permission gave Setsedi
-such a lift up in his own opinion of himself that he actually
-reflected with his chin in the air before he finally gave
-his royal assent to my proposition.</p>
-
-<p>“Time and place were settled, and I went back to the
-club for a wash. These black chaps, if they don’t help
-us much in fighting, have proved themselves very useful
-in providing us now and then with rich, juicy beef from
-the Boer herds that stray about the veldt. When I went
-home and told Malasata he was to accompany me to-night
-on a cattle-raiding foray, like a true Kaffir, he concealed
-his delight, and only said, ‘Ā-hă, Ā-hă, Unkos!’ but he
-could not prevent his great brown eyes from sparkling
-with pleasure. When it was pitch-dark we started&mdash;about
-a score of us&mdash;and crept along silently past the
-outposts, word having been passed that the raiders were
-to go and come with a Kaffir password or countersign.</p>
-
-<p>“Most of the Kaffirs were stark naked, the better to
-evade the grasp of any Boer who might clutch at them.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[Pg 312]</a></span>
-A sergeant had been told off to accompany them; he and
-I were the only white men out that night. After an
-hour’s careful climbing and crawling, stopping to listen
-and feel the wind, the better to gauge our direction,
-Setsedi came close to my ear and whispered:</p>
-
-<p>“‘We can smell them, Baas; plenty good smell. You
-and sergeant stay here; sit down, wait a bit; boots too
-much hullabaloo; too loud talkee!’</p>
-
-<p>“It was disappointing, but we quite saw the need of this
-caution, and we neither of us saw the necessity of walking
-barefoot upon a stony veldt; so we sat down in the black
-silence, and waited. Yet it was not so silent as it seemed:
-we could hear the bull-frogs croaking a mile away in the
-river-bed, and sometimes a distant tinkle of a cow-bell
-came to us on the soft breeze, or a meercat rustled in
-the grass after a partridge. In about half an hour we
-heard something; was it a reed-buck? Then came the
-falling of a stone, the crackling of a stick as it broke under
-their tread; then we rose and walked towards our black
-friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Three or four Kaffirs were shepherding each ox,
-‘getting a move’ on him by persuasion or fist-law. Sometimes
-one ox would be restive and ‘moo’ to his mates,
-or gallop wildly hither and thither; but always the persistent,
-ubiquitous Kaffir kept in touch with his beast,
-talking to him softly like a man and a brother, and guiding
-him the way he should go. And all this time the Boers
-were snoring not 300 yards off, sentry and all, very
-probably. But it would not do to count upon their
-negligence; any indiscreet noise might awake a trenchful
-of Mauser-armed men, and bring upon us a volley of death.</p>
-
-<p>“When we had got the cattle well out of earshot of
-the Boer lines, the Kaffirs urged on the oxen by running
-up and pinching them, but without uttering a sound. As
-we drew near to the native stadt, a great number of natives<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[Pg 313]</a></span>
-who had been lying concealed in the veldt rose up to
-help their friends drive the raided cattle into the enclosure,
-and the sergeant went to head-quarters with
-the report of twenty-four head of cattle safely housed.”</p>
-
-<p>The besieged had persevered in their “dug-outs” until
-May, 1900, being weary and sometimes sick, faint with
-poor food, and hopes blighted. They had been asked by
-Lord Roberts to endure a little longer; Kimberley had
-been relieved, and their turn would come soon.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, President Kruger’s nephew, Commandant
-Eloff, had come into the Boer camp with men who had
-once served as troopers at Mafeking, and who knew much
-about the fortifications. Eloff made a skilful attack upon
-the town on the 12th of May, and was successful in capturing
-a fort, Colonel Hore, and twenty-three men. This attack
-had been urgent, because news had reached the Boers that
-the British relief column had reached Vryburg on the 10th
-of May, and Vryburg is only ninety-six miles south of Mafeking.
-During the fight Mr. J. A. Hamilton, not knowing
-that the fort had been taken, thought that he would ride
-across to see Colonel Hore. It was a short ride from
-where he was&mdash;only a few hundred yards. The bullets
-whistled near his head, and he scampered across the open
-to reach cover. It was a bad light, and smoke was
-drifting about, but he saw men standing about the head-quarters
-or sitting on the stoep facing the town. As he
-rode his horse was struck, and swerved violently; some
-one seized his bridle and shouted “Surrender!” They
-were Boers, and amongst them were Germans, Italians,
-and Frenchmen. Many speaking at once, they ordered him
-to hold up his hands, give up his revolver, get off his horse.</p>
-
-<p>“We had better all take cover, I think,” said Hamilton,
-as English bullets were falling rather near them.</p>
-
-<p>Then they took him within the walls. But he had not
-yet obeyed any of their orders.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[Pg 314]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Will you hold your hands up?” said one Boer, thrusting
-a rifle into his ribs with a grin.</p>
-
-<p>“With pleasure, under the circumstances,” he replied,
-trying to smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you kindly hand over that revolver?” said
-another.</p>
-
-<p>“What! and hold my hands up at the same time?”</p>
-
-<p>They were dull; they did not see the joke, but shouted,
-“Get off!”</p>
-
-<p>Some one unstrapped the girths, and Mr. Hamilton
-rolled to the ground. It was only then that he saw his
-horse had been shot in the shoulder, and he asked them
-to put the poor beast out of his pain.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no! Your men will do that soon enough,” said
-they.</p>
-
-<p>The poor animal stood quietly looking at him, as he
-says, with a sad, pathetic, inquiring look in his eyes, as if
-he were asking, “What can you do for me? I assure you
-my shoulder gives me awful pain.”</p>
-
-<p>Hamilton was taken inside the fort and made prisoner.
-When, later in the day, he came out, he found his poor
-horse lying with his throat cut and seven bullet-wounds
-in his body.</p>
-
-<p>There were thirty-three prisoners crowded in a small,
-ill-ventilated store-room, and they grew very hungry.
-As dusk settled down they began to hear echoes of desperate
-fighting outside. Bullets came through the wall
-and roofing, splintering window and door; through the
-grating of the windows they could see limping figures
-scurry and scramble; they heard voices cursing them and
-urging Eloff to handcuff and march the prisoners across
-the line of fire as a screen for them in their retreat. Then
-the firing died down, and the Boers seemed to have rallied;
-then came a fresh outburst of heavy firing, and then a
-sudden silence. Eloff rushed to the door.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[Pg 315]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Where is Colonel Hore?”</p>
-
-<p>“Here!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir, if you can induce the town to cease fire, we will
-surrender.”</p>
-
-<p>It was quite unexpected, this turn of events. No one
-spoke. Then Eloff said:</p>
-
-<p>“I give myself up as a hostage. Get them to cease fire.”</p>
-
-<p>The prisoners went out, waved handkerchiefs, shouted,
-“Surrender! Cease fire, boys.”</p>
-
-<p>When this was done sixty-seven Boers laid down their
-rifles, and the prisoners stacked them up in their late
-prison.</p>
-
-<p>Commandant Eloff was now a prisoner instead of
-being master of Mafeking; his partial success he owed
-to his own dash and gallantry, his failure to the half-hearted
-support of General Snyman. He dined at head-quarters,
-and a bottle of champagne was opened to
-console him and distinguish this day of surprises.</p>
-
-<p>On the 16th of May there was great excitement in the
-town; the great activity in the Boer laagers, the clouds
-of dust rising in the south, all showed that something
-new and strange was coming. News had come of General
-Mahon having joined Colonel Plumer a few miles up
-the river. “When will they come?” everybody was
-asking. About half-past two General Mahon’s guns were
-heard, and the smoke of the bursting shells could be seen
-in the north-west.</p>
-
-<p>In the town people were taking things very calmly.
-Had they not enjoyed this siege now for seven months,
-when it had been expected to last three weeks at the
-most? They were playing off the final match in the
-billiard tournament at the club. Then came a hubbub,
-and Major Pansera galloped by with the guns to get a
-parting shot at the retiring Boers.</p>
-
-<p>Then fell the dusk, and the guns came back. Every<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[Pg 316]</a></span>body
-went to dinner very elated and happy. “By noon
-to-morrow we shall be relieved,” they said.</p>
-
-<p>It was now about seven o’clock; the moon was shining
-brightly in the square.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello! what’s this? Who are you, then?”</p>
-
-<p>There were eight mounted men sitting on horseback
-outside the head-quarters office.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you, and what do you want?” asked a man
-in the crowd.</p>
-
-<p>“We are under Major Karie Davis with a despatch
-from General Mahon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, we’ve come to relieve you fellows; but you
-don’t seem to care much whether you are relieved or
-not.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the news travelled round the town; a great
-crowd gathered, and round after round of cheers broke
-out. The troopers were surrounded by enthusiastic citizens,
-cross-questioned, congratulated, slapped on the
-back, shaken by the hand, and offered&mdash;coffee!</p>
-
-<p>Major Davis came out and called for cheers for the
-garrison; then all fell to hallooing of such anthems as
-“Rule Britannia” and “God save the Queen.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the troopers of the Imperial Light Horse were
-taken in to supper.</p>
-
-<p>About two in the morning the troops entered Mafeking&mdash;not
-quite 2,000 men; but when the townsfolk, hearing
-the noise, ran out into the starry, moonlit night, they
-saw such a host of horses, mules, and bullocks, such a
-line of waggons and camp-followers, and such a beautiful
-battery of bright Royal Horse and Canadian Artillery and
-Maxims that life seemed worth living at last. Those who
-did not laugh quietly went home and cried for joy. They
-had earned their day of delight.</p>
-
-<p>Mafeking had endured 1,498 shells from the 100-pound<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[Pg 317]</a></span>
-Creusot; besides this, they had had to dodge 21,000 odd
-shells of smaller calibre. Men who saw Ladysmith said
-that the ruin at Mafeking was far greater.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Roberts had, with his wonted generosity, sent a
-mob of prime bullocks and a convoy of other luxuries.
-So when the Queen’s birthday came, as it soon did, the
-town made merry and were very thankful.</p>
-
-<p>England was thankful too, for although it was only a
-little town on the veldt, every eye at home had been upon
-the brave defenders who, out of so little material, had
-produced so grand a defence.</p>
-
-<p>It is not too much to say that Colonel Baden-Powell
-and his gallant company had not only kept the flag
-flying; they had done far more: they had kept up the
-spirits of a nation beginning to be humiliated by defeat
-after defeat, when most of the nations of Europe were
-jeering at her, and wishing for her downfall. But God
-gave us victory in the end.</p>
-
-<p class="summary">In part from J. A. Hamilton’s “Siege of Mafeking,” by kind permission
-of Messrs. Methuen and Co.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[Pg 318]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXIV" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF KIMBERLEY (1899-1900)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">The diamond-mines&mdash;Cecil Rhodes comes in&mdash;Streets barricaded&mdash;Colonel
-Kekewich sends out the armoured train&mdash;Water got from
-the De Beers Company’s mines&mdash;A job lot of shells&mdash;De Beers can
-make shells too&mdash;Milner’s message&mdash;Beef or horse?&mdash;Long Cecil&mdash;Labram
-killed&mdash;Shelter down the mines&mdash;A capture of dainties&mdash;Major
-Rodger’s adventures&mdash;General French comes to the rescue&mdash;Outposts
-astonished to see Lancers and New Zealanders.</p>
-
-<p>Kimberley is the second largest town in Cape Colony,
-and is the great diamond-mining district, having a
-population of about 25,000 whites. Mr. Cecil Rhodes
-was the Chairman of the De Beers Mines Company,
-which pays over a million a year in wages.</p>
-
-<p>Kimberley could not at first believe war to be possible
-between the Dutch and English, though they saw the
-regular troops putting up earthworks and loopholed
-forts all round the town. Next a Town Guard was
-formed to man the forts, while the 600 regulars and
-artillery were to be camped in a central position ready
-for emergencies. Cecil Rhodes arrived the last day the
-railway was open, and began at once to raise a regiment
-at his own expense&mdash;the Kimberley Light Horse. All
-the streets were blocked with barricades and barbed
-wires to prevent the Boers rushing in. The main streets
-had a narrow opening left in the centre guarded by
-volunteers, who had orders to let none pass without a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[Pg 319]</a></span>
-signed permit. Rhodes used to ride far out on the veldt,
-dressed in white flannel trousers, though the Boers hated
-him, and would dearly have liked to pot him at a safe
-distance.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Kekewich was in command&mdash;a man of Devon,
-and very popular with his men. On the 24th of
-October they had their first taste of fighting, when a
-patrol came across a force of Boers who were out with
-the object of raiding the De Beers’ cattle. Kekewich,
-from his conning-tower, could see his men in difficulties,
-and sent out the armoured train, and the Boers were
-speedily dispersed. There were many wounded on both
-sides, and the Mauser bullet was found to be able to
-drill a neat hole through bone and muscle, in some cases
-without doing so much damage as the old bullets of
-lower velocity in earlier wars.</p>
-
-<p>At the beginning of the siege it was feared that water
-might fail, but in three weeks the De Beers Company had
-contrived to supply the town with water from an underground
-stream in one of their mines.</p>
-
-<p>The bombardment began on the 7th of November,
-and, as at Mafeking, did not do much damage, for the
-shells, being fired from Spytfontein, four miles away,
-and being a “job lot” supplied to the Transvaal
-Government, did not often reach the houses, and often
-forgot to burst. So that, it is said, an Irish policeman,
-hearing a shell explode in the street near him, remarked
-calmly to himself: “The blazes! and what will they be
-playing at next?”</p>
-
-<p>But by the 11th the Boers had brought their guns
-nearer, had found the range, and were becoming a
-positive nuisance to quiet citizens.</p>
-
-<p>Sunday was a day of rest and no shelling took place,
-but on other days it began at daylight, and, with pauses
-for meals and a siesta, continued till nine or ten o’clock<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[Pg 320]</a></span>
-at night. As usual, there were extraordinary escapes.
-One shell just missed the dining-room of the Queen’s
-Hotel, where a large company were at dinner, and,
-choosing the pantry close beside it, killed two cats.
-Luckily there was time between the sound of the gun and
-the arrival of the shell to get into cover.</p>
-
-<p>The De Beers Company, having many clever engineers
-and artisans, soon began to make their own shells, which
-had “With C. J. R.’s Compts.” stamped upon them&mdash;rather
-a grim jest when they did arrive.</p>
-
-<p>On the 28th November Colonel Scott Turner, who
-commanded the mounted men, was killed in a sortie.
-He was a very brave, but rather reckless, officer, and was
-shot dead close to the Boer fort.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes our own men would go out alone, spying
-and sniping, and in many cases they were shot by their
-own comrades by mistake.</p>
-
-<p>By December the milk-farms outside the town had
-been looted, and fresh milk began to be very scarce; even
-tinned milk could not be bought without a doctor’s order,
-countersigned by the military officer who was in charge
-of the stores. The result was that many young children
-died.</p>
-
-<p>At Christmas Sir Alfred Milner sent a message to
-Kimberley, wishing them a <i>lucky</i> Christmas. This gave
-the garrison matter for thought, and the townsfolk
-wondered if England had forgotten their existence.</p>
-
-<p>Those who could spent some time and care on their
-gardens, for they tried to find a nice change from wurzels
-to beet, and even beans and lettuce. For scurvy, the
-consequence of eating too much meat without green
-stuff, had already threatened the town. Those who
-wanted food had to go to the market hall and fetch it,
-showing a ticket which mentioned how many persons
-were to be supplied. When horse-flesh first began to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[Pg 321]</a></span>
-used by the officers, Colonel Peakman, presiding at mess,
-said cheerfully: “Gentlemen, very sorry we can’t supply
-you all with beef to-day. Beef this end, very nice joint
-of horse the other end. Please try it.” But the officers
-all applied for beef, as the Colonel had feared they would.</p>
-
-<p>Then suddenly, when all had finished, he banged his
-hand on the table, and said: “By Jove! I see I have
-made a mistake in the joints. This is the capital joint
-of horse which I am carving! Dear! dear! I wanted
-so to taste the horse, but&mdash;what! not so bad after all?
-Then you will forgive me, I am sure, for being so stupid.”</p>
-
-<p>All the same, some of them thought that the Colonel
-had made the mistake on purpose, just to get them past
-the barrier of prejudice.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the end of January the bombardment grew
-more severe; the shells came from many quarters, and
-some were shrapnel, which caused many wounds. The
-new gun made by the De Beers Company did its best to
-reply, but it was only one against eight or nine. The
-Boers confessed that they directed their fire to the
-centre of the town, where there were mostly only women
-and children, for the men were away from home in the
-forts or behind the earthworks. The townsfolk tried
-to improve their shell-proof places, but most of them
-were deadly holes, hot and stuffy beyond description,
-but that made by Mr. Rhodes around the Public Gardens
-was far superior to the rest. The De Beers gun was named
-“Long Cecil,” after Mr. Rhodes, and was about 10 feet
-long; it threw a shell weighing 28 pounds. When it was
-first fired, the great question was, “Will it burst?”</p>
-
-<p>But the Boers were surprised, when they sat at breakfast
-in a safe spot, to hear shells dropping around like
-ripe apples. That breakfast was left unfinished, as an
-intercepted letter informed the garrison.</p>
-
-<p>However, the Boers soon placed a bigger gun near<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[Pg 322]</a></span>
-Kimberley, and shells began to fall in the market-place
-very freely.</p>
-
-<p>In February the garrison had a great loss. The last
-shell of that day fell into the Grand Hotel and killed
-George Labram, the De Beers chief engineer. It was
-Labram who had arranged for the new water-supply,
-who had made the new shells, and planned “Long Cecil.”
-He was to Kimberley what Kondrachenko was to the
-Russians at Port Arthur&mdash;a man of many inventions, an
-American, ready at all points. He had just gone upstairs
-to wash before dinner, when a shell entered and cut him
-to ribbons, so that he died instantly. A servant of the
-hotel was in his room at the time, and was not touched.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the middle of February notices signed by Cecil
-Rhodes were posted up all over the town to the effect
-that women and children should take shelter in the two
-big mines. So very soon the streets were full of people
-running to the mines with babies, blankets, bread, and
-bedding. The crowd was so great that it took from
-5.30 p.m. to midnight to lower them all down the shafts.
-Kimberley mine took more than 1,000, the De Beers
-mine 1,500, and all were lowered without a single accident.</p>
-
-<p>One day some natives came in with a story that the
-Boers had deserted the fort Alexandersfontein. Spies
-were sent out to investigate, and reported it to be a fact,
-so some of the Town Guard, with help from the Lancashires,
-sallied out and took possession of the fort. A
-few Boers who had been left there were wounded or taken
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>“We will wait a bit in this fort, boys, to see what
-will turn up,” said the Captain; and in a short time
-they saw four waggons coming up, which were driven
-unsuspiciously right into his hands. Other waggons
-followed, all full of most delicious dainties for Boer
-stomachs, but likely to be received in starving Kimberley<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[Pg 323]</a></span>
-with greater enthusiasm&mdash;such things as poultry, grain,
-butter, fresh vegetables, and bacon. The waggons were
-drawn by fat bullocks&mdash;a sight for mirth and jollity.</p>
-
-<p>In the afternoon the poor Boers knew what they had
-missed, and some very spiteful bullets were sent across
-for several hours.</p>
-
-<p>Major Rodger had sent some men to spy out the
-country, and was waiting for their return. Presently
-he saw two men advancing towards him, and thinking
-they were his own men he rode up to them. On drawing
-near he saw they were Boers. His main body of men were
-far behind, and he realized that if he galloped away he
-would be shot, so he quietly walked his horse up to them.
-One of the Boers said: “Who are you?” “Only one
-of the fighting-men from Kimberley,” the Major replied.
-They did not draw their revolvers, they did not cry
-“Hands up!” and seize him by the collar&mdash;no, all they
-did was to utter a brief swear, turn their horses’ heads,
-and scamper over the veldt as fast as they could, stooping
-over the pommel to avoid the Major’s fire. But half a
-mile away they hit upon some of their own comrades,
-fired a few volleys, broke the Major’s arm, and retired.</p>
-
-<p>Major Rodger, however, had not done his day’s work,
-and never told his men he had been shot until they
-returned to Kimberley in the evening. So much for a
-Kimberley volunteer!</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the little folks and the women deep down
-in the mine&mdash;some 1,500 feet&mdash;were busy devouring
-sandwiches of corned-beef and horse, and buckets of
-tea and coffee, with condensed milk, were lowered down
-too. The large chamber cut out of the rock was lit with
-electric light, and was not very hot, though it was
-crammed with children, many of whom were lying on
-rugs or blankets; they lay so thick on the floor that
-walking amongst them was the feat of an acrobat. But<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[Pg 324]</a></span>
-they were safe down there! No ghastly sights of mangled
-limbs met their gaze, no whizz of deadly shell, no scream
-of pain reached them there. It was worth something to
-have escaped the horrors of a siege, and to feel no nervous
-tremors, no cowardly panic, no dull despair.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Lord Roberts had not forgotten Kimberley.
-A force of some 5,000 sabres, led by General French, with
-two batteries of Horse Artillery, had galloped in the
-dead of night to the Modder River. Here a small Boer
-force fled from before them, and ever on through the
-quivering heat rode Hussars, Dragoons, and Lancers,
-until both men and horses fell out exhausted on the veldt.
-On the third day they came close to some kopjes, or hills,
-on which Boers were posted, who stared in amazement at
-the sight of the 9th Lancers sweeping in open order
-round the base of the hills. A hundred miles they had
-ridden with scant food and scanter water, so that the
-Boers might have been still more surprised to see many a
-trooper walking by his tired steed, and even carrying the
-saddle.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Conan Doyle tells us that “a skirmish was in progress
-on the 15th of February between a party of the
-Kimberley Light Horse and some Boers, when a new
-body of horsemen, unrecognized by either side, appeared
-upon the plain, and opened fire upon the enemy. One
-of the strangers rode up to the Kimberley patrol, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“‘What the dickens does K.L.H. mean on your
-shoulder-strap?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘It means Kimberley Light Horse. Who are you?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘I am one of the New Zealanders.’”</p>
-
-<p>How puzzled that member of the Kimberley force
-must have been&mdash;a New Zealander out on the African
-veldt!</p>
-
-<p>Soon the little clouds of dust on the horizon drew<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[Pg 325]</a></span>
-hundreds of townsfolk to the earthworks, and as the
-glint of spear-head and scabbard flashed out of the
-cloud, and the besieged garrison knew their troubles were
-over, men waved their hats and shouted, and tearful,
-laughing ladies flocked round the first men who rode in,
-and nearly pulled them out of the saddle. Then they
-set to and hauled the rest out of the mines, finishing
-that job well by midnight.</p>
-
-<p>For 124 days Kimberley had been besieged. The Boers
-had never once attacked the town, though not more than
-550 mounted men were latterly available for offensive
-work; these, with the Town Guard, Lancashires, and
-Kimberley Rifles, made a total of 3,764. Colonel
-Kekewich might well look radiantly happy; he had
-administered everything with strict justice, and had
-earned the respect and admiration of all, while Cecil
-Rhodes and the De Beers officials had magnificently met
-and countered every difficulty with generous skill and
-unflagging energy.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[Pg 326]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXV" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH (1899-1900)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Ladysmith&mdash;Humours of the shell&mdash;The <i>Lyre</i> tries to be funny&mdash;Attack
-on Long Tom&mdash;A brave bugler&mdash;Practical jokes&mdash;The black
-postman&mdash;A big trek&mdash;Last shots&mdash;Some one comes&mdash;Saved at last.</p>
-
-<p>Ladysmith, where Sir George White and his men detained
-the Boers so long, is a scattered town lying on a lake-like
-plain, and surrounded by an amphitheatre of rocky
-hills. To the north-west was Pepworth Hill, where
-the Boer Long Tom was placed; north-east of the town,
-and four miles away, was Unbulwana: here the Boers
-had dragged a large siege-gun.</p>
-
-<p>South of the town the Klip River runs close under
-the hills, and here many caves were dug as hiding-places
-for the residents. There were many women and children
-there all day long. On the 3rd of November the wires
-were cut; Ladysmith was isolated and besieged. On
-the next day it was discussed whether General Joubert’s
-proposal should be accepted&mdash;that the civilians, women,
-and children should go out and form a camp five miles
-off under the white flag. Archdeacon Barker got up, and
-said: “Our women and children shall stay with the men
-under the Union Jack, and those who would do them
-harm may come to them at their peril.”</p>
-
-<p>The meeting cheered the tall, white-haired priest, and
-agreed thereto.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[Pg 327]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The townsfolk soon got used to shell-fire, but they
-spent most of the day by the river in their cool caves.
-There was a Dr. Starke, a visitor from Torquay, who
-used to go about with a fishing-rod, and spend hours by
-the river&mdash;a kindly man, who one day found a cat mewing
-piteously at a deserted house, and, making friends with
-it, used to carry it about with him. This gentleman,
-having the cat in his arms, was standing near the door
-of the Royal Hotel talking to Mr. McHugh, when a shell
-came through the roof, passed through two bedrooms,
-and whizzed out at the front-door, catching the poor
-doctor just above the knees. His friend escaped without
-a scratch. Dr. Starke had always tried to avoid the
-peril of shells, and they used to banter him on his over-anxiety.
-It is strange how many hits and how many
-misses are in the nature of a surprise.</p>
-
-<p>Late in November a shell entered a room in which a
-little child was sleeping, and knocked one of the walls
-of the bedroom clean out. In the cloud of dust and
-smoke the parents heard the cry of the little babe,
-rushed in, and found her absolutely untouched, while
-20 yards away a splinter of the same shell killed a man
-of the Natal Police. At the same house later in the
-evening two friends called to congratulate the mother;
-they were being shown two pet rabbits, when a splinter
-of a shell came in and cut in two one of the rabbits.</p>
-
-<p>One day a Natal Mounted Rifleman was lying in his
-tent, stretched himself, yawned, and turned over. At
-that instant a shell struck the spot where he had just
-been lying, made a hole in the ground, and burst. The
-tent was blown away from its ropes, his pillow and
-clothes were tossed into the air. Poor fellow! his comrades
-ran towards him, and found him sitting up, pale,
-but unharmed. They could hardly believe their senses.
-“Why, man, you ought to have been blown to smithe<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[Pg 328]</a></span>reens!”
-Another day a trooper of the 18th Hussars
-was rolled over, horse and all, yet neither of them suffered
-any severe injury.</p>
-
-<p>December came, and by then the poor women were
-looking harassed and worn: so many grievous sights,
-so many perils to try and avoid, so many losses to weep
-over.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the correspondents brought out a local paper,
-the <i>Ladysmith Lyre</i>, to enliven the spirits of the dull and
-timid and sick. The news may be sampled by the
-following extracts:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>November 14.</i>&mdash;General French has twice been seen
-in Ladysmith disguised as a Kaffir. His force is entrenched
-behind Bulwen. Hurrah!</p>
-
-<p>“<i>November 20.</i>&mdash;H.M.S. <i>Powerful</i> ran aground in
-attempting to come up Klip River; feared total loss.
-[Klip River is 2 feet deep in parts.]</p>
-
-<p>“<i>November 21.</i>&mdash;We hear on good authority that the
-gunner of Long Tom is Dreyfus.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>November 26.</i>&mdash;Boers broke Sabbath firing on our
-bathing parties. Believed so infuriated by sight of
-people washing that they quite forgot it was Sunday.”</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Ladysmith Lyre</i> had come out three times before
-December.</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th of December, at 10 p.m., 400 men, who had
-volunteered for the task, were ordered to turn out, carrying
-rifles and revolvers only, and to make no noise. A
-small party of Engineers were to be with them. Their
-object was to destroy Long Tom, which was now removed
-from Pepworth to Lombard’s Kop, on the north-east. They
-started when the moon went down on a fine starlight
-night. By a quarter to two a.m. they were close to
-the foot of Lombard’s Kop, but the Boer pickets had not
-been alarmed. General Hunter, who led them, explained
-how 100 of the Imperial Light Horse and 100 of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[Pg 329]</a></span>
-Carbineers would steal up the mountain and take the
-Boer guns, while 200 of the Border Mounted (on foot)
-would go round the hill to protect their comrades from
-a flank attack. The Engineers, carrying gun-cotton
-and tools, followed close after the storming party. As
-our men were creeping quietly up the hill on hands and
-knees, amazed that there were no outposts, a sudden
-challenge rang out behind them: “Wis kom dar?”</p>
-
-<p>Had the Boer sentry been dreaming in the drowsy
-night?</p>
-
-<p>“Wis (pronounced ve) kom dar? Wis kom dar?” he
-impatiently shouted. Our men sat down on the slope
-above him, grinning to themselves, and made no answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Wis kom dar?” He was getting angry and frightened
-this time, by the tone of it.</p>
-
-<p>“Take that fellow in the wind with the butt of a rifle,
-and stop his mouth.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Boer knew who they were, and yelled to
-his comrades for help; then they heard him say to his
-after-rider: “Bring my peart&mdash;my horse!” and he was
-safely off!</p>
-
-<p>Further up the hill a shrill voice shouted: “Martinas,
-Carl Joubert, der Rovinek!” (the Red-neck). At this our
-men clambered up like goats, while a volley was fired,
-and bullets whizzed over their heads.</p>
-
-<p>“Stick to me, guides!” shouted General Hunter.</p>
-
-<p>As they neared the top Colonel Edwards, of the volunteers,
-shouted: “Now then, boys, fix bayonets, and
-give them a taste of the steel.” This was meant for the
-Dutchmen to hear, for there was not a bayonet amongst
-the assaulting party.</p>
-
-<p>The Boers do not like cold steel, and they were heard
-slithering and stumbling down the other side of the
-mountain. Now they were up on the top. There stood
-Long Tom pointing at high heaven, loaded ready, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[Pg 330]</a></span>
-laid to a range of 8,000 yards, or over four miles. Not
-a Boer was to be seen or heard anywhere.</p>
-
-<p>Quickly the Engineers got to work. Some removed
-the breech-block, others filled the barrel with gun-cotton,
-plugged both muzzle and breech, and ran a pretty necklace
-of gun-cotton round the dainty ribs of the barrel.
-Long Tom was looking quite unconscious of their attentions,
-and shone in the starlight.</p>
-
-<p>He had been set on solid masonry, was mounted on
-high iron wheels, and a short railway line had been laid
-down for purposes of locomotion. A thick bomb-proof
-arch was built over him, and huge pyramids of shells
-were piled up round about him. A Howitzer and a field-gun,
-which stood close by, were then destroyed, and a
-Maxim was reserved to be brought away.</p>
-
-<p>In about twenty minutes the Engineers announced
-that they were ready.</p>
-
-<p>Like goats they had swarmed about him, and now it
-was Long Tom’s turn to say “Baa!”</p>
-
-<p>The firing fuse was attached. “Keep back! keep
-back!”</p>
-
-<p>There was heard a dull roar from the monster, and the
-whole mountain flared out with a flash as if of lightning.</p>
-
-<p>“Had the gun-cotton done its work?” They ran
-back to inspect.</p>
-
-<p>“Barrel rent, sir; part of the muzzle torn away.”
-Long Tom has fired his last shot. The ladies of Ladysmith
-will be very thankful for this small favour. The
-men came back, most of them carrying small trophies.</p>
-
-<p>Down they scrambled; no barbed wire, no impediments.
-Who would have thought that these English
-would stir out o’ night? Had they no desire to sleep
-and rest? But when they got down they found some
-had been wounded. Major Henderson had been twice
-hit&mdash;thumb almost torn away, and a couple of slugs<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[Pg 331]</a></span>
-in his thigh. Yet he had never halted, and was the first
-to tackle the gun. A few privates were also hit, but only
-one so seriously as to be left behind in care of a surgeon.</p>
-
-<p>Great rejoicing at breakfast, and congratulations from
-Sir George White.</p>
-
-<p>But the time wore on, and sickness came&mdash;far worse
-and more fatal than shell-fire. There were hundreds of
-fever patients in the hospital outside at Intombi Spruit.</p>
-
-<p>Fever&mdash;typhoid, enteric&mdash;and no stimulants, no jellies,
-no beef-tea!</p>
-
-<p>The only luxury was a small ration of tinned milk.
-Scores of convalescents died of sheer starvation. The
-doctors were overworked, and they, too, broke down.</p>
-
-<p>No wonder that many in the garrison chafed at inaction,
-found fault with their superiors, and asked bitterly:
-“Are we to stay here till we rot?”</p>
-
-<p>By New Year’s Eve Ladysmith had endured some
-8,000 rounds of shell; many buildings had been hit half
-a dozen times. On New Year’s Day an officer of the
-Lancers was sleeping in his house, when a shell exploded
-and buried him in a heap of timber. When they pulled
-the mess off him, he sat up, rubbed the dust out of
-his eyes, and asked, “What o’clock is it?” He was
-unhurt.</p>
-
-<p>There was a small bugler of the 5th Lancers who was
-the envy of every boy in the town. This boy was in the
-battle at Elands Laagte, and when a regiment seemed
-wavering he sounded the call, the advance, the charge.
-The result was that that regiment faced the music, and
-did valiantly. A General rode up to the bugler after the
-fight, and took his name, saying: “You are a plucky
-boy. I shall report you!”</p>
-
-<p>For this boy, after sounding the charge, had drawn
-his revolver, rode into the thick of the fight on his Colonel’s
-flank, and shot three Boers one after the other.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[Pg 332]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Scores of officers gave the boy a sovereign for his
-pluck, and he wore his cap all through the siege in a very
-swagger fashion.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the regiments had their pet dogs in Ladysmith.</p>
-
-<p>When the King’s Royals went into action their regimental
-dog went with them. He had never been out of
-the fighting line, and had never had a scratch, but seemed
-to enjoy the fun of barking and looking back, saying,
-“Come on&mdash;faster!”</p>
-
-<p>There was another, a little red mongrel, who insisted
-on seeing every phase of warfare; he had lost a leg in
-India&mdash;it was so smashed up that the doctor had to
-cut it off. There he was, pottering about on three legs,
-full of inquisitive ardour, and when not engaged on
-sanitary inspection work, always to the front when the
-guns were at it. This was the Hussars’ dog.</p>
-
-<p>The Boers were fond of playing practical jokes. On
-Christmas Day they had fired a shell containing a plum-pudding
-into the artillery camp. On the hundred and first
-day of the siege one of the Boers on Bulwana Hill called
-up the signallers at Cæsar’s Camp, and flashed the
-message, “A hundred and one, not out.”</p>
-
-<p>The Manchesters flashed back: “Ladysmith still
-batting.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is the use of shelling these Britishers?” once
-said a Boer artilleryman. “They just go on playing
-cricket. Look yonder!”</p>
-
-<p>Ah! but that was in the early days of the siege, when
-they had some strength in them. Later, after having
-short rations of horse-flesh, they could hardly creep from
-hill to hill.</p>
-
-<p>Another day a heliograph message came: “How do
-you like horse-meat?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fine,” was the answer, “When the horses are
-finished we shall eat baked Boer!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[Pg 333]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It became very difficult to get letters through the
-Boer pickets; they had so many ways of trapping the
-native runners. The Kaffir paths were watched; bell-wires
-were doubled&mdash;one placed close to the ground,
-the other at the height of a man’s head. When the
-Kaffir touched one of these an electric bell rang on one
-of the kopjes, or hills, and swarms of guards swooped
-down to intercept him. But the Kaffir, being paid
-£15 a journey, did his best too.</p>
-
-<p>He left the outer line of our pickets at dusk, and flitted
-away silently to the nearest native kraal; he handed in
-the letters to the black chief, and wandered on empty-handed
-towards General Buller’s camp. Meanwhile a
-simple Kaffir girl would pass the Boer camp, calabash
-on head, going to fetch water from the spring in the
-early morning. The letters were in the empty water-vessel!</p>
-
-<p>She put them under a stone by the spring, and another
-maiden would come from the other side, and take them
-on in her calabash or mealie-jar.</p>
-
-<p>At last the native runner would call for them and
-carry the letters to the English lines.</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th of January a determined attack was made
-by the pick of the Boers upon Cæsar’s Camp. Our pickets
-in Buller’s relieving army could hear the sound of the
-guns, muffled by distance; officers and men gathered
-in groups on the hill-sides and listened intently to the
-long low growl of the rifle. Then came a helio message
-from Sir George White to General Clery: “Attacked on
-every side.” The nervous strain on these men, condemned
-to inaction after each new failure to cross the
-Tugela and fight their way into Ladysmith, became almost
-insupportable. They sat outside the big camp, gazing
-on Bulwana with telescopes and field-glasses, hardly
-daring to utter their thoughts. A second helio was flashed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[Pg 334]</a></span>
-across: “Enemy everywhere repulsed; fighting continues.”
-Then tongues were once more loosened, and
-hope arose as the distant firing sank to a sullen minute-gun.
-But half an hour later the booming of big guns on
-Bulwana was renewed, and away to the west arose a
-fierce rifle fire. “Attack renewed; enemy reinforced,”
-winked the helio from the top of Convent Hill, and again
-a dumb despair fell on the watchers. “Very hard
-pressed,” came the third message, firing our soldiers
-with indignant rage, as they thought of the poor part
-they had hitherto taken in relieving Ladysmith. But
-at length the heroism of the Devons, the Imperial Light
-Horse, and others of the Ladysmith garrison beat back
-the Boers’ desperate assault.</p>
-
-<p>The Devons had climbed up the hill late in the afternoon
-to avenge their fallen comrades. They had charged
-straight up the hill in a line, but a deadly fire at short
-range brought down dozens of them as they rushed the
-top. However, there was no wavering in the Devons,
-but they pressed forward at the double with the steel
-advanced, and only a few Boers waited for that disagreeable
-operation in war. There was a terrific hailstorm
-going on as Colonel Park halted his men just
-below the crest: it was a moment to try the nerves of
-the strongest. Once over that lip of hillside and a fiercer
-storm than hail would meet them in the face, and call
-many of them to their last account. No wonder many
-a hand went for the water-bottle, and little nervous
-tricks of foot and hand betrayed the tension of the
-moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Now then, Devons, get ready!” The men gripped
-their rifles in the old way of drill, quick and altogether,
-brows were knit, teeth set, and away they went into the
-jaws of death.</p>
-
-<p>“Steady, Devons, steady!” No need to bid them be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[Pg 335]</a></span>
-steady. They bore down upon the Boers with dogged
-and irresistible force, and the Boers turned and ran.
-Many an English officer fell that day, and several doctors
-were wounded while doing their duty.</p>
-
-<p>The Boers who fought most fiercely were the old
-Dopper Boers, who nursed a bitter hatred for all Englishmen.
-These men would refuse all kind help even when
-lying hurt. They were suspected sometimes of cruelty
-to our wounded; for more than one of our men was
-found covered with bruises, as though he had been kicked
-or beaten to death. But these things were exceptional,
-and such conduct was confined to the most ignorant and
-uncivilized of the old Boers.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the wounded lay where they fell for twenty-four
-hours and more. The Kaffir boys as they dug the long
-shallow graves would hum a low refrain; above wheeled
-the vultures, looking down upon the slain. The Boers
-confessed that it was the worst day they had ever had,
-and five days after the battle they were still searching for
-their dead. Our dead numbered about 150.</p>
-
-<p>The Imperial Light Horse, containing many young
-Englishmen in their ranks, greatly distinguished themselves.
-The Brigadier commanding in the fight wrote
-to their chief officer: “No one realizes more clearly than
-I do that your men were the backbone of the defence
-during that day’s long fighting.” But sickness carried
-off far more than rifle or cannon. The Imperial Light
-Horse, who came to Ladysmith 475 strong, were now
-reduced to 150; the Devons, from 984 had gone down
-to 480.</p>
-
-<p>As Majuba Day was coming near the messages brought
-by the runners became more hopeful: “All going well,”
-“Cronje is surrounded.”</p>
-
-<p>But time after time came the news of Buller’s failure
-on the Tugela, and with every piece of ill news came<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[Pg 336]</a></span>
-reduced rations at Ladysmith. The artillery horses were
-nearly all eaten, the cavalry horses too; those that remained
-were too weak even to raise a trot. Would Buller
-ever cut his way through? The garrison were beginning
-to despond. If they had to fight a fierce battle again
-like that at Cæsar’s Camp a few weeks ago, when the
-pick of the Boer forces tried to take it by storm, would
-they not reel and faint for very want of food? Then,
-when all looked dark, and the far-off sound of Buller’s
-guns seemed to be dying away in another failure, something
-happened.</p>
-
-<p>Men on outpost duty upon the hills round Ladysmith
-saw what seemed to them to be a long white snake
-crawling over the veldt. Officers seized their glasses,
-and started with an ejaculation of surprise, for what
-they saw was a long sinuous line of white-tilted waggons.
-“It’s the Boers coming away from the Tugela! By
-Jove! it’s a great trek!” Yes, the enemy were in full
-retreat at last; Buller had hammered them in so many
-places, and now at last he had succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>There they came, waggon after waggon, in endless
-succession, as it seemed. Verily, it was a retreat of an
-army, for there were thousands of horsemen too, riding
-at a hand gallop, singly or in clusters, a continuous
-stream of moving figures coming round the corner of
-End Hill and then riding north behind Telegraph Hill.
-They were seeking their railway base.</p>
-
-<p>But, though they rode fast in retreat, there was no
-confusion; the Boers know how to trek, and they do it
-well.</p>
-
-<p>Oh! that we had had some horses, good strong horses,
-to gallop our guns in their direction. But the horses
-were all either eaten or too weak to trot. Those who
-looked to Bulwana Hill saw a strange black tripod being
-erected above the big Boer gun: they were going to take<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[Pg 337]</a></span>
-the gun away. The gunners of the <i>Powerful</i> saw the
-tripod too. They set to work to try and prevent that
-work from being accomplished; both the 4·7’s were in
-action, and made the red earth fly near the Boer redoubt.</p>
-
-<p>The third shell burst upon the summit of the hill. The
-many clusters of men who were watching waited breathlessly
-for the white smoke to clear away, and when it
-cleared there was no tripod to be seen! Then an exultant
-shout rose up from hill-side and from spruit; some in their
-excitement danced and sang and shook hands and
-laughed. They were weak for want of food, and had not
-the usual English restraint. Then a great hailstorm came
-drifting by, and there was a rush into the town to tell the
-glad news.</p>
-
-<p>What a Babel of talk there was at dinner that evening!
-Why, some officers were so hopeful now that they ventured
-to predict that by to-morrow some of Buller’s
-men would be in Ladysmith.</p>
-
-<p>The dinner of horse-flesh was progressing merrily when
-all at once a strange clattering of shoes outside awoke
-attention. They listened in the mess-room, and heard
-eager voices, cries of men and boys as they hurried past.
-One went to the window and shouted: “What’s the
-row?”</p>
-
-<p>“Buller’s troopers are in sight; they have been seen
-riding across the flats!”</p>
-
-<p>What! Then they all jumped up, and the youngest
-and strongest fared forth with the hurrying crowd
-towards the nearest river-drift.</p>
-
-<p>On reaching this they saw across the river and the
-flat ground beyond, riding down a little ridge, a column
-of horsemen trotting towards them. Horsemen at full
-trot! Then they could not be any of their men, for their
-horses could not trot to save their lives.</p>
-
-<p>The evening sun shone upon their full kit, and no one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[Pg 338]</a></span>
-could doubt that it was the relief column at last! God be
-thanked!</p>
-
-<p>Now they had pulled up, and were welcomed by some
-officers of Sir George White’s staff. Meanwhile the motley
-crowd grew, at first too dazed to cheer or shout, but rather
-moist about the eyes. Malays were there in their red
-fezes, coolies in many-coloured turbans, and white-clad
-Indians, dhoolie-bearers, grinning a silent welcome.
-But the most excited and the noisiest in all that throng
-were the Kaffir boys and Zulus, the Basutos and
-Bechuanas. They felt no cold reserve strangle their
-expressions of delight, but danced and shouted and leapt
-like madmen, showing gleaming white teeth and sparkling
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>As they drew near the town they met many of the sick
-and wounded who had hobbled out, in their great joy,
-to receive the relievers, and who tried to wave their caps
-and say Hurrah! with the rest&mdash;a piteous sight of wan
-faces and poor shrunk shanks!</p>
-
-<p>And the men of the Relief Column&mdash;so brown and well
-they looked&mdash;were feeling in their pockets for tobacco
-to distribute round, for the spectacle they saw of white-faced,
-feeble-kneed invalids smote them to the heart.
-They had never realized until at this moment all that the
-defenders of Ladysmith had suffered for England.</p>
-
-<p>They rode in slowly, two by two, Dundonald and
-Gough and Mackenzie of Natal at the head of the column.
-All through the main street they rode, nodding to a friend
-here and a friend there, for the Imperial Light Horse had
-many friends in Ladysmith.</p>
-
-<p>There were wild cheers half choked by emotion, and
-the little ones were hoisted on shoulder to be able to see
-the strong men who had come to save them. Then in
-the twilight came Sir George White and his staff to
-welcome the rescue party. As the leaders shook hands<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[Pg 339]</a></span>
-the excitement and joy of relief broke forth again. Men
-bit their lips as if nothing was happening, but women
-and children cried and laughed and cried again. All in
-their heart, many in their voices, were thanking God for
-this timely deliverance. And then they fell to and cheered
-Sir George White: just then his patient heroism and kindly
-grip of power appealed to them. And some who had
-not wept before cried now when they looked on the old
-soldier, sitting so erect and proud in his saddle, with all
-the heavy cloud of care suddenly removed from his brow
-and the light of joy and gratitude shining through wet
-eyes. Twice&mdash;aye, thrice&mdash;he tried to speak, but the
-tears were in his throat and he could not utter his thoughts.
-Then the cheers came again, and gave him time to pull
-himself together.</p>
-
-<p>He lifted his bowed head and thanked them for all
-their loyal help, soldiers and civilians alike, and then
-finished by one solemn phrase that touched all hearts:
-“Thank God, we kept the old flag flying!”</p>
-
-<p>Why, the very Zulus caught the enthusiasm and leapt
-high into the air, waving bare arms aloft and shouting
-the old war-cry of Cetewayo and his savage <i>impis</i>. That
-night there were long stories to be told in the camp of
-the Relief Column.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Winston Spencer Churchill, M.P., wrote his story
-down of how they rode into Ladysmith: “Never shall I
-forget that ride. The evening was deliciously cool. My
-horse was strong and fresh, for I had changed him at
-midday. The ground was rough with many stones, but
-we cared little for that&mdash;onward, wildly, recklessly, up
-and down hill, over the boulders, through the scrub.
-We turned the shoulder of a hill, and there before us lay
-the tin houses and dark trees we had come so far to see
-and save. The British guns on Cæsar’s Camp were
-firing steadily in spite of the twilight. What was happen<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[Pg 340]</a></span>ing?
-Never mind, we were nearly through the dangerous
-ground. Now we were all on the flat. Brigadier,
-staff, and troops let their horses go. We raced through
-the thorn-bushes by Intombi Spruit. Suddenly there
-was a challenge: ‘Halt! Who goes there?’ ‘The Ladysmith
-Relief Column.’ And thereat, from out of trenches
-and rifle-pits artfully concealed in the scrub a score of
-tattered men came running, cheering feebly, and some
-were crying. In the half-light they looked ghastly pale
-and thin, but the tall, strong colonial horsemen, standing
-up in their stirrups, raised a loud resounding cheer, for
-then we knew we had reached the Ladysmith picket-line.”</p>
-
-<p>One word more on Sir Ian Hamilton, one of the greatest
-of our soldiers. It was he who held command on Cæsar’s
-Hill during those desperate seventeen hours of fighting.
-Spare, tall, quiet, smiling, he had the masterful manner
-of the born soldier, who fights and makes no fuss about
-it, and draws the soldiers after him in the forlornest of
-hopes by the magic of his sympathy and valour. Valour
-without sympathy, ability without the devotion of your
-men, can do little; but when both are united, steel and
-lead cannot prevail against them.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[Pg 341]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXVI" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI</a><br />
-<span class="smaller">SIEGE OF PORT ARTHUR (1904)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="summary">Port Arthur&mdash;Its hotel life&mdash;Stoessel not popular&mdash;Fleet surprised&mdash;Shelled
-at twelve miles&mdash;Japanese pickets make a mistake&mdash;Wounded
-cannot be brought in&mdash;Polite even under the knife&mdash;The
-etiquette of the bath&mdash;The unknown death&mdash;Kondrachenko, the
-real hero&mdash;The white flag at last&mdash;Nogi the modest&mdash;“Banzai”&mdash;Effect
-of good news on the wounded&mdash;The fleet sink with alacrity.</p>
-
-<p>Port Arthur consists of a small land-locked harbour
-surrounded by hills. As you sail into the harbour you
-have on your right the Admiralty depots, dock-basin,
-and dockyard, sheltered by Golden Hill; next the waterfront,
-or commercial quarter; on the left the Tiger’s Tail,
-a sand spit which narrows the entrance, behind which
-the torpedo-boats lie moored. The new town lies south
-of Signal Hill, on a plateau rising to the west. All round
-the town were hill-forts elaborately fortified.</p>
-
-<p>The hotels were, like the houses, very primitive: the
-best was a one-storied building containing about twenty
-rooms, each room being furnished with a camp bedstead
-and no bedding, one deal table, and one chair. Sometimes,
-if you swore hard at the Chinese coolie, you could
-get a small basin of water and a jug. There was a permanent
-circus, a Chinese theatre, music-halls, and grog-shops;
-a band played on summer evenings.</p>
-
-<p>General Stoessel, the military commander, was not loved
-by soldier or citizen: he was very strict, and, during the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[Pg 342]</a></span>
-war became despotic. They say he once struck a civilian
-across the face with his riding-whip because the man
-had not noticed and saluted him as he passed. His
-soldiers dreaded him, and would slink away at his appearing.
-Some such words as these would come from him
-on seeing a sentry:</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you? Where do you come from? When
-did you join? Why are you so dirty? Take off your
-boots and let me inspect your foot-rags? Oh, got an
-extra pair in your kit? Show them at once. Go and wash
-your face.”</p>
-
-<p>Though it was known that war between Russia and
-Japan was imminent, the officers and men of both navy
-and army took little heed, but relied on the strength of
-their fortress, its fleet, and batteries. What could the
-little yellow monkeys do against Russia? Well, on the
-7th of February invitations were sent out for a great
-reception at the residence of the Port Admiral, for it
-was the name-day of his wife and daughter. Officers of
-all grades flocked thither from the forts and the ships.
-After the reception followed a dance, very enjoyable, gay,
-and delightful.</p>
-
-<p>It was midnight, and many were down by the water’s
-edge waiting for gig and pinnace. A dull sound echoed
-through the streets that night.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear me! what is that, I wonder?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! only naval manœuvres, sir. We sailors must be
-practising a bit, you know, in case the Japs come.”</p>
-
-<p>Then there was a laugh: “They won’t dare to come
-under our guns!”</p>
-
-<p>But they had come! In their torpedo-boats the
-brave sailors of the “Rising Sun” were quietly steaming
-round the harbour, launching a deadly torpedo at battleship
-and cruiser.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning, when the Russians went down to see<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[Pg 343]</a></span>
-what was going on, they found the <i>Retvisan</i> nose down
-and heeling over, the <i>Tsarevich</i> settling down by the stern
-and with a pretty list to starboard, other vessels looking
-very uncomfortable, and a long way off, near the horizon,
-some black specks that actually “had the cheek” to
-bombard Port Arthur.</p>
-
-<p>Why, yes, as the curious citizen came to the Bund,
-he was so astonished that he forgot to run. Crates and
-sacks had been hurled about, double glass windows all
-smashed; and what was that big hole on the quay, big
-enough to hold an omnibus and four horses? “Good
-gracious! you don’t mean to say that those specks
-twelve miles away have done all this! Come, sir, let us
-seek shelter in the stone-quarries.”</p>
-
-<p>And the Russian batteries on Golden Hill? They
-were returning the fire from 10-inch guns; but the
-Japanese possessed 13-inch guns and were outside
-striking distance.</p>
-
-<p>A party of ladies and gentlemen had gone to the
-terrace before the Mayor’s house to see the pretty
-sight&mdash;it is not often you can see such a sight. A
-shell fell just below them! They scattered and went
-to bed.</p>
-
-<p>“What was it like? Oh, my dear, a noise like a big
-rocket, a blaze, a bang, an awful clatter all round, as the
-glass breaks and falls. You are dazed, you see yellow
-smoke, you smell something nasty, you shake&mdash;you run&mdash;run!”</p>
-
-<p>Yes, they all ran away from Port Arthur, all who could&mdash;merchants,
-tradesmen, coolies&mdash;all went by train or
-boat. Then there were no bakers or butchers, no servants,
-until the Russian troops were ordered to take the vacant
-places.</p>
-
-<p>If the Japanese had only known they might have
-taken Port Arthur that night of the torpedo attack;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[Pg 344]</a></span>
-but they left the Russians sixteen days of quiet to recover
-from their panic and to repair their ships. Then it was
-more difficult.</p>
-
-<p>The hole in the <i>Retvisan</i> was 40 feet long and 20 feet
-in depth. Seven compartments were full of water, and
-many dead bodies floated in them. But, beached and
-water-logged as she was, she used her guns with
-effect many times during the siege, so difficult is it to
-destroy a battleship unless you can sink her in deep
-water.</p>
-
-<p>It was not long before all foreigners, newspaper correspondents,
-or candid friends were ordered out of Port
-Arthur, so we have to rely on the evidence of those who
-witnessed the siege from the Japanese side. Even they
-did not at first find their freedom to see and pass from
-one hill to another very secure. One night two of them
-tried to get to the front under cover of the darkness.
-They soon met a Japanese officer, who reined in and asked
-where they were going. One of them could speak Japanese,
-and replied that they were looking for their camp. So
-he let them go. But what if they stumbled upon the
-Japanese outposts and were shot at as Russians? They
-must be very wary. In the starlight they saw a small
-hill in front of them, which they made for, hoping to see
-or hear more of the great fight which sounded louder as
-they walked&mdash;a roar of rifles broken by the rattle of
-machine-guns. As they climbed one of them said he
-saw a trench near the top of the hill and men sitting near
-it. They hesitated, but finally made up their minds to
-risk it, and advanced boldly, whistling carelessly as they
-went. The Japanese were all looking out in front, and
-did not at first notice the new-comers, who approached
-from behind. Then suddenly the thought came, “We
-are being taken in flank by the Russians.” The entire
-picket started to their feet. Many of them had been fast<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[Pg 345]</a></span>
-asleep, and, being aroused to hear the noise of heavy
-firing, they called out “Ruskies!” One Englishman tried
-to seize a Japanese by the hand to show he was a friend,
-but his intention failed, for both of them rolled into the
-trench. The other threw himself flat on the ground and
-called out in Japanese, “English friends!”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_15" src="images/i_371.jpg" width="600" height="378" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">A Russian Torpedo-boat Destroyer eluding the Japanese Fleet</p>
-
-<p>During the siege of Port Arthur the <i>Raztoropny</i>, with despatches, ran safely through the Japanese men-of-war in the teeth of a
-tremendous storm. She was pursued, but reached Chifu harbour, and her crew, having achieved their object, blew her up.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>When at last the Japanese discovered their mistake they
-were all smiles and apologies, and “Please go to the
-front, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>The Japanese made great mistakes at first: they lost
-many thousands by attacking in front hills and forts
-scientifically fortified. They were trying to do what
-was impossible. Some years before they had captured
-Port Arthur from the Chinese speedily and easily by a
-fierce assault. They had then been compelled by Russia,
-France, and Germany to give up their fair prize of victory.
-Afterwards Russia had seized Port Arthur and Manchuria.
-So honour and revenge both spurred on the Japanese
-to retake it from the Russians. The war became most
-cruel and sanguinary.</p>
-
-<p>After one night attack the Japanese left 7,000 dead
-and wounded on the hill-side. They could not fetch them
-in, though they were within call. Some few crawled
-back to their friends at night; many lay out for days,
-being fed by biscuits and balls of rice thrown from the
-Japanese trenches&mdash;the Japanese were fed almost entirely
-on rice.</p>
-
-<p>A naval surgeon tells a story which explains the
-conduct of the Japanese when suffering intense pain.
-He says:</p>
-
-<p>“When the battleship <i>Hatsure</i> was sunk in May, a
-sailor was laid on the operating-table who had a piece
-of shell 2½ inches long bedded in his right thigh. I
-offered him a cigar as he came in, which he eagerly
-took, but the surgeon told him not to smoke it just<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[Pg 346]</a></span>
-then. His smaller injuries were first attended to, and
-then the surgeon turned to the severe wound in the
-man’s thigh.</p>
-
-<p>“In order to pull out the piece of steel still embedded
-in the limb, he was obliged to pass his hand into the
-wound, which was deep enough to hide it as far as the
-wrist. During this painful operation the sailor never
-spoke or winced, but kept trying to reach the breast-pocket
-of his coat. At length the surgeon, irritated by
-his fidgety manner, asked: ‘What are you doing? Why
-can’t you keep quiet?’</p>
-
-<p>“The sailor replied: ‘I want to give that English
-gentleman a cigarette in exchange for the cigar he
-kindly gave me.’ Even in the throes of that agony the
-Japanese sailor could not forget his politeness and
-gratitude.”</p>
-
-<p>They are a curious mixture of opposites, these Japanese&mdash;one
-day facing machine-guns like fiends incarnate,
-or giving their bodies to be used as a human ladder in
-attempt to escalade a fort, the next day sucking sweetmeats
-like little boys. You come upon some groups by
-a creek: they are laughing and playing practical jokes
-as they sharpen up their bayonets with busy, innocent
-faces, making ready for the great assault at dawn to-morrow.
-A few yards further on you find them in all
-states of undress, their underwear fluttering to the breeze,
-some of them sitting on the stones and tubbing with real
-soap. You ask them, Why so busy this afternoon?
-They smile and nod their heads towards Port Arthur,
-and one who speaks English explains that they had been
-taught at school this proverb: “Japanese fight like gentlemen,
-and if they are found dead on the field, they will be
-found like gentlemen, clean and comely.”</p>
-
-<p>There were so many forms of death in this siege&mdash;<i>plurima
-mortis imago</i>, as Virgil says&mdash;from the speedy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[Pg 347]</a></span>
-bullet to the common shell, shrapnel, and pom-pom.
-But besides these common inventions there were mines
-that exploded under their feet as they walked, hand-grenades
-thrown in their faces as they approached the
-forts; there were pits filled with petroleum ready to be
-lit by an electric wire, and poisonous gases to be flung
-from wide-mouthed mortars. But the one which spread
-terror even amongst the bravest was what they called
-“the unknown death.” It was said that during the
-early attacks in August, one whole line of infantry which
-was rushing to the assault had fallen dead side by side,
-and that no wounds had been found on them. At last
-it was discovered the Russian chief electrician had ordered
-a “live” wire to be placed among the ordinary wire
-entanglements, furnished with a current strong enough
-to kill anyone who touched it.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, it was liable to be destroyed by shell or
-cannon fire, but in many cases it proved fatal, and always
-made the attackers nervous. The Russians had such
-steel-wire entanglements placed at the foot of all their
-positions, and where success depended on the dash and
-speed of the infantry, they succeeded in stopping them
-and exposing them to a heavy fire. As a rule, volunteers
-went out at night with strong wire-nippers and cut the
-strands, or they set fire to the wooden posts and let them
-come to the ground together. Sometimes in a fierce
-charge the sappers used to lie down beneath the wires,
-pretending to be dead, and choose a moment for using
-their nippers; some even, in their desperate efforts to
-get through, would seize the wire between their teeth
-and try and bite it through.</p>
-
-<p>The man among the Russians who was the mainspring
-of the defence was General Kondrachenko. He was an
-eminent engineer, very popular with the men, one of
-the bravest and most scientific of the Russian officers.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[Pg 348]</a></span>
-On the 15th of December the General and his staff were
-sitting inside North Keikwansan Fort, in the concrete
-barrack just underneath the spot where a shell had made
-a hole in the roof. This had been repaired, and they had
-come to see if it had been well done. As luck would
-have it, a second 28-centimetre shell came through the
-same place and burst inside the barrack, killing the
-gallant Kondrachenko and eight other officers who were
-with him. This was the gravest blow that Port Arthur
-could have suffered, for this man was the spirit of resistance
-personified.</p>
-
-<p>After his death Stoessel began to seek for excuses to
-surrender. He called a council of war, and proposed that,
-as the Japanese had taken so many forts and sunk their
-warships, terms of surrender should be proposed. Almost
-every one was opposed to it, and some officers were so
-disgusted that they privately suggested kidnapping
-Stoessel and locking him up.</p>
-
-<p>The Japanese policy of mining and firing mines under
-the redoubts had succeeded so often that the Russians
-had got into a nervous state. On the 1st of January
-the fort of Wantai was rushed and captured; mountain-guns
-and quick-firers were sent up to help in holding the
-ground, ammunition was sent forward, everything made
-ready to rush the whole of the eastern defences, when, to
-the astonishment of all, from General to private, a white
-flag was seen fluttering over the valley. The news spread
-like wild-fire that Stoessel wished to capitulate. Could
-it be possible?</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="img_16" src="images/i_377.jpg" width="423" height="600" alt="" />
-<div class="caption">
-
-<p class="header">A Human Ladder</p>
-
-<p>The Japanese soldiers made their bodies practically into a ladder, and thus enabled
-their comrades to escalade a fort.</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>At 9 a.m. on the following morning, the 2nd of January,
-a little group of foreign pressmen assembled as usual in
-the small room provided for them at head-quarters.
-They discussed the white flag incident; but they remembered
-that Stoessel had said that he would die in the last
-ditch, so it did not seem probable. Captain Zasuhara,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[Pg 349]</a></span>
-whose duty it was to inform them of what was going on,
-was late in appearing, and when the door opened, it
-was not the Captain, but an orderly, who entered, carrying
-a tray on which was a bottle of liqueur brandy and
-several glasses. Something strange must be going to
-happen when a Japanese officer begins drinking liqueur
-so early!</p>
-
-<p>A few moments later Captain Zasuhara came in.</p>
-
-<p>“Gentlemen, General Stoessel has capitulated; Port
-Arthur has surrendered. Banzai!”</p>
-
-<p>They all joined in the shout “Banzai!” which means
-“Live for ever!” and then gave three lusty Saxon cheers,
-which brought out General Nogi, the Commander-in-Chief.
-He who for so many months had borne the grave
-responsibility of sending so many thousands to their
-death, he who had lost both his sons before Port Arthur,
-and tried so hard to conceal his grief, now beamed with
-joy at the sudden relief, and the lines that used to seam
-his forehead were smoothed out and almost invisible.
-A grand gentleman was Nogi, gentle and polite and kind
-to all. Who could have grudged him this triumph after
-so much sorrow and disappointment?</p>
-
-<p>He offered his hand, received their congratulations with
-dignity, and said with an under-current of sadness and
-a voice as soft as a woman’s: “I thank you all for staying
-with me through the dark days of disappointment and
-all the sorrowful hours of this terrible siege.”</p>
-
-<p>The proud spirit of the Samurai soldier seemed blended
-with the gentle feeling of the Buddhist. It was a touching
-sight to have seen.</p>
-
-<p>And how the news stirred the troops! Men broke into
-snatches of song, then shouted and yelled “Banzai!”
-until they choked. In the field-hospitals the wounded,
-trying to rise from their canvas stretchers, joined in the
-cheering with thin, weak voices. At night wood fires<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[Pg 350]</a></span>
-were lit all round the hills, and many of the Russian
-garrison left their dismal forts and came down to sip
-<i>saké</i> (rice wine), and after spending a night of carousal
-with their late enemies, the big, burly foemen of the North
-were glad to be helped homewards by their polite hosts,
-who bowed on leaving them and hoped they would not
-suffer from the after-effects of Japanese hospitality.</p>
-
-<p>Astonishing, too, was the effect of the good news on
-the wounded. Desperately wounded men crawled over
-the stony hills and walked to the hospitals without aid.
-If you said to one such, “You are badly hurt; let me give
-you an arm,” he smiled proudly, and said with a salute,
-“No, no; Port Arthur has fallen!”</p>
-
-<p>One man who had been shot in the head, and whose
-right arm had been smashed to pieces by a shell, walked
-to the dressing-station, had his arm amputated and his
-head dressed, and then walked two miles further to the
-field-hospital. The news was too good for him to think
-of his own pain. Another man had a bullet through
-his chest. He walked two miles to the hospital; there
-he coolly asked the surgeon if he thought he might live.
-The surgeon, though he knew the man’s case was hopeless,
-said, “Oh yes; but” (after a pause) “if you have any
-letter you wish written, do it at once.” The soldier
-replied, “All I desire is that a letter should be written
-to my mother.” No sooner had he uttered these words
-than he fell dead on the spot. It reminds one of a young
-Lieutenant in Browning’s poem, who had ridden with
-dispatches to Napoleon. “Why, my boy, you are
-wounded!” “Nay, sire; I am killed.”</p>
-
-<p>In the harbour at Port Arthur there were riding at
-anchor five battleships and two cruisers. On the 10th of
-August they had gone out to meet Admiral Togo, and had
-returned next day badly damaged.</p>
-
-<p>By the 1st of September they had been repaired.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[Pg 351]</a></span>
-But on November the 27th began a tremendous battle
-for the possession of 203 Metre Hill. On the 5th of
-December that hill was taken at a fearful cost of lives,
-and a Japanese naval Lieutenant wormed his way into
-the shallow trench and by help of his nautical instruments
-was able to take observations and give the correct direction
-and distance to the artillery commander, who at once
-trained Howitzers on the fleet. All the ships were sunk
-by the 6th of December, with the exception of the <i>Sevastopol</i>,
-which steamed out under Captain von Essen and
-anchored under the batteries of Tiger’s Tail.</p>
-
-<p>This brave officer tried to protect his ship by a wooden
-boom and by torpedo-nets. For three nights he was
-attacked by Japanese boats and torpedoes, and inflicted
-great damage on them. At last the boom was pierced
-and the ship’s steering-gear ruined by a torpedo. The
-<i>Sevastopol</i> showed signs of settling down, so that night
-steam was got up for the last time, and the gallant
-commander with a few picked men took her out into
-deep water, opened the sluice-cocks, and then, taking
-to his launch, pulled away a bit and watched the great
-battleship settle down stern first in the dim and misty
-moonlight.</p>
-
-<p>It is only right that the pluck of this Russian Captain
-should be remembered when we think of the poor defence
-made by the Russian Navy.</p>
-
-<p>As for the rest of the fleet, the battleships and cruisers
-were huddled together with a strong list and their upper
-works destroyed. They have since been raised and repaired,
-and belong to the Mikado.</p>
-
-<p>The siege of Port Arthur cost General Nogi’s army
-89,000 men in killed, wounded, and sick; of these 10,000
-were officers.</p>
-
-<p>The Japanese have read a great lesson in patriotism
-and sense of duty to the whole world. To the courtly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[Pg 352]</a></span>
-and feudal chivalry of their old-world Samurai, or Noble,
-they have added the foresight and inventive genius of
-the European. They have suddenly sprung into the front
-rank of civilized nations, and no one can forecast the
-greatness of their future.</p>
-
-<p class="source">From “The Siege of Port Arthur,” by E. Ashmead Bartlet, by kind
-permission of Messrs. W. Blackwood and Sons.</p>
-
-<p class="p4 center">THE END</p>
-
-<p class="p4 center small"><span class="bt">BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD</span></p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Romance of Modern Sieges, by Edward Gilliat
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROMANCE OF MODERN SIEGES ***
-
-***** This file should be named 50231-h.htm or 50231-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/0/2/3/50231/
-
-Produced by Shaun Pinder, Paul Clark and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ea606c8..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_004.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_004.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b5c5aca..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_004.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_027.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_027.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2766d4b..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_027.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_059.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_059.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5f7bff4..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_059.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_071.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_071.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 178ca79..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_071.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_103.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_103.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 64a66a1..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_103.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_137.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_137.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2fa2527..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_137.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_165.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_165.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a63eb5b..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_165.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_193.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_193.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 32c534e..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_193.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_231.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_231.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 19da542..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_231.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_241.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_241.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3ce3bfa..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_241.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_263.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_263.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d719a22..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_263.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_303.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_303.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3f0dc4e..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_303.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_327.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_327.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 314edbe..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_327.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_333.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_333.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2647ea7..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_333.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_371.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_371.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fbd5437..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_371.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/50231-h/images/i_377.jpg b/old/50231-h/images/i_377.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9c99a5d..0000000
--- a/old/50231-h/images/i_377.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ